"Rowling, J.K. - Harry Potter 03 - Harry Potter and the Prisoner of Azkaban" - читать интересную книгу автора (Rowling J. K)
by J.K. Rowling
Book 3 in the Harry Potter Series
CHAPTER ONE OWL POST
Harry Potter was a highly
unusual boy in many ways. For one thing, he hated the summer holidays more than
any other time of year. For another, he really wanted to do his homework but
was forced to do it in secret, in the dead of night. And he also happened to be
a wizard.
It was nearly midnight, and he
was lying on his stomach in bed, the blankets drawn right over his head like a
tent, a flashlight in one hand and a large leather-bound book (A History of
Magic by Bathilda Bagshot) propped open against the pillow. Harry moved the
tip of his eagle-feather quill down the page, frowning as he looked for
something that would help him write his essay, 'Witch Burning in the Fourteenth
Century Was Completely Pointless - discuss.'
The quill paused at the top of a
likely looking paragraph. Harry pushed his round glasses up the bridge of his
nose, moved his flashlight closer to the book, and read:
Non-magic people (more
commonly known as Muggles) were particularly afraid of magic in medieval times,
but not very good at recognizing it. On the rare occasion that they did catch a
real witch or wizard, burning had no effect whatsoever. The witch or wizard
would perform a basic Flame-Freezing Charm and then pretend to shriek with pain
while enjoying a gentle, tickling sensation. Indeed, Wendelin the Weird enjoyed
being burned so much that she allowed herself to be caught no less than
forty-seven times in various disguises.
Harry put his quill between
his teeth and reached underneath his pillow for his inkbottle and a roll of
parchment. Slowly and very carefully he unscrewed the ink bottle, dipped his
quill into it, and began to write, pausing every now and then to listen,
because if any of the Dursleys heard the scratching of his quill on their way
to the bathroom, he'd probably find himself locked in the cupboard under the
stairs for the rest of the summer.
The Dursley family of Number
Four, Privet Drive, was the reason that Harry never enjoyed his summer
holidays. Uncle Vernon, Aunt Petunia, and their son, Dudley, were Harry's only
living relatives. They were Muggles, and they had a very medieval attitude
toward magic. Harry's dead parents, who had been a witch and wizard themselves,
were never mentioned under the Dursleys' roof. For years, Aunt Petunia and
Uncle Vernon had hoped that if they kept Harry as downtrodden as possible, they
would be able to squash the magic out of him. To their fury, they had not been
unsuccessful. These days they lived in terror of anyone finding out that Harry
had spent most of the last two years at Hogwarts School of Witchcraft and
Wizardry. The most they could do, however, was to lock away Harry's spell
books, wand, cauldron, and broomstick at the start of the summer break, and
forbid him to talk to the neighbors.
This separation from his spell
books had been a real problem for Harry, because his teachers at Hogwarts had
given him a lot of holiday work. One of the essays, a particularly nasty one
about shrinking potions, was for Harry's least favorite teacher, Professor Snape,
who would be delighted to have an excuse to give Harry detention for a month.
Harry had therefore seized his chance in the first week of the holidays. While
Uncle Vernon, Aunt Petunia, and Dudley had gone out into the front garden to
admire Uncle Vernon's new company car (in very loud voices, so that the rest of
the street would notice it too), Harry had crept downstairs, picked the lock on
the cupboard under the stairs, grabbed some of his books, and hidden them in
his bedroom. As long as he didn't leave spots of ink on the sheets, the
Dursleys need never know that he was studying magic by night.
Harry was particularly keen to
avoid trouble with his aunt and uncle at the moment, as they were already in an
especially bad mood with him, all because he'd received a telephone call from a
fellow wizard one week into the school vacation.
Ron Weasley, who was one of
Harry's best friends at Hogwarts, came from a whole family of wizards. This
meant that he knew a lot of things Harry didn't, but had never used a telephone
before. Most unluckily, it had been Uncle Vernon who had answered the call.
"Vernon Dursley
speaking."
Harry, who happened to be in the
room at the time, froze as he heard Ron's voice answer.
"HELLO? HELLO? CAN YOU HEAR
ME? I - WANT - TO - TALK - TO - HARRY - POTTER!"
was yelling so loudly that Uncle
Vernon jumped and held the receiver a foot away from his ear, staring at it
with an expression of mingled fury and alarm.
"WHO IS THIS?" he
roared in the direction of the mouthpiece. "WHO ARE YOU?"
"RON - WEASLEY!" Ron
bellowed back, as though he and Uncle Vernon were speaking from opposite ends
of a football field. "I'M - A - FRIEND - OF - HARRY'S - FROM - SCHOOL
-"
Uncle Vernon's small eyes
swiveled around to Harry, who was rooted to the spot.
"THERE IS NO HARRY POTTER
HERE!" he roared, now holding the receiver at arm's length, as though
frightened it might explode. "I DON'T KNOW WHAT SCHOOL YOU'RE TALKING
ABOUT! NEVER CONTACT ME AGAIN! DON'T YOU COME NEAR MY FAMILY!"
And he threw the receiver back
onto the telephone as if dropping a poisonous spider. The fight that had followed
had been one of the worst ever.
"HOW DARE YOU GIVE THIS
NUMBER TO PEOPLE LIKE - PEOPLE LIKE YOU!" Uncle Vernon had roared,
spraying Harry with spit.
Ron obviously realized that he'd
gotten Harry into trouble, because he hadn't called again. Harry's other best
friend from Hogwarts, Hermione Granger, hadn't been in touch either. Harry
suspected that Ron had warned Hermione not to call, which was a pity, because
Hermione, the cleverest witch in Harry's year, had Muggle parents, knew
perfectly well how to use a telephone, and would probably have had enough sense
not to say that she went to Hogwarts.
So Harry had had no word from
any of his wizarding friends for five long weeks, and this summer was turning
out to be almost as bad as the last one. There was just one very small
improvement - after swearing that he wouldn't use her to send letters to any of
his friends, Harry had been allowed to let his owl, Hedwig, out at night. Uncle
Vernon had given in because of the racket Hedwig made if she was locked in her
cage all the time.
Harry finished writing about
Wendelin the Weird and paused to listen again. The silence in the dark house
was broken only by the distant, grunting snores of his enormous cousin, Dudley.
It must be very late, Harry thought. His eyes were itching with tiredness.
Perhaps he'd finish this essay tomorrow night...
He replaced the top of the ink
bottle; pulled an old pillowcase from under his bed; put the flashlight, A
History of Magic, his essay, quill, and ink inside it; got out of bed; and
hid the lot under a loose floorboard under his bed. Then he stood up,
stretched, and checked the time on the luminous alarm clock on his bedside
table.
It was one o'clock in the
morning. Harry's stomach gave a funny jolt. He had been thirteen years old,
without realizing it, for a whole hour.
Yet another unusual thing about
Harry was how little he looked forward to his birthdays. He had never received
a birthday card in his life. The Dursleys had completely ignored his last two
birthdays, and he had no reason to suppose they would remember this one.
Harry walked across the dark
room, past Hedwig's large, empty cage, to the open window. He leaned on the
sill, the cool night air pleasant on his face after a long time under the
blankets. Hedwig had been absent for two nights now. Harry wasn't worried about
her: she'd been gone this long before. But he hoped she'd be back soon - she
was the only living creature in this house who didn't flinch at the sight of
him.
Harry, though still rather small
and skinny for his age, had grown a few inches over the last year. His
jet-black hair, however, was just as it always had been - stubbornly untidy,
whatever he did to it. The eyes behind his glasses were bright green, and on
his forehead, clearly visible through his hair, was a thin scar, shaped like a
bolt of lightning.
Of all the unusual things about
Harry, this scar was the most extraordinary of all. It was not, as the Dursleys
had pretended for ten years, a souvenir of the car crash that had killed
Harry's parents, because Lily and James Potter had not died in a car crash.
They had been murdered, murdered by the most feared Dark wizard for a hundred
years, Lord Voldemort. Harry had escaped from the same attack with nothing more
than a scar on his forehead, where Voldemort's curse, instead of killing him,
had rebounded upon its originator. Barely alive, Voldemort had fled...
But Harry had come face-to-face
with him at Hogwarts. Remembering their last meeting as he stood at the dark
window, Harry had to admit he was lucky even to have reached his thirteenth
birthday.
He scanned the starry sky for a
sign of Hedwig, perhaps soaring back to him with a dead mouse dangling from her
beak, expecting praise. Gazing absently over the rooftops, it was a few seconds
before Harry realized what he was seeing.
Silhouetted against the golden
moon, and growing larger every moment, was a large, strangely lopsided
creature, and it was flapping in Harry's direction. He stood quite still,
watching it sink lower and lower. For a split second he hesitated, his hand on
the window latch, wondering whether to slam it shut. But then the bizarre
creature soared over one of the street lamps of Privet Drive, and Harry,
realizing what it was, leapt aside.
Through the window soared three
owls, two of them holding up the third, which appeared to be unconscious. They
landed with a soft flump on Harry's bed, and the middle owl, which was
large and gray, keeled right over and lay motionless. There was a large package
tied to its legs.
Harry recognized the unconscious
owl at once - his name was Errol, and he belonged to the Weasley family. Harry
dashed to the bed, untied the cords around Errol's legs, took off the parcel,
and then carried Errol to Hedwig's cage. Errol opened one bleary eye, gave a
feeble hoot of thanks, and began to gulp some water.
Harry turned back to the
remaining owls. One of them, the large snowy female, was his own Hedwig. She,
too, was carrying a parcel and looked extremely pleased with herself. She gave
Harry an affectionate nip with her beak as he removed her burden, then flew
across the room to join Errol.
Harry didn't recognize the third
owl, a handsome tawny one, but he knew at once where it had come from, because
in addition to a third package, it was carrying a letter bearing the Hogwarts
crest. When Harry relieved this owl of its burden, it ruffled its feathers
importantly, stretched its wings, and took off through the window into the
night.
Harry sat down on his bed and
grabbed Errol's package, ripped off the brown paper, and discovered a present
wrapped in gold and his first ever birthday card. Fingers trembling slightly,
he opened the envelope. Two pieces of paper fell out - a letter and a newspaper
clipping.
The clipping had clearly come
out of the wizarding newspaper, the Daily Prophet, because the people in
the black-and-white picture were moving. Harry picked up the clipping, smoothed
it out, and read:
MINISTRY OF MAGIC EMPLOYEE SCOOPS GRAND PRIZE
Arthur Weasley, Head of the Misuse of
Muggle Artifacts Office at the Ministry of Magic, has won the annual Daily
Prophet Grand Prize Galleon Draw. A delighted Mr. Weasley told the Daily
Prophet, "We will be spending the gold on a summer holiday in Egypt, where
our eldest son, Bill, works as a curse breaker for Gringotts Wizarding
Bank." The Weasley family will be spending a
month in Egypt, returning for the start of the new school year at Hogwarts,
which five of the Weasley children currently attend.
Harry scanned the moving
photograph, and a grin spread across his face as he saw all nine of the
Weasleys waving furiously at him, standing in front of a large pyramid. Plump
little Mrs. Weasley; tall, balding Mr. Weasley; six sons; and one daughter, all
(though the black-and-white picture didn't show it) with flaming-red hair.
Right in the middle of the picture was Ron, tall and gangling, with his pet
rat, Scabbers, on his shoulder and his arm around his little sister, Ginny.
Harry couldn't think of anyone
who deserved to win a large pile of gold more than the Weasleys, who were very
nice and extremely poor. He picked up Ron's letter and unfolded it.
Dear Harry,
Happy birthday!
Look, I'm really sorry about that telephone call. I hope the Muggles didn't give you
a hard time. I asked Dad, and he reckons I shouldn't have shouted.
It's amazing here in Egypt. Bill's taken us around all the tombs and you wouldn't
believe the curses those old Egyptian wizards put on them. Mum wouldn't let
Ginny come in the last one. There were all these mutant skeletons in there, of
Muggles who'd broken in and grown extra heads and stuff.
I couldn't believe it when Dad won the Daily Prophet Draw. Seven hundred
galleons! Most of it's gone on this trip, but they're going to buy me a new
wand for next year.
Harry remembered only too well
the occasion when Ron's old wand had snapped. It had happened when the car the
two of them had been flying to Hogwarts had crashed into a tree on the school
grounds.
We'll be back about a week before term starts and we'll be going up to London to get
my wand and our new books. Any chance of meeting you there?
Don't let the Muggles get you down!
Try and come to London,
Ron
P.S. Percy's Head Boy. He got
the letter last week.
Harry glanced back at the
photograph. Percy, who was in his seventh and final year at Hogwarts, was
looking particularly smug. He had pinned his Head Boy badge to the fez perched
jauntily on top of his neat hair, his horn-rimmed glasses flashing in the
Egyptian sun.
Harry now turned to his present
and unwrapped it. Inside was what looked like a miniature glass spinning top.
There was another note from Ron beneath it.
Harry
- this is a Pocket Sneakoscope. If there's someone untrustworthy around, it's
supposed to light up and spin. Bill says it's rubbish sold for wizard tourists
and isn't reliable, because it kept lighting up at dinner last night. But he
didn't realize Fred and George had put beetles in his soup.
Bye - Ron
Harry put the Pocket Sneakoscope
on his bedside table, where it stood quite still, balanced on its point,
reflecting the luminous hands of his clock. He looked at it happily for a few
seconds, then picked up the parcel Hedwig had brought.
Inside this, too, there was a
wrapped present, a card, and a letter, this time from Hermione.
Dear Harry,
Ron wrote to me and told me about his phone call to your Uncle Vernon. I do hope
you're all right.
I'm on holiday in France at the moment and I didn't know how I was going to send
this to you - what if they'd opened it at customs? - but then Hedwig turned up!
I think she wanted to make sure you got something for your birthday for a
change. I bought your present by owl-order; there was an advertisement in the
Daily Prophet (I've been getting it delivered; it's so good to keep up with
what's going on in the wizarding world), Did you see that picture of Ron and
his family a week ago? I bet he's learning loads. I'm really jealous - the
ancient Egyptian wizards were fascinating.
There's some interesting local history of witchcraft here, too. I've rewritten my whole
History of Magic essay to include some of the things I've found out, I hope
it's not too long - it's two rolls of parchment more than Professor Binns asked
for.
Ron says he's going to be in London in the last week of the holidays. Can you make
it? Will your aunt and uncle let you come? I really hope you can. If not, I'll
see you on the Hogwarts Express on September first!
Love from
Hermione
P.S. Ron says Percy's Head Boy.
I'll bet Percy's really pleased. Ron doesn't seem too happy about it.
Harry laughed as he put
Hermione's letter aside and picked up her present. It was very heavy. Knowing
Hermione, he was sure it would be a large book full of very difficult spells -
but it wasn't. His heart gave a huge bound as he ripped back the paper and saw
a sleek black leather case, with silver words stamped across it, reading Broomstick
Servicing Kit.
"Wow, Hermione!" Harry
whispered, unzipping the case to look inside.
There was a large jar of
Fleetwood's High-Finish Handle Polish, a pair of gleaming silver Tail-Twig
Clippers, a tiny brass compass to clip on your broom for long journeys, and a Handbook
of Do-It-Yourself Broomcare.
Apart from his friends, the
thing that Harry missed most about Hogwarts was Quidditch, the most popular sport
in the magical world - highly dangerous, very exciting, and played on
broomsticks. Harry happened to be a very good Quidditch player; he had been the
youngest person in a century to be picked for one of the Hogwarts House teams.
One of Harry's most prized possessions was his Nimbus Two Thousand racing
broom.
Harry put the leather case aside
and picked up his last parcel. He recognized the untidy scrawl on the brown
paper at once: this was from Hagrid, the Hogwarts gamekeeper. He tore off the
top layer of paper and glimpsed something green and leathery, but before he
could unwrap it properly, the parcel gave a strange quiver, and whatever was
inside it snapped loudly - as though it had jaws.
Harry froze. He knew that Hagrid
would never send him anything dangerous on purpose, but then, Hagrid didn't
have a normal person's view of what was dangerous. Hagrid had been known to
befriend giant spiders, buy vicious, three-headed dogs from men in pubs, and
sneak illegal dragon eggs into his cabin.
Harry poked the parcel
nervously. It snapped loudly again. Harry reached for the lamp on his bedside
table, gripped it firmly in one hand, and raised it over his head, ready to
strike. Then he seized the rest of the wrapping paper in his other hand and
pulled.
And out fell - a book. Harry
just had time to register its handsome green cover, emblazoned with the golden
title The Monster Book of Monsters, before it flipped onto its edge and
scuttled sideways along the bed like some weird crab.
"Uh-oh," Harry
muttered.
The book toppled off the bed
with a loud clunk and shuffled rapidly across the room. Harry followed it
stealthily. The book was hiding in the dark space under his desk. Praying that
the Dursleys were still fast asleep, Harry got down on his hands and knees and
reached toward it.
"Ouch!"
The book snapped shut on his
hand and then flapped past him, still scuttling on its covers. Harry scrambled
around, threw himself forward, and managed to flatten it. Uncle Vernon gave a
loud, sleepy grunt in the room next door.
Hedwig and Errol watched
interestedly as Harry clamped the struggling book tightly in his arms, hurried
to his chest of drawers, and pulled out a belt, which he buckled tightly around
it. The Monster Book shuddered angrily, but could no longer flap and snap, so
Harry threw it down on the bed and reached for Hagrid's card.
Dear Harry,
Happy Birthday!
Think you might find this useful for next year. Won't say no more here. Tell you when
I see you.
Hope the Muggles are treating you right.
All the best,
Hagrid
It struck Harry as ominous that
Hagrid thought a biting book would come in useful, but he put Hagrid's card up
next to Ron's and Hermione's, grinning more broadly than ever. Now there was
only the letter from Hogwarts left.
Noticing that it was rather thicker
than usual, Harry slit open the envelope, pulled out the first page of
parchment within, and read:
Dear Mr. Potter,
Please note that the new school year will begin on September the first. The Hogwarts
Express will leave from King's Cross station, platform nine and three-quarters,
at eleven o'clock.
Third years are permitted to visit the village of Hogsmeade on certain weekends.
Please give the enclosed permission form to your parent or guardian to sign.
A list of books for next year is enclosed.
Yours sincerely,
Professor M. McGonagall
Deputy Headmistress
Harry pulled out the Hogsmeade
permission form and looked at it, no longer grinning. It would be wonderful to
visit Hogsmeade on weekends; he knew it was an entirely wizarding village, and he
had never set foot there. But how on earth was he going to persuade Uncle
Vernon or Aunt Petunia to sign the form?
He looked over at the alarm
clock. It was now two o'clock in the morning.
Deciding that he'd worry about
the Hogsmeade form when he woke up, Harry got back into bed and reached up to
cross off another day on the chart he'd made for himself, counting down the
days left until his return to Hogwarts. Then he took off his glasses and lay
down; eyes open, facing his three birthday cards.
Extremely unusual though he was,
at that moment Harry Potter felt just like everyone else - glad, for the first
time in his life, that it was his birthday. CHAPTER TWO AUNT MARGE'S BIG MISTAKE
Harry went down to breakfast the
next morning to find the three Dursleys already sitting around the kitchen
table. They were watching a brand-new television, a welcome-home-for-the-summer
present for Dudley, who had been complaining loudly about the long walk between
the fridge and the television in the living room. Dudley had spent most of the
summer in the kitchen, his piggy little eyes fixed on the screen and his five
chins wobbling as he ate continually.
Harry sat down between Dudley
and Uncle Vernon, a large, beefy man with very little neck and a lot of
mustache. Far from wishing Harry a happy birthday, none of the Dursleys made
any sign that they had noticed Harry enter the room, but Harry was far too used
to this to care. He helped himself to a piece of toast and then looked up at
the reporter on the television, who was halfway through a report on an escaped
convict. "...the public is warned
that Black is armed and extremely dangerous. A special hot line has been set
up, and any sighting of Black should be reported immediately."
"No need to tell us he's
no good," snorted Uncle Vernon, staring over the top of his newspaper at
the prisoner. "Look at the state of him, the filthy layabout! Look at his
hair!"
He shot a nasty look sideways at
Harry, whose untidy hair had always been a source of great annoyance to Uncle
Vernon. Compared to the man on the television, however, whose gaunt face was
surrounded by a matted, elbow-length tangle, Harry felt very well groomed
indeed.
The reporter had reappeared.
"The Ministry of
Agriculture and Fisheries will announce today -"
"Hang on!" barked
Uncle Vernon, staring furiously at the reporter. "You didn't tell us where
that maniac's escaped from! What use is that? Lunatic could be coming up the
street right now!" Aunt Petunia, who was bony
and horse-faced, whipped around and peered intently out of the kitchen window.
Harry knew Aunt Petunia would simply love to be the one to call the hot line
number. She was the nosiest woman in the world and spent most of her life
spying on the boring, law-abiding neighbors.
"When will they learn,"
said Uncle Vernon, pounding the table with his large purple fist, "that
hanging's the only way to deal with these people?"
"Very true," said Aunt
Petunia, who was still squinting into next door's runner-beans.
Uncle Vernon drained his teacup,
glanced at his watch, and added, "I'd better be off in a minute, Petunia.
Marge's train gets in at ten."
Harry, whose thoughts had been
upstairs with the Broomstick Servicing Kit, was brought back to earth with an
unpleasant bump.
"Aunt Marge?" he
blurted out. "Sh-she's not coming here, is she?"
Aunt Marge was Uncle Vernon's
sister. Even though she was not a blood relative of Harry's (whose mother had
been Aunt Petunia's sister), he had been forced to call her 'Aunt' all his
life. Aunt Marge lived in the country, in a house with a large garden, where
she bred bulldogs. She didn't often stay at Privet Drive, because she couldn't
bear to leave her precious dogs, but each of her visits stood out horribly
vividly in Harry's mind.
At Dudley's fifth birthday
party, Aunt Margo had whacked Harry around the shins with her walking stick to
stop him from beating Dudley at musical statues. A few years later, she had
turned up at Christmas with a computerized robot for Dudley and a box of dog
biscuits for Harry. On her last visit, the year before Harry started at
Hogwarts, Harry had accidentally trodden on the tail of her favorite dog.
Ripper had chased Harry out into the garden and up a tree, and Aunt Marge had
refused to call him off until past midnight. The memory of this incident still
brought tears of laughter to Dudley's eyes.
"Marge'll be here for a
week," Uncle Vernon snarled, "and while we're on the subject,"
he pointed a fat finger threateningly at Harry, "we need to get a few
things straight before I go and collect her."
Dudley smirked and withdrew his
gaze from the television. Watching Harry being bullied by Uncle Vernon was
Dudley's favorite form of entertainment.
"Firstly," growled
Uncle Vernon, "you'll keep a civil tongue in your head when you're talking
to Marge."
"All right," said
Harry bitterly, "if she does when she's talking to me."
"Secondly," said Uncle
Vernon, acting as though he had not heard Harry's reply, "as Marge doesn't
know anything about your abnormality, I don't want any - any funny stuff
while she's here. You behave yourself, got me?"
"I will if she does,"
said Harry through gritted teeth.
"And thirdly," said
Uncle Vernon, his mean little eyes now slits in his great purple face,
"we've told Marge you attend St. Brutus's Secure Center for Incurably
Criminal Boys."
"What?"
Harry yelled.
"And you'll be sticking to
that story, boy, or there'll be trouble," spat Uncle Vernon.
Harry sat there, white-faced and
furious, staring at Uncle Vernon, hardly able to believe it. Aunt Marge coming
for a weeklong visit - it was the worst birthday present the Dursleys had ever
given him, including that pair of Uncle Vernon's old socks.
"Well, Petunia," said
Uncle Vernon, getting heavily to his feet, "I'll be off to the station,
then. Want to come along for the ride, Dudders?"
"No," said Dudley,
whose attention had returned to the television now that Uncle Vernon had
finished threatening Harry.
"Duddy's got to make
himself smart for his auntie," said Aunt Petunia, smoothing Dudley's thick
blond hair. "Mummy's bought him a lovely new bow-tie."
Uncle Vernon clapped Dudley on
his porky shoulder.
"See you in a bit,
then," he said, and he left the kitchen.
Harry, who had been sitting in a
kind of horrified trance, had a sudden idea. Abandoning his toast, he got
quickly to his feet and followed Uncle Vernon to the front door.
Uncle Vernon was pulling on his
car coat.
"I'm not taking you,"
he snarled as he turned to see Harry watching him. "Like I wanted to
come," said Harry coldly. "I want to ask you something."
Uncle Vernon eyed him
suspiciously.
"Third years at Hog - at my
school are allowed to visit the village sometimes," said Harry.
"So?" snapped Uncle
Vernon, taking his car keys from a hook next to the door.
"I need you to sign the
permission form," said Harry in a rush.
"And why should I do that?"
sneered Uncle Vernon.
"Well," said Harry,
choosing his words carefully, "it'll be hard work, pretending to Aunt
Marge I go to that St. Whatsits..."
"St. Brutus's Secure Center
for Incurably Criminal Boys!" bellowed Uncle Vernon, and Harry was pleased
to hear a definite note of panic in Uncle Vernon's voice.
"Exactly," said Harry,
looking calmly up into Uncle Vernon's large, purple face. "It's a lot to
remember. I'll have to make it sound convincing, won't I? What if I
accidentally let something slip?"
"You'll get the stuffing
knocked out of you, won't you?"
roared Uncle Vernon, advancing on Harry with his fist
raised. But Harry stood his ground.
"Knocking the stuffing out
of me won't make Aunt Marge forget what I could tell her," he said grimly.
Uncle Vernon stopped, his fist
still raised, his face an ugly puce.
"But if you sign my
permission form," Harry went on quickly, "I swear Ill remember where
I'm supposed to go to school, and Ill act like a Mug - like I'm normal and
everything."
Harry could tell that Uncle
Vernon was thinking it over, even if his teeth were bared and a vein was
throbbing in his temple.
"Right," he snapped
finally. "I shall monitor your behavior carefully during Marge's visit.
If, at the end of it, you've toed the line and kept to the story, Ill sign your
ruddy form."
He wheeled around, pulled open
the front door, and slammed it so hard that one of the little panes of glass at
the top fell out.
Harry didn't return to the
kitchen. He went back upstairs to his bedroom. If he was going to act like a
real Muggle, heed better start now. Slowly and sadly he gathered up all his
presents and his birthday cards and hid them under the loose floorboard with
his homework. Then he went to Hedwig's cage. Errol seemed to have recovered; he
and Hedwig were both asleep, heads under their wings. Harry sighed, then poked
them both awake.
"Hedwig," he said
gloomily, "you're going to have to clear off for a week. Go with Errol.
Ron'll look after you. Ill write him a note, explaining. And don't look at me like
that" - Hedwig's large amber eyes were reproachful - "it's not my
fault. It's the only way I'll be allowed to visit Hogsmeade with Ron and
Hermione."
Ten minutes later, Errol and
Hedwig (who had a note to Ron bound to her leg) soared out of the window and
out of sight. Harry, now feeling thoroughly miserable, put the empty cage away
inside the wardrobe.
But Harry didn't have long to
brood. In next to no time, Aunt Petunia was shrieking up the stairs for Harry
to come down and get ready to welcome their guest.
"Do something about your
hair!" Aunt Petunia snapped as he reached the hall.
Harry couldn't see the point of
trying to make his hair lie flat. Aunt Marge loved criticizing him, so the
untidier he looked, the happier she would be.
All too soon, there was a crunch
of gravel outside as Uncle Vernon's car pulled back into the driveway, then the
clunk of the car doors and footsteps on the garden path.
"Get the door!" Aunt
Petunia hissed at Harry.
A feeling of great gloom in his
stomach, Harry pulled the door open.
On the threshold stood Aunt
Marge. She was very like Uncle Vernon: large, beefy, and purple-faced, she even
had a mustache, though not as bushy as his. In one hand she held an enormous
suitcase, and tucked under the other was an old and evil-tempered bulldog.
"Where's my Dudders?"
roared Aunt Marge. "Where's my neffy poo?"
Dudley came waddling down the
hall, his blond hair plastered flat to his fat head, a bow tie just visible
under his many chins. Aunt Marge thrust the suitcase into Harry's stomach,
knocking the wind out of him, seized Dudley in a tight one-armed hug, and
planted a large kiss on his cheek.
Harry knew perfectly well that
Dudley only put up with Aunt Marge's hugs because he was well paid for it, and
sure enough, when they broke apart, Dudley had a crisp twenty-pound note
clutched in his fat fist.
"Petunia!" shouted
Aunt Marge, striding past Harry as though he was a hat-stand. Aunt Marge and
Aunt Petunia kissed, or rather, Aunt Marge bumped her large jaw against Aunt
Petunias bony cheekbone.
Uncle Vernon now came in,
smiling jovially as he shut the door.
"Tea, Marge?" he said.
"And what will Ripper take?"
"Ripper can have some tea
out of my saucer," said Aunt Marge as they all proceeded into the kitchen,
leaving Harry alone in the hall with the suitcase. But Harry wasn't
complaining; any excuse not to be with Aunt Marge was fine by him, so he began
to heave the case upstairs into the spare bedroom, taking as long as he could.
By the time he got back to the kitchen, Aunt Marge had been supplied with tea and
fruitcake, and Ripper was lapping noisily in the corner. Harry saw Aunt Petunia
wince slightly as specks of tea and drool flecked her clean floor. Aunt Petunia
hated animals.
"Who's looking after the
other dogs, Marge?" Uncle Vernon asked.
"Oh, I've got Colonel
Fubster managing them," boomed Aunt Marge. "He's retired now, good
for him to have something to do. But I couldn't leave poor old Ripper. He pines
if he's away from me."
Ripper began to growl again as
Harry sat down. This directed Aunt Marge's attention to Harry for the first
time.
"So!" she barked.
"Still here, are you?"
"Yes," said Harry.
"Don't you say
"yes" in that ungrateful tone," Aunt Marge growled. "It's
damn good of Vernon and Petunia to keep you. Wouldn't have done it myself.
You'd have gone straight to an orphanage if you'd been dumped on my doorstep."
Harry was bursting to say that
he'd rather live in an orphanage than with the Dursleys, but the thought of the
Hogsmeade form stopped him. He forced his face into a painful smile.
"Don't you smirk at
me!" boomed Aunt Marge. "I can see you haven't improved since I last
saw you. I hoped school would knock some manners into you." She took a
large gulp of tea, wiped her mustache, and said, "Where is it that you
send him, again, Vernon?"
"St. Brutus's," said
Uncle Vernon promptly. "It's a first-rate institution for hopeless
cases."
"I see," said Aunt
Marge. "Do they use the cane at St. Brutus's, boy?" she barked across
the table.
"Er -"
Uncle Vernon nodded curtly
behind Aunt Marge's back.
"Yes," said Harry.
Then, feeling he might as well do the thing properly, he added, "All the
time."
"Excellent," said Aunt
Marge. "I won't have this namby-pamby, wishy-washy nonsense about not
hitting people who deserve it. A good thrashing is what's needed in ninety-nine
cases out of a hundred. Have you been beaten often?"
"Oh, yeah," said
Harry, "loads of times."
Aunt Marge narrowed her eyes.
"I still don't like your
tone, boy," she said. "If you can speak of your beatings in that
casual way, they clearly aren't hitting you hard enough. Petunia, I'd write if
I were you. Make it clear that you approve the use of extreme force in this
boy's case."
Perhaps Uncle Vernon was worried
that Harry might forget their bargain; in any case, he changed the subject
abruptly.
"Heard the news this
morning, Marge? What about that escaped prisoner, eh?"
As Aunt Marge started to make
herself at home, Harry caught himself thinking almost longingly of life at
number four without her. Uncle Vernon and Aunt Petunia usually encouraged Harry
to stay out of their way, which Harry was only too happy to do. Aunt Marge, on
the other hand, wanted Harry under her eye at all times, so that she could boom
out suggestions for his improvement. She delighted in comparing Harry with
Dudley, and took huge pleasure in buying Dudley expensive presents while
glaring at Harry, as though daring him to ask why he hadn't got a present too.
She also kept throwing out dark hints about what made Harry such an
unsatisfactory person.
"You mustn't blame yourself
for the way the boy's turned out, Vernon," she said over lunch on the
third day. "If there's something rotten on the inside, there's
nothing anyone can do about it."
Harry tried to concentrate on
his food, but his hands shook and his face was starting to burn with anger. Remember
the form, he told himself. Think about Hogsmeade. Don't say anything.
Don't rise -
Aunt Marge reached for her glass
of wine.
"It's one of the basic
rules of breeding," she said. "You see it all the time with dogs. If
there's something wrong with the bitch, there'll be something wrong with the
pup -"
At that moment, the wineglass
Aunt Marge was holding exploded in her hand. Shards of glass flew in every
direction and Aunt Marge sputtered and blinked, her great ruddy face dripping.
"Marge!" squealed Aunt
Petunia. "Marge, are you all right?"
"Not to worry,"
grunted Aunt Marge, mopping her face with her napkin. "Must have squeezed
it too hard. Did the same thing at Colonel Fubster's the other day. No need to
fuss, Petunia, I have a very firm grip..."
But Aunt Petunia and Uncle
Vernon were both looking at Harry suspiciously, so he decided he'd better skip
dessert and escape from the table as soon as he could.
Outside in the hall, he leaned
against the wall, breathing deeply. It had been a long time since he'd lost
control and made something explode. He couldn't afford to let it happen again.
The Hogsmeade form wasn't the only thing at stake - if he carried on like that,
he'd be in trouble with the Ministry of Magic.
Harry was still an underage
wizard, and he was forbidden by wizard law to do magic outside school. His
record wasn't exactly clean either. Only last summer he'd gotten an official
warning that had stated quite clearly that if the Ministry got wind of any more
magic in Privet Drive, Harry would face expulsion from Hogwarts.
He heard the Dursleys leaving
the table and hurried upstairs out of the way.
Harry got through the next three
days by forcing himself to think about his Handbook of Do-It-Yourself
Broomcare whenever Aunt Marge started on him. This worked quite well,
though it seemed to give him a glazed look, because Aunt Marge started voicing
the opinion that he was mentally subnormal.
At last, at long last, the final
evening of Marge's stay arrived. Aunt Petunia cooked a fancy dinner and Uncle
Vernon uncorked several bottles of wine. They got all the way through the soup
and the salmon without a single mention of Harry's faults; during the lemon
meringue pie, Uncle Vernon bored them a with a long talk about Grunnings, his
drill-making company; then Aunt Petunia made coffee and Uncle Vernon brought
out a bottle of brandy.
"Can I tempt you,
Marge?"
Aunt Marge had already had quite
a lot of wine. Her huge face was very red.
"Just a small one,
then," she chuckled. "A bit more than that...and a bit more...that's the
ticket."
Dudley was eating his fourth
slice of pie. Aunt Petunia was sipping coffee with her little finger sticking
out. Harry really wanted to disappear into his bedroom, but he met Uncle
Vernon's angry little eyes and knew he would have to sit it out.
"Aah," said Aunt
Marge, smacking her lips and putting the empty brandy glass back down.
"Excellent nosh, Petunia. It's normally just a fry-up for me of an
evening, with twelve dogs to look after..." She burped richly and patted her
great tweed stomach. "Pardon me. But I do like to see a healthy-sized
boy," she went on, winking at Dudley. "You'll be a proper-sized man,
Dudders, like your father. Yes, I'll have a spot more brandy, Vernon..."
"Now, this one here -"
She jerked her head at Harry,
who felt his stomach clench. The Handbook, he thought quickly.
"This one's got a mean,
runty look about him. You get that with dogs. I had Colonel Fubster drown one
last year. Ratty little thing it was. Weak. Underbred."
Harry was trying to remember
page twelve of his book: A Charm to Cure Reluctant Reversers.
"It all comes down to
blood, as I was saying the other day. Bad blood will out. Now, I'm saying
nothing against your family, Petunia" - she patted Aunt Petunia's bony
hand with her shovel-like one "but your sister was a bad egg. They turn up
in the best families. Then she ran off with a wastrel and here's the result
right in front of us."
Harry was staring at his plate,
a funny ringing in his ears. Grasp your broom firmly by the tail, he
thought. But he couldn't remember what came next. Aunt Marge's voice seemed to
be boring into him like one of Uncle Vernon's drills.
"This Potter," said
Aunt Marge loudly, seizing the brandy bottle and splashing more into her glass
and over the tablecloth, "you never told me what he did?"
Uncle Vernon and Aunt Petunia
were looking extremely tense. Dudley had even looked up from his pie to gape at
his parents.
"He - didn't work,"
said Uncle Vernon, with half a glance at Harry. "Unemployed."
"As I expected!" said
Aunt Marge, taking a huge swig of brandy and wiping her chin on her sleeve.
"A no-account, good-for-nothing, lazy scrounger who -"
"He was not," said
Harry suddenly. The table went very quiet. Harry was shaking all over. He had
never felt so angry in his life.
"MORE BRANDY!" yelled
Uncle Vernon, who had gone very white. He emptied the bottle into Aunt Marge's
glass. "You, boy," he snarled at Harry. "Go to bed, go on
-"
"No, Vernon," hiccuped
Aunt Marge, holding up a hand, her tiny bloodshot eyes fixed on Harry's.
"Go on, boy, go on. Proud of your parents, are you? They go and get
themselves killed in a car crash (drunk, I expect) -"
"They didn't die in a car
crash!" said Harry, who found himself on his feet.
"They died in a car crash,
you nasty little liar, and left you to be a burden on their decent, hardworking
relatives!" screamed Aunt Marge, swelling with fury. "You are an
insolent, ungrateful little -"
But Aunt Marge suddenly stopped
speaking. For a moment, it looked as though words had failed her. She seemed to
be swelling with inexpressible anger - but the swelling didn't stop. Her great
red face started to expand, her tiny eyes bulged, and her mouth stretched too
tightly for speech - next second, several buttons had just burst from her tweed
jacket and pinged off the walls - she was inflating like a monstrous balloon,
her stomach bursting free of her tweed waistband, each of her fingers blowing
up like a salami...
"MARGE!" yelled Uncle
Vernon and Aunt Petunia together as Aunt Marge's whole body began to rise off
her chair toward the ceiling. She was entirely round, now, like a vast life
buoy with piggy eyes, and her hands and feet stuck out weirdly as she drifted
up into the air, making apoplectic popping noises. Ripper came skidding into the
room, barking madly.
"NOOOOOOO!"
Uncle Vernon seized one of
Marge's feet and tried to pull her down again, but was almost lifted from the
floor himself. A second later, Ripper leapt forward and sank his teeth into
Uncle Vernon's leg.
Harry tore from the dining room
before anyone could stop him, heading for the cupboard under the stairs. The
cupboard door burst magically open as he reached it. In seconds, he had heaved
his trunk to the front door. He sprinted upstairs and threw himself under the
bed, wrenching up the loose floorboard, and grabbed the pillowcase full of his
books and birthday presents. He wriggled out, seized Hedwig's empty cage, and
dashed back downstairs to his trunk, just as Uncle Vernon burst out of the
dining room, his trouser leg in bloody tatters.
"COME BACK IN HERE!"
he bellowed. "COME BACK AND PUT HER RIGHT!"
But a reckless rage had come
over Harry. He kicked his trunk open, pulled out his wand, and pointed it at
Uncle Vernon.
"She deserved it,"
Harry said, breathing very fast. "She deserved what she got. You keep away
from me."
He fumbled behind him for the
latch on the door.
"I'm going," Harry
said. "I've had enough." And in the next moment, he
was out in the dark, quiet street, heaving his heavy trunk behind him, Hedwig's
cage under his arm. CHAPTER THREE THE KNIGHT BUS
Harry was several streets away
before he collapsed onto a low wall in Magnolia Crescent, panting from the
effort of dragging his trunk. He sat quite still, anger still surging through
him, listening to the frantic thumping of his heart.
But after ten minutes alone in
the dark street, a new emotion overtook him: panic. Whichever way he looked at
it, he had never been in a worse fix. He was stranded, quite alone, in the dark
Muggle world, with absolutely nowhere to go. And the worst of it was, he had
just done serious magic, which meant that he was almost certainly expelled from
Hogwarts. He had broken the Decree for the Restriction of Underage Wizardry so
badly, he was surprised Ministry of Magic representatives weren't swooping down
on him where he sat.
Harry shivered and looked up and
down Magnolia Crescent.
What, was going to happen to
him? Would he be arrested, or would he simply be outlawed from the wizarding
world? He thought of Ron and Hermione, and his heart sank even lower. Harry was
sure that, criminal or not, Ron and Hermione would want to help him now, but
they were both abroad, and with Hedwig gone, he had no means of contacting
them.
He didn't have any Muggle money,
either. There was a little wizard gold in the money bag at the bottom of his
trunk, but the rest of the fortune his parents had left him was stored in a
vault at Gringotts Wizarding Bank in London. He'd never be able to drag his
trunk all the way to London. Unless...
He looked down at his wand, which
he was still clutching in his hand. If he was already expelled (his heart was.
now thumping painfully fast), a bit more magic couldn't hurt. He had the
Invisibility Cloak he had inherited from his father - what if he bewitched the
trunk to make it feather-light, tied it to his broomstick, covered himself in
the cloak, and flew to London? Then he could get the rest of his money out of
his vault and...begin his life as an outcast. It was a horrible prospect, but he
couldn't sit on this wall forever, or he'd find himself trying to explain to
Muggle police why he was out in the dead of night with a trunk full of spell
books and a broomstick.
Harry opened his trunk again and
pushed the contents aside, looking for the Invisibility Cloak - but before he
had found it, he straightened up suddenly, looking around him once more.
A funny prickling on the back of
his neck had made Harry feel he was being watched, but the street appeared to
be deserted, and no lights shone from any of the large square houses.
He bent over his trunk again,
but almost immediately stood up once more, his hand clenched on his wand. He
had sensed rather than heard it: someone or something was standing in the
narrow gap between the garage and the fence behind him. Harry squinted at the
black alleyway. If only it would move, then he'd know whether it was just a
stray cat or - something else.
"Lumos," Harry
muttered, and a light appeared at the end of his wand, almost dazzling him. He
held it high over his head, and the pebble-dashed walls of number two suddenly
sparkled; the garage door gleamed, and between them Harry saw, quite
distinctly, the hulking outline of something very big, with wide, gleaming
eyes.
Harry stepped backward. His legs
hit his trunk and he tripped. His wand flew out of his hand as he flung out an
arm to break his fall, and he landed, hard, in the gutter.
There was a deafening BANG, and
Harry threw up his hands to shield his eyes against a sudden blinding light...
With a yell, he rolled back onto
the pavement, just in time. A second later, a gigantic pair of wheels and
headlights screeched to a halt exactly where Harry had just been lying. They
belonged, as Harry saw when he raised his head, to a triple-decker, violently
purple bus, which had appeared out of thin air. Gold lettering over the
windshield spelled The Knight Bus.
For a split second, Harry
wondered if he had been knocked silly by his fall. Then a conductor in a purple
uniform leapt out of the bus and began to speak loudly to the night.
"Welcome to the Knight Bus,
emergency transport for the stranded witch or wizard. just stick out your wand
hand, step on board, and we can take you anywhere you want to go. My name is
Stan Shunpike, and I will be your conductor this eve-"
The conductor stopped abruptly.
He had just caught sight of Harry, who was still sitting on the ground. Harry
snatched up his wand again and scrambled to his feet. Close up, he saw that
Stan Shunpike was only a few years older than he was, eighteen or nineteen at
most, with large, protruding ears and quite a few pimples.
"What were you doin' down
there?" said Stan, dropping his professional manner.
"Fell over," said
Harry.
"'Choo fall over for?"
sniggered Stan.
"I didn't do it on
purpose," said Harry, annoyed. One of the knees in his jeans was torn, and
the hand he had thrown out to break his fall was bleeding. He suddenly
remembered why he had fallen over and turned around quickly to stare at the
alleyway between the garage and fence. The Knight Bus's headlamps were flooding
it with light, and it was empty.
"'Choo lookin' at?"
said Stan.
"There was a big black
thing," said Harry, pointing uncertainly into the gap. "Like a
dog...but massive..."
He looked around at Stan, whose
mouth was slightly open. With a feeling of unease, Harry saw Stan's eyes move
to the scar on Harry's forehead.
"Woss that on your
'ead?" said Stan abruptly.
"Nothing," said Harry
quickly, flattening his hair over his scar. If the Ministry of Magic was
looking for him, he didn't want to make it too easy for them.
"Woss your name?" Stan
persisted.
"Neville Longbottom,"
said Harry, saying the first name that came into his head. "So - so this
bus," he went on quickly, hoping to distract Stan, "did you say it
goes anywhere?"
"Yep," said Stan
proudly, "anywhere you like, 'long it's on land. Can't do nuffink
underwater.
"Ere," he said,
looking suspicious again, "you did flag us down, dincha? Stuck out
your wand 'and, dincha?"
"Yes," said Harry
quickly. "Listen, how much would it be to get to London?"
"Eleven Sickles," said
Stan, "but for firteen you get 'ot chocolate, and for fifteen you get an
'ot-water bottle an' a toofbrush in the color of your choice."
Harry rummaged once more in his
trunk, extracted his money bag, and shoved some gold into Stan's hand. He and
Stan then lifted his trunk, with Hedwig's cage balanced on top, up the steps of
the bus.
There were no seats; instead,
half a dozen brass bedsteads stood beside the curtained windows. Candles were
burning in brackets beside each bed, illuminating the wood-paneled walls. A
tiny wizard in a nightcap at the rear of the bus muttered, "Not now,
thanks, I'm pickling some slugs" and rolled over in his sleep.
"You 'ave this one,"
Stan whispered, shoving Harry's trunk under the bed right behind the driver,
who was sitting in an armchair in front of the steering wheel. "This is
our driver, Ernie Prang. This is Neville Longbottom, Ern."
Ernie Prang, an elderly wizard
wearing very thick glasses, nodded to Harry, who nervously flattened his bangs
again and sat down on his bed.
"Take 'er away, Ern,"
said Stan, sitting down in the armchair next to Ernie's.
There was another tremendous
BANG, and the next moment Harry found himself flat on his bed, thrown backward
by the speed of the Knight Bus. Pulling himself up, Harry stared out of the
dark window and saw that they were now bowling along a completely different
street. Stan was watching Harry's stunned face with great enjoyment.
"This is where we was
before you flagged us down," he said. "Where are we, Ern? Somewhere
in Wales?"
"Ar," said Ernie.
"How come the Muggles don't
hear the bus?" said Harry.
"Them!" said Stan
contemptuously. "Don' listen properly, do they? Don' look properly either.
Never notice nuffink, they don'."
"Best go wake up Madam
Marsh, Stan," said Ern. "We'll be in Abergavenny in a minute."
Stan passed Harry's bed and
disappeared up a narrow wooden staircase. Harry was still looking out of the
window, feeling increasingly nervous. Ernie didn't seem to have mastered the
use of a steering wheel. The Knight Bus kept mounting the pavement, but it didn't
hit anything; lines of lampposts, mailboxes, and trash cans jumped out of its
way as it approached and back into position once it had passed.
Stan came back downstairs,
followed by a faintly green witch wrapped in a traveling cloak.
"'Ere you go, Madam Marsh,"
said Stan happily as Ern stamped on the brake and the beds slid a foot or so
toward the front of the bus. Madam Marsh clamped a handkerchief to her mouth
and tottered down the steps. Stan threw her bag out after her and rammed the
doors shut; there was another loud BANG, and they were thundering down a narrow
country lane, trees leaping out of the way.
Harry wouldn't have been able to
sleep even if he had been traveling on a bus that didn't keep banging loudly
and jumping a hundred miles at a time. His stomach churned as he fell back to
wondering what was going to happen to him, and whether the Dursleys had managed
to get Aunt Marge off the ceiling yet.
Stan had unfurled a copy of the Daily
Prophet and was now reading with his tongue between his teeth. A large
photograph of a sunken-faced man with long, matted hair blinked slowly at Harry
from the front page. He looked strangely familiar.
"That man!" Harry
said, forgetting his troubles for a moment. "He was on the Muggle
news!"
Stanley turned to the front page
and chuckled.
"Sirius Black," he
said, nodding. "'Course 'e was on the Muggle news, Neville. Where you
been?"
He gave a superior sort of
chuckle at the blank look on Harry's face, removed the front page, and handed
it to Harry.
"You oughta read the papers
more, Neville."
Harry held the paper up to the
candlelight and read:
BLACK STILL AT LARGE
Sirius Black, possibly the most
infamous prisoner ever to be held in Azkaban fortress, is still eluding
capture, the Ministry of Magic confirmed today.
"We
are doing all we can to recapture Black," said the Minister of Magic,
Cornelius Fudge, this morning, "and we beg the magical community to remain
calm."
Fudge has been criticized by some members of the International Federation of Warlocks
for informing the Muggle Prime Minister of the crisis.
"Well,
really, I had to, don't you know," said an irritable Fudge. "Black is
mad. He's a danger to anyone who crosses him, magic or Muggle. I have the Prime
Minister's assurance that he will not breathe a word of Black's true identity
to anyone. And let's face it - who'd believe him if he did?"
While Muggles have been told that Black is carrying a gun (a kind of metal wand that
Muggles use to kill each other), the magical community lives in fear of a
massacre like that of twelve years ago, when Black murdered thirteen people
with a single curse.
Harry looked into the shadowed
eyes of Sirius Black, the only part of the sunken face that seemed alive. Harry
had never met a vampire, but he had seen pictures of them in his Defense
Against the Dark Arts classes, and Black, with his waxy white skin, looked just
like one.
"Scary-lookin' fing,
inee?" said Stan, who had been watching Harry read.
"He murdered thirteen
people?" said Harry, handing the page back to Stan, "with one
curse?"
"Yep," said Stan,
"in front of witnesses an' all. Broad daylight. Big trouble it caused,
dinnit, Ern?"
"Ar," said Ern darkly.
Stan swiveled in his armchair,
his hands on the back, the better to look at Harry.
"Black woz a big supporter
of You-Know-'Oo," he said.
"What, Voldemort?"
said Harry, without thinking.
Even Stan's pimples went white;
Ern jerked the steering wheel so hard that a whole farmhouse had to jump aside
to avoid the bus.
"You outta your tree?"
yelped Stan. "'Choo say 'is name for?"
"Sorry," said Harry
hastily. "Sorry, I - I forgot -"
"Forgot!" said Stan
weakly. "Blimey, my 'eart's goin' that fast..."
"So - so Black was a
supporter of You-Know-Who?" Harry prompted apologetically.
"Yeah," said Stan,
still rubbing his chest. "Yeah, that's right. Very close to You-Know-'Oo,
they say...anyway, when little 'Arry Potter got the better of You-Know-'Oo"
- Harry nervously flattened his bangs down again - "all You-Know-'Oo's
supporters was tracked down, wasn't they, Ern? Most of 'em knew it was all over,
wiv You-Know-'Oo gone, and they came quiet. But not Sirius Black. I 'eard he
thought 'e'd be second-in-command once You-Know-'Oo 'ad taken over. "Anyway, they cornered
Black in the middle of a street full of Muggles an' Black took out 'is wand and
'e blasted 'alf the street apart, an' a wizard got it, an' so did a dozen
Muggles what got in the way. 'Orrible, eh? An' you know what Black did
then?" Stan continued in a dramatic whisper.
"What?" said Harry.
"Laughed," said Stan.
"Jus' stood there an' laughed. An' when reinforcements from the Ministry
of Magic got there, 'e went wiv em quiet as anyfink, still laughing 'is 'ead
off. 'Cos 'e's mad, inee, Ern? Inee mad?"
"If he weren't when he went
to Azkaban, he will be now," said Ern in his slow voice. "I'd blow
meself up before I set foot in that place. Serves him right, mind you...after
what he did..."
"They 'ad a job coverin' it
up, din' they, Ern?" Stan said. "'Ole street blown up an' all them
Muggles dead. What was it they said 'ad 'appened, Ern?"
"Gas explosion,"
grunted Ernie.
"An' now 'e's out,"
said Stan, examining the newspaper picture of Black's gaunt face again.
"Never been a breakout from Azkaban before, 'as there, Ern? Beats me 'ow
'e did it. Frightenin', eh? Mind, I don't fancy 'is chances against them
Azkaban guards, eh, Ern?"
Ernie suddenly shivered.
"Talk about summat else, Stan, there's a good lad. Them Azkaban guards
give me the collywobbles."
Stan put the paper away
reluctantly, and Harry leaned against the window of the Knight Bus, feeling worse
than ever. He couldn't help imagining what Stan might be telling his passengers
in a few nights' time.
"'Ear about that 'Arry
Potter? Blew up 'is aunt! We 'ad 'im 'ere on the Knight Bus, di'n't we, Ern? 'E
was tryin' to run for it..."
He, Harry, had broken wizard law
just like Sirius Black. Was inflating Aunt Marge bad enough to land him in
Azkaban? Harry didn't know anything about the wizard prison, though everyone
he'd ever heard speak of it did so in the same fearful tone. Hagrid, the
Hogwarts gamekeeper, had spent two months there only last year. Harry wouldn't
soon forget the look of terror on Hagrid's face when he had been told where he
was going, and Hagrid was one of the bravest people Harry knew.
The Knight Bus rolled through
the darkness, scattering bushes and wastebaskets, telephone booths and trees,
and Harry lay, restless and miserable, on his feather bed. After a while, Stan
remembered that Harry had paid for hot chocolate, but poured it all over
Harry's pillow when the bus moved abruptly from Anglesea to Aberdeen. One by
one, wizards and witches in dressing gowns and slippers descended from the
upper floors to leave the bus. They all looked very pleased to go.
Finally, Harry was the only
passenger left.
"Right then, Neville,"
said Stan, clapping his hands, "whereabouts in London?"
"Diagon Alley," said
Harry.
"Righto," said Stan.
"'Old tight, then."
BANG.
They were thundering along
Charing Cross Road. Harry sat up and watched buildings and benches squeezing
themselves out of the Knight Bus's way. The sky was getting a little lighter.
He would lie low for a couple of hours, go to Gringotts the moment it opened,
then set off - where, he didn't know.
Ern slammed on the brakes and
the Knight Bus skidded to a halt in front of a small and shabby-looking pub,
the Leaky Cauldron, behind which lay the magical entrance to Diagon Alley.
"Thanks," Harry said
to Ern.
He jumped down the steps and
helped Stan lower his trunk and Hedwig's cage onto the pavement.
"Well," said Harry.
"'Bye then!"
But Stan wasn't paying
attention. Still standing in the doorway to the bus) he was goggling at the
shadowy entrance to the Leaky Cauldron.
"There you are,
Harry," said a voice.
Before Harry could turn, he felt
a hand on his shoulder. At the same time, Stan shouted, "Blimey! Ern, come
'ere! Come 'ere!"
Harry looked up at the owner of
the hand on his shoulder and felt a bucketful of ice cascade into his stomach -
he had walked right into Cornelius Fudge, the Minister of Magic himself.
Stan leapt onto the pavement
beside them.
"What didja call Neville,
Minister?" he said excitedly.
Fudge, a portly little man in a
long, pinstriped cloak, looked cold and exhausted.
"Neville?" he
repeated, frowning. "This is Harry Potter."
"I knew it!" Stan
shouted gleefully. "Ern! Ern! Guess 'oo Neville is, Ern! 'E's 'Arry
Potter! I can see 'is scar!"
"Yes," said Fudge
testily, "well, I'm very glad the Knight Bus picked Harry up, but he and I
need to step inside the Leaky Cauldron now..."
Fudge increased the pressure on
Harry's shoulder, and Harry found himself being steered inside the pub. A
stooping figure bearing a lantern appeared through the door behind the bar. It
was Tom, the wizened, toothless landlord.
"You've got him,
Minister!" said Tom. "Will you be wanting anything? Beer?
Brandy?"
"Perhaps a pot of
tea," said Fudge, who still hadn't let go of Harry.
There was a loud scraping and
puffing from behind them, and Stan and Ern appeared, carrying Harry's trunk and
Hedwig's cage and looking around excitedly.
"'Ow come you di'n't tell
us 'oo you are, eh, Neville?" said Stan, beaming at Harry, while Ernie's
owlish face peered interestedly over Stan's shoulder.
"And a private parlor,
please, Tom," said Fudge pointedly.
"'Bye," Harry said
miserably to Stan and Ern as Tom beckoned Fudge toward the passage that led
from the bar.
"'Bye, Neville!"
called Stan.
Fudge marched Harry along the
narrow passage after Tom's lantern, and then into a small parlor. Tom clicked
his fingers, a fire burst into life in the grate, and he bowed himself out of
the room.
"Sit down, Harry,"
said Fudge, indicating a chair by the fire.
Harry sat down, feeling goose
bumps rising up his arms despite the glow of the fire. Fudge took off his
pinstriped cloak and tossed it aside, then hitched up the trousers of his
bottle-green suit and sat down opposite Harry.
"I am Cornelius Fudge,
Harry. The Minister of Magic."
Harry already knew this, of
course; he had seen Fudge once before, but as he had been wearing his father's
Invisibility Cloak at the time, Fudge wasn't to know that.
Tom the innkeeper reappeared,
wearing an apron over his nightshirt and bearing a tray of tea and crumpets. He
placed the tray on a table between Fudge and Harry and left the parlor, closing
the door behind him.
"Well, Harry," said
Fudge, pouring out tea, "you've had us all in a right flap, I don't mind
telling you. Running away from your aunt and uncle's house like that! I'd
started to think...but you're safe, and that's what matters."
Fudge buttered himself a crumpet
and pushed the plate toward Harry.
"Eat, Harry, you look dead
on your feet. Now then...You will be pleased to hear that we have dealt with the
unfortunate blowing-up of Miss Marjorie Dursley. Two members of the Accidental
Magic Reversal Department were dispatched to Privet Drive a few hours ago. Miss
Dursley has been punctured and her memory has been modified. She has no
recollection of the incident at all. So that's that, and no harm done."
Fudge smiled at Harry over the
rim of his teacup, rather like an uncle surveying a favorite nephew. Harry, who
couldn't believe his ears, opened his mouth to speak, couldn't think of
anything to say, and closed it again.
"Ah, you're worrying about
the reaction of your aunt and uncle?" said Fudge. "Well, I won't deny
that they are extremely angry, Harry, but they are prepared to take you back
next summer as long as you stay at Hogwarts for the Christmas and Easter
holidays."
Harry unstuck his throat.
"I always stay at Hogwarts
for the Christmas and Easter holidays," he said, "and I don't ever
want to go back to Privet Drive."
"Now, now, I'm sure you'll
feel differently once you've calmed down," said Fudge in a worried tone.
"They are your family, after all, and I'm sure you are fond of each other
- er - very deep down."
It didn't occur to Harry to put
Fudge right. He was still waiting to hear what was going to happen to him now.
"So all that remains,"
said Fudge, now buttering himself a second crumpet, "is to decide where
you're going to spend the last two weeks of your vacation. I suggest you take a
room here at the Leaky Cauldron and..."
"Hang on," blurted
Harry. "What about my punishment?"
Fudge blinked.
"Punishment?"
"I broke the law!"
Harry said. "The Decree for the Restriction of Underage Wizardry!"
"Oh, my dear boy, we're not
going to punish you for a little thing like that!" cried Fudge, waving his
crumpet impatiently. "It was an accident! We don't send people to Azkaban
just for blowing up their aunts!"
But this didn't tally at all
with Harry's past dealings with the Ministry of Magic.
"Last year, I got an
official warning just because a house-elf smashed a pudding in my uncle's
house!" he told Fudge, frowning. "The Ministry of Magic said I'd be
expelled from Hogwarts if there was any more magic there!"
Unless Harry's eyes were
deceiving him, Fudge was suddenly looking awkward.
"Circumstances change,
Harry...We have to take into account...in the present climate...Surely you don't want
to be expelled?"
"Of course I don't,"
said Harry.
"Well then, what's all the
fuss about?" laughed Fudge. "Now, have a crumpet, Harry, while I go and
see if Tom's got a room for you."
Fudge strode out of the parlor
and Harry stared after him. There was something extremely odd going on. Why had
Fudge been waiting for him at the Leaky Cauldron, if not to punish him for what
he'd done? And now Harry came to think of it, surely it wasn't usual for the
Minister of Magic himself to get involved in matters of underage magic?
Fudge came back, accompanied by
Tom the innkeeper.
"Room eleven's free,
Harry," said Fudge. "I think you'll be very comfortable. just one
thing, and I'm sure you'll understand...I don't want you wandering off into
Muggle London, all right? Keep to Diagon Alley. And you're to be back here
before dark each night. Sure you'll understand. Tom will be keeping an eye on
you for me."
"Okay," said Harry
slowly, "but why?"
"Don't want to lose you
again, do we?" said Fudge with a hearty laugh. "No, no...best we know
where you are...I mean..."
Fudge cleared his throat loudly
and picked up his pinstriped cloak.
"Well, I'll be off, plenty
to do, you know..."
"Have you had any luck with
Black yet?" Harry asked.
Fudge's finger slipped on the
silver fastenings of his cloak.
"What's that? Oh, you've
heard - well, no, not yet, but it's only a matter of time. The Azkaban guards
have never yet failed...and they are angrier than I've ever seen them."
Fudge shuddered slightly.
"So, I'll say
good-bye."
He held out his hand and Harry,
shaking it, had a sudden idea.
"Er - Minister? Can I ask
you something?"
"Certainly," said
Fudge with a smile.
"Well, third years at
Hogwarts are allowed to visit Hogsmeade, but my aunt and uncle didn't sign the
permission form. D'you think you could -?"
Fudge was looking uncomfortable.
"Ah," he said.
"No, no, I'm very sorry, Harry, but as I'm not your parent or guardian
-"
"But you're the Minister of
Magic," said Harry eagerly. "If you gave me permission..."
"No, I'm sorry, Harry, but
rules are rules," said Fudge flatly.
"Perhaps you'll be able to
visit Hogsmeade next year. In fact, I think it's best if you don't...yes...well,
I'll be off. Enjoy your stay, Harry."
And with a last smile and shake
of Harry's hand, Fudge left the room. Tom now moved forward, beaming at Harry.
"If you'll follow me, Mr.
Potter," he said, "I've already taken your things up..."
Harry followed Tom up a handsome
wooden staircase to a door with a brass number eleven on it, which Tom unlocked
and opened for him.
Inside was a very
comfortable-looking bed, some highly polished oak furniture, a cheerfully
crackling fire and, perched on top of the wardrobe -
"Hedwig!" Harry
gasped.
The snowy owl clicked her beak
and fluttered down onto Harry's arm.
"Very smart owl you've got
there," chuckled Tom. "Arrived about five minutes after you did. If
there's anything you need, Mr. Potter, don't hesitate to ask."
He gave another bow and left.
Harry sat on his bed for a long
time, absentmindedly stroking Hedwig. The sky outside the window was changing
rapidly from deep, velvety blue to cold, steely gray and then, slowly, to pink
shot with gold. Harry could hardly believe that he'd left Privet Drive only a
few hours ago, that he wasn't expelled, and that he was now facing two
completely Dursley-free weeks.
"It's been a very weird
night, Hedwig," he yawned.
And without even removing his
glasses, he slumped back onto his pillows and fell asleep. CHAPTER FOUR THE LEAKY CAULDRON
It took Harry several days to
get used to his strange new freedom. Never before had he been able to get up
whenever he wanted or eat whatever he fancied. He could even go wherever he
pleased, as long as it was in Diagon Alley, and as this long cobbled street was
packed with the most fascinating wizarding shops in the world, Harry felt no
desire to break his word to Fudge and stray back into the Muggle world.
Harry ate breakfast each morning
in the Leaky Cauldron, where he liked watching the other guests: funny little
witches from the country, up for a day's shopping; venerable-looking wizards
arguing over the latest article in Transfiguration Today; wild-looking
warlocks; raucous dwarfs; and once, what looked suspiciously like a hag, who
ordered a plate of raw liver from behind a thick woolen balaclava.
After breakfast Harry would go
out into the backyard, take out his wand, tap the third brick from the left
above the trash bin, and stand back as the archway into Diagon Alley opened in the
wall.
Harry spent the long sunny days
exploring the shops and eating under the brightly colored umbrellas outside
cafes, where his fellow diners were showing one another their purchases
("It's a lunascope, old boy - no more messing around with moon charts,
see?") or else discussing the case of Sirius Black ("Personally, I
won't let any of the children out alone until he's back in Azkaban").
Harry didn't have to do his homework under the blankets by flashlight anymore;
now he could sit in the bright sunshine outside Florean Fortescue's Ice Cream
Parlor, finishing all his essays with occasional help from Florean Fortescue
himself, who, apart from knowing a great deal about medieval witch burnings,
gave Harry free sundaes every half an hour.
Once Harry had refilled his
money bag with gold Galleons, silver Sickles, and bronze Knuts from his vault
at Gringotts, he had to exercise a lot of self-control not to spend the whole
lot at once. He had to keep reminding himself that he had five years to go at
Hogwarts, and how it would feel to ask the Dursleys for money for spellbooks,
to stop himself from buying a handsome set of solid gold Gobstones (a wizarding
game rather like marbles, in which the stones squirt a nasty-smelling liquid
into the other player's face when they lose a point). He was sorely tempted,
too, by the perfect, moving model of the galaxy in a large glass ball, which
would have meant he never had to take another Astronomy lesson. But the thing
that tested Harry's resolution most appeared in his favorite shop, Quality
Quidditch Supplies, a week after he'd arrived at the Leaky Cauldron.
Curious to know what the crowd
in the shop was staring at, Harry edged his way inside and squeezed in among
the excited witches and wizards until he glimpsed a newly erected podium, on
which was mounted the most magnificent broom he had ever seen in his life.
"Just come out - prototype
-" a square-jawed wizard was telling his companion.
"It's the fastest broom in
the world, isn't it, Dad?" squeaked a boy younger than Harry, who was
swinging off his father's arm.
"Irish International Side's
just put in an order for seven of these beauties!" the proprietor of the
shop told the crowd. "And they're favorites for the World Cup!"
A large witch in front of Harry
moved, and he was able to read the sign next to the broom:
** THE FIREBOLT **
THIS STATE-OF-THE-ART RACING
BROOM SPORTS A STREAM-LINED, SUPERFINE HANDLE OF ASH, TREATED WITH A
DIAMOND-HARD POLISH AND HAND-NUMBERED WITH ITS OWN REGISTRATION NUMBER. EACH
INDIVIDUALLY SELECTED BIRCH TWIG IN THE BROOMTAIL HAS BEEN HONED TO AERODYNAMIC
PERFECTION, GIVING THE FIREBOLT UNSURPASSABLE BALANCE AND PINPOINT PRECISION.
THE FIREBOLT HAS AN ACCELERATION OF 150 MILES AN HOUR IN TEN SECONDS AND
INCORPORATES AN UNBREAKABLE BRAKING CHARM. PRICE ON REQUEST.
Price on request...Harry didn't
like to think how much gold the Firebolt would cost. He had never wanted
anything as much in his whole life - but he had never lost a Quidditch match on
his Nimbus Two Thousand, and what was the point in emptying his Gringotts vault
for the Firebolt, when he had a very good broom already? Harry didn't ask for
the price, but he returned, almost every day after that, just to look at the
Firebolt.
There were, however, things that
Harry needed to buy. He went to the Apothecary to replenish his store of
potions ingredients, and as his school robes were now several inches too short
in the arm and leg, he visited Madam Malkin's Robes for All Occasions and
bought new ones. Most important of all, he had to buy his new schoolbooks,
which would include those for his two new subjects, Care of Magical Creatures
and Divination.
Harry got a surprise as he
looked in at the bookshop window. Instead of the usual display of gold-embossed
spellbooks the size of paving slabs, there was a large iron cage behind the
glass that held about a hundred copies of The Monster Book of Monsters. Torn
pages were flying everywhere as the books grappled with each other, locked
together in furious wrestling matches and snapping aggressively.
Harry pulled his booklist out of
his pocket and consulted it for the first time. The Monster Book of Monsters
was listed as the required book for Care of Magical Creatures. Now Harry
understood why Hagrid had said it would come in useful. He felt relieved; he
had been wondering whether Hagrid wanted help with some terrifying new pet.
As Harry entered Flourish and
Blotts, the manager came hurrying toward him.
"Hogwarts?" he said
abruptly. "Come to get your new books?"
"Yes," said Harry,
"I need -"
"Get out of the way,"
said the manager impatiently, brushing Harry aside. He drew on a pair of very
thick gloves, picked up a large, knobbly walking stick, and proceeded toward
the door of the Monster Books' cage. "Hang on," said
Harry quickly, "I've already got one of those."
"Have you?" A look of
enormous relief spread over the manager's face. "Thank heavens for that.
I've been bitten five times already this morning -"
A loud ripping noise rent the
air; two of the Monster Books had seized a third and were pulling it apart.
"Stop it! Stop it!"
cried the manager, poking the walking stick through the bars and knocking the
books apart. "I'm never stocking them again, never! It's been bedlam! I
thought we'd seen the worst when we bought two hundred copies of the Invisible
Book of Invisibility - cost a fortune, and we never found them...Well...is
there anything else I can help you with?"
"Yes," said Harry,
looking down his booklist, "I need Unfogging the Future by
Cassandra Vablatsky."
"Ah, starting Divination,
are you?" said the manager, stripping off his gloves and leading Harry
into the back of the shop, where there was a corner devoted to fortune-telling.
A small table was stacked with volumes such as Predicting the Unpredictable:
Insulate Yourself Against Shocks and Broken Balls: When Fortunes Turn Foul.
"Here you are," said
the manager, who had climbed a set of steps to take down a thick, black-bound
book. "Unfogging the Future. Very good guide to all your basic
fortune-telling methods - palmistry, crystal balls, bird entrails."
But Harry wasn't listening. His
eyes had fallen on another book, which was among a display on a small table: Death
Omens - What to Do When You Know the Worst Is Coming.
"Oh, I wouldn't read that
if I were you," said the manager lightly, looking to see what Harry was
staring at. "You'll start seeing death omens everywhere. It's enough to
frighten anyone to death."
But Harry continued to stare at
the front cover of the book; it showed a black dog large as a bear, with
gleaming eyes. It looked oddly familiar...
The manager pressed Unfogging
the Future into Harry's hands.
"Anything else?" he
said.
"Yes," said Harry,
tearing his eyes away from the dog's and dazedly consulting his booklist.
"Er - I need Intermediate Transfiguration and The Standard Book
of Spells, Grade Three."
Harry emerged from Flourish and
Blotts ten minutes later with his new books under his arms and made his way
back to the Leaky Cauldron, hardly noticing where he was going and bumping into
several people.
He tramped up the stairs to his
room, went inside, and tipped his books onto his bed. Somebody had been in to
tidy; the windows were open and sun was pouring inside. Harry could hear the
buses rolling by in the unseen Muggle street behind him and the sound of the
invisible crowd below in Diagon Alley. He caught sight of himself in the mirror
over the basin.
"It can't have been a death
omen," he told his reflection defiantly. "I was panicking when I saw
that thing in Magnolia Crescent...It was probably just a stray dog..."
He raised his hand automatically
and tried to make his hair lie flat
"You're fighting a losing
battle there, dear," said his mirror in a wheezy voice.
As the days slipped by, Harry
started looking wherever he went for a sign of Ron or Hermione. Plenty of
Hogwarts students were arriving in Diagon Alley now, with the start of term so
near. Harry met Seamus Finnigan and Dean Thomas, his fellow Gryffindors, in
Quality Quidditch Supplies, where they too were ogling the Firebolt; he also
ran into the real Neville Longbottom, a round-faced, forgetful boy, outside
Flourish and Blotts. Harry didn't stop to chat; Neville appeared to have
mislaid his booklist and was being told off by his very formidable-looking
grandmother. Harry hoped she never found out that he'd pretended to be Neville
while on the run from the Ministry of Magic.
Harry woke on the last day of
the holidays, thinking that he would at least meet Ron and Hermione tomorrow,
on the Hogwarts Express. He got up, dressed, went for a last look at the
Firebolt, and was just wondering where he'd have lunch, when someone yelled his
name and he turned.
"Harry! HARRY!"
They were there, both of them,
sitting outside Florean Fortescue's Ice Cream Parlor - Ron looking incredibly
freckly, Hermione very brown, both waving frantically at him.
"Finally!" said Ron,
grinning at Harry as he sat down. "We went to the Leaky Cauldron, but they
said you'd left, and we went to Flourish and Blotts, and Madam Malkin's, and
-"
"I got all my school stuff
last week," Harry explained. "And how come you knew I'm staying at
the Leaky Cauldron?"
"Dad," said Ron
simply.
Mr. Weasley, who worked at the
Ministry of Magic, would of course have heard the whole story of what had
happened to Aunt Marge.
"Did you really blow up
your aunt, Harry?" said Hermione in a very serious voice. "I didn't mean
to," said Harry, while Ron roared with laughter. "I just - lost
control."
"It's not funny, Ron,"
said Hermione sharply. "Honestly, I'm amazed Harry wasn't expelled."
"So am I," admitted
Harry. "Forget expelled, I thought I was going to be arrested." He
looked at Ron. "Your dad doesn't know why Fudge let me off, does he?"
"Probably 'cause it's you,
isn't it?" shrugged Ron, still chuckling. "Famous Harry Potter and
all that. I'd hate to see what the Ministry'd do to me if I blew up an aunt.
Mind you, they'd have to dig me up first, because Mum would've killed me.
Anyway, you can ask Dad yourself this evening. We're staying at the Leaky
Cauldron tonight too! So you can come to King's Cross with us tomorrow!
Hermione's there as well!"
Hermione nodded, beaming.
"Mum and Dad dropped me off this morning with all my Hogwarts
things."
"Excellent!" said
Harry happily. "So, have you got all your new books and stuff?"
"Look at this," said
Ron, pulling a long thin box out of a bag and opening it. "Brand-new wand.
Fourteen inches, willow, containing one unicorn tail-hair. And we've got all
our books -" He pointed at a large bag under his chair. "What about
those Monster Books, eh? The assistant nearly cried when we said we wanted
two."
"What's all that,
Hermione?" Harry asked, pointing at not one but three bulging bags in the
chair next to her.
"Well, I'm taking more new
subjects than you, aren't I," said Hermione. "Those are my books for
Arithmancy, Care of Magical Creatures, Divination, the Study of Ancient Runes,
Muggle Studies -"
"What are you doing Muggle
Studies for?" said Ron, rolling his eyes at Harry. "You're
Muggle-born! Your mum and dad are Muggles! You already know all about
Muggles!"
"But it'll be fascinating
to study them from the wizarding point of view," said Hermione earnestly.
"Are you planning to eat or
sleep at all this year, Hermione?" asked Harry, while Ron sniggered.
Hermione ignored them.
"I've still got ten
Galleons," she said, checking her purse. "It's my birthday in September,
and Mum and Dad gave me some money to get myself an early birthday
present."
"How about a nice book?
said Ron innocently.
"No, I don't think
so," said Hermione composedly. "I really want an owl. I mean, Harry's
got Hedwig and you've got Errol -"
"I haven't," said Ron.
"Errol's a family owl. All I've got is Scabbers." He pulled his pet
rat out of his pocket. "And I want to get him checked over," he
added, placing Scabbers on the table in front of them. "I don't think Egypt
agreed with him."
Scabbers was looking thinner
than usual, and there was a definite droop to his whiskers.
"There's a magical creature
shop just over there," said Harry, who knew Diagon Alley very well by now.
"You could see if they've got anything for Scabbers, and Hermione can get
her owl."
So they paid for their ice cream
and crossed the street to the Magical Menagerie.
There wasn't much room inside.
Every inch of wall was hidden by cages. It was smelly and very noisy because
the occupants of these cages were all squeaking, squawking, jabbering, or
hissing. The witch behind the counter was already advising a wizard on the care
of double-ended newts, so Harry, Ron, and Hermione waited, examining the cages.
A pair of enormous purple toads
sat gulping wetly and feasting on dead blowflies. A gigantic tortoise with a
jewel-encrusted shell was glittering near the window. Poisonous orange snails
were oozing slowly up the side of their glass tank, and a fat white rabbit kept
changing into a silk top hat and back again with a loud popping noise. Then
there were cats of every color, a noisy cage of ravens, a basket of funny
custard-colored furballs that were humming loudly, and on the counter, a vast
cage of sleek black rats that were playing some sort of skipping game using
their long, bald tails.
The double-ended newt wizard
left, and Ron approached the counter.
"It's my rat," he told
the witch. "He's been a bit off-color ever since I brought him back from
Egypt."
"Bang him on the
counter," said the witch, pulling a pair of heavy black spectacles out of
her pocket.
Ron lifted Scabbers out of his
inside pocket and placed him next to the cage of his fellow rats, who stopped
their skipping tricks and scuffled to the wire for a better took.
Like nearly everything Ron
owned, Scabbers the rat was secondhand (he had once belonged to Ron's brother
Percy) and a bit battered. Next to the glossy rats in the cage, he looked
especially woebegone.
"Hm," said the witch,
picking up Scabbers. "How old is this rat?"
"Dunno," said Ron.
"Quite old. He used to belong to my brother."
"What powers does he
have?" said the witch, examining Scabbers closely.
"Er -" The truth was
that Scabbers had never shown the faintest trace of interesting powers. The
witch's eyes moved from Scabbers's tattered left ear to his front paw, which
had a toe missing, and tutted loudly.
"He's been through the
mill, this one," she said.
"He was like that when
Percy gave him to me," said Ron defensively.
"An ordinary common or
garden rat like this can't be expected to live longer than three years or
so," said the witch. "Now, if you were looking for something a bit
more hard-wearing, you might like one of these -"
She indicated the black rats,
who promptly started skipping again. Ron muttered, "Show-offs."
"Well, if you don't want a
replacement, you can try this rat tonic," said the witch, reaching under
the counter and bringing out a small red bottle.
"Okay," said Ron.
"How much - OUCH!"
Ron buckled as something huge
and orange came soaring from the top of the highest cage, landed on his head, and
then propelled itself, spitting madly, at Scabbers.
"NO, CROOKSHANKS, NO!"
cried the witch, but Scabbers shot from between her hands like a bar of soap,
landed splay-legged on the floor, and then scampered for the door.
"Scabbers!" Ron
shouted, racing out of the shop after him; Harry followed.
It took them nearly ten minutes
to catch Scabbers, who had taken refuge under a wastepaper bin outside Quality
Quidditch Supplies. Ron stuffed the trembling rat back into his pocket and
straightened up, massaging his head.
"What was
that?" "It was either a very
big cat or quite a small tiger," said Harry.
"Where's Hermione?"
"Probably getting her
owl."
They made their way back up the
crowded street to the Magical Menagerie. As they reached it, Hermione came out,
but she wasn't carrying an owl. Her arms were clamped tightly around the
enormous ginger cat.
"You bought that
monster?" said Ron, his mouth hanging open.
"He's gorgeous,
isn't he?" said Hermione, glowing. That was a matter of
opinion, thought Harry. The cat's ginger fur was thick and fluffy, but it was
definitely a bit bowlegged and its face looked grumpy and oddly squashed, as
though it had run headlong into a brick wall. Now that Scabbers was out of
sight, however, the cat was purring contentedly in Hermione's arms.
"Hermione, that thing
nearly scalped me!" said Ron.
"He didn't mean to, did
you, Crookshanks?" said Hermione.
"And what about
Scabbers?" said Ron, pointing at the lump in his chest pocket. "He
needs rest and relaxation! How's he going to get it with that thing
around?"
"That reminds me, you
forgot your rat tonic," said Hermione, slapping the small red bottle into
Ron's hand. "And stop worrying, Crookshanks will be sleeping in my
dormitory and Scabbers in yours, what's the problem? Poor Crookshanks, that
witch said he'd been in there for ages; no one wanted him."
"Wonder why," said Ron
sarcastically as they set off toward the Leaky Cauldron.
They found Mr. Weasley sitting
in the bar, reading the Daily Prophet. "Harry!" he said,
smiling as he looked up. "How are you?"
"Fine, thanks," said
Harry as he, Ron, and Hermione joined Mr. Weasley with their shopping.
Mr. Weasley put down his paper,
and Harry saw the now familiar picture of Sirius Black staring up at him.
"They still haven't caught
him, then?" he asked.
"No," said Mr.
Weasley, looking extremely grave. "They've pulled us all off our regular
jobs at the Ministry to try and find him, but no luck so far."
"Would we get a reward if
we caught him?" asked Ron. "It'd be good to get some more money
-"
"Don't be ridiculous,
Ron," said Mr. Weasley, who on closer inspection looked very strained.
"Black's not going to be caught by a thirteen-year-old wizard. It's the
Azkaban guards who'll get him back, You mark my words."
At that moment Mrs. Weasley
entered the bar, laden with shopping bags and followed by the twins, Fred and
George, who were about to start their fifth year at Hogwarts; the newly elected
Head Boy, Percy; and the Weasleys" youngest child and only girl, Ginny.
Ginny, who had always been very
taken with Harry, seemed even more heartily embarrassed than usual when she saw
him, perhaps because he had saved her life during their previous year at
Hogwarts. She went very red and muttered "hello" without looking at
him. Percy, however, held out his hand solemnly as though he and Harry had
never met and said, "Harry. How nice to see you."
"Hello, Percy," said
Harry, trying not to laugh.
"I hope you're well?"
said Percy pompously, shaking hands. It was rather like being introduced to the
mayor.
"Very well, thanks -"
"Harry!" said Fred,
elbowing Percy out of the way and bowing deeply. "Simply splendid
to see you, old boy -" "Marvelous," said
George, pushing Fred aside and seizing Harry's hand in turn. "Absolutely
spiffing."
Percy scowled.
"That's enough, now,"
said Mrs. Weasley.
"Mum!" said Fred, as
though he'd only just spotted her and seizing her hand, too. "How really
corking to see you -"
"I said, that's
enough," said Mrs. Weasley, depositing her shopping in an empty chair.
"Hello, Harry, dear. I suppose you've heard our exciting news?" She
pointed to the brand-new silver badge on Percy's chest. "Second Head Boy
in the family!" she said, swelling with pride.
"And last," Fred
muttered under his breath.
I don't doubt that," said
Mrs. Weasley, frowning suddenly. "I notice they haven't made you two
prefects."
"What do we want to be
prefects for?" said George, looking revolted at the very idea. "It'd
take all the fun out of life."
Ginny giggled.
"You want to set a better
example for your sister!" snapped Mrs. Weasley.
"Gunny's got other brothers
to set her an example, Mother," said Percy loftily. "I'm going up to
change for dinner..."
He disappeared and George heaved
a sigh.
"We tried to shut him in a
pyramid," he told Harry. "But Mum spotted us."
Dinner that night was a very
enjoyable affair. Tom the innkeeper put three tables together in the parlor,
and the seven Weasleys, Harry, and Hermione ate their way through five
delicious courses.
"How're we getting to
King's Cross tomorrow, Dad?" asked Fred as they dug into a sumptuous
chocolate pudding.
"The Ministry's providing a
couple of cars," said Mr. Weasley.
Everyone looked up at him.
"Why?" said Percy
curiously.
"It's because of you,
Perce," said George seriously. "And there'll be little flags on the
hoods, with HB on them-"
"- for Humongous
Bighead," said Fred.
Everyone except Percy and Mrs.
Weasley snorted into their pudding.
"Why are the Ministry
providing cars, Father?" Percy asked again, in a dignified voice.
"Well, as we haven't got
one anymore," said Mr. Weasley, "and as I work there, they're doing
me a favor..."
His voice was casual, but Harry
couldn't help noticing that Mr. Wesley's ears had gone red, just like Ron's did
when he was under pressure.
"Good thing, too,"
said Mrs. Weasley briskly. "Do you realize how much luggage you've all got
between you? A nice sight you'd be on the Muggle Underground...You are all
packed, aren't you?"
"Ron hasn't put all his new
things in his trunk yet," said Percy, in a long-suffering voice.
"He's dumped them on my bed."
"You'd better go and pack
properly, Ron, because we won't have much time in the morning," Mrs.
Weasley called down the table. Ron scowled at Percy.
After dinner everyone felt very
full and sleepy. One by one they made their way upstairs to their rooms to
check their things for the next day. Ron and Percy were next door to Harry. He
had just closed and locked his own trunk when he heard angry voices through the
wall, and went to see what was going on.
The door of number twelve was
ajar and Percy was shouting.
"It was here, on the
bedside table, I took it off for polishing -"
"I haven't touched it, all
right?" Ron roared back.
"What's up?" said
Harry.
"My Head Boy badge is
gone," said Percy, rounding on Harry.
"So's Scabbers's Rat
Tonic," said Ron, throwing things out of his trunk to look. "I think
I might've left it in the bar -"
"You're not going anywhere
till you've found my badge!" yelled Percy.
"I'll get Scabbers's stuff,
I'm packed," Harry said to Ron, and he went downstairs.
Harry was halfway along the
passage to the bar, which was now very dark, when he heard another pair of
angry voices coming from the parlor. A second later, he recognized them as Mr.
and Mrs. Weasleys". He hesitated, not wanting them to know he'd heard them
arguing, when the sound of his own name made him stop, then move closer to the
parlor door.
"...makes no sense not to
tell him," Mr. Weasley was saying heatedly. "Harry's got a right to
know. I've tried to tell Fudge, but he insists on treating Harry like a child.
He's thirteen years old and -"
"Arthur, the truth would
terrify him!" said Mrs. Weasley shrilly. "Do you really want to send
Harry back to school with that hanging over him? For heaven's sake, he's happy
not knowing!"
"I don't want to make him
miserable, I want to put him on his guard!" retorted Mr. Weasley.
"You know what Harry and Ron are like, wandering off by themselves -
they've ended up in the Forbidden Forest twice! But Harry mustn't do that this
year! When I think what could have happened to him that night he ran away from
home! If the Knight Bus hadn't picked him up, I'm prepared to bet he would have
been dead before the Ministry found him."
"But he's not dead,
he's fine, so what's the point -"
"Molly, they say Sirius
Black's mad, and maybe he is, but he was clever enough to escape from Azkaban,
and that's supposed to be impossible. It's been three weeks, and no one's seen
hide nor hair of him, and I don't care what Fudge keeps telling the Daily
Prophet, we're no nearer catching Black than inventing self-spelling wands.
The only thing we know for sure is what Black's after -"
"But Harry will be
perfectly safe at Hogwarts."
"We thought Azkaban was
perfectly safe. If Black can break out of Azkaban, he can break into
Hogwarts."
"But no one's really sure
that Black's after Harry -"
There was a thud on wood, and
Harry was sure Mr. Weasley had banged his fist on the table.
"Molly, how many times do I
have to tell you? They didn't report it in the press because Fudge wanted it
kept quiet, but Fudge went out to Azkaban the night Black escaped. The guards
told Fudge that Blacks been talking in his sleep for a while now. Always the
same words: "He's at Hogwarts...he's at Hogwarts." Black is deranged,
Molly, and he wants Harry dead. If you ask me, he thinks murdering Harry will bring
You-Know-Who back to power. Black lost everything the night Harry stopped
You-Know-Who, and he's had twelve years alone in Azkaban to brood on
that..."
There was a silence. Harry
leaned still closer to the door, desperate to hear more.
"Well, Arthur, you must do
what you think is right. But you're forgetting Albus Dumbledore. I don't think
anything could hurt Harry at Hogwarts while Dumbledore's Headmaster. I suppose
he knows about all this?"
"Of course he knows. We had
to ask him if he minds the Azkaban guards stationing themselves around the
entrances to the school grounds. He wasn't happy about it, but he agreed."
"Not happy? Why shouldn't
he be happy, if they're there to catch Black?"
"Dumbledore isn't fond of
the Azkaban guards," said Mr. Weasley heavily. "Nor am I, if it comes
to that...but when you're dealing with a wizard like Black, you sometimes have to
join forces with those you'd rather avoid."
"If they save Harry -"
"- then I will never say
another word against them, said Mr. Weasley wearily. "It's late, Molly,
we'd better go up..."
Harry heard chairs move. As
quietly as he could, he hurried down the passage to the bar and out of sight.
The parlor door opened, and a few seconds later footsteps told him that Mr. and
Mrs. Weasley were climbing the stairs.
The bottle of rat tonic was
lying under the table they had sat at earlier. Harry waited until he heard Mr.
and Mrs. Wesley's bedroom door close, then headed back upstairs with the
bottle.
Fred and George were crouching
in the shadows on the landing, heaving with laughter as they listened to Percy
dismantling his and Ron's room in search of his badge.
"We've got it," Fred
whispered to Harry. "We've been improving it."
The badge now read Bighead
Boy.
Harry forced a laugh, went to
give Ron the rat tonic, then shut himself in his room and lay down on his bed.
So Sirius Black was after him.
This explained everything. Fudge had been lenient with him because he was so
relieved to find him alive. He'd made Harry promise to stay in Diagon Alley
where there were plenty of wizards to keep an eye on him. And he was sending
two Ministry cars to take them all to the station tomorrow, so that the
Weasleys could look after Harry until he was on the train.
Harry lay listening to the
muffled shouting next door and wondered why he didn't feel more scared. Sirius
Black had murdered thirteen people with one curse; Mr. and Mrs., Weasley
obviously thought Harry would be panic-stricken if he knew the truth. But Harry
happened to agree wholeheartedly with Mrs. Weasley that the safest place on
earth was wherever Albus Dumbledore happened to be. Didn't people always say
that Dumbledore was the only person Lord Voldemort had ever been afraid of?
Surely Black, as Voldemort's right-hand man, would be just as frightened of
him? And then there were these
Azkaban guards everyone kept talking about. They seemed to scare most people
senseless, and if they were stationed all around the school, Black's chances of
getting inside seemed very remote.
No, all in all, the thing that
bothered Harry most was the fact that his chances of visiting Hogsmeade now
looked like zero. Nobody would want Harry to leave the safety of the castle
until Black was caught; in fact, Harry suspected his every move would be
carefully watched until the danger had passed.
He scowled at the dark ceiling.
Did they think he couldn't look after himself? He'd escaped Lord Voldemort
three times; he wasn't completely useless... Unbidden, the image of the
beast in the shadows of Magnolia Crescent crossed his mind. What to do when
you know the worst is coming...
"I'm not going to be
murdered," Harry said out loud. "That's the spirit,
dear," said his mirror sleepily. CHAPTER FIVE THE DEMENTORTom woke Harry the next
morning with his usual toothless grin and a cup of tea. Harry got dressed and
was just persuading a disgruntled Hedwig to get back into her cage when Ron
banged his way into the room, pulling a sweatshirt over his head and looking
irritable.
"The sooner we get on the
train, the better," he said. "At least I can get away from Percy at
Hogwarts. Now he's accusing me of dripping tea on his photo of Penelope
Clearwater. You know," Ron grimaced, "his girlfriend. She's hidden
her face under the frame because her nose has gone all blotchy..."
"I've got something to tell
you," Harry began, but they were interrupted by Fred and George, who had
looked in to congratulate Ron on infuriating Percy again.
They headed down to breakfast,
where Mr. Weasley was reading the front page of the Daily Prophet with a
furrowed brow and Mrs. Weasley was telling Hermione and Ginny about a love
potion she'd made as a young girl. All three of them were rather giggly.
"What were you
saying?" Ron asked Harry as they sat down.
"Later," Harry
muttered as Percy stormed in.
Harry had no chance to speak to
Ron or Hermione in the chaos of leaving; they were too busy heaving all their
trunks down the Leaky Cauldron's narrow staircase and piling them up near the
door, with Hedwig and Hermes, Percy's screech owl, perched on top in their
cages. A small wickerwork basket stood beside the heap of trunks, spitting
loudly.
"It's all right,
Crookshanks," Hermione cooed through the wickerwork. "I'll let you
out on the train."
"You won't," snapped
Ron. "What about poor Scabbers, eh?"
He pointed at his chest, where a
large lump indicated that Scabbers was curled up in his pocket.
Mr. Weasley, who had been
outside waiting for the Ministry cars, stuck his head inside.
"They're here, he said.
"Harry, come on."
Mr. Weasley marched Harry across
the short stretch of pavement toward the first of two old-fashioned dark green
cars, each of which was driven by a furtive-looking wizard wearing a suit of
emerald velvet.
"In you get, Harry,"
said Mr. Weasley, glancing up and down the crowded street.
Harry got into the back of the
car and was shortly joined by Hermione, Ron, and, to Ron's disgust, Percy.
The journey to King's Cross was
very uneventful compared with Harry's trip on the Knight Bus. The Ministry of
Magic cars seemed almost ordinary. though Harry noticed that they could slide
through gaps that Uncle Vernon's new company car certainly couldn't have
managed. They reached King's Cross with twenty minutes to spare; the Ministry
drivers found them trolleys, unloaded their trunks, touched their hats in
salute to Mr. Weasley, and drove away, somehow managing to jump to the head of
an unmoving line at the traffic lights.
Mr. Weasley kept close to
Harry's elbow all the way into the station.
"Right then," he said,
glancing around them. "Let's do this in pairs, as there are so many of us.
I'll go through first with Harry."
Mr. Weasley strolled toward the
barrier between platforms nine and ten, pushing Harry's trolley and apparently
very interested in the InterCity 125 that had just arrived at platform nine.
With a meaningful look at Harry, he leaned casually against the barrier. Harry
imitated him.
In a moment, they had fallen
sideways through the solid metal onto platform nine and three-quarters and
looked up to see the Hogwarts Express, a scarlet steam engine, puffing smoke
over a platform packed with witches and wizards seeing their children onto the
train.
Percy and Ginny suddenly
appeared behind Harry. They were panting and had apparently taken the barrier
at a run.
"Ah, there's
Penelope!" said Percy, smoothing his hair and going pink again. Ginny
caught Harry's eye, and they both turned away to hide their laughter as Percy
strode over to a girl with long, curly hair, walking with his chest thrown out
so that she couldn't miss his shiny badge.
Once the remaining Weasleys and
Hermione had joined them, Harry and Mr. Weasley led the way to the end of the
train, past packed compartments, to a carriage that looked quite empty. They
loaded the trunks onto it, stowed Hedwig and Crookshanks in the luggage rack,
then went back outside to say goodbye to Mr. and Mrs. Weasley.
Mrs. Weasley kissed all her
children, then Hermione, and finally Harry. He was embarrassed, but really
quite pleased, when she gave him an extra hug.
"Do take care, won't you
Harry?" she said as she straightened up, her eyes oddly bright. Then she opened
her enormous handbag and said, "I've made you all sandwiches. Here you
are, Ron...no, they're not corned beef... Fred? Where's Fred? Here you are
dear..."
"Harry," said Mr.
Weasley quietly, "come over here for a moment."
He jerked his head towards a
pillar, and Harry followed him behind it, leaving the others crowded around
Mrs. Weasley.
"There's something I've got
to tell you before you leave -" said Mr. Weasley in a tense voice.
"It's all right, Mr.
Weasley," said Harry, "I already know."
"You know? How could you
know?"
"I - er - I heard you and
Mrs. Wesley talking last night. I couldn't help hearing," Harry added
quickly. "Sorry -"
"That's not the way I'd
have chosen for you to find out," said Mr. Weasley looking anxious..
"No - honestly it's OK.
This way, you haven't broken your word to Fudge and I know what's going
on."
"Harry, you must be scared
- "
"I'm not," said Harry
sincerely. "Really," he added, because Mr. Weasley was looking
disbelieving. "I'm not trying to be a hero, but seriously, Sirius Black
can't be worse than Lord Voldemort, can he?"
Mr. Weasley flinched at the
sound of the name, but overlooked it.
"Harry, I knew you were,
well, made of stronger stuff than Fudge seems to think, and I'm obviously
pleased that you're not scared, but -"
"Arthur!" called Mrs.
Weasley, who was now shepherding the rest onto the train. "Arthur, what
are you doing? It's about to go!"
"He's coming Molly!"
said Mr. Weasley, but he turned back to Harry and kept talking in a lower and
more hurried voice, "Listen, I want you to give me your word -"
" - that I'll be a good boy
and stay in the castle?" said Harry gloomily.
"Not entirely," said
Mr. Weasley, who looked more serious than Harry had ever seen him. "Harry,
swear to me you won't go looking for Black."
Harry stared, "What!"
There was a loud whistle. Guards
were walking along the train, slamming all the doors shut.
"Promise me, Harry,"
said Mr. Weasley, talking more quickly still, "that whatever happens
-"
"Why would I go looking for
someone I know wants to kill me?" said Harry blankly.
"Swear to me that whatever
you might hear -" "Arthur, quickly!"
cried Mrs. Weasley.
Steam was billowing from the
train it had started to move. Harry ran to the compartment door and Ron threw
it open and stood back to let him on. They leaned out of the window and waved
at Mr. and Mrs. Weasley until the train turned a corner and blocked them from
view.
"I need to talk to you in
private," Harry muttered to Ron and Hermione as the train picked up speed.
"Go away, Ginny," said
Ron.
"Oh, that's nice,"
said Ginny huffily, and she stalked off.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione set off
down the corridor, looking for an empty compartment, but all were full except
for the one at the very end of the train.
This had only one occupant, a
man sitting fast asleep next to the window. Harry, Ron, and Hermione checked on
the threshold. The Hogwarts Express was usually reserved for students and they
had never seen an adult there before, except for the witch who pushed the food
cart.
The stranger was wearing an
extremely shabby set of wizard's robes that had been darned in several places.
He looked ill and exhausted. Though quite young, his light brown hair was
flecked with gray.
"Who d'you reckon he
is?" Ron hissed as they sat down and slid the door shut, taking the seats
farthest away from the window.
"Professor R. J.
Lupin." whispered Hermione at once.
"How'd you know that?"
"It's on his case,"
she replied, pointing at the luggage rack over the man's head, where there was
a small, battered case held together with a large quantity of neatly knotted
string. The name Professor R. J. Lupin was stamped across one corner in peeling
letters.
"Wonder what he
teaches?" said Ron, frowning at Professor Lupin's pallid profile.
"That's obvious,"
whispered Hermione. "There's only one vacancy, isn't there? Defense
Against the Dark Arts."
Harry, Ron, and Hermione had
already had two Defense Against the Dark Arts teachers, both of whom had lasted
only one year. There were rumors that the job was jinxed.
"Well, I hope he's up to
it," said Ron doubtfully. "He looks like on, good hex would finish
him off, doesn't he? Anyway..." he turned to Harry, "what were you
going to tell us?"
Harry explained all about Mr.
and Mrs. Wesley's argument and the warning Mr. Weasley had just given him. When
he'd finished, Ron looked thunderstruck, and Hermione had her hands over her
mouth. She finally lowered them to say, "Sirius Black escaped to come
after you? Oh, Harry...you'll have to be really, really careful. don't go
looking for trouble, Harry..."
"I don't go looking for
trouble," said Harry, nettled. "Trouble usually finds me." "How thick would Harry
have to be, to go looking for a nutter who wants to kill him?" said Ron
shakily.
They were taking the news worse
than Harry had expected. Both Ron and Hermione seemed to be much more
frightened of Black than he was.
"No one knows how he got
out of Azkaban," said Ron uncomfortably. "No one's ever done it
before. And he was a top-security prisoner too."
"But they'll catch him,
won't they?" said Hermione earnestly. "I mean, they've got all the
Muggles looking out for him too..."
"What's that noise?"
said Ron suddenly.
A faint, tinny sort of whistle
was coming from somewhere. They looked all around the compartment.
"It's coming from your
trunk, Harry," said Ron, standing up and reaching into the luggage rack. A
moment later he had pulled the Pocket Sneakoscope out from between Harry's
robes. It was spinning very fast in the palm of Ron's hand and glowing
brilliantly.
"Is that a Sneakoscope?"
said Hermione interestedly, standing up for a better look. "Yeah...mind you, it's a
very cheap one," Ron said. "It went haywire just as I was tying it to
Errol's leg to send it to Harry."
"Were you doing anything
untrustworthy at the time?" said Hermione shrewdly.
"No! Well...I wasn't supposed
to be using Errol. You know he's not really up to long journeys...but how else
was I supposed to get Harry's present to him?"
"Stick it back in the
trunk," Harry advised as the Sneakoscope whistled piercingly, "or
it'll wake him up."
He nodded toward Professor
Lupin. Ron stuffed the Sneakoscope into a particularly horrible pair of Uncle
Vernon's old socks, which deadened the sound, then closed the lid of the trunk
on it.
"We could get it checked in
Hogsmeade," said Ron, sitting back down. "They sell that sort of
thing in Dervish and Banges, magical instruments and stuff. Fred and George
told me."
"Do you know much about
Hogsmeade?" asked Hermione keenly. "I've read it's the only entirely
non-Muggle settlement in Britain -"
"Yeah, I think it is,"
said Ron in an offhand sort of way. "but that's not why I want to go. I
just want to get inside Honeydukes!"
"What's that?" said
Hermione.
"It's this sweetshop,"
said Ron, a dreamy look coming over his face, "where they've got everything...Pepper
Imps - they make you smoke at the mouth - and great fat Chocoballs full of
strawberry mousse and clotted cream, and really excellent sugar quills, which
you can suck in class and just look like you're thinking what to write
next-"
"But Hogsmeade's a very
interesting place, isn't it?" Hermione pressed on eagerly. "In Sites
of Historical Sorcery it says the inn was the headquarters for the 1612
goblin rebellion, and the Shrieking Shack's supposed to be the most severely
haunted building in Britain -"
"- and massive sherbet balls
that make you levitate a few inches off the ground while you're sucking
them," said Ron, who was plainly not listening to a word Hermione was
saying.
Hermione looked around at Harry.
"Won't it be nice to get
out of school for a bit and explore Hogsmeade?"
"'Spect it will," said
Harry heavily. "You'll have to tell me when you've found out."
"What d'you mean?"
said Ron.
"I can't go. The Dursleys
didn't sign my permission form, and Fudge wouldn't either."
Ron looked horrified.
"You're not allowed to
come? But - no way - McGonagall or someone will give you permission -"
Harry gave a hollow laugh.
Professor McGonagall, head of Gryffindor house, was very strict.
"- or we can ask Fred and
George, they know every secret passage out of the castle -"
"Ron!" said Hermione
sharply. "I don't think Harry should be sneaking out of the school with
Black on the loose -"
"Yeah, I expect that's what
McGonagall will say when I ask of permission," said Harry bitterly.
"But if we're with
him," said Ron spiritedly to Hermione. "Black wouldn't dare -"
"Oh, Ron, don't talk
rubbish," snapped Hermione. "Black's already murdered a whole bunch
of people in the middle of a crowded street, do you really think he's going to
worry about attacking Harry just because we're there?"
She was fumbling with the straps
of Crookshanks's basket as she spoke.
"Don't let that thing
out!" Ron said, but too late; Crookshanks leapt lightly from the basket,
stretched, yawned, and sprang onto Ron's knees; the lump in Ron's pocket
trembled and he shoved Crookshanks angrily away.
"Get out of it!"
"Ron, don't!" said
Hermione angrily.
Ron was about to answer back
when Professor Lupin stirred. They watched him apprehensively, but he simply
turned his head the other way, mouth slightly open, and slept on.
The Hogwarts Express moved
steadily north and the scenery outside the window became wilder and darker
while the clouds overhead thickened overhead. People were chasing backwards and
forwards past the door of their compartment. Crookshanks had now settled in an empty
seat, his squashed face turned towards Ron, his yellow eyes on Ron's top
pocket.
At one o'clock the plump witch
with the food cart arrived at the compartment door.
D'you think we should wake him
up?" Ron asked awkwardly, nodding towards Professor Lupin. "He looks
like he could do with some food."
Hermione approached Professor
Lupin cautiously.
"Er - Professor?" she
said. "Excuse me - Professor?"
He didn't move.
"Don't worry, dear,"
said the witch, as she handed a large stack of cauldron cakes. "If he's hungry
when he wakes, I'll be up front with the driver."
"I suppose he is
asleep?" said Ron quietly, as the witch slid the compartment door closed.
"I mean - he hasn't died, has he?"
"No, no, he's
breathing," whispered Hermione, taking the cauldron cake Harry passed her.
He might not be very good
company, but Professor Lupin's presence in their compartment had its uses.
Mid-afternoon, just as it had started to rain, blurring the rolling hills
outside the window, they heard footsteps outside in the corridor again, and
their three least favorite people appeared at the door: Draco Malfoy, flanked
by his cronies, Vincent Crabbe and Gregory Goyle.
Draco Malfoy and Harry had been
enemies ever since they had met on their very first journey to Hogwarts.
Malfoy, who had a pale, pointed, sneering face, was in Slytherin house; he
played Seeker on the Slytherin Quidditch team, the same position that Harry
played on the Gryffindor team. Crabbe and Goyle seemed to exist to do Malfoy's
bidding. They were both wide and muscly; Crabbe was taller, with a pudding-bowl
haircut and a very thick neck; Goyle had short, bristly hair and long, gorilla
arms.
"Well, look who it
is," said Malfoy in his usual lazy drawl, pulling open the compartment
door. "Potty and the Weasel."
Crabbe and Goyle chuckled
trollishly.
"I heard your father
finally got his hands on some gold this summer, Weasley," said Malfoy.
"Did your mother die of shock?"
Ron stood up so quickly he
knocked Crookshanks's basket to the floor. Professor Lupin gave a snort.
"Who's that?" said
Malfoy, taking an automatic step backward as he spotted Lupin.
"New teacher," said
Harry, who got to his feet, too, in case he needed to hold Ron back. "What
were you saying, Malfoy?"
Malfoy's pale eyes narrowed; he
wasn't fool enough to pick a fight right under a teacher's nose.
"C'mon," he muttered
resentfully to Crabbe and Goyle, and they disappeared.
Harry and Ron sat down again,
Ron massaging his knuckles.
"I'm not going to take any
crap from Malfoy this year," he said angrily. "I mean it. If he makes
one more crack about my family, I'm going to get hold of his head and -" Ron made a violent gesture
in midair.
"Ron," hissed
Hermione, pointing at Professor Lupin, "be careful..."
But Professor Lupin was still
fast asleep.
The rain thickened as the train
sped yet farther north; the windows were now a solid, shimmering gray, which
gradually darkened until lanterns flickered into life all along the corridors
and over the luggage racks. The train rattled, the rain hammered, the wind
roared, but still, Professor Lupin slept.
"We must be nearly
there," said Ron, leaning forward to look past Professor Lupin at the now
completely black window.
The words had hardly left him
when the train started to slow down.
"Great," said Ron,
getting up and walking carefully past Professor Lupin to try and see outside.
"I'm starving. I want to get to the feast..."
"We can't be there
yet," said Hermione, checking her watch.
"So why're we
stopping?"
The train was getting slower and
slower. As the noise of the pistons fell away, the wind and rain sounded louder
than ever against the windows.
Harry, who was nearest the door,
got up to look into the corridor. All along the carriage, heads were sticking
curiously out of their compartments.
The train came to a stop with a
jolt, and distant thuds and bangs told them that luggage had fallen out of the
racks. Then, without warning, all the lamps went out and they were plunged into
total darkness.
"What's going on?"
said Ron's voice from behind Harry.
"Ouch!" gasped
Hermione. "Ron, that was my foot!"
Harry felt his way back to his
seat.
"D'you think we've broken
down?"
"Dunno..."
There was a squeaking sound, and
Harry saw the dim black outline of Ron, wiping a patch clean on the window and
peering out.
"There's something moving
out there," Ron said. "I think people are coming aboard..."
The compartment door suddenly
opened and someone fell painfully over Harry's legs.
"Sorry! D'you know what's
going on? Ouch! Sorry -"
"Hullo, Neville," said
Harry, feeling around in the dark and pulling Neville up by his cloak.
"Harry? Is that you? What's
happening?"
"No idea! Sit down -"
There was a loud hissing and a
yelp of pain; Neville had tried to sit on Crookshanks.
"I'm going to go and ask
the driver what's going on," came Hermione's voice. Harry felt her pass
him, heard the door slide open again, and then a thud and two loud squeals of
pain.
"Who's that?"
"Who's that?"
"Ginny?"
"Hermione?"
"What are you doing?"
"I was looking for Ron
-"
"Come in and sit down
-"
"Not here!" said Harry
hurriedly. "I'm here!"
"Ouch!" said Neville.
"Quiet!" said a hoarse
voice suddenly.
Professor Lupin appeared to have
woken up at last. Harry could hear movements in his corner.
None of them spoke.
There was a soft, crackling
noise, and a shivering light filled the compartment. Professor Lupin appeared
to be holding a handful of flames. They illuminated his tired, gray face, but
his eyes looked alert and wary.
"Stay where you are."
he said in the same hoarse voice, and he got slowly to his feet with his
handful of fire held out in front of him.
But the door slid slowly open
before Lupin could reach it.
Standing in the doorway,
illuminated by the shivering flames in Lupin's hand, was a cloaked figure that
towered to the ceiling. Its face was completely hidden beneath its hood.
Harry's eyes darted downward, and what he saw made his stomach contract. There
was a hand protruding from the cloak and it was glistening, grayish,
slimy-looking, and scabbed, like something dead that had decayed in water...
But it was visible only for a
split second. As though the creature beneath the cloak sensed Harry's gaze, the
hand was suddenly withdrawn into the folds of its black cloak.
And then the thing beneath the
hood, whatever it was, drew a long, slow, rattling breath, as though it were trying
to suck something more than air from its surroundings.
An intense cold swept over them
all. Harry felt his own breath catch in his chest. The cold went deeper than
his skin. It was inside his chest, it was inside his very heart...
Harry's eyes rolled up into his
head. He couldn't see. He was drowning in cold. There was a rushing in his ears
as though of water. He was being dragged downward, the roaring growing louder...
And then, from far away, he
heard screaming, terrible, terrified, pleading screams. He wanted to help
whoever it was, he tried to move his arms, but couldn't...a thick white fog was
swirling around him, inside him -
"Harry! Harry! Are you all
right?"
Someone was slapping his face.
"W-what?"
Harry opened his eyes; there
were lanterns above him, and the floor was shaking - the Hogwarts Express was
moving again and the lights had come back on. He seemed to have slid out of his
seat onto the floor. Ron and Hermione were kneeling next to him, and above them
he could see Neville and Professor Lupin watching. Harry felt very sick; when
he put up his hand to push his glasses back on, he felt cold sweat on his face.
Ron and Hermione heaved him back
onto his seat.
"Are you okay?" Ron
asked nervously.
"Yeah," said Harry,
looking quickly toward the door. The hooded creature had vanished. "What
happened? Where's that - that thing? Who screamed?"
"No one screamed,"
said Ron, more nervously still.
Harry looked around the bright
compartment. Ginny and Neville looked back at him, both very pale.
"But I heard screaming
-"
A loud snap made them all jump.
Professor Lupin was breaking an enormous slab of chocolate into pieces.
"Here," he said to
Harry, handing him a particularly large piece. "Eat it. It'll help."
Harry took the chocolate but
didn't eat it.
"What was that thing?"
he asked Lupin.
"A Dementor," said
Lupin, who was now giving chocolate to everyone else. "One of the
Dementors of Azkaban."
Everyone stared at him.
Professor Lupin crumpled up the empty chocolate wrapper and put it in his
pocket.
"Eat," he repeated.
"It'll help. I need to speak to the driver, excuse me..."
He strolled past Harry and
disappeared into the corridor.
"Are you sure you're okay,
Harry?" said Hermione, watching Harry anxiously.
"I don't get it... what
happened?" said Harry, wiping more sweat off his face.
"Well - that thing - the
Dementor - stood there and looked around (I mean, I think it did, I couldn't
see its face) - and you - you -"
"I thought you were having
a fit or something," said Ron, who still looked scared. "You went
sort of rigid and fell out of your seat and started twitching -"
"And Professor Lupin
stepped over you, and walked toward the Dementor, and pulled out his
wand," said Hermione, "and he said, 'None of us is hiding Sirius
Black under our cloaks. Go.' But the Dementor didn't move, so Lupin muttered
something, and a silvery thing shot out of his wand at it, and it turned around
and sort of glided away..."
"It was horrible,"
said Neville, in a higher voice than usual. "Did you feel how cold it got
when it came in?"
"I felt weird," said
Ron, shifting his shoulders uncomfortably. "Like I'd never be cheerful
again..."
Ginny, who was huddled in her
corner looking nearly as bad as Harry felt, gave a small sob; Hermione went
over and put a comforting arm around her.
"But didn't any of you -
fall off your seats?" said Harry awkwardly.
"No," said Ron,
looking anxiously at Harry again. "Ginny was shaking like mad,
though..."
Harry didn't understand. He felt
weak and shivery, as though he were recovering from a bad bout of flu; he also
felt the beginnings of shame. Why had he gone to pieces like that, when no one
else had?
Professor Lupin had come back.
He paused as he entered, looked around, and said, with a small smile, "I
haven't poisoned that chocolate, you know..."
Harry took a bite and to his
great surprise felt warmth spread suddenly to the tips of his fingers and toes.
"We'll be at Hogwarts in
ten minutes," said Professor Lupin. "Are you all right, Harry?"
Harry didn't ask how Professor
Lupin knew his name.
"Fine," he muttered,
embarrassed.
They didn't talk much during the
remainder of the journey. At long last, the train stopped at Hogsmeade station,
and there was a great scramble to get outside; owls hooted, cats meowed, and
Neville's pet toad croaked loudly from under his hat. It was freezing on the
tiny platform; rain was driving down in icy sheets.
"Firs' years this
way!" called a familiar voice. Harry, Ron, and Hermione turned and saw the
gigantic outline of Hagrid at the other end of the platform, beckoning the
terrified-looking new students forward for their traditional journey across the
lake.
"All right, you
three?" Hagrid yelled over the heads of the crowd. They waved at him, but
had no chance to speak to him because the mass of people around them was
shunting them away along the platform. Harry, Ron, and Hermione followed the
rest of the school along the platform and out onto a rough mud track, where at
least a hundred stagecoaches awaited the remaining students, each pulled, Harry
could only assume, by an invisible horse, because when they climbed inside and
shut the door, the coach set off all by itself, bumping and swaying in
procession.
The coach smelled faintly of
mold and straw. Harry felt better since the chocolate, but still weak. Ron and
Hermione kept looking at him sideways, as though frightened he might collapse
again.
As the carriage trundled toward
a pair of magnificent wrought iron gates, flanked with stone columns topped
with winged boars, Harry saw two more towering, hooded Dementors, standing
guard on either side. A wave of cold sickness threatened to engulf him again;
he leaned back into the lumpy seat and closed his eyes until they had passed
the gates. The carriage picked up speed on the long, sloping drive up to the
castle; Hermione was leaning out of the tiny window, watching the many turrets
and towers draw nearer. At last, the carriage swayed to a halt, and Hermione
and Ron got out.
As Harry stepped down, a
drawling, delighted voice sounded in his ear.
"You fainted, Potter? Is
Longbottom telling the truth? You actually fainted?"
Malfoy elbowed past Hermione to
block Harry's way up the stone steps to the castle, his face gleeful and his
pale eyes glinting maliciously.
"Shove off, Malfoy,"
said Ron, whose jaw was clenched.
"Did you faint as well,
Weasley?" said Malfoy loudly. "Did the scary old Dementor frighten
you too, Weasley?"
"Is there a problem?"
said a mild voice. Professor Lupin had just gotten out of the next carriage.
Malfoy gave Professor Lupin an
insolent stare, which took in the patches on his robes and the dilapidated
suitcase. With a tiny hint of sarcasm in his voice, he said, "Oh, no - er
- Professor," then he smirked at Crabbe and Goyle and led them up
the steps into the castle.
Hermione prodded Ron in the back
to make him hurry, and the three of them joined the crowd swarming up the
steps, through the giant oak front doors, into the cavernous Entrance Hall,
which was lit with flaming torches, and housed a magnificent marble staircase
that led to the upper floors.
The door into the Great Hall
stood open at the right; Harry followed the crowd toward it, but had barely
glimpsed the enchanted ceiling, which was black and cloudy tonight, when a
voice called, "Potter! Granger! I want to see you both!"
Harry and Hermione turned
around, surprised. Professor McGonagall, Transfiguration teacher and head of
Gryffindor House, was calling over the heads of the crowd. She was a stern
looking witch who wore her hair in a tight bun; her sharp eyes were framed with
square spectacles. Harry fought his way over to her with a feeling of
foreboding: Professor McGonagall had a way of making him feel he must have done
something wrong.
"There's no need to look so
worried - I just want a word in my office," she told them. "Move
along there, Weasley."
Ron stared as Professor
McGonagall ushered Harry and Hermione away from the chattering crowd; they
accompanied her across the entrance hall, up the marble staircase, and along a
corridor.
Once they were in her office, a
small room with a large, welcoming fire, Professor McGonagall motioned Harry
and Hermione to sit down. She settled herself behind her desk and said
abruptly, "Professor Lupin sent an owl ahead to say that you were taken
ill on the train, Potter."
Before Harry could reply, there
was a soft knock on the door and Madam Pomfrey, the nurse, came bustling in.
Harry felt himself going red in
the face. It was bad enough that he'd passed out, or whatever he had done,
without everyone making all this fuss.
"I'm fine," he said,
"I don't need anything -"
"Oh, it's you, is it?"
said Madam Pomfrey, ignoring this and bending down to stare closely at him.
"I suppose you've been doing something dangerous again?"
"It was a Dementor,
Poppy," said Professor McGonagall.
They exchanged a dark look, and
Madam Pomfrey clucked disapprovingly.
"Setting Dementors around a
school, she muttered, pushing back Harry's hair and feeling his forehead.
"He won't be the last one who collapses. Yes, he's all clammy. Terrible
things, they are, and the effect they have on people who are already delicate -"
"I'm not delicate!"
said Harry crossly.
"Of course you're
not," said Madam Pomfrey absentmindedly, now taking his pulse.
"What does he need?"
said Professor McGonagall crisply. "Bed rest? Should he perhaps spend
tonight in the hospital wing?"
"I'm fine!"
said Harry, jumping up. The thought of what Draco Malfoy would say if he had to
go to the hospital wing was torture.
"Well, he should have some
chocolate, at the very least," said Madam Pomfrey, who was now trying to
peer into Harry's eyes.
"I've already had
some," said Harry. "Professor Lupin gave me some. He gave it to all
of us."
"Did he, now?" said
Madam Pomfrey approvingly. "So we've finally got a Defense Against the
Dark Arts teacher who knows his remedies?"
"Are you sure you feel all
right, Potter?" Professor McGonagall said sharply.
"Yes," said Harry.
"Very well. Kindly wait
outside while I have a quick word with Miss Granger about her course schedule,
then we can go down to the feast together."
Harry went back into the
corridor with Madam Pomfrey, who left for the hospital wing, muttering to
herself. He had to wait only a few minutes; then Hermione emerged looking very
happy about something, followed by Professor McGonagall, and the three of them
made their way back down the marble staircase to the Great Hall.
It was a sea of pointed black
hats; each of the long House tables was lined with students, their faces
glimmering by the light of thousands of candles, which were floating over the
tables in midair. Professor Flitwick, who was a tiny little wizard with a shock
of white hair, was carrying an ancient hat and a three-legged stool out of the
hall.
"Oh," said Hermione
softly, "we've missed the Sorting!"
New students at Hogwarts were
sorted into Houses by trying on the Sorting Hat, which shouted out the House
they were best suited to (Gryffindor, Ravenclaw, Hufflepuff, or Slytherin).
Professor McGonagall strode off toward her empty seat at the staff table, and
Harry and Hermione set off in the other direction, as quietly as possible,
toward the Gryffindor table. People looked around at them as they passed along
the back of the hall, and a few of them pointed at Harry. Had the story of his
collapsing in front of the Dementor traveled that fast?
He and Hermione sat down on
either side of Ron, who had saved them seats.
"What was all that
about?" he muttered to Harry.
Harry started to explain in a
whisper, but at that moment the headmaster stood up to speak, and he broke off.
Professor Dumbledore, though
very old, always gave an impression of great energy. He had several feet of
long silver hair and beard, half-moon spectacles, and an extremely crooked
nose. He was often described as the greatest wizard of the age, but that wasn't
why Harry respected him. You couldn't help trusting Albus Dumbledore, and as Harry
watched him beaming around at the students, he felt really calm for the first
time since the Dementor had entered the train compartment.
"Welcome!" said
Dumbledore, the candlelight shimmering on his beard. "Welcome to another
year at Hogwarts! I have a few things to say to you all, and as one of them is
very serious, I think it best to get it out of the way before you become
befuddled by our excellent feast..."
Dumbledore cleared his throat
and continued, "As you will all be aware after their search of the
Hogwarts Express, our school is presently playing host to some of the Dementors
of Azkaban, who are here on Ministry of Magic business."
He paused, and Harry remembered
what Mr. Weasley had said about Dumbledore not being happy with the Dementors
guarding the school.
"They are stationed at
every entrance to the grounds," Dumbledore continued, "and while they
are with us, I must make it plain that nobody is to leave school without
permission. Dementors are not to be fooled by tricks or disguises - or even Invisibility
Cloaks," he added blandly, and Harry and Ron glanced at each other.
"It is not in the nature of a Dementor to understand pleading or excuses.
I therefore warn each and every one of you to give them no reason to harm you.
I look to the prefects, and our new Head Boy and Girl, to make sure that no
student runs afoul of the Dementors," he said.
Percy, who was sitting a few
seats down from Harry, puffed out his chest again and stared around
impressively. Dumbledore paused again; he looked very seriously around the
hall, and nobody moved or made a sound.
"On a happier note,"
he continued, I am pleased to welcome two new teachers to our ranks this year.
"First, Professor Lupin,
who has kindly consented to fill the post of Defense Against the Dark Arts
teacher."
There was some scattered, rather
unenthusiastic applause. Only those who had been in the compartment on the
train with Professor Lupin clapped hard, Harry among them. Professor Lupin
looked particularly shabby next to all the other teachers in their best robes.
"Look at Snape!" Ron
hissed in Harry's ear.
Professor Snape, the Potions
master, was staring along the staff table at Professor Lupin. It was common
knowledge that Snape wanted the Defense Against the Dark Arts job, but even
Harry, who hated Snape, was startled at the expression twisting his thin,
sallow face. it was beyond anger: it was loathing. Harry knew that expression
only too well; it was the look Snape wore every time he set eyes on Harry.
"As to our second new
appointment," Dumbledore continued as the lukewarm applause for Professor
Lupin died away. "Well, I am sorry to tell you that Professor Kettleburn,
our Care of Magical Creatures teacher, retired at the end of last year in order
to enjoy more time with his remaining limbs. However, I am delighted to say
that his place will be filled by none other than Rubeus Hagrid, who has agreed
to take on this teaching job in addition to his gamekeeping duties."
Harry, Ron, and Hermione stared
at one another, stunned. Then they joined in with the applause, which was
tumultuous at the Gryffindor table in particular. Harry leaned forward to see
Hagrid, who was ruby red in the face and staring down at his enormous hands,
his wide grin hidden in the tangle of his black beard.
"We should've known!"
Ron roared, pounding the table. "Who else would have assigned us a biting
book?"
Harry, Ron, and Hermione were
the last to stop clapping, and as Professor Dumbledore started speaking again,
they saw that Hagrid was wiping his eyes on the tablecloth.
"Well, I think that's
everything of importance," said Dumbledore. "Let the feast
begin!"
The golden plates and goblets
before them filled suddenly with food and drink. Harry, suddenly ravenous,
helped himself to everything he could reach and began to eat.
It was a delicious feast; the
hall echoed with talk, laughter, and the clatter of knives and forks. Harry,
Ron, and Hermione, however, were eager for it to finish so that they could talk
to Hagrid. They knew how much being made a teacher would mean to him. Hagrid
wasn't a fully qualified wizard; he had been expelled from Hogwarts in his
third year for a crime he had not committed. It had been Harry, Ron, and
Hermione who had cleared Hagrid's name last year.
At long last, when the last
morsels of pumpkin tart had melted from the golden platters, Dumbledore gave
the word that it was time for them all to go to bed, and they got their chance.
"Congratulations,
Hagrid!" Hermione squealed as they reached the teachers' table.
"All down ter you
three," said Hagrid, wiping his shining face on his napkin as he looked up
at them. "Can' believe it...great man, Dumbledore...came straight down to me
hut after Professor Kettleburn said he'd had enough...It's what I always
wanted..."
Overcome with emotion, he buried
his face in his napkin, and Professor McGonagall shooed them away.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione joined
the Gryffindors streaming up the marble staircase and, very tired now, along
more corridors, up more and more stairs, to the hidden entrance to Gryffindor
Tower, where a large portrait of a fat lady in a pink dress asked them,
"Password?"
"Coming through, coming
through!" Percy called from behind the crowd. "The new password's Fortuna
Major!"
"Oh no," said Neville
Longbottom sadly. He always had trouble remembering the passwords.
Through the portrait hole and
across the common room, the girls and boys divided toward their separate
staircases. Harry climbed the spiral stair with no thought in his head except
how glad he was to be back. They reached their familiar, circular dormitory
with its five four-poster beds, and Harry, looking around, felt he was home at
last. CHAPTER SIX TALONS AND TEA LEAVES
When Harry, Ron, and Hermione
entered the Great Hall for breakfast the next day, the first thing they saw was
Draco Malfoy, who seemed to be entertaining a large group of Slytherins with a
very funny story. As they passed, Malfoy did a ridiculous impression of a
swooning fit and there was a roar of laughter.
"Ignore him," said
Hermione, who was right behind Harry. "Just ignore him, it's not worth
it..."
"Hey, Potter!"
shrieked Pansy Parkinson, a Slytherin girl with a face like a pug.
"Potter! The Dementors are coming, Potter! Woooooooooo!"
Harry dropped into a seat at the
Gryffindor table, next to George Weasley. "New third-year course
schedules," said George, passing then, over. "What's up with you,
Harry?"
"Malfoy," said Ron,
sitting down on George's other side and glaring over at the Slytherin table.
George looked up in time to see
Malfoy pretending to faint with terror again.
"That little git," he
said calmly. "He wasn't so cocky last night when the Dementors were down
at our end of the train. Came running into our compartment, didn't he,
Fred?"
"Nearly wet himself,"
said Fred, with a contemptuous glance at Malfoy.
"I wasn't too happy myself,"
said George. "They're horrible things, those Dementors..."
"Sort of freeze your
insides, don't they?" said Fred.
"You didn't pass out,
though, did you?" said Harry in a low voice.
"Forget it, Harry,"
said George bracingly. "Dad had to go out to Azkaban one time, remember,
Fred? And he said it was the worst place he'd ever been, he came back all weak
and shaking...They suck the happiness out of a place, Dementors. Most of the
prisoners go mad in there."
"Anyway, we'll see how
happy Malfoy looks after our first Quidditch match," said Fred.
"Gryffindor versus Slytherin, first game of the season, remember?"
The only time Harry and Malfoy
had faced each other in a Quidditch match, Malfoy had definitely come off
worse. Feeling slightly more cheerful, Harry helped himself to sausages and
fried tomatoes.
Hermione was examining her new
schedule.
"Ooh, good, we're starting
some new subjects today," she said happily.
"Hermione," said Ron,
frowning as he looked over her shoulder, "they've messed up your
timetable. Look - they've got you down for about ten subjects a day. There
isn't enough time."
"I'll manage. I've fixed it
all with Professor McGonagall."
"But look," said Ron,
laughing, "see this morning? Nine o'clock, Divination. And underneath,
nine o'clock, Muggle Studies. And -" Ron leaned closer to the timetable,
disbelieving, "look - underneath that, Arithmancy, nine o'clock.
I mean, I know you're good, Hermione, but no one's that good. How're you
supposed to be in three classes at once?"
"Don't be silly," said
Hermione shortly. "Of course I won't be in three classes at once."
"Well then -"
"Pass the marmalade,"
said Hermione.
"But -"
"Oh, Ron, what's it to you
if my timetable's a bit full?" Hermione snapped. "I told you, I've
fixed it all with Professor McGonagall."
Just then, Hagrid entered the
Great Hall. He was wearing his long moleskin overcoat and was absent-mindedly
swinging a dead polecat from one enormous hand.
"All righ'?" he said
eagerly, pausing on his way to the staff table. "Yer in my firs' ever
lesson! Right after lunch! Bin up since five getting' everthin' ready...hope it's
OK...me, a teacher...hones'ly..."
He grinned broadly at them and
headed off to the staff table, still swinging the polecat.
"Wonder what he's been
getting ready?" said Ron, a note of anxiety in his voice.
The Hall was starting to empty
as people headed off towards their first lesson. Ron checked his schedule.
"We'd better go, look,
Divination's at the top of North Tower. It'll take us ten minutes to get
there..."
They finished breakfast hastily,
said goodbye to Fred and George and walked back through the hall. As they
passed the Slytherin table, Malfoy did yet another impression of a fainting
fit. The shouts of laughter followed Harry into the Entrance Hall.
The journey through the castle
to North Tower was a long one. Two years at Hogwarts hadn't taught them
everything about the castle, and they had never been inside North Tower before.
"There's - got - to - be -
a - short - cut," Ron panted, as they climbed the seventh long staircase
and emerged on an unfamiliar landing, where there was nothing but a large
painting of a bare stretch of grass hanging on the stone wall.
"I think it's this
way," said Hermione, peering down the empty passage to the right.
"Can't be," said Ron.
"That's south. Look, you can see a bit of the lake outside the
window..."
Harry was watching the painting.
A fat, dappled-gray pony had just ambled onto the grass and was grazing
nonchalantly. Harry was used to the subjects of Hogwarts paintings moving
around and leaving their frames to visit each other, but he always enjoyed
watching them. A moment later, a short, squat knight in a suit of armor had
clanked into the picture after his pony. By the look of the grass stains on his
metal knees, he had just fallen off.
"Aha!" he yelled,
seeing Harry, Ron and Hermione. "What villains are these, that trespass
upon my private lands! Come to scorn at my fall, perchance? Draw, you knaves,
you dogs!"
They watched in astonishment as
the little knight tugged his sword out of its scabbard and began brandishing it
violently, hopping up and down in rage. But the sword was too long for him; a
particularly wild swing made him overbalance, and he landed facedown in the
grass.
"Are you all right?"
said Harry, moving closer to the picture.
"Get back, you scurvy
braggart! Back, you rogue!"
The knight seized his sword
again and used it to push himself back up, but the blade sank deeply into the
grass and, though he pulled with all his might, he couldn't get it out again.
Finally, he had to flop back down onto the grass and push up his visor to mop
his sweating face.
"Listen," said Harry,
taking advantage of the knight's exhaustion, "we're looking for the North
Tower. You don't know the way, do you?"
"A quest!" The
knight's rage seemed to vanish instantly. He clanked to his feet and shouted,
"Come follow me, dear friends, and we shall find our goal, or else shall
perish bravely in the charge!"
He gave the sword another
fruitless tug, tried and failed to mount the fat pony, gave up, and cried,
"On foot then, good sirs and gentle lady! On! On!"
And he ran, clanking loudly,
into the left side of the frame and out of sight.
They hurried after him along the
corridor, following the sound of his armor. Every now and then they spotted him
running through a picture ahead.
"Be of stout heart, the
worst is yet to come!" yelled the knight, and they saw him reappear in
front of an alarmed group of women in crinolines, whose picture hung on the
wall of a narrow spiral staircase.
Puffing loudly, Harry, Ron, and
Hermione climbed the tightly spiraling steps, getting dizzier and dizzier,
until at last they heard the murmur of voices above them and knew they had
reached the classroom.
"Farewell!" cried the
knight, popping his head into a painting of some sinister-looking monks.
"Farewell, my comrades-in-arms! If ever you have need of noble heart and
steely sinew, call upon Sir Cadogan!"
"Yeah, we'll call
you," muttered Ron as the knight disappeared, "if we ever need
someone mental."
They climbed the last few steps
and emerged onto a tiny landing, where most of the class was already assembled.
There were no doors off this landing, but Ron nudged Harry and pointed at the
ceiling, where there was a circular trapdoor with a brass plaque on it.
"'Sibyll Trelawney,
Divination teacher,'" Harry read. "How're we supposed to get up
there?"
As though in answer to his
question, the trapdoor suddenly opened, and a silvery ladder descended right at
Harry's feet. Everyone got quiet.
"After you," said Ron,
grinning, so Harry climbed the ladder first.
He emerged into the
strangest-looking classroom he had ever seen. In fact, it didn't look like a
classroom at all, more like a cross between someone's attic and an
old-fashioned tea shop. At least twenty small, circular tables were crammed
inside it, all surrounded by chintz armchairs and fat little poufs. Everything
was lit with a dim, crimson light; the curtains at the windows were all closed,
and the many lamps were draped with dark red scarves. It was stiflingly warm,
and the fire that was burning under the crowded mantelpiece was giving off a
heavy, sickly sort of perfume as it heated a large copper kettle. The shelves
running around the circular walls were crammed with dusty-looking feathers,
stubs of candles, many packs of tattered playing cards, countless silvery
crystal balls, and a huge array of teacups.
Ron appeared at Harry's shoulder
as the class assembled around them, all talking in whispers.
"Where is she?" Ron
said.
A voice came suddenly out of the
shadows, a soft, misty sort of voice.
"Welcome," it said.
"How nice to see you in the physical world at last."
Harry's immediate impression was
of a large, glittering insect. Professor Trelawney moved into the firelight,
and they saw that she was very thin; her large glasses magnified her eyes to several
times their natural size, and she was draped in a gauzy spangled shawl.
Innumerable chains and beads hung around her spindly neck, and her arms and
hands were encrusted with bangles and rings.
"Sit, my children,
sit," she said, and they all climbed awkwardly into armchairs or sank onto
poufs. Harry, Ron, and Hermione sat themselves around the same round table.
"Welcome to
Divination," said Professor Trelawney, who had seated herself in a winged
armchair in front of the fire. "My name is Professor Trelawney. You may
not have seen me before. I find that descending too often into the hustle and
bustle of the main school clouds my Inner Eye."
Nobody said anything to this
extraordinary pronouncement. Professor Trelawney delicately rearranged her
shawl and continued, "So you have chosen to study Divination, the most
difficult of all magical arts. I must warn you at the outset that if you do not
have the Sight, there is very little I will be able to teach you...Books can take
you only so far in this field..."
At these words, both Harry and
Ron glanced, grinning, at Hermione, who looked startled at the news that books
wouldn't be much help in this subject.
"Many witches and wizards,
talented though they are in the area of loud bangs and smells and sudden
disappearings, are yet unable to penetrate the veiled mysteries of the
future," Professor Trelawney went on, her enormous, gleaming eyes moving
from face to nervous face. "It is a Gift granted to few. You, boy,"
she said suddenly to Neville, who almost toppled off his pouf. "Is your
grandmother well?"
"I think so," said
Neville tremulously.
"I wouldn't be so sure if I
were you, dear," said Professor Trelawney, the firelight glinting on her
long emerald earrings. Neville gulped. Professor Trelawney continued placidly.
"We will be covering the basic methods of Divination this year. The first
term will be devoted to reading the tea leaves. Next term we shall progress to
palmistry. By the way, my dear," she shot suddenly at Parvati Patil,
"beware a red-haired man."
Parvati gave a startled look at
Ron, who was right behind her and edged her chair away from him.
"In the second term,"
Professor Trelawney went on, "we shall progress to the crystal ball - if
we have finished with fire omens, that is. Unfortunately, classes will be
disrupted in February by a nasty bout of flu. I myself will lose my voice. And
around Easter, one of our number will leave us for ever."
A very tense silence followed
this pronouncement, but Professor Trelawney seemed unaware of it.
"I wonder, dear," she
said to Lavender Brown, who was nearest and shrank back in her chair, "if
you could pass me the largest silver teapot?"
Lavender, looking relieved,
stood up, took an enormous teapot from the shelf, and put it down on the table
in front of Professor Trelawney.
"Thank you, my dear.
Incidentally, that thing you are dreading - it will happen on Friday the
sixteenth of October."
Lavender trembled.
"Now, I want you all to
divide into pairs. Collect a teacup from the shelf, come to me, and I will fill
it. Then sit down and drink, drink until only the dregs remain. Swill these
around the cup three times with the left hand, then turn the cup upside down on
its saucer, wait for the last of the tea to drain away, then give your cup to
your partner to read. You will interpret the patterns using pages five and six
of Unfogging the Future. I shall move among you, helping and
instructing. Oh, and dear," - she caught Neville by the arm as he made to
stand up, "after you've broken your first cup, would you be so kind as to
select one of the blue patterned ones? I'm rather attached to the pink."
Sure enough, Neville had no
sooner reached the shelf of teacups when there was a tinkle of breaking china.
Professor Trelawney swept over to him holding a dustpan and brush and said,
"One of the blue ones, then, dear, if you wouldn't mind...thank you..."
When Harry and Ron had had their
teacups filled, they went back to their table and tried to drink the scalding
tea quickly. They swilled the dregs around as Professor Trelawney had instructed,
then drained the cups and swapped over.
"Right," said Ron as
they both opened their books at pages five and six. "What can you see in
mine?"
"A load of soggy brown
stuff," said Harry. The heavily perfumed smoke in the room was making him
feel sleepy and stupid.
"Broaden your minds, my
dears, and allow your eyes to see past the mundane!" Professor Trelawney
cried through the gloom.
Harry tried to pull himself
together.
"Right, you've got a
crooked sort of cross..." He consulted Unfogging the Future.
"That means you're going to have 'trials and suffering' - sorry about that
- but there's a thing that could be the sun. Hang on...that means 'great
happiness'...so you're going to suffer but be very happy..."
"You need your Inner Eye
tested, if you ask me," said Ron, and they both had to stifle their laughs
as Professor Trelawney gazed in their direction.
"My turn..." Ron peered
into Harry's teacup, his forehead wrinkled with effort. "There's a blob a
bit like a bowler hat," he said. "Maybe you're going to work for the
Ministry of Magic..."
He turned the teacup the other
way up.
"But this way it looks more
like an acorn...what's that?" He scanned his copy of Unfogging the Future.
"'A windfall, unexpected gold.' Excellent, you can lend me some. And
there's a thing here," he turned the cup again, "that looks like an
animal...yeah, if that was its head...it looks like a hippo...no, a sheep..."
Professor Trelawney whirled
around as Harry let out a snort of laughter.
"Let me see that, my
dear," she said reprovingly to Ron, sweeping over and snatching Harry's
cup from him. Everyone went quiet to watch.
Professor Trelawney was staring
into the teacup, rotating it counterclockwise.
"The falcon...my dear, you
have a deadly enemy."
"But everyone knows that,"
said Hermione in a loud whisper. Professor Trelawney stared at her.
"Well, they do," said
Hermione. "Everybody knows about Harry and You-Know-Who."
Harry and Ron stared at her with
a mixture of amazement and admiration. They had never heard Hermione speak to a
teacher like that before. Professor Trelawney chose not to reply. She lowered
her huge eyes to Harry's cup again and continued to turn it.
"The club...an attack. Dear,
dear, this is not a happy cup..."
"I thought that was a
bowler hat," said Ron sheepishly.
"The skull...danger in your
path, my dear..."
Everyone was staring,
transfixed, at Professor Trelawney, who gave the cup a final turn, gasped, and
then screamed.
There was another tinkle of
breaking china; Neville had smashed his second cup. Professor Trelawney sank
into a vacant armchair, her glittering hand at her heart and her eyes closed.
"My dear boy - my poor dear
boy - no - it is kinder not to say - no - don't ask me..."
"What is it,
Professor?" said Dean Thomas at once. Everyone had got to their feet, and
slowly they crowded around Harry and Ron's table, pressing close to Professor
Trelawney's chair to get a good look at Harry's cup.
"My dear," Professor
Trelawney's huge eyes opened dramatically, "you have the Grim."
"The what?" said
Harry.
He could tell that he wasn't the
only one who didn't understand; Dean Thomas shrugged at him and Lavender Brown
looked puzzled, but nearly everybody else clapped their hands to their mouths
in horror.
"The Grim, my dear, the
Grim!" cried Professor Trelawney, who looked shocked that Harry hadn't
understood. "The giant, spectral dog that haunts churchyards! My dear boy,
it is an omen - the worst omen - of death!"
Harry's stomach lurched. That
dog on the cover of Death Omens in Flourish and Blotts - the dog in the
shadows of Magnolia Crescent...Lavender Brown clapped her hands to her mouth too.
Everyone was looking at Harry, everyone except Hermione, who had gotten up and
moved around to the back of Professor Trelawney's chair.
"I don't think it looks
like a Grim," she said flatly.
Professor Trelawney surveyed
Hermione with mounting dislike.
"You'll forgive me for
saying so, my dear, but I perceive very little aura around you. Very little
receptivity to the resonances of the future."
Seamus Finnigan was tilting his
head from side to side.
"It looks like a Grim if
you do this," he said, with his eyes almost shut, "but it looks more
like a donkey from here," he said, leaning to the left.
"When you've all finished
deciding whether I'm going to die or not!" said Harry, taking even himself
by surprise. Now nobody seemed to want to look at him.
"I think we will leave the
lesson here for today," said Professor Trelawney in her mistiest voice.
"Yes...please pack away your things..."
Silently the class took their
teacups back to Professor Trelawney, packed away their books, and closed their
bags. Even Ron was avoiding Harry's eyes.
"Until we meet again,"
said Professor Trelawney faintly, "fair fortune be yours. Oh, and
dear," - she pointed at Neville, "you'll be late next time, so mind
you work extra-hard to catch up."
Harry, Ron, and Hermione
descended Professor Trelawney's ladder and the winding stair in silence, then
set off for Professor McGonagall's Transfiguration lesson. It took them so long
to find her classroom that, early as they had left Divination, they were only just
in time.
Harry chose a seat right at the
back of the room, feeling as though he were sitting in a very bright spotlight;
the rest of the class kept shooting furtive glances at him, as though he were
about to drop dead at any moment. He hardly heard what Professor McGonagall was
telling them about Animagi (wizards who could transform at will into animals),
and wasn't even watching when she transformed herself in front of their eyes
into a tabby cat with spectacle markings around her eyes.
"Really, what has got into
you all today?" said Professor McGonagall, turning back into herself with
a faint pop, and staring around at them all. "Not that it matters,
but that's the first time my transformation's not got applause from a
class."
Everybody's heads turned toward
Harry again, but nobody spoke. Then Hermione raised her hand.
"Please, Professor, we've
just had our first Divination class, and we were reading the tea leaves, and
-"
"Ah, of course," said
Professor McGonagall, suddenly frowning. "There is no need to say any
more, Miss Granger. Tell me, which of you will be dying this year?"
Everyone stared at her. "Me," said Harry,
finally.
"I see," said
Professor McGonagall, fixing Harry with her beady eyes. "Then you should
know, Potter, that Sibyll Trelawney has predicted the death of one student a
year since she arrived at this school. None of them has died yet. Seeing death
omens is her favorite way of greeting a new class. If it were not for the fact
that I never speak ill of my colleagues -" Professor McGonagall broke off,
and they saw that her nostrils had gone white. She went on, more calmly,
"Divination is one of the most imprecise branches of magic. I shall not
conceal from you that I have very little patience with it. True Seers are very
rare, and Professor Trelawney..."
She stopped again, and then
said, in a very matter-of-fact tone, "You look in excellent health to me,
Potter, so you will excuse me if I don't let you off homework today. I assure
you that if you die, you need not hand it in."
Hermione laughed. Harry felt a
bit better. It was harder to feel scared of a lump of tea leaves away from the
dim red light and befuddling perfume of Professor Trelawney's classroom. Not
everyone was convinced, however. Ron still looked worried, and Lavender
whispered, "But what about Neville's cup?"
When the Transfiguration class
had finished, they joined the crowd thundering toward the Great Hall for lunch.
"Ron, cheer up," said
Hermione, pushing a dish of stew toward him. "You heard what Professor
McGonagall said."
Ron spooned stew onto his plate
and picked up his fork but didn't start.
"Harry," he said, in a
low, serious voice, "You haven't seen a great black dog anywhere,
have you?" "Yeah, I have,"
said Harry. "I saw one the night I left the Dursleys'."
Ron let his fork fall with a
clatter.
"Probably a stray,"
said Hermione calmly.
Ron looked at Hermione as though
she had gone mad.
"Hermione, if Harry's seen
a Grim, that's - that's bad," he said. "My - my uncle Bilius saw one
and - and he died twenty-four hours later!"
"Coincidence," said
Hermione airily, pouring herself some pumpkin juice.
"You don't know what you're
talking about!" said Ron, starting to get angry. "Grims scare the
living daylights out of most wizards!"
"There you are, then,"
said Hermione in a superior tone. "They see the Grim and die of fright.
The Grim's not an omen, it's the cause of death! And Harry's still with us
because he's not stupid enough to see one and think, right, well, I'd better
kick the bucket then!"
Ron mouthed wordlessly at
Hermione, who opened her bag, took out her new Arithmancy book, and propped it
open against the juice jug.
"I think Divination seems
very woolly," she said, searching for her page. "A lot of guesswork,
if you ask me."
"There was nothing woolly
about the Grim in that cup!" said Ron hotly.
"You didn't seem quite so
confident when you were telling Harry it was a sheep," said Hermione
coolly.
"Professor Trelawney said
you didn't have the right aura! You just don't like being bad at something for
a change!"
He had touched a nerve. Hermione
slammed her Arithmancy book down on the table so hard that bits of meat and
carrot flew everywhere.
"If being good at
Divination means I have to pretend to see death omens in a lump of tea leaves,
I'm not sure I'll be studying it much longer! That lesson was absolute rubbish
compared with my Arithmancy class!"
She snatched up her bag and
stalked away.
Ron frowned after her.
"What's she talking
about?" he said to Harry. "She hasn't been to an Arithmancy class
yet."
Harry was pleased to get out of
the castle after lunch. Yesterday's rain had cleared; the sky was a clear, pale
gray, and the grass was springy and damp underfoot as they set off for their
first ever Care of Magical Creatures class.
Ron and Hermione weren't
speaking to each other. Harry walked beside them in silence as they went down
the sloping lawns to Hagrid's hut on the edge of the Forbidden Forest. It was
only when he spotted three only-too-familiar backs ahead of them that he
realized they must be having these lessons with the Slytherins. Malfoy was
talking animatedly to Crabbe and Goyle, who were chortling. Harry was quite
sure he knew what they were talking about.
Hagrid was waiting for his class
at the door of his hut. He stood in his moleskin overcoat, with Fang the boarhound
at his heels, looking impatient to start.
"C'mon, now, get a move
on!" he called as the class approached. "Got a real treat for yeh
today! Great lesson comin' up! Everyone here? Right, follow me!"
For one nasty moment, Harry
thought that Hagrid was going to lead them into the forest; Harry had had
enough unpleasant experiences in there to last him a lifetime. However, Hagrid
strolled off around the edge of the trees, and five minutes later, they found
themselves outside a kind of paddock. There was nothing in there.
"Everyone gather 'round the
fence here!" he called. "That's it - make sure yeh can see - now,
firs' thing yeh'll want ter do is open yer books -"
"How?" said the cold,
drawling voice of Draco Malfoy.
"Eh?" said Hagrid.
"How do we open our books?"
Malfoy repeated. He took out his copy of The Monster Book of Monsters,
which he had bound shut with a length of rope. Other people took theirs out
too; some, like Harry, had belted their book shut; others had crammed them
inside tight bags or clamped them together with binder clips. "Hasn' - hasn' anyone
bin able ter open their books?" said Hagrid, looking crestfallen.
The class all shook their heads.
"Yeh've got ter stroke 'em,"
said Hagrid, as though this was the most obvious thing in the world. "Look
-" He took Hermione's copy and
ripped off the Spellotape that bound it. The book tried to bite, but Hagrid ran
a giant forefinger down its spine, and the book shivered, and then fell open
and lay quiet in his hand.
"Oh, how silly we've all
been!" Malfoy sneered. "We should have stroked them! Why didn't we
guess!"
"I - I thought they were
funny," Hagrid said uncertainly to Hermione.
"Oh, tremendously
funny!" said Malfoy. "Really witty, giving us books that try and rip
our hands off!"
"Shut up, Malfoy," said
Harry quietly. Hagrid was looking downcast and Harry wanted Hagrid's first
lesson to be a success.
"Righ' then," said
Hagrid, who seemed to have lost his thread, "so - so yeh've got yer books
an'...an'...now yeh need the Magical Creatures. Yeah. So I'll go an' get 'em. Hang
on..."
He strode away from them into
the forest and out of sight.
"God, this place is going
to the dogs," said Malfoy loudly. "That oaf teaching classes, my
father'll have a fit when I tell him -"
"Shut up, Malfoy,"
Harry repeated.
"Careful, Potter, there's a
Dementor behind you -"
"Oooooooh!" squealed
Lavender Brown, pointing toward the opposite side of the paddock.
Trotting toward them were a
dozen of the most bizarre creatures Harry had ever seen. They had the bodies,
hind legs, and tails of horses, but the front legs, wings, and heads of what
seemed to be giant eagles, with cruel, steel-colored beaks and large,
brilliantly, orange eyes. The talons on their front legs were half a foot long
and deadly looking. Each of the beasts had a thick leather collar around its
neck, which was attached to a long chain, and the ends of all of these were
held in the vast hands of Hagrid, who came jogging into the paddock behind the
creatures.
"Gee up, there!" he
roared, shaking the chains and urging the creatures toward the fence where the
class stood. Everyone drew back slightly as Hagrid reached them and tethered
the creatures to the fence.
"Hippogriffs!" Hagrid
roared happily, waving a hand at them. "Beau'iful, aren' they?"
Harry could sort of see what
Hagrid meant. Once you got over the first shock of seeing something that was
half horse, half bird, you started to appreciate the Hippogriffs' gleaming
coats, changing smoothly from feather to hair, each of them a different color:
stormy gray, bronze, pinkish roan, gleaming chestnut, and inky black.
"So," said Hagrid,
rubbing his hands together and beaming around, "if yeh wan' ter come a bit
nearer..."
No one seemed to want to. Harry,
Ron, and Hermione, however, approached the fence cautiously.
"Now, firs' thing yeh gotta
know abou' Hippogriffs is, they're proud," said Hagrid. "Easily
offended, Hippogriffs are. Don't never insult one, 'cause it might be the last
thing yeh do."
Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle
weren't listening; they were talking in an undertone and Harry had a nasty
feeling they were plotting how best to disrupt the lesson.
"Yeh always wait fer the
Hippogriff ter make the firs' move," Hagrid continued. "It's polite,
see? Yeh walk toward him, and yeh bow, an' yeh wait. If he bows back, yeh're
allowed ter touch him. If he doesn' bow, then get away from him sharpish,
'cause those talons hurt."
"Right - who wants ter go
first?"
Most of the class backed farther
away in answer. Even Harry, Ron, and Hermione had misgivings. The Hippogriffs
were tossing their fierce heads and flexing their powerful wings; they didn't
seem to like being tethered like this.
"No one?" said Hagrid,
with a pleading look.
"I'll do it," said
Harry.
There was an intake of breath
from behind him, and both Lavender and Parvati whispered, "Oooh, no,
Harry, remember your tea leaves!"
Harry ignored them. He climbed
over the paddock fence.
"Good man, Harry!"
roared Hagrid. "Right then - let's see how yeh get on with Buckbeak."
He untied one of the chains,
pulled the gray Hippogriff away from its fellows, and slipped off its leather
collar. The class on the other side of the paddock seemed to be holding its
breath. Malfoy's eyes were narrowed maliciously.
"Easy now, Harry,"
said Hagrid quietly. "Yeh've got eye contact, now try not ter blink...Hippogriffs
don' trust yeh if yeh blink too much..."
Harry's eyes immediately began
to water, but he didn't shut them. Buckbeak had turned his great, sharp head
and was staring at Harry with one fierce orange eye. "Tha's it," said
Hagrid. "Tha's it, Harry...now, bow."
Harry didn't feel much like
exposing the back of his neck to Buckbeak, but he did as he was told. He gave a
short bow and then looked up.
The Hippogriff was still staring
haughtily at him. It didn't move.
"Ah," said Hagrid,
sounding worried. "Right - back away, now, Harry, easy does it -"
But then, to Harry's enormous
surprise, the Hippogriff suddenly bent its scaly front knees and sank into what
was an unmistakable bow.
"Well done, Harry!"
said Hagrid, ecstatic. "Right - yeh can touch him! Pat his beak, go
on!"
Feeling that a better reward
would have been to back away, Harry moved slowly toward the Hippogriff and
reached out toward it. He patted the beak several times and the Hippogriff
closed its eyes lazily, as though enjoying it.
The class broke into applause,
all except for Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle, who were looking deeply disappointed.
"Righ' then, Harry,"
said Hagrid. "I reckon he migh' let yeh ride him!"
This was more than Harry had bargained for. He was
used to a broomstick; but he wasn't sure a Hippogriff would be quite the same. "Yeh climb up there,
jus' behind the wing joint," said Hagrid, "an' mind yeh don' pull any
of his feathers out, he won' like that..."
Harry put his foot on the top of
Buckbeak's wing and hoisted himself onto its back. Buckbeak stood up. Harry
wasn't sure where to hold on; everything in front of him was covered with
feathers.
"Go on, then!" roared
Hagrid, slapping the Hippogriffs hindquarters.
Without warning, twelve-foot
wings flapped open on either side of Harry, he just had time to seize the
Hippogriff around the neck before he was soaring upward. It was nothing like a
broomstick, and Harry knew which one he preferred; the Hippogriff's wings beat
uncomfortably on either side of him, catching him under his legs and making him
feel he was about to be thrown off; the glossy feathers slipped under his
fingers and he didn't dare get a stronger grip; instead of the smooth action of
his Nimbus Two Thousand, he now felt himself rocking backward and forward as
the hindquarters of the Hippogriff rose and fell with its wings.
Buckbeak flew him once around
the paddock and then headed back to the ground; this was the bit Harry had been
dreading; he leaned back as the smooth neck lowered, feeling he was going to
slip off over the beak, then felt a heavy thud as the four ill-assorted feet
hit the ground. He just managed to hold on and push himself straight again.
"Good work, Harry!"
roared Hagrid as everyone except Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle cheered. "Okay,
who else wants a go?"
Emboldened by Harry's success,
the rest of the class climbed cautiously into the paddock. Hagrid untied the
Hippogriffs one by one, and soon people were bowing nervously, all over the
paddock. Neville ran repeatedly backward from his, which didn't seem to want to
bend its knees. Ron and Hermione practiced on the chestnut, while Harry
watched.
Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle had
taken over Buckbeak. He had bowed to Malfoy, who was now patting his beak,
looking disdainful.
"This is very easy,"
Malfoy drawled, loud enough for Harry to, hear him. "I knew it must have
been, if Potter could do it...I bet you're not dangerous at all, are you?"
he said to the Hippogriff. "Are you, you great ugly brute?"
It happened in a flash of steely
talons; Malfoy let out a high pitched scream and next moment, Hagrid was
wrestling Buckbeak back into his collar as he strained to get at Malfoy, who
lay curled in the grass, blood blossoming over his robes.
"I'm dying!" Malfoy
yelled as the class panicked. "I'm dying, look at me! It's killed
me!"
"Yer not dyin'!" said
Hagrid, who had gone very white. "Someone help me - gotta get him outta
here -"
Hermione ran to hold open the
gate as Hagrid lifted Malfoy easily. As they passed, Harry saw that there was a
long, deep gash on Malfoy's arm; blood splattered the grass and Hagrid ran with
him, up the slope toward the castle.
Very shaken, the Care of Magical
Creatures class followed at a walk. The Slytherins were all shouting about
Hagrid.
"They should sack him
straight away!" said Pansy Parkinson, who was in tears.
"It was Malfoy's
fault!" snapped Dean Thomas. Crabbe and Goyle flexed their muscles
threateningly.
They all climbed the stone steps
into the deserted entrance hall.
"I'm going to see if he's
okay!" said Pansy, and they all watched her run up the marble staircase.
The Slytherins, still muttering about Hagrid, headed away in the direction of
their dungeon common room; Harry, Ron, and Hermione proceeded upstairs to
Gryffindor Tower.
"You think he'll be all
right?" said Hermione nervously.
"Course he will. Madam
Pomfrey can mend cuts in about a second," said Harry, who had had far
worse injuries mended magically by the nurse.
"That was a really bad
thing to happen in Hagrid's first class, though, wasn't it?" said Ron,
looking worried. "Trust Malfoy to mess things up for him..."
They were among the first to
reach the Great Hall at dinnertime, hoping to see Hagrid, but he wasn't there.
"They wouldn't fire him,
would they?" said Hermione anxiously, not touching her steak-and-kidney
pudding.
"They'd better not,"
said Ron, who wasn't eating either.
Harry was watching the Slytherin
table. A large group including Crabbe and Goyle was huddled together, deep in
conversation. Harry was sure they were cooking up their own version of how
Malfoy had been injured.
"Well, you can't say it
wasn't an interesting first day back," said Ron gloomily.
They went up to the crowded
Gryffindor common room after dinner and tried to do the homework Professor
McGonagall had given them, but all three of them kept breaking off and glancing
out of the tower window.
"There's a light on in
Hagrid's window," Harry said suddenly.
Ron looked at his watch.
"If we hurried, we could go
down and see him. It's still quite early..."
"I don't know,"
Hermione said slowly, and Harry saw her glance at him.
"I'm allowed to walk across
the grounds," he said pointedly. "Sirius Black hasn't got past
the Dementors yet, has he?"
So they put their things away
and headed out of the portrait hole, glad to meet nobody on their way to the
front doors, as they weren't entirely sure they were supposed to be out.
The grass was still wet and
looked almost black in the twilight. When they reached Hagrid's hut, they
knocked, and a voice growled, "C'min."
Hagrid was sitting in his
shirtsleeves at his scrubbed wooden table; his boarhound, Fang, had his head in
Hagrid's lap. One look told them that Hagrid had been drinking a lot; there was
a pewter tankard almost as big as a bucket in front of him, and he seemed to be
having difficulty getting them into focus.
"'Spect it's a record,"
he said thickly, when he recognized them. "Don' reckon they've ever had a
teacher who lasted on'y a day before."
"You haven't been fired,
Hagrid!" gasped Hermione.
"Not yet," said Hagrid
miserably, taking a huge gulp of whatever was in the tankard. "But's only
a matter o' time, I'n't, after Malfoy..."
"How is he?" said Ron
as they all sat down. "It wasn't serious, was it?"
"Madam Pomfrey fixed him
best she could," said Hagrid dully, "but he's sayin' it's still
agony...covered in bandages...moanin'..."
"He's faking it," said
Harry at once. "Madam Pomfrey can mend anything. She regrew half my bones
last year. Trust Malfoy to milk it for all it's worth."
"School gov'nors have bin
told, o' course," said Hagrid miserably. "They reckon I started too
big. Shoulda left Hippogriffs fer later...one flobberworms or summat...Jus' thought
it'd make a good firs' lesson's all my fault..."
"It's all Malfoy's
fault, Hagrid!" said Hermione earnestly. "We're witnesses,"
said Harry. "You said Hippogriffs attack if you insult them. It's Malfoy's
problem that he wasn't listening. We'll tell Dumbledore what really
happened."
"Yeah, don't worry, Hagrid,
we'll back you up," said Ron.
Tears leaked out of the crinkled
corners of Hagrid's beetle-black eyes. He grabbed both Harry and Ron and pulled
them into a bone-breaking hug.
"I think you've had enough
to drink, Hagrid," said Hermione firmly. She took the tankard from the
table and went outside to empty it.
"Ah, maybe she's
right," said Hagrid, letting go of Harry and Ron, who both staggered away,
rubbing their ribs. Hagrid heaved himself out of his chair and followed
Hermione unsteadily outside. They heard a loud splash.
"What's he done?" said
Harry nervously as Hermione came back in with the empty tankard.
"Stuck his head in the
water barrel," said Hermione, putting the tankard away.
Hagrid came back, his long hair
and beard sopping wet, wiping the water out of his eyes.
"That's better," he
said, shaking his head like a dog and drenching them all. "Listen, it was
good of yeh ter come an' see me, I really -"
Hagrid stopped dead, staring at
Harry as though he'd only just realized he was there.
"WHAT D'YEH THINK YOU'RE
DOIN', EH?" he roared, so suddenly that they jumped a foot in the air.
"YEH'RE NOT TO GO WANDERIN' AROUND AFTER DARK, HARRY! AN, YOU TWO! LETTIN'
HIM!"
Hagrid strode over to Harry,
grabbed his arm, and pulled him to the door.
"C'mon!" Hagrid said
angrily. "I'm takin' yer all back up ter school an' don' let me catch yeh
walkin' down ter see me after dark again. I'm not worth that!" CHAPTER SEVEN THE BOGGART IN THE WARDROBE
Malfoy didn't reappear in
classes until late on Thursday morning, when the Slytherins and Gryffindors
were halfway through double Potions. He swaggered into the dungeon, his right
arm covered in bandages and bound up in a sling, acting, in Harry's opinion, as
though he were the heroic survivor of some dreadful battle.
"How is it, Draco?"
simpered Pansy Parkinson. "Does it hurt much?" "Yeah," said
Malfoy, putting on a brave sort of grimace. But Harry saw him wink at Crabbe
and Goyle when Pansy had looked away.
"Settle down, settle
down," said Professor Snape idly.
Harry and Ron scowled at each
other; Snape wouldn't have said 'settle down' if they'd walked in late,
he'd have given them detention. But Malfoy had always been able to get away
with anything in Snape's classes; Snape was head of Slytherin House, and
generally favored his own students above all others.
They were making a new potion
today, a Shrinking Solution. Malfoy set up his cauldron right next to Harry and
Ron, so that they were preparing their ingredients on the same table.
"Sir," Malfoy called,
"sir, I'll need help cutting up these daisy roots, because of my arm
-" "Weasley, cut up
Malfoy's roots for him," said Snape without looking up.
Ron went brick red.
"There's nothing wrong with
your arm," he hissed at Malfoy.
Malfoy smirked across the table.
"Weasley, you heard
Professor Snape; cut up these roots."
Ron seized his knife, pulled
Malfoy's roots toward him, and began to chop them roughly, so that they were
all different sizes.
"Professor," drawled
Malfoy, "Weasley's mutilating my roots, sir."
Snape approached their table,
stared down his hooked nose at the roots, then gave Ron an unpleasant smile
from beneath his long, greasy black hair.
"Change roots with Malfoy,
Weasley."
"But, sir -!"
Ron had spent the last quarter
of an hour carefully shredding his own roots into exactly equal pieces.
"Now," said
Snape in his most dangerous voice. Ron shoved his own
beautifully cut roots across the table at Malfoy, then took up the knife again.
"And, sir, I'll need this
shrivelfig skinned," said Malfoy, his voice full of malicious laughter.
"Potter, you can skin
Malfoy's shrivelfig," said Snape, giving Harry the look of loathing he
always reserved just for him.
Harry took Malfoy's shrivelfig
as Ron began trying to repair the damage to the roots he now had to use. Harry
skinned the shrivelfig as fast as he could and flung it back across the table
at Malfoy without speaking. Malfoy was smirking more broadly than ever.
"Seen your pal Hagrid
lately?" he asked them quietly.
"None of your
business," said Ron jerkily, without looking up.
"I'm afraid he won't be a
teacher much longer," said Malfoy in a tone of mock sorrow. "Father's
not very happy about my injury -"
"Keep talking, Malfoy, and
I'll give you a real injury," snarled Ron.
"- he's complained to the
school governors. And to the Ministry of Magic. Father's got a lot of
influence, you know. And a lasting injury like this" - he gave a huge,
fake sigh - "who knows if my arm'll ever be the same again?"
"So that's why you're
putting it on," said Harry, accidentally beheading a dead caterpillar
because his hand was shaking in anger, "To try to get Hagrid fired."
"Well," said Malfoy,
lowering his voice to a whisper, "partly, Potter. But there are
other benefits too. Weasley, slice my caterpillars for me."
A few cauldrons away, Neville
was in trouble. Neville regularly went to pieces in Potions lessons; it was his
worst subject, and his great fear of Professor Snape made things ten times
worse. His potion, which was supposed to be a bright, acid green, had turned -
"Orange, Longbottom,"
said Snape, ladling some up and allowing to splash back into the cauldron, so
that everyone could see.
"Orange. Tell me, boy, does
anything penetrate that thick skull of yours? Didn't you hear me say, quite
clearly, that only one cat spleen was needed? Didn't I state plainly that a
dash of leech juice would suffice? What do I have to do to make you understand,
Longbottom?"
Neville was pink and trembling.
He looked as though he was on the verge of tears.
"Please, sir," said
Hermione, "please, I could help Neville put it right -"
"I don't remember asking
you to show off, Miss Granger," said Snape coldly, and Hermione went as
pink as Neville. "Longbottom, at the end of this lesson we will feed a few
drops of this potion to your toad and see what happens. Perhaps that will
encourage you to do it properly."
Snape moved away, leaving
Neville breathless with fear.
"Help me!" he moaned
to Hermione.
"Hey, Harry," said
Seamus Finnigan, leaning over to borrow Harry's brass scales, "have you
heard? Daily Prophet this morning - they reckon Sirius Black's been
sighted." "Where?" said
Harry and Ron quickly. On the other side of the table, Malfoy looked up,
listening closely.
"Not too far from
here," said Seamus, who looked excited. "It was a Muggle who saw him.
'Course, she didn't really understand. The Muggles think he's just an ordinary
criminal, don't they? So she phoned the telephone hot line. By the time the
Ministry of Magic got there, he was gone."
"Not too far from here
..." Ron repeated, looking significantly at Harry. He turned around and saw
Malfoy watching closely. "What, Malfoy? Need something else skinned?"
But Malfoy's eyes were shining
malevolently, and they were fixed Harry. He leaned across the table.
"Thinking of trying to
catch Black single-handed, Potter?"
"Yeah, that's right,"
said Harry offhandedly.
Malfoy's thin mouth was curving
in a mean smile.
"Of course, if it was
me," he said quietly, "I'd have done something before now. I wouldn't
be staying in school like a good boy, I'd be out there looking for him."
"What are you talking
about, Malfoy?" said Ron roughly.
"Don't you know,
Potter?" breathed Malfoy, his pale eyes narrowed. "Know what?"
Malfoy let out a low, sneering
laugh.
"Maybe you'd rather not
risk your neck," he said. "Want to leave it to the Dementors, do you?
But if it was me, I'd want revenge. I'd hunt him down myself."
"What are you talking
about?" said Harry angrily, but at that moment Snape called, "You
should have finished adding your ingredients by now; this potion needs to stew
before it can be drunk, so clear away while it simmers and then we'll test
Longbottom's..."
Crabbe and Goyle laughed openly,
watching Neville sweat as he stirred his potion feverishly. Hermione was
muttering instructions to him out of the corner of her mouth, so that Snape
wouldn't see. Harry and Ron packed away their unused ingredients and went to
wash their hands and ladles in the stone basin in the corner.
"What did Malfoy
mean?" Harry muttered to Ron as he stuck his hands under the icy jet that
poured from the gargoyle's mouth "Why would I want revenge on Black? He
hasn't done anything to me - yet."
"He's making it up,"
said Ron savagely. "He's trying to make you do something stupid..."
The end of the lesson in sight,
Snape strode over to Neville, who was cowering by his cauldron.
"Everyone gather
'round," said Snape, his black eyes glittering, "and watch what
happens to Longbottom's toad. If he has managed to produce a Shrinking
Solution, it will shrink to a tadpole. If, as I don't doubt, he has done it
wrong, his toad is likely to be poisoned."
The Gryffindors watched
fearfully. The Slytherins looked excited. Snape picked up Trevor the toad in
his left hand and dipped a small spoon into Neville's potion, which was now
green. He trickled a few drops down Trevor's throat.
There was a moment of hushed
silence, in which Trevor gulped; then there was a small pop, and Trevor
the tadpole was wriggling in Snape's palm.
The Gryffindors burst into
applause. Snape, looking sour, pulled a small bottle from the pocket of his
robe, poured a few drops on top of Trevor, and he reappeared suddenly, fully
grown.
"Five points from
Gryffindor," said Snape, which wiped the smiles from every face. "I
told you not to help him, Miss Granger. Class dismissed."
Harry, Ron, and Hermione climbed
the steps to the entrance hall. Harry was still thinking about what Malfoy had
said, while Ron was seething about Snape.
"Five points from Gryffindor
because the potion was all right! Why didn't you lie, Hermione? You should've
said Neville did it all by himself!"
Hermione didn't answer. Ron
looked around.
"Where is she?"
Harry turned too. They were at
the top of the steps now, watching the rest of the class pass them, heading for
the Great Hall and lunch.
"She was right behind
us," said Ron, frowning.
Malfoy passed them, walking
between Crabbe and Goyle. He smirked at Harry and disappeared.
"There she is," said
Harry.
Hermione was panting slightly,
hurrying up the stairs; one hand clutched her bag, the other seemed to be
tucking something down the front of her robes.
"How did you do that?"
said Ron.
"What?" said Hermione,
joining them.
"One minute you were right
behind us, the next moment, you were back at the bottom of the stairs
again."
"What?" Hermione
looked slightly confused. "Oh - I had to go back for something. Oh no
-"
A seam had split on Hermione's
bag. Harry wasn't surprised; he could see that it was crammed with at least a
dozen large and heavy books.
"Why are you carrying all
these around with you?" Ron asked her.
"You know how many subjects
I'm taking," said Hermione breathlessly. "Couldn't hold these for me,
could you?"
"But -" Ron was
turning over the books she had handed him, looking at the covers. "You
haven't got any of these subjects today. It's only Defense Against the Dark
Arts this afternoon."
"Oh yes," said
Hermione vaguely, but she packed all the books back into her bag just the same.
"I hope there's something good for lunch, I'm starving," she added,
and she marched off toward the Great Hall.
"D'you get the feeling
Hermione's not telling us something?" Ron asked Harry.
Professor Lupin wasn't there
when they arrived at his first Defense Against the Dark Arts lesson. They all
sat down, took out their books, quills, and parchment, and were talking when he
finally entered the room. Lupin smiled vaguely and placed his tatty old
briefcase on the teacher's desk. He was as shabby as ever but looked healthier
than he had on the train, as though he had had a few square meals.
"Good afternoon," he
said. "Would you please put all your books back in your bags. Today's will
be a practical lesson. You will need only your wands."
A few curious looks were
exchanged as the class put away their books. They had never had a practical
Defense Against the Dark Arts class before, unless you counted the memorable
class last year when their old teacher had brought a cageful of pixies to class
and set them loose.
"Right then," said
Professor Lupin, when everyone was ready. "If you'd follow me."
Puzzled but interested, the
class got to its feet and followed Professor Lupin out of the classroom. He led
them along the deserted corridor and around a corner, where the first thing
they saw was Peeves the Poltergeist, who was floating upside down in midair and
stuffing the nearest keyhole with chewing gum.
Peeves didn't look up until
Professor Lupin was two feet away; then he wiggled his curly-toed feet and
broke into song.
"Loony, loopy Lupin,"
Peeves sang. "Loony, loopy Lupin, loony, loopy Lupin -"
Rude and unmanageable as he
almost always was, Peeves usually showed some respect toward the teachers.
Everyone looked quickly at Professor Lupin to see how he would take this; to
their surprise, he was still smiling.
"I'd take that gum out of
the keyhole if I were you, Peeves," he said pleasantly. "Mr. Filch
won't be able to get in to his brooms."
Filch was the Hogwarts
caretaker, a bad-tempered, failed wizard who waged a constant war against the
students and, indeed, Peeves. However, Peeves paid no attention to Professor
Lupin's words, except to blow a loud wet raspberry.
Professor Lupin gave a small
sigh and took out his wand.
"This is a useful little
spell," he told the class over his shoulder. "Please watch
closely."
He raised the wand to shoulder
height, said, "Waddiwasi!" and pointed it at Peeves. With the force of a bullet,
the wad of chewing gum shot out of the keyhole and straight down Peeves's left
nostril; he whirled upright and zoomed away, cursing.
"Cool, sir!" said Dean
Thomas in amazement.
"Thank you, Dean,"
said Professor Lupin, putting his wand away again. "Shall we
proceed?"
They set off again, the class
looking at shabby Professor Lupin with increased respect. He led them down a
second corridor and stopped, right outside the staffroom door.
"Inside, please," said
Professor Lupin, opening it and standing back.
The staffroom, a long, paneled
room full of old, mismatched chairs, was empty except for one teacher.
Professor Snape was sitting in a low armchair, and he looked around as the
class filed in. His eyes were glittering and there was a nasty sneer playing
around his mouth. As Professor Lupin came in and made to close the door behind
him, Snape said, "Leave it open, Lupin. I'd rather not witness this."
He got to his feet and strode past the class, his black robes billowing behind
him. At the doorway he turned on his heel and said, "Possibly no one's
warned you, Lupin, but this class contains Neville Longbottom. I would advise
you not to entrust him with anything difficult. Not unless Miss Granger is
hissing instructions in his ear."
Neville went scarlet. Harry
glared at Snape; it was bad enough that he bullied Neville in his own classes,
let alone doing it in front of other teachers.
Professor Lupin had raised his
eyebrows.
"I was hoping that Neville
would assist me with the first stage of the operation," he said, "and
I am sure he will perform it admirably."
Neville's face went, if
possible, even redder. Snape's lip curled, but he left, shutting the door with a
snap.
"Now, then," said
Professor Lupin, beckoning the class toward the end of the room, where there
was nothing but an old wardrobe where the teachers kept their spare robes. As
Professor Lupin went to stand next to it, the wardrobe gave a sudden wobble,
banging off the wall.
"Nothing to worry
about," said Professor Lupin calmly because a few people had jumped
backward in alarm. "There's a Boggart in there."
Most people seemed to feel that
this was something to worry about. Neville gave Professor Lupin a look
of pure terror, and Seamus Finnigan eyed the now rattling doorknob
apprehensively.
"Boggarts like dark,
enclosed spaces," said Professor Lupin. "Wardrobes, the gap beneath
beds, the cupboards under sinks - I've even met one that had lodged itself in a
grandfather clock. This one moved in yesterday afternoon, and I asked
the headmaster if the staff would leave it to give my third years some
practice."
"So, the first question we
must ask ourselves is, what is a Boggart?"
Hermione put up her hand.
"It's a
shape-shifter," she said. "It can take the shape of whatever it
thinks will frighten us most."
"Couldn't have put it
better myself," said Professor Lupin, and Hermione glowed. "So the
Boggart sitting in the darkness within has not yet assumed a form. He does not
yet know what will frighten the person on the other side of the door. Nobody
knows what a Boggart looks like when he is alone, but when I let him out, he
will immediately become whatever each of us most fears.
"This means," said
Professor Lupin, choosing to ignore Neville's small sputter of terror,
"that we have a huge advantage over the Boggart before we begin. Have you
spotted it, Harry?"
Trying to answer a question with
Hermione next to him, bobbing up and down on the balls of her feet with her hand
in the air, was very off-putting, but Harry had a go.
"Er - because there are so
many of us, it won't know what shape it should be?"
"Precisely," said
Professor Lupin, and Hermione put her hand down, looking a little disappointed.
"It's always best to have company when you're dealing with a Boggart. He
becomes confused. Which should he become, a headless corpse or a flesh-eating
slug? I once saw a Boggart make that very mistake - tried to frighten two
people at once and turned himself into half a slug. Not remotely frightening.
'The charm that repels a Boggart
is simple, yet it requires force of mind. You see, the thing that really
finishes a Boggart is laughter. What you need to do is force it to
assume a shape that you find amusing. "We will practice the
charm without wands first. After me, please...riddikulus!" "Riddikulus!" said
the class together.
"Good," said Professor
Lupin. "Very good. But that was the easy part, I'm afraid. You see, the
word alone is not enough. And this is where you come in, Neville."
The wardrobe shook again, though
not as much as Neville, who walked forward as though he were heading for the
gallows.
"Right, Neville," said
Professor Lupin. "First things first: what would you say is the thing that
frightens you most in the world?"
Neville's lips moved, but no
noise came out.
"I didn't catch that,
Neville, sorry," said Professor Lupin cheerfully.
Neville looked around rather
wildly, as though begging someone to help him, then said, in barely more than a
whisper, "Professor Snape."
Nearly everyone laughed. Even
Neville grinned apologetically. Professor Lupin, however, looked thoughtful.
"Professor
Snape...hmmm...Neville, I believe you live with your grandmother?"
"Er - yes," said
Neville nervously. "But - I don't want the Boggart to turn into her
either."
"No, no, you misunderstand
me," said Professor Lupin, now smiling. "I wonder, could you tell us
what sort of clothes your grandmother usually wears?"
Neville looked startled, but
said, "Well...always the same hat. A tall one with a stuffed vulture on top.
And a long dress...green, normally...and sometimes a fox-fur scarf."
"And a handbag?"
prompted Professor Lupin.
"A big red one," said
Neville.
"Right then," said
Professor Lupin. "Can you picture those clothes very clearly, Neville? Can
you see them in your mind's eye?"
"Yes," said Neville
uncertainty, plainly wondering what was coming next.
"When the Boggart bursts
out of this wardrobe, Neville, and sees you, it will assume the form of
Professor Snape," said Lupin. "And you will raise your wand - thus -
and cry "Riddikulus" - and concentrate hard on your grandmother's
clothes. If all goes well, Professor Boggart Snape will be forced into that
vulture-topped hat, and that green dress, with that big red handbag."
There was a great shout of
laughter. The wardrobe wobbled more violently.
"If Neville is successful,
the Boggart is likely to shift his attention to each of us in turn," said
Professor Lupin. "I would like all of you to take a moment now to think of
the thing that scares you most, and imagine how you might force it to look
comical..."
The room went quiet. Harry
thought...What scared him most in the world?
His first thought was Lord
Voldemort - a Voldemort returned to full strength. But before he had even
started to plan a possible counterattack on a Boggart-Voldemort, a horrible
image came floating to the surface of his mind...
A rotting, glistening hand,
slithering back beneath a black cloak...a long, rattling breath from an unseen
mouth...then a cold so penetrating it felt like drowning...
Harry shivered, then looked
around, hoping no one had noticed. Many people had their eyes shut tight. Ron
was muttering to himself, "Take its legs off." Harry was sure he knew
what that was about. Ron's greatest fear was spiders.
"Everyone ready?" said
Professor Lupin.
Harry felt a lurch of fear. He
wasn't ready. How could you make a Dementor less frightening? But he didn't
want to ask for more time; everyone else was nodding and rolling up their
sleeves.
"Neville, we're going to
back away," said Professor Lupin. "Let you have a clear field, all
right? I'll call the next person forward...Everyone back, now, so Neville can get
a clear shot -"
They all retreated, backed
against the walls, leaving Neville alone beside the wardrobe. He looked pale
and frightened, but he had pushed up the sleeves of his robes and was holding
his wand ready.
"On the count of three,
Neville," said Professor Lupin, who was pointing his own wand at the
handle of the wardrobe. "One - two - three - now!" A jet of sparks shot from
the end of Professor Lupin's wand and hit the doorknob. The wardrobe burst
open. Hook-nosed and menacing, Professor Snape stepped out, his eyes flashing
at Neville.
Neville backed away, his wand
up, mouthing wordlessly. Snape was bearing down upon him, reaching inside his robes.
"R - r - riddikulus! "
squeaked Neville.
There was a noise like a whip
crack. Snape stumbled; he was wearing a long, lace-trimmed dress and a towering
hat topped with a moth-eaten vulture, and he was swinging a huge crimson
handbag.
There was a roar of laughter;
the Boggart paused, confused, and Professor Lupin shouted, "Parvati!
Forward!"
Parvati walked forward, her face
set. Snape rounded on her. There was another crack, and where he had stood was
a bloodstained, bandaged mummy; its sightless face was turned to Parvati and it
began to walk toward her very slowly, dragging its feet, its stiff arms rising
-
"Riddikulus!" cried
Parvati.
A bandage unraveled at the
mummy's feet; it became entangled, fell face forward, and its head rolled off.
"Seamus!" roared
Professor Lupin.
Seamus darted past Parvati.
Crack
! Where the mummy had been was a
woman with floorlength black hair and a skeletal, green-tinged face - a
banshee. She opened her mouth wide and an unearthly sound filled the room, a
long, wailing shriek that made the hair on Harry's head stand on end -
"Riddikulus!" shouted Seamus.
The banshee made a rasping noise
and clutched her throat; her voice was gone.
Crack
! The banshee turned into a rat,
which chased its tail in a circle, then - crack!- became a rattlesnake,
which slithered and writhed before - crack! - becoming a single, bloody
eyeball.
"It's confused!"
shouted Lupin. "We're getting there! Dean!"
Dean hurried forward.
Crack
! The eyeball became a severed
hand, which flipped over and began to creep along the floor like a crab. "Riddikulus!"
yelled Dean.
There was a snap, and the hand
was trapped in a mousetrap.
"Excellent! Ron, you
next!"
Ron leapt forward.
Crack
! Quite a few people screamed.
A giant spider, six feet tall and covered in hair, was advancing on Ron,
clicking its pincers menacingly. For a moment, Harry thought Ron had frozen.
Then -
"Riddikulus!" bellowed
Ron, and the spider's legs vanished; it rolled over and over; Lavender Brown
squealed and ran out of its way and it came to a halt at Harry's feet. He
raised his wand, ready, but -
"Here!" shouted
Professor Lupin suddenly, hurrying forward. Crack! The legless spider had
vanished. For a second, everyone looked wildly around to see where it was. Then
they saw a silvery-white orb hanging in the air in front of Lupin, who said,
"Riddikulus!" almost lazily.
Crack
! "Forward, Neville, and
finish him off!" said Lupin as the Boggart landed on the floor as a
cockroach. Crack! Snape was back. This time Neville charged forward
looking determined. "Riddikulus!" he
shouted, and they had a split second's view of Snape in his lacy dress before
Neville let out a great "Ha!" of laughter, and the Boggart exploded,
burst into a thousand tiny wisps of smoke, and was gone.
"Excellent!" cried
Professor Lupin as the class broke into applause. "Excellent, Neville.
Well done, everyone...Let me see...five points to Gryffindor for every person to
tackle the Boggart - ten for Neville because he did it twice...and five each to
Hermione and Harry."
"But I didn't do anything,"
said Harry.
"You and Hermione answered
my questions correctly at the start of the class, Harry," Lupin said
lightly. "Very well, everyone, an excellent lesson. Homework, kindly read
the chapter on Boggarts and summarize it for me...to be handed in on Monday. That
will be all."
Talking excitedly, the class
left the staffroom. Harry, however, wasn't feeling cheerful. Professor Lupin
had deliberately stopped him from tackling the Boggart. Why? Was it because
he'd seen Harry collapse on the train, and thought he wasn't up to much? Had he
thought Harry would pass out again?
But no one else seemed to have
noticed anything.
"Did you see me take that
banshee?" shouted Seamus.
"And the hand!" said
Dean, waving his own around.
"And Snape in that
hat!"
"And my mummy!"
"I wonder why Professor
Lupin's frightened of crystal balls?" said Lavender thoughtfully.
"That was the best Defense
Against the Dark Arts lesson we've ever had, wasn't it?" said Ron
excitedly as they made their way back to the classroom to get their bags.
"He seems like a very good
teacher," said Hermione approvingly. "But I wish I could have had a
turn with the Boggart -"
"What would it have been
for you?" said Ron, sniggering. "A piece of homework that only got
nine out of ten?" CHAPTER EIGHT FLIGHT OF THE FAT LADY
In no time at all, Defense
Against the Dark Arts had become most people's favorite class. Only Draco
Malfoy and his gang of Slytherins had anything bad to say about Professor
Lupin.
"Look at the state of his
robes," Malfoy would say in a loud whisper as Professor Lupin passed.
"He dresses like our old house elf." But no one else cared that
Professor Lupin's robes were patched and frayed. His next few lessons were just
as interesting as the first. After Boggarts, they studied Red Caps, nasty little
goblin-like creatures that lurked wherever there had been bloodshed: in the
dungeons of castles and the potholes of deserted battlefields, waiting to
bludgeon those who had gotten lost. From Red Caps they moved on to Kappas,
creepy. water-dwellers that looked like scaly monkeys, with webbed hands
itching to strangle unwitting waders in their ponds.
Harry only wished he was as
happy with some of his other classes. Worst of all was Potions. Snape was in a
particularly vindictive mood these days, and no one was in any doubt why. The
story of the Boggart assuming Snape's shape, and the way that Neville had
dressed it in his grandmother's clothes, had traveled through the school like
wildfire. Snape didn't seem to find it funny. His eyes flashed menacingly at
the very mention of Professor Lupin's name, and he was bullying Neville worse
than ever.
Harry was also growing to dread
the hours he spent in Professor Trelawney's stifling tower room, deciphering
lopsided shapes and symbols, trying to ignore the way Professor Trelawney's
enormous eyes filled with tears every time she looked at him. He couldn't like
Professor Trelawney, even though she was treated with respect bordering on
reverence by many of the class. Parvati Patil and Lavender Brown had taken to
haunting Professor Trelawney's tower room at lunch times, and always returned
with annoyingly superior looks on their faces, as though they knew things the
others didn't. They had also started using hushed voices whenever they spoke to
Harry, as though he were on his deathbed.
Nobody really liked Care of
Magical Creatures, which, after the action-packed first class, had become
extremely dull. Hagrid seemed to have lost his confidence. They were now
spending lesson after lesson learning how to look after flobberworms, which had
to be some of the most boring creatures in existence.
"Why would anyone bother
looking after them?" said Ron, after yet another hour of poking shredded
lettuce down the flobberworms' throats.
At the start of October,
however, Harry had something else to occupy him, something so enjoyable it more
than made up for his unsatisfactory classes. The Quidditch season was
approaching, and O1iver Wood, Captain of the Gryffindor team, called a meeting
on Thursday evening to discuss tactics for the new season.
There were seven people on a
Quidditch team: three Chasers, whose job it was to score goals by putting the
Quaffle (a red, soccer-sized ball) through one of the fifty-foot-high hoops at
each end of the field; two Beaters, who were equipped with heavy bats to repel
the Bludgers (two heavy black balls that zoomed around trying to attack the
players); a Keeper, who defended the goal posts, and the Seeker, who had the
hardest job of all, that of catching the Golden Snitch, a tiny, winged,
walnut-sized ball, whose capture ended the game and earned the Seeker's team an
extra one hundred and fifty points.
Oliver Wood was a burly
seventeen-year-old, now in his seventh and final year at Hogwarts. There was a
quiet sort of desperation in his voice as he addressed his six fellow team
members in the chilly locker rooms on the edge of the darkening Quidditch
field.
"This is our last chance - my
last chance - to win the Quidditch Cup," he told them, striding up and
down in front of them. "I'll be leaving at the end of this year. I'll
never get another shot at it."
"Gryffindor hasn't won for
seven years now. Okay, so we've had the worst luck in the world - injuries -
then the tournament getting called off last year." Wood swallowed, as
though the memory still brought a lump to his throat. "But we also know
we've got the best - ruddy - team - in - the - school," he said,
punching a fist into his other hand, the old manic glint back in his eye.
"We've got three superb Chasers." Wood pointed at Alicia
Spinner, Angelina Johnson, and Katie Bell.
"We've got two unbeatable
Beaters."
"Stop it, Oliver, you're
embarrassing us," said Fred and George Weasley together, pretending to
blush.
"And we've got a Seeker who
has never failed to win us a match!" Wood rumbled, glaring at Harry
with a kind of furious pride. "And me," he added as an afterthought.
"We think you're very good
too, Oliver," said George.
"Spanking good
Keeper," said Fred.
"The point is," Wood
went on, resuming his pacing, "the Quidditch Cup should have had our name
on it these last two years. Ever since Harry joined the team, I've thought the
thing was in the bag. But we haven't got it, and this year's the last chance
we'll get to finally see our name on the thing..."
Wood spoke so dejectedly that
even Fred and George looked sympathetic.
"Oliver, this year's our
year," said Fred.
"We'll do it, Oliver!"
said Angelina.
"Definitely," said
Harry.
Full of determination, the team
started training sessions, three evenings a week. The weather was getting
colder and wetter, the nights darker, but no amount of mud, wind, or rain could
tarnish Harry's wonderful vision of finally winning the huge, silver Quidditch
Cup.
Harry returned to the Gryffindor
common room one evening after training, cold and stiff but pleased with the way
practice had gone, to find the room buzzing excitedly.
"What's happened?", he
asked Ron and Hermione, who were sitting in two of the best chairs by the
fireside and completing some star charts for Astronomy.
"First Hogsmeade
weekend," said Ron, pointing at a notice that had appeared on the battered
old bulletin board. "End of October. Halloween."
"Excellent," said
Fred, who had followed Harry through the portrait hole. "I need to visit
Zonko's. I'm nearly out of Stink Pellets."
Harry threw himself into a chair
beside Ron, his high spirits ebbing away. Hermione seemed to read his mind.
"Harry, I'm sure you'll be
able to go next time," she said. "They're bound to catch Black soon.
He's been sighted once already."
"Black's not fool enough to
try anything in Hogsmeade," said Ron. "Ask McGonagall if you can go
this time, Harry. The next one might not be for ages -"
"Ron!" said
Hermione. "Harry's supposed to stay in school -"
"He can't be the only third
year left behind," said Ron. "Ask McGonagall, go on, Harry -"
"Yeah, I think I
will," said Harry, making up his mind.
Hermione opened her mouth to
argue, but at that moment Crookshanks leapt lightly onto her lap. A large, dead
spider was dangling from his mouth.
"Does he have to eat that
in front of us?" said Ron, scowling.
"Clever Crookshanks, did
you catch that all by yourself?" said Hermione.
Crookshanks; slowly chewed up
the spider, his yellow eyes fixed insolently on Ron.
"Just keep him over there,
that's all," said Ron irritably, turning back to his star chart. "I've
got Scabbers asleep in my bag."
Harry yawned. He really wanted
to go to bed, but he still had his own star chart to complete. He pulled his
bag toward him, took out parchment, ink, and quill, and started work.
"You can copy mine, if you
like," said Ron, labeling his last star with a flourish and shoving the
chart toward Harry.
Hermione, who disapproved of
copying, pursed her lips but didn't say anything. Crookshanks was still staring
unblinkingly at Ron, flicking the end of his bushy tail. Then, without warning,
he pounced.
"OY!" Ron roared,
seizing his bag as Crookshanks sank four sets of claws deep inside it and began
tearing ferociously. "GET OFF, YOU STUPID ANIMAL!"
Ron tried to pull the bag away
from Crookshanks, but Crookshanks clung on, spitting and slashing.
"Ron, don't hurt him!"
squealed Hermione; the whole common room was watching; Ron whirled the bag
around, Crookshanks still clinging to it, and Scabbers came flying out of the
top -
"CATCH THAT CAT!" Ron
yelled as Crookshanks freed himself from the remnants of the bag, sprang over
the table, and chased after the terrified Scabbers.
George Weasley made a lunge for
Crookshanks but missed; Scabbers streaked through twenty pairs of legs and shot
beneath an old chest of drawers. Crookshanks skidded to a halt, crouched low on
his bandy legs, and started making furious swipes beneath it with his front
paw.
Ron and Hermione hurried over;
Hermione grabbed Crookshanks around the middle and heaved him away; Ron threw
himself onto his stomach and, with great difficulty, pulled Scabbers out by the
tail.
"Look at him!" he said
furiously to Hermione, dangling Scabbers in front of her. "He's skin and
bone! You keep that cat away from him!"
"Crookshanks doesn't
understand it's wrong!" said Hermione, her voice shaking. "All cats
chase rats, Ron!"
"There's something funny
about that animal!" said Ron, who was trying to persuade a frantically
wiggling Scabbers back into his pocket. "It heard me say that Scabbers was
in my bag!"
"Oh, what rubbish,"
said Hermione impatiently. "Crookshanks could smell him, Ron, how
else d'you think -"
"That cat's got it in for
Scabbers!" said Ron, ignoring the people around him, who were starting to
giggle. "And Scabbers was here first, and he's ill!"
Ron marched through the common
room and out of sight up the stairs to the boys' dormitories.
Ron was still in a bad mood
with Hermione next day. He barely talked to her all through Herbology, even
though he, Harry, and Hermione were working together on the same Puffapod.
"How's Scabbers?" Hermione
asked timidly as they stripped fat pink pods from the plants and emptied the
shining beans into a wooden pail.
"He's hiding at the bottom
of my bed, shaking," said Ron angrily, missing the pail and scattering
beans over the greenhouse floor.
"Careful, Weasley,
careful!" cried Professor Sprout as the beans burst into bloom before
their very eyes.
They had Transfiguration next.
Harry, who had resolved to ask Professor McGonagall after the lesson whether he
could go into Hogsmeade with the rest, joined the line outside the class trying
to decide how he was going to argue his case. He was distracted, however, by a
disturbance at the front of the line.
Lavender Brown seemed to be
crying. Parvati had her arm around her and was explaining something to Seamus
Finnigan and Dean Thomas, who were looking very serious.
"What's the matter,
Lavender?" said Hermione anxiously as she, Harry, and Ron went to join the
group.
"She got a letter from home
this morning," Parvati whispered. "It's her rabbit, Binky. He's been
killed by a fox."
"Oh," said Hermione,
"I'm sorry, Lavender."
"I should have known!"
said Lavender tragically. "You know what day it is?"
"Er -"
"The sixteenth of October!
'That thing you're dreading, it will happen on the sixteenth of October!'
Remember? She was right, she was right!"
The whole class was gathered
around Lavender now. Seamus shook his head seriously. Hermione hesitated; then
she said, "You - you were dreading Binky being killed by a fox?"
"Well, not necessarily by a
fox," said Lavender, looking up at Hermione with streaming eyes,
"but I was obviously dreading him dying, wasn't I?" "Oh," said
Hermione. She paused again. Then - "Was Binky an old
rabbit?" "N - no!" sobbed
Lavender. "H - he was only a baby!"
Parvati tightened her arm around
Lavender's shoulders.
"But then, why would you
dread him dying?" said Hermione.
Parvati glared at her.
"Well, look at it
logically," said Hermione, turning to the rest of the group. "I mean,
Binky didn't even die today, did he? Lavender just got the news today -"
Lavender wailed loudly. "- and she can't have been dreading it,
because it's come as a real shock -"
"Don't mind Hermione,
Lavender," said Ron loudly, "she doesn't think other people's pets
matter very much."
Professor McGonagall opened the
classroom door at that moment, which was perhaps lucky; Hermione and Ron were
looking daggers at each other, and when they got into class, they seated
themselves on either side of Harry and didn't talk to each other for the whole
class.
Harry still hadn't decided what
he was going to say to Professor McGonagall when the bell rang at the end of
the lesson, but it was she who brought up the subject of Hogsmeade first.
"One moment, please!"
she called as the class made to leave. "As you're all in my House, you
should hand Hogsmeade permission forms to me before Halloween. No form, no
visiting the village, so don't forget!"
Neville put up his hand.
"Please, Professor, I - I
think I've lost -"
"Your grandmother sent
yours to me directly, Longbottom," said Professor McGonagall. "She
seemed to think it was safer. Well, that's all, you may leave."
"Ask her now," Ron
hissed at Harry.
"Oh. but -" Hermione
began.
"Go for it, Harry,"
said Ron stubbornly.
Harry waited for the rest of the
class to disappear, then headed nervously for Professor McGonagall's desk.
"Yes, Potter?" Harry
took a deep breath.
"Professor, my aunt and
uncle - er - forgot to sign my form," he said.
Professor McGonagall looked over
her square spectacles at him but didn't say anything.
"So - er - d'you think it
would be all right mean, will It be okay if I - if I go to Hogsmeade?"
Professor McGonagall looked down
and began shuffling papers on her desk.
"I'm afraid not,
Potter," she said. "You heard what I said. No form, no visiting the
village. That's the rule."
"But - Professor, my aunt
and uncle - you know, they're Muggles, they don't really understand about -
about Hogwarts forms and stuff," Harry said, while Ron egged him on with
vigorous nods. "If you said I could go -"
"But I don't say so,"
said Professor McGonagall, standing up and piling her papers neatly into a
drawer. "The form clearly states that the parent or guardian must give
permission." She turned to look at him, with an odd expression on her
face. Was it pity? "I'm sorry, Potter, but that's my final word. You had
better hurry, or you'll be late for your next lesson."
There was nothing to be done.
Ron called Professor McGonagall a lot of names that greatly annoyed Hermione;
Hermione assumed an 'all-for-the-best' expression that made Ron even angrier,
and Harry had to endure everyone in the class talking loudly and happily about
what they were going to do first, once they got into Hogsmeade.
"There's always the
feast," said Ron, in an effort to cheer Harry up. "You know, the
Halloween feast, in the evening."
"Yeah," said Harry
gloomily, "great."
The Halloween feast was always
good, but it would taste a lot better if he was coming to it after a day in
Hogsmeade with everyone else. Nothing anyone said made him feel any better
about being left behind. Dean Thomas, who was good with a quill, had offered to
forge Uncle Vernon's signature on the form, but as Harry had already told
Professor McGonagall he hadn't had it signed, that was no good. Ron
halfheartedly suggested the Invisibility Cloak, but Hermione stamped on that
one, reminding Ron what Dumbledore had told them about the Dementors being able
to see through them. Percy had what were possibly the least helpful words of
comfort.
"They make a fuss about
Hogsmeade, but I assure you, Harry, it's not all it's cracked up to be,"
he said seriously. "All right, the sweetshop's rather good, and Zonko's
Joke Shop's frankly dangerous, and yes, the Shrieking Shack's always worth a
visit, but really, Harry, apart from that, you're not missing anything."
On Halloween morning, Harry
awoke with the rest and went down to breakfast, feeling thoroughly depressed,
though doing his best to act normally.
"We'll bring you lots of
sweets back from Honeydukes," said Hermione, looking desperately sorry for
him.
"Yeah, loads," said
Ron. He and Hermione had finally forgotten their squabble about Crookshanks in
the face of Harry's difficulties.
"Don't worry about
me," said Harry, in what he hoped was at, offhand voice, "I'll see
you at the feast. Have a good time."
He accompanied them to the
entrance hall, where Filch, the caretaker, was standing inside the front doors,
checking off names against a long list, peering suspiciously into every face,
and making sure that no one was sneaking out who shouldn't be going.
"Staying here, Potter?"
shouted Malfoy, who was standing in line with Crabbe and Goyle. "Scared of
passing the Dementors?"
Harry ignored him and made his
solitary way up the marble staircase, through the deserted corridors, and back
to Gryffindor Tower.
"Password?" said the
Fat Lady, jerking out of a doze.
"Fortuna Major," said
Harry listlessly.
The portrait swung open and he
climbed through the hole into the common room. It was full of chattering
first-and second-years, and a few older students, who had obviously visited Hogsmeade
so often the novelty had worn off.
"Harry! Harry! Hi,
Harry!"
It was Colin Creevey, a second
year who was deeply in awe of Harry and never missed an opportunity to speak to
him.
"Aren't you going to
Hogsmeade, Harry? Why not? Hey -" Colin looked eagerly around at his
friends - "you can come and sit with us, if you like, Harry!"
"Er - no, thanks,
Colin," said Harry, who wasn't in the mood to have a lot of people staring
avidly at the scar on his forehead. "I - I've got to go to the library,
got to get some work done."
After that, he had no choice but
to turn right around and head back out of the portrait hole again.
"What was the point of
waking me up?" the Fat Lady called grumpily after him as he walked away.
Harry wandered dispiritedly
toward the library, but halfway there he changed his mind; he didn't feel like
working. He turned around and came face-to-face with Filch, who had obviously
just seen off the last of the Hogsmeade visitors.
"What are you doing?"
Filch snarled suspiciously.
"Nothing," said Harry
truthfully.
"Nothing!" spat Filch,
his jowls quivering unpleasantly. "A likely story! Sneaking around on your
own - why aren't you in Hogsmeade buying Stink Pellets and Belch Powder and
Whizzing Worms like the rest of your nasty little friends?"
Harry shrugged.
"Well, get back to your
common room where you belong!" snapped Filch, and he stood glaring until
Harry had passed out of sight.
But Harry didn't go back to the
common room; he climbed a staircase, thinking vaguely of visiting the Owlery to
see Hedwig, and was walking along another corridor when a voice from inside one
of the rooms said, "Harry?"
Harry doubled back to see who
had spoken and met Professor Lupin, looking around his office door.
"What are you doing?"
said Lupin, though in a very different voice from Filch. "Where are Ron
and Hermione?"
"Hogsmeade," said
Harry, in a would-be casual voice.
"Ah," said Lupin. He
considered Harry for a moment. "Why don't you come in? I've just taken
delivery of a Grindylow for our next lesson."
"A what?" said Harry.
He followed Lupin into his
office. In the corner stood a very large tank of water. A sickly green creature
with sharp little horns had its face pressed against the glass, pulling faces
and flexing its long, spindly fingers.
"Water demon," said
Lupin, surveying the Grindylow thoughtfully. "We shouldn't have much
difficulty with him, not after the Kappas. The trick is to break his grip. You
notice the abnormally long fingers? Strong, but very brittle."
The Grindylow bared its green
teeth and then buried itself in a tangle of weeds in a corner.
"Cup of tea?" Lupin
said, looking around for his kettle. "I was just thinking of making
one."
"All right," said
Harry awkwardly.
Lupin tapped the kettle with his
wand and a blast of steam issued suddenly from the spout.
"Sit down," said
Lupin, taking the lid off a dusty tin. "I've only got teabags, I'm afraid
- but I daresay you've had enough of tea leaves?"
Harry looked at him. Lupin's
eyes were twinkling.
"How did you know about
that?" Harry asked.
"Professor McGonagall told
me," said Lupin, passing Harry a chipped mug of tea. "You're not
worried, are you?"
"No," said Harry.
He thought for a moment of
telling Lupin about the dog he'd seen in Magnolia Crescent but decided not to.
He didn't want Lupin to think he was a coward, especially since Lupin already
seemed to think he couldn't cope with a Boggart.
Something of Harry's thoughts
seemed to have shown on his face, because Lupin said, "Anything worrying
you, Harry?"
"No," Harry lied. He
drank a bit of tea and watched the Grindylow brandishing a fist at him.
"Yes," he said suddenly, putting his tea down on Lupin's desk.
"You know that day we fought the Boggart?"
"Yes," said Lupin
slowly.
"Why didn't you let me
fight it?" said Harry abruptly.
Lupin raised his eyebrows.
"I would have thought that
was obvious, Harry," he said, sounding surprised.
Harry, who had expected Lupin to
deny that he'd done any such thing, was taken aback.
"Why?" he said again.
"Well," said Lupin,
frowning slightly, "I assumed that if the Boggart faced you, it would
assume the shape of Lord Voldemort."
Harry stared. Not only was this
the last answer he'd expected, but Lupin had said Voldemort's name. The only
person Harry had ever heard say the name aloud (apart from himself) was Professor
Dumbledore.
"Clearly, I was
wrong," said Lupin, still frowning at Harry. "But I didn't think it a
good idea for Lord Voldemort to materialize in the staffroom. I imagined that
people would panic."
"I didn't think of
Voldemort," said Harry honestly. "I - I remembered those
Dementors."
"I see," said Lupin
thoughtfully. "Well, well...I'm impressed." He smiled slightly at the
look of surprise on Harry's face. "That suggests that what you fear most
of all is - fear. Very wise, Harry."
Harry didn't know what to say to
that, so he drank some more tea.
"So you've been thinking
that I didn't believe you capable of fighting the Boggart?" said Lupin
shrewdly.
"Well...yeah," said
Harry. He was suddenly feeling a lot happier. "Professor Lupin, you know
the Dementors -"
He was interrupted by a knock on
the door.
"Come in," called
Lupin.
The door opened, and in came
Snape. He was carrying a goblet, which was smoking faintly, and stopped at the
sight of Harry, his black eyes narrowing.
"Ah, Severus," said
Lupin, smiling. "Thanks very much. Could you leave it here on the desk for
me?"
Snape set down the smoking
goblet, his eyes wandering between Harry and Lupin.
"I was just showing Harry
my Grindylow," said Lupin pleasantly, pointing at the tank.
"Fascinating," said
Snape, without looking at it. "You should drink that directly,
Lupin."
"Yes, Yes, I will,"
said Lupin.
"I made an entire
cauldronful," Snape continued. "If you need more."
"I should probably have
some again tomorrow. Thanks very much, Severus."
"Not at all," said Snape,
but there was a look in his eye Harry didn't like. He backed out of the room,
unsmiling and watchful.
Harry looked curiously at the
goblet. Lupin smiled.
"Professor Snape has very
kindly concocted a potion for me," he said. "I have never been much
of a potion-brewer and this one is particularly complex." He picked up the
goblet and sniffed it. "Pity sugar makes it useless," he added,
taking a sip and shuddering.
"Why -?" Harry began.
Lupin looked at him and answered the unfinished question.
"I've been feeling a bit
off-color," he said. "This potion is the only thing that helps. I am
very lucky to be working alongside Professor Snape; there aren't many wizards
who are up to making it."
Professor Lupin took another sip
and Harry had a crazy urge to knock the goblet out of his hands.
"Professor Snape's very
interested in the Dark Arts," he blurted out.
"Really?" said Lupin,
looking only mildly interested as he took another gulp of potion.
"Some people reckon -"
Harry hesitated, then plunged recklessly on, "some people reckon he'd do
anything to get the Defense Against the Dark Arts job."
Lupin drained the goblet and
pulled a face.
"Disgusting," he said.
"Well, Harry, I'd better get back to work. See you at the feast
later."
"Right," said Harry,
putting down his empty teacup.
The empty goblet was still
smoking.
"There you go," said
Ron. "We got as much as we could carry."
A shower of brilliantly colored
sweets fell into Harry's lap. It was dusk, and Ron and Hermione had just turned
up in the common room, pink-faced from the cold wind and looking as though
they'd had the time of their lives.
"Thanks," said Harry,
picking up a packet of tiny black Pepper Imps. "What's Hogsmeade like?
Where did you go?"
By the sound of it - everywhere.
Dervish and Banges, the wizarding equipment shop, Zonko's Joke Shop, into the
Three Broomsticks for foaming mugs of hot butterbeer, and many places besides.
"The post office, Harry!
About two hundred owls, all sitting on shelves, all color-coded depending on
how fast you want your letter to get there!"
"Honeydukes has got a new
kind of fudge; they were giving out free samples, there's a bit, look -"
"We think we saw an ogre,
honestly, they get all sorts at the Three Broomsticks -"
"Wish we could have brought
you some butterbeer, really warms you up -"
"What did you do?"
said Hermione, looking anxious. "Did you get any work done?"
"No," said Harry.
"Lupin made me a cup of tea in his office. And then Snape came in..."
He told them all about the
goblet. Ron's mouth fell open.
"Lupin drank it?"
he gasped. "Is he mad?" Hermione checked her watch.
"We'd better go down, you
know, the feast'll be starting in five minutes They hurried through the
portrait hole and into the crowd, still discussing Snape.
"But if he - you know
-" Hermione dropped her voice, glancing nervously around, "if he was
trying to - to poison Lupin - he wouldn't have done it in front of Harry."
"Yeah, maybe," said
Harry as they reached the entrance hall and crossed into the Great Hall. It had
been decorated with hundreds and hundreds of candle-filled pumpkins, a cloud of
fluttering live bats, and many flaming orange streamers, which were swimming
lazily across the stormy ceiling like brilliant watersnakes.
The food was delicious; even
Hermione and Ron, who were full to bursting with Honeydukes sweets, managed
second helpings of everything. Harry kept glancing at the staff table.
Professor Lupin looked cheerful and as well as he ever did; he was talking
animatedly to tiny little Professor Flitwick, the Charms teacher. Harry moved
his eyes along the table, to the place where Snape sat. Was he imagining it, or
were Snape's eyes flickering toward Lupin more often than was natural?
The feast finished with an
entertainment provided by the Hogwarts ghosts. They popped out of the walls and
tables to do a bit of formation gliding; Nearly Headless Nick, the Gryffindor
ghost, had a great success with a reenactment of his own botched beheading.
It had been such a pleasant
evening that Harry's good mood couldn't even be spoiled by Malfoy, who shouted
through the crowd as they all left the hall, "The Dementors send their
love, Potter!"
Harry, Ron, and Hermione
followed the rest of the Gryffindors along the usual path to Gryffindor Tower,
but when they reached the corridor that ended with the portrait of the Fat
Lady, they found it jammed with students.
"Why isn't anyone going
in?" said Ron curiously.
Harry peered over the heads in
front of him. The portrait seemed to be closed.
"Let me through,
please," came Percy's voice, and he came bustling importantly through the
crowd. "What's the holdup here? You can't all have forgotten the password
- excuse me, I'm Head Boy -"
And then a silence fell over the
crowd, from the front first, so that a chill seemed to spread down the
corridor. They heard Percy say, in a suddenly sharp voice, "Somebody get
Professor Dumbledore. Quick."
People's heads turned; those at
the back were standing on tiptoe.
"What's going on?"
said Ginny, who had just arrived.
A moment later, Professor
Dumbledore was there, sweeping toward the portrait; the Gryffindors squeezed
together to let him through, and Harry, Ron, and Hermione moved closer to see
what the trouble was.
"Oh, my -" Hermione
grabbed Harry's arm.
The Fat Lady had vanished from
her portrait, which had been slashed so viciously that strips of canvas
littered the floor; great chunks of it had been torn away completely.
Dumbledore took one quick look at the ruined painting and turned, his eyes
somber, to see Professors McGonagall, Lupin, and Snape hurrying toward him.
"We need to find her,"
said Dumbledore. "Professor McGonagall, please go to Mr. Filch at once and
tell him to search every painting in the castle for the Fat Lady."
"You'll be lucky!"
said a cackling voice.
It was Peeves the Poltergeist,
bobbing over the crowd and looking delighted, as he always did, at the sight of
wreckage or worry.
"What do you mean,
Peeves?" said Dumbledore calmly, and Peeves's grin faded a little. He
didn't dare taunt Dumbledore. Instead he adopted an oily voice that was no
better than his cackle. "Ashamed, Your Headship, sir. Doesn't want to be
seen. She's a horrible mess. Saw her running through the landscape up on the
fourth floor, sir, dodging between the trees. Crying something dreadful,"
he said happily. "Poor thing." he added unconvincingly.
"Did she say who did
it?" said Dumbledore quietly.
"Oh yes,
Professorhead," said Peeves, with the air of one cradling a large
bombshell in his arms. "He got very angry when she wouldn't let him in,
you see." Peeves flipped over and grinned at Dumbledore from between his
own legs. "Nasty temper he's got, that Sirius Black." CHAPTER NINE GRIM DEFEAT
Professor Dumbledore sent all
the Gryffindors back to the Great Hall, where they were joined ten minutes
later by the students from Hufflepuff, Ravenclaw, and Slytherin, who all looked
extremely confused.
"The teachers and I need to
conduct a thorough search of the castle," Professor Dumbledore told them
as Professors McGonagall and Flitwick closed all doors into the hall. "I'm
afraid that, for your own safety, you will have to spend the night here. I want
the prefects to stand guard over the entrances to the hall and I am leaving the
Head Boy and Girl in charge. Any disturbance should be reported to me
immediately," he added to Percy, who was looking immensely proud and
important. "Send word with one of the ghosts."
Professor Dumbledore paused,
about to leave the hall, and said, "Oh, yes, you'll be needing..."
One casual wave of his wand and
the long tables flew to the edges of the hall and stood themselves against the
walls; another wave, and the floor was covered with hundreds of squashy purple
sleeping bags.
"Sleep well," said
Professor Dumbledore, closing the door behind him.
The hall immediately began to
buzz excitedly; the Gryffindors were telling the rest of the school what had
just happened.
"Everyone into their
sleeping bags!" shouted Percy. "Come on, now, no more talking! Lights
out in ten minutes!"
"C'mon," Ron said to
Harry and Hermione; they seized three sleeping bags and dragged them into a
corner.
"Do you think Black's still
in the castle?" Hermione whispered anxiously.
"Dumbledore obviously
thinks he might be," said Ron.
"It's very lucky he picked
tonight, you know," said Hermione as they climbed fully dressed into their
sleeping bags and propped themselves on their elbows to talk. "The one
night we weren't in the tower..."
"I reckon he's lost track
of time, being on the run," said Ron. "Didn't realize it was
Halloween. Otherwise he'd have come bursting in here."
Hermione shuddered.
All around them, people were
asking one another the same question: "How did he get in?" "Maybe he knows how to
Apparate," said a Ravenclaw a few feet away, "Just appear out of thin
air, you know."
"Disguised himself,
probably," said a Hufflepuff fifth year.
"He could've flown
in," suggested Dean Thomas.
"Honestly, am I the only
person who's ever bothered to read Hogwarts, A History?" said
Hermione crossly to Harry and Ron.
"Probably," said Ron.
"Why?"
"Because the castle's
protected by more than walls, you know," said Hermione. "There are
all sorts of enchantments on it, to stop people entering by stealth. You can't
just Apparate in here. And I'd like to see the disguise that could fool those
Dementors. They're guarding every single entrance to the grounds. They'd have
seen him fly in too. And Filch knows all the secret passages, they'll have them
covered..."
"The lights are going out
now!" Percy shouted. "I want everyone in their sleeping bags and no
more talking!"
The candles all went out at
once. The only light now came from the silvery ghosts, who were drifting about
talking seriously to the prefects, and the enchanted ceiling, which, like the
sky outside, was scattered with stars. What with that, and the whispering that
still filled the hall, Harry felt as though he were sleeping outdoors in a
light wind.
Once every hour, a teacher would
reappear in the Hall to check that everything was quiet. Around three in the
morning, when many students had finally fallen asleep, Professor Dumbledore
came in. Harry watched him looking around for Percy, who had been prowling
between the sleeping bags, telling people off for talking. Percy was only a
short way away from Harry, Ron, and Hermione, who quickly pretended to be
asleep as Dumbledore's footsteps drew nearer.
"Any sign of him, Professor?"
asked Percy in a whisper.
"No. All well here?"
"Everything under control,
sir."
"Good. There's no point
moving them all now. I've found a temporary guardian for the Gryffindor
portrait hole. You'll be able to move them back in tomorrow."
"And the Fat Lady,
sir?"
"Hiding in a map of
Argyllshire on the second floor. Apparently she refused to let Black in without
the password, so he attacked. She's still very distressed, but once she's
calmed down, I'll have Mr Filch restore her."
Harry heard the door of the hall
creak open again, and more footsteps.
"Headmaster?" It was
Snape. Harry kept quite still, listening hard. "The whole of the third
floor has been searched. He's not there. And Filch has done the dungeons;
nothing there either."
"What about the Astronomy
tower? Professor Trelawney's room? The Owlery?"
"All searched..."
"Very well, Severus. I
didn't really expect Black to linger."
"Have you any theory as to
how he got in, Professor?" asked Snape.
Harry raised his head very
slightly off his arms to free his other ear.
"Many, Severus, each of
them as unlikely as the next."
Harry opened his eyes a fraction
and squinted up to where they stood; Dumbledore's back was to him, but he could
see Percy's face, rapt with attention, and Snape's profile, which looked angry.
"You remember the
conversation we had, Headmaster, just before - ah - the start of term?"
said Snape, who was barely opening his lips, as though trying to block Percy
out of the conversation.
"I do, Severus," said
Dumbledore, and there was something like warning in his voice.
"It seems - almost
impossible - that Black could have entered the school without inside help. I
did express my concerns when you appointed -"
"I do not believe a single
person inside this castle would have helped Black enter it," said
Dumbledore, and his tone made it so clear that the subject was closed that
Snape didn't reply. "I must go down to the Dementors," said
Dumbledore. "I said I would inform them when our search was
complete."
"Didn't they want to help,
sir?" said Percy.
"Oh yes," said
Dumbledore coldly. "But I'm afraid no Dementor will cross the threshold of
this castle while I am Headmaster."
Percy looked slightly abashed.
Dumbledore left the hall, walking quickly and quietly. Snape stood for a
moment, watching the headmaster with an expression of deep resentment on his
face; then he too left.
Harry glanced sideways at Ron
and Hermione. Both of them had their eyes open too, reflecting the starry
ceiling.
"What was all that
about?" Ron mouthed.
The school talked of nothing but
Sirius Black for the next few days. The theories about how he had entered the
castle became wilder and wilder; Hannah Abbott, from Hufflepuff, spent much of
their next Herbology class telling anyone who'd listen that Black could turn
into a flowering shrub.
The Fat Lady's ripped canvas had
been taken off the wall and replaced with the portrait of Sir Cadogan and his
fat gray pony. Nobody was very happy about this. Sir Cadogan spent half his
time challenging people to duels, and the rest thinking up ridiculously
complicated passwords, which he changed at least twice a day.
"He's a complete
lunatic," said Seamus Finnigan angrily to Percy. "Can't we get anyone
else?"
"None of the other pictures
wanted the job," said Percy. "Frightened of what happened to the Fat
Lady. Sir Cadogan was the only one brave enough to volunteer."
Sir Cadogan, however, was the
least of Harry's worries. He was now being closely watched. Teachers found
excuses to walk along corridors with him, and Percy Weasley (acting, Harry
suspected, on his mother's orders) was tailing him everywhere like an extremely
pompous guard dog. To cap it all, Professor McGonagall summoned Harry into her
office, with such a somber expression on her face Harry thought someone must
have died.
"There's no point hiding it
from you any longer, Potter," she said in a very serious voice. "I
know this will come as a shock to you, but Sirius Black -"
"I know he's after
me," said Harry wearily. "I heard Ron's dad telling his mum. Mr.
Weasley works for the Ministry of Magic."
Professor McGonagall seemed very
taken aback. She stared at Harry for a moment or two, then said, "I see!
Well, in that case, Potter, you'll understand why I don't think it's a good
idea for you to be practicing Quidditch in the evenings. Out on the field with
only your team members, it's very exposed, Potter -"
"We've got our first match
on Saturday!" said Harry, outraged. "I've got to train,
Professor!"
Professor McGonagall considered
him intently. Harry knew she was deeply interested in the Gryffindor team's
prospects; it had been she, after all, who'd suggested him as Seeker in the
first Place. He waited, holding his breath.
"Hmm..."Professor
McGonagall stood up and stared out of the window at the Quidditch field, just
visible through the rain. "Well...goodness knows, I'd like to see us win the
Cup at last...but all the same, Potter...I'd be happier if a teacher were present.
I'll ask Madam Hooch to oversee your training sessions."
The weather worsened steadily as
the first Quidditch match drew nearer. Undaunted, the Gryffindor team was
training harder than ever under the eye of Madam Hooch. Then, at their final
training session before Saturday's match, Oliver Wood gave his team some
unwelcome news.
"We're not playing
Slytherin!" he told them, looking very angry. "Flint's just been to
see me. We're playing Hufflepuff instead."
"Why?" chorused the
rest of the team.
"Flint's excuse is that
their Seeker's arm's still injured," said Wood, grinding his teeth
furiously. "But it's obvious why they're doing it. Don't want to play in
this weather. Think it'll damage their chances..."
There had been strong winds and
heavy rain all day, and as Wood spoke, they heard a distant rumble of thunder.
"There's nothing wrong with
Malfoy's arm!" said Harry furiously. "He's faking it!"
"I know that, but we can't
prove it," said Wood bitterly, "And we've been practicing all those
moves assuming we're playing Slytherin, and instead it's Hufflepuff, and their
style's quite different. They've got a new Captain and Seeker, Cedric Diggory
-"
Angelina, Alicia, and Katie
suddenly giggled.
"What?" said Wood,
frowning at this lighthearted behavior.
"He's that tall,
good-looking one, isn't he?" said Angelina.
"Strong and silent,"
said Katie, and they started to giggle again.
"He's only silent because
he's too thick to string two words together," said Fred impatiently.
"I don't know why you're worried, Oliver, Hufflepuff is a pushover. Last
time we played them, Harry caught the Snitch in about five minutes,
remember?"
"We were playing in
completely different conditions!" Wood shouted, his eyes bulging slightly.
"Diggory's put a very strong side together! He's an excellent Seeker! I
was afraid you'd take it like this! We mustn't relax! We must keep our focus!
Slytherin is trying to wrong-foot us! We must win!"
"Oliver, calm down!"
said Fred, looking slightly alarmed. "We're taking Hufflepuff very
seriously. Seriously."
The day before the match, the
winds reached howling point and the rain fell harder than ever. It was so dark
inside the corridors and classrooms that extra torches and lanterns were lit.
The Slytherin team was looking very smug indeed, and none more so than Malfoy.
"Ah, if only my arm was
feeling a bit better!" he sighed as the gale outside pounded the windows.
Harry had no room in his head to
worry about anything except the match tomorrow. Oliver Wood kept hurrying up to
him between classes and giving him tips. The third time this happened, Wood
talked for so long that Harry suddenly realized he was ten minutes late for Defense
Against the Dark Arts, and set off at a run with Wood shouting after him,
"Diggory's got a very fast swerve, Harry, so you might want to try looping
him -"
Harry skidded to a halt outside
the Defense Against the Dark Arts classroom, pulled the door open, and dashed
inside.
"Sorry I'm late, Professor
Lupin. I -"
But it wasn't Professor Lupin
who looked up at him from the teacher's desk; it was Snape.
"This lesson began ten
minutes ago, Potter, so I think we'll make it ten points from Gryffindor. Sit
down."
But Harry didn't move.
"Where's Professor
Lupin?" he said.
"He says he is feeling too
ill to teach today," said Snape with a twisted smile. "I believe I
told you to sit down?"
But Harry stayed where he was.
"What's wrong with
him?"
Snape's black eyes glittered.
"Nothing
life-threatening," he said, looking as though he wished it were.
"Five more points from Gryffindor, and if I have to ask you to sit down
again, it will be fifty."
Harry walked slowly to his seat
and sat down. Snape looked around at the class.
"As I was saying before
Potter interrupted, Professor Lupin has not left any record of the topics you
have covered so far -"
"Please, sir, we've done
Boggarts, Red Caps, Kappas, and Grindylows," said Hermione quickly,
"and we're just about to start -"
"Be quiet," said Snape
coldly. "I did not ask for information. I was merely commenting on
Professor Lupin's lack of organization."
"He's the best Defense
Against the Dark Arts teacher we've ever had," said Dean Thomas boldly,
and there was a murmur of agreement from the rest of the class. Snape looked
more menacing than ever.
"You are easily satisfied.
Lupin is hardly overtaxing you - I would expect first years to be able to deal
with Red Caps and Grindylows. Today we shall discuss -"
Harry watched him flick through
the textbook, to the very back chapter, which he must know they hadn't covered.
"- werewolves," said
Snape.
"But, sir," said
Hermione, seemingly unable to restrain herself, "we're not supposed to do
werewolves yet, we're due to start Hinkypunks -"
"Miss Granger," said
Snape in a voice of deadly calm, "I was under the impression that I am
teaching this lesson, not you. And I am telling you all to turn to page
394." He glanced around again. "All of you! Now!" With many bitter sidelong
looks and some sullen muttering, the class opened their books.
"Which of you can tell me
how we distinguish between the werewolf and the true wolf?" said Snape.
Everyone sat in motionless
silence; everyone except Hermione, whose hand, as it so often did, had shot
straight into the air.
"Anyone?" Snape said, ignoring Hermione. His
twisted smile was back. "Are you telling me that Professor Lupin hasn't
even taught you the basic distinction between -"
"We told you," said
Parvati suddenly, "we haven't got as far as werewolves yet, we're still on
-"
"Silence!"
snarled Snape. "Well, well, well, I never thought I'd meet a third-year
class who wouldn't even recognize a werewolf when they saw one. I shall make a
point of informing Professor Dumbledore how very behind you all are..."
"Please, sir," said
Hermione, whose hand was still in the air, "the werewolf differs from the
true wolf in several small ways. The snout of the werewolf -"
"That is the second time
you have spoken out of turn, Miss Granger," said Snape coolly. "Five
more points from Gryffindor for being an insufferable know-it-all."
Hermione went very red, put down
her hand, and stared at the floor with her eyes full of tears. It was a mark of
how much the class loathed Snape that they were all glaring at him, because every
one of them had called Hermione a know-it-all at least once, and Ron, who told
Hermione she was a know-it-all at least twice a week, said loudly, "You
asked us a question and she knows the answer! Why ask if you don't want to be
told?"
The class knew instantly he'd
gone too far. Snape advanced on Ron slowly, and the room held its breath.
"Detention, Weasley,"
Snape said silkily, his face very close to Ron's. "And if I ever hear you
criticize the way I teach a class again, you will be very sorry indeed."
No one made a sound throughout
the rest of the lesson. They sat and made notes on werewolves from the
textbook, while Snape prowled up and down the rows of desks, examining the work
they had been doing with Professor Lupin.
"Very poorly explained...That
is incorrect, the Kappa is more commonly found in Mongolia...Professor Lupin gave
this eight out of ten? I wouldn't have given it three..."
When the bell rang at last,
Snape held them back.
"You will each write an
essay, to be handed in to me, on the ways you recognize and kill werewolves. I
want two rolls of parchment on the subject, and I want them by Monday morning.
It is time somebody took this class in hand. Weasley, stay behind, we need to
arrange your detention."
Harry and Hermione left the room
with the rest of the class, who waited until they were well out of earshot,
then burst into a furious tirade about Snape.
"Snape's never been like
this with any of our other Defense Against the Dark Arts teachers, even if he
did want the job," Harry said to Hermione. "Why's he got it in for
Lupin? D'you think this is all because of the Boggart?"
"I don't know," said
Hermione pensively. "But I really hope Professor Lupin gets better
soon..."
Ron caught up with them five
minutes later, in a towering rage.
"D'you know what that
-" (he called Snape something that made Hermione say "Ron!")
"- is making me do? I've got to scrub out the bedpans in the hospital
wing. Without magic!" He was breathing deeply, his fists clenched.
"Why couldn't Black have hidden in Snape's office, eh? He could have
finished him off for us!"
Harry woke extremely early the
next morning; so early that it was still dark. For a moment he thought the
roaring of the wind had woken him. Then he felt a cold breeze on the back of
his neck and sat bolt upright - Peeves the Poltergeist had been floating next
to him, blowing hard in his ear.
"What did you do that
for?" said Harry furiously. Peeves puffed out his cheeks, blew hard, and
zoomed backward out of the room, cackling.
Harry fumbled for his alarm
clock and looked at it. It was half past four. Cursing Peeves, he rolled over
and tried to get back to sleep, but it was very difficult, now that he was
awake, to ignore the sounds of the thunder rumbling overhead, the pounding of
the wind against the castle walls, and the distant creaking of the trees in the
Forbidden Forest. In a few hours he would be out on the Quidditch field,
battling through that gale. Finally, he gave up any thought of more sleep, got
up, dressed, picked up his Nimbus Two Thousand, and walked quietly out of the
dormitory.
As Harry opened the door,
something brushed against his leg. He bent down just in time to grab
Crookshanks by the end of his bushy tail and drag him outside.
"You know, I reckon Ron was
right about you," Harry told Crookshanks suspiciously. "There are
plenty of mice around this place - go and chase them. Go on," he added,
nudging Crookshanks down the spiral staircase with his foot. "Leave
Scabbers alone."
The noise of the storm was even
louder in the common room. Harry knew better than to think the match would be
canceled; Quidditch matches weren't called off for trifles like thunderstorms.
Nevertheless, he was starting to feel very apprehensive. Wood had pointed out
Cedric Diggory to him in the corridor; Diggory was a fifth year and a lot
bigger than Harry. Seekers were usually light and speedy, but Diggory's weight
would be an advantage in this weather because he was less likely to be blown
off course.
Harry whiled away the hours
until dawn in front of the fire, getting up every now and then to stop
Crookshanks from sneaking up the boys' staircase again. At long last Harry
thought it must be time for breakfast, so he headed through the portrait hole
alone.
"Stand and fight, you mangy
cur!" yelled Sir Cadogan.
"Oh, shut up," Harry
yawned.
He revived a bit over a large
bowl of porridge, and by the time he'd started on toast, the rest of the team
had turned up.
"It's going to be a tough
one," said Wood, who wasn't eating anything.
"Stop worrying,
Oliver," said Alicia soothingly, "we don't mind a bit of rain."
But it was considerably more
than a bit of rain. Such was the popularity of Quidditch that the whole school
turned out to watch the match as usual, but they ran down the lawns toward the
Quidditch field, heads bowed against the ferocious wind, umbrellas being
whipped out of their hands as they went. just before he entered the locker
room, Harry saw Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle, laughing and pointing at him from
under an enormous umbrella on their way to the stadium.
The team changed into their
scarlet robes and waited for Wood's usual pre-match pep talk, but it didn't
come. He tried to speak several times, made an odd gulping noise, then shook
his head hopelessly and beckoned them to follow him.
The wind was so strong that they
staggered sideways as they walked out onto the field. If the crowd was
cheering, they couldn't hear it over the fresh rolls of thunder. Rain was
splattering over Harry's glasses. How on earth was he going to see the Snitch
in this?
The Hufflepuffs were approaching
from the opposite side of the field, wearing canary-yellow robes. The Captains
walked up to each other and shook hands; Diggory smiled at Wood but Wood now
looked as though he had lockjaw and merely nodded. Harry saw Madam Hooch's
mouth form the words, "Mount Your brooms." He pulled his right foot
out of the mud with a squelch and swung it over his Nimbus Two Thousand. Madam
Hooch put her whistle to her lips and gave it a blast that sounded shrill and
distant - they were off.
Harry rose fast, but his Nimbus
was swerving slightly with the wind. He held it as steady as he could and
turned, squinting into the rain.
Within five minutes Harry was
soaked to his skin and frozen, hardly able to see his teammates, let alone the
tiny Snitch. He flew backward and forward across the field past blurred red and
yellow shapes, with no idea of what was happening in the rest of the game. He
couldn't hear the commentary over the wind. The crowd was hidden beneath a sea
of cloaks and battered umbrellas. Twice Harry came very close to being unseated
by a Bludger; his vision was so clouded by the rain on his glasses he hadn't
seen them coming.
He lost track of time. It was
getting harder and harder to hold his broom straight. The sky was getting
darker, as though night had decided to come early. Twice Harry nearly hit
another player, without knowing whether it was a teammate or opponent; everyone
was now so wet, and the rain so thick, he could hardly tell them apart...
With the first flash of
lightning came the sound of Madam Hooch's whistle; Harry could just see the
outline of Wood through the thick rain, gesturing him to the ground. The whole
team splashed down into the mud.
"I called for
time-out!" Wood roared at his team. "Come on, under here -"
They huddled at the edge of the
field under a large umbrella; Harry took off his glasses and wiped them
hurriedly on his robes.
"What's the score?"
"We're fifty points
up," said Wood, "but unless we get the Snitch soon, we'll be playing
into the night."
"I've got no chance with
these on," Harry said exasperatedly, waving his glasses.
At that very moment, Hermione
appeared at his shoulder; she was holding her cloak over her head and was,
inexplicably, beaming.
"I've had an idea, Harry!
Give me your glasses, quick!"
He handed them to her, and as
the team watched in amazement, Hermione tapped them with her wand and said,
"Impervius!" "There!" she said,
handing them back to Harry. "They'll repel water!"
Wood looked as though he could
have kissed her.
"Brilliant!" he called
hoarsely after her as she disappeared into the crowd. "Okay, team, let's
go for it!"
Hermione's spell had done the
trick. Harry was still numb with cold, still wetter than he'd ever been in his
life, but he could see. Full of fresh determination, he urged his broom through
the turbulent air, staring in every direction for the Snitch, avoiding a
Bludger, ducking beneath Diggory, who was streaking in the opposite direction...
There was another clap of
thunder, followed immediately by forked lightning. This was getting more and more
dangerous. Harry needed to get the Snitch quickly -
He turned, intending to head
back toward the middle of the field, but at that moment, another flash of
lightning illuminated the stands, and Harry saw something that distracted him
completely, the silhouette of an enormous shaggy black dog, clearly imprinted
against the sky, motionless in the topmost, empty row of seats.
Harry's numb hands slipped on
the broom handle and his Nimbus dropped a few feet. Shaking his sodden bangs
out of his eyes, he squinted back into the stands. The dog had vanished.
"Harry!" came Wood's
anguished yell from the Gryffindor goal posts. "Harry, behind you!"
Harry looked wildly around.
Cedric Diggory was pelting up the field, and a tiny speck of gold was
shimmering in the rain-filled air between them...
With a jolt of panic, Harry
threw himself flat to the broom handle and zoomed toward the Snitch.
"Come on!" he growled
at his Nimbus as the rain whipped his face. "Faster!" But something odd was
happening. An eerie silence was falling across the stadium. The wind, though as
strong as ever, was forgetting to roar. It was as though someone had turned off
the sound, as though Harry had gone suddenly deaf - what was going on?
And then a horribly familiar
wave of cold swept over him, inside him, just as he became aware of something
moving on the field below...
Before he'd had time to think,
Harry had taken his eyes off the Snitch and looked down.
At least a hundred Dementors,
their hidden faces pointing up at him, were standing beneath him. It was as
though freezing water were rising in his chest, cutting at his insides. And
then he heard it again...Someone was screaming, screaming inside his head...a
woman...
"Not Harry, not Harry,
please not Harry!"
"Stand aside, you silly
girl...stand aside, now..."
"Not Harry, please no, take
me, kill me instead -"
Numbing, swirling white mist was
filling Harry's brain...What was he doing? Why was he flying? He needed to help
her...She was going to die...She was going to be murdered...
He was falling, falling through
the icy mist.
"Not Harry! Please...have
mercy...have mercy..." A shrill voice was laughing,
the woman was screaming, and Harry knew no more.
"Lucky the ground was so
soft."
"I thought he was dead for
sure."
"But he didn't even break
his glasses."
Harry could hear the voices
whispering, but they made no sense whatsoever. He didn't have a clue where he
was, or how he'd got there, or what he'd been doing before he got there. All he
knew was that every inch of him was aching as though it had been beaten.
"That was the scariest
thing I've ever seen in my life."
Scariest...the scariest
thing...hooded black figures...cold...screaming...
Harry's eyes snapped open. He
was lying in the hospital wing. The Gryffindor Quidditch team, spattered with
mud from head to foot, was gathered around his bed. Ron and Hermione were also
there, looking as though they'd just climbed out of a swimming pool.
"Harry!" said Fred,
who looked extremely white underneath, the mud. "How're you feeling?"
It was as though Harry's memory
was on fast forward. The lightning...the Grim...the Snitch...and the Dementors...
"What happened?" he
said, sitting up so suddenly they all gasped.
"You fell off," said
Fred. "Must've been - what - fifty feet?"
"We thought you'd
died," said Alicia, who was shaking.
Hermione made a small, squeaky
noise. Her eyes were extremely bloodshot.
"But the match," said
Harry. "What happened? Are we doing a replay?"
No one said anything. The
horrible truth sank into Harry like a stone.
"We didn't - lose?" "Diggory got the
Snitch," said George. "Just after you fell. He didn't realize what
had happened. When he looked back and saw you on the ground, he tried to call
it off. Wanted a rematch. But they won fair and square...even Wood admits
it."
"Where is Wood?" said
Harry, suddenly realizing he wasn't there.
"Still in the
showers," said Fred. "We think he's trying to drown himself."
Harry put his face to his knees,
his hands gripping his hair. Fred grabbed his shoulder and shook it roughly.
"C'mon, Harry, you've never
missed the Snitch before."
"There had to be one time
you didn't get it," said George.
"It's not over yet,"
said Fred. "We lost by a hundred points."
"Right? So if Hufflepuff
loses to Ravenclaw and we beat Ravenclaw and Slytherin..."
"Hufflepuff'll have to lose
by at least two hundred points," said George.
"But if they beat
Ravenclaw..."
"No way, Ravenclaw is too
good. But if Slytherin loses against Hufflepuff..."
"It all depends on the
points - a margin of a hundred either way -"
Harry lay there, not saying a
word. They had lost...for the first time ever, he had lost a Quidditch match.
After ten minutes or so, Madam
Pomfrey came over to tell the team to leave him in peace.
"We'll come and see you
later," Fred told him. "Don't beat yourself up. Harry, you're still
the best Seeker we've ever had."
The team trooped out, trailing
mud behind them. Madam Pomfrey shut the door behind them, looking disapproving.
Ron and Hermione moved nearer to Harry's bed.
"Dumbledore was really
angry," Hermione said in a quaking voice. "I've never seen him like
that before. He ran onto the field as you fell, waved his wand, and you sort of
slowed down before you hit the ground. Then he whirled his wand at the
Dementors. Shot silver stuff at them. They left the stadium right away...He was
furious they'd come onto the grounds. We heard him -"
"Then he magicked you onto
a stretcher," said Ron. "And walked up to school with you floating on
it. Everyone thought you were..."
His voice faded, but Harry
hardly noticed. He was thinking about what the Dementors had done to him...about
the screaming voice. He looked up and saw Ron and Hermione looking at him so
anxiously that he quickly cast around for something matter-of-fact to say.
"Did someone get my
Nimbus?"
Ron and Hermione looked quickly
at each other.
"Er -"
"What?" said Harry,
looking from one to the other.
"Well...when you fell off, it
got blown away," said Hermione hesitantly.
"And?"
"And it hit - it hit - oh,
Harry - it hit the Whomping Willow."
Harry's insides lurched. The
Whomping Willow was a very violent tree that stood alone in the middle of the
grounds.
"And?" he said,
dreading the answer.
"Well, you know the
Whomping Willow," said Ron. "It - it doesn't like being hit."
"Professor Flitwick brought
it back just before you came around," said Hermione in a very small voice.
Slowly, she reached down for a
bag at her feet, turned it upside down, and tipped a dozen bits of splintered
wood and twig onto the bed, the only remains of Harry's faithful, finally
beaten broomstick. CHAPTER TEN THE MARAUDER'S MAP
Madam Pomfrey insisted on
keeping Harry in the hospital wing for the rest of the weekend. He didn't argue
or complain, but he wouldn't let her throw away the shattered remnants of his
Nimbus Two Thousand. He knew he was being stupid, knew that the Nimbus was
beyond repair, but Harry couldn't help it; he felt as though he'd lost one of
his best friends. He had a stream of visitors,
all intent on cheering him up. Hagrid sent him a bunch of earwiggy flowers that
looked like yellow cabbages, and Ginny Weasley, blushing furiously, turned up
with a get-well card she had made herself, which sang shrilly unless Harry kept
it shut under his bowl of fruit. The Gryffindor team visited again on Sunday
morning, this time accompanied by Wood, who told Harry (in a hollow, dead sort
of voice) that he didn't blame him in the slightest. Ron and Hermione left
Harry's bedside only at night. But nothing anyone said or did could make Harry
feel any better, because they knew only half of what was troubling him.
He hadn't told anyone about the
Grim, not even Ron and Hermione, because he knew Ron would panic and Hermione
would scoff. The fact remained, however, that it had now appeared twice, and
both appearances had been followed by near-fatal accidents; the first time, he
had nearly been run over by the Knight Bus; the second, fallen fifty feet from
his broomstick. Was the Grim going to haunt him until he actually died? Was he
going to spend the rest of his life looking over his shoulder for the beast?
And then there were the
Dementors. Harry felt sick and humiliated every time he thought of them.
Everyone said the Dementors were horrible, but no one else collapsed every time
they went near one. No one else heard echoes in their head of their dying
parents.
Because Harry knew who that
screaming voice belonged to now. He had heard her words, heard them over and
over again during the night hours in the hospital wing while he lay awake,
staring at the strips of moonlight on the ceiling. When the Dementors
approached him, he heard the last moments of his mother's life, her attempts to
protect him, Harry, from Lord Voldemort, and Voldemort's laughter before he
murdered her...Harry dozed fitfully, sinking into dreams full of clammy, rotted
hands and petrified pleading, jerking awake to dwell again on his mother's
voice.
*
It was a relief to return to the
noise and bustle of the main school on Monday, where he was forced to think
about other things, even if he had to endure Draco Malfoy's taunting. Malfoy
was almost beside himself with glee at Gryffindor's defeat. He had finally taken
off his bandages, and celebrated having the full use of both arms again by
doing spirited imitations of Harry falling off his broom. Malfoy spent much of
their next Potions class doing Dementor imitations across the dungeon; Ron
finally cracked and flung a large, slippery crocodile heart at Malfoy, which
hit him in the face and caused Snape to take fifty points from Gryffindor.
"If Snape's teaching
Defense Against the Dark Arts again, I'm skiving off," said Ron as they
headed toward Lupin's classroom after lunch. "Check who's in there,
Hermione."
Hermione peered around the
classroom door.
"It's okay!"
Professor Lupin was back at
work. It certainly looked as though he had been ill. His old robes were hanging
more loosely on him and there were dark shadows beneath his eyes; nevertheless,
he smiled at the class as they took their seats, and they burst at once into an
explosion of complaints about Snape's behavior while Lupin had been ill.
"It's not fair, he was only
filling in, why should he give us homework?"
"We don't know anything
about werewolves -"
"- two rolls of
parchment!"
"Did you tell Professor
Snape we haven't covered them yet?" Lupin asked, frowning slightly.
The babble broke out again.
"Yes, but he said we were
really behind -"
"- he wouldn't listen
-"
"- two rolls of
parchment!" Professor Lupin smiled at
the look of indignation on every face.
"Don't worry. I'll speak to
Professor Snape. You don't have to do the essay."
"Oh no," said
Hermione, looking very disappointed. "I've already finished it!" They had a very enjoyable
lesson. Professor Lupin had brought along a glass box containing a Hinkypunk, a
little one-legged creature who looked as though he were made of wisps of smoke,
rather frail and harmless looking.
"Lures travelers into
bogs," said Professor Lupin as they took notes. "You notice the
lantern dangling from his hand? Hops ahead - people follow the light - then
-"
The Hinkypunk made a horrible
squelching noise against the glass.
When the bell rang, everyone
gathered up their things and headed for the door, Harry among them, but -
"Wait a moment,
Harry," Lupin called. "I'd like a word."
Harry doubled back and watched
Professor Lupin covering the Hinkypunk's box with a cloth.
"I heard about the
match," said Lupin, turning back to his desk and starting to pile books
into his briefcase, "and I'm sorry about your broomstick. Is there any
chance of fixing it?"
"No," said Harry.
"The tree smashed it to bits."
Lupin sighed.
"They planted the Whomping
Willow the same year that I arrived at Hogwarts. People used to play a game,
trying to get near enough to touch the trunk. In the end, a boy called Davey
Gudgeon nearly lost an eye, and we were forbidden to go near it. No broomstick
would have a chance."
"Did you hear about the
Dementors too?" said Harry with difficulty.
Lupin looked at him quickly.
"Yes, I did. I don't think
any of us have seen Professor Dumbledore that angry. They have been growing
restless for some time...furious at his refusal to let them inside the grounds...I
suppose they were the reason you fell?"
"Yes," said Harry. He
hesitated, and then the question he had to ask burst from him before he could
stop himself. "Why? Why do they affect me like that? Am I just
-?"
"It has nothing to do with
weakness," said Professor Lupin sharply, as though he had read Harry's
mind. "The Dementors affect you worse than the others because there are
horrors in your past that the others don't have."
A ray of wintry sunlight fell
across the classroom, illuminating Lupin's gray hairs and the lines on his
young face.
"Dementors are among the
foulest creatures that walk this earth. They infest the darkest, filthiest
places, they glory in decay and despair, they drain peace, hope, and happiness
out of the air around them. Even Muggles feel their presence, though they can't
see them. Get too near a Dementor and every good feeling, every happy memory
will be sucked out of you. If it can, the Dementor will feed on you long enough
to reduce you to something like itself - soul-less and evil. You'll be left
with nothing but the worst experiences of your life. And the worst that
happened to you, Harry, is enough to make anyone fall off their broom. You have
nothing to feel ashamed of."
"When they get near me
-" Harry stared at Lupin's desk, his throat tight. "I can hear Voldemort
murdering my mum."
Lupin made a sudden motion with
his arm as though to grip Harry's shoulder, but thought better of it. There was
a moment's silence, then -
"Why did they have to come
to the match?" said Harry bitterly.
"They're getting
hungry," said Lupin coolly, shutting his briefcase with a snap.
"Dumbledore won't let them into the school, so their supply of human prey
has dried up...I don't think they could resist the large crowd around the
Quidditch field. All that excitement...emotions running high...it was their idea of
a feast."
"Azkaban must be
terrible," Harry muttered. Lupin nodded grimly.
"The fortress is set on a
tiny island, way out to sea, but they don't need walls and water to keep the
prisoners in, not when they're all trapped inside their own heads, incapable of
a single cheery thought. Most of them go mad within weeks."
"But Sirius Black escaped
from them," Harry said slowly. "He got away..."
Lupin's briefcase slipped from
the desk; he had to stoop quickly to catch it.
"Yes," he said, straightening
up, "Black must have found a way to fight them. I wouldn't have believed
it possible...Dementors are supposed to drain a wizard of his powers if he is
left with them too long..."
"You made that
Dementor on the train back off," said Harry suddenly. "There are - certain
defenses one can use," said Lupin. "But there was only one Dementor
on the train. The more there are, the more difficult it becomes to
resist."
"What defenses?" said
Harry at once. "Can you teach me?"
"I don't pretend to be an
expert at fighting Dementors, Harry - quite the contrary..."
"But if the Dementors come
to another Quidditch match, I need to be able to fight them -"
Lupin looked into Harry's
determined face, hesitated, then said, "Well...all right. I'll try and help.
But it'll have to wait until next term, I'm afraid. I have a lot to do before
the holidays. I chose a very inconvenient time to fall ill."
*
What with the promise of
anti-Dementor lessons from Lupin, the thought that he might never have to hear
his mother's death again, and the fact that Ravenclaw flattened Hufflepuff in
their Quidditch match at the end of November, Harry's mood took a definite
upturn. Gryffindor were not out of the running after all, although they could
not afford to lose another match. Wood became repossessed of his manic energy,
and worked his team as hard as ever in the chilly haze of rain that persisted
into December. Harry saw no hint of a Dementor within the grounds. Dumbledore's
anger seemed to be keeping them at their stations at the entrances.
Two weeks before the end of the
term, the sky lightened suddenly to a dazzling, opaline white and the muddy
grounds were revealed one morning covered in glittering frost. Inside the
castle, there was a buzz of Christmas in the air. Professor Flitwick, the Charms
teacher, had already decorated his classroom with shimmering lights that turned
out to be real, fluttering fairies. The students were all happily discussing
their plans for the holidays. Both Ron and Hermione had decided to remain at
Hogwarts, and though Ron said it was because he couldn't stand two weeks with
Percy, and Hermione insisted she needed to use the library, Harry wasn't
fooled; they were doing it to keep him company, and he was very grateful.
To everyone's delight except
Harry's, there was to be another Hogsmeade trip on the very last weekend of the
term.
"We can do all our
Christmas shopping there!" said Hermione. "Mum and Dad would really
love those Toothflossing Stringmints from Honeydukes!"
Resigned to the fact that he
would be the only third year staying behind again, Harry borrowed a copy of Which
Broomstick from Wood, and decided to spend the day reading up on the
different makes. He had been riding one of the school brooms at team practice,
an ancient Shooting Star, which was very slow and jerky; he definitely needed a
new broom of his own.
On the Saturday morning of the
Hogsmeade trip, Harry bid good-bye to Ron and Hermione, who were wrapped in
cloaks and scarves, then turned up the marble staircase alone, and headed back
toward Gryffindor Tower. Snow had started to fall outside the windows, and the
castle was very still and quiet.
"Psst - Harry!"
He turned, halfway along the
third-floor corridor, to see Fred and George peering out at him from behind a
statue of a humpbacked, one-eyed witch.
"What are you doing?"
said Harry curiously. "How come you're not going to Hogsmeade?"
"We've come to give you a
bit of festive cheer before we go," said Fred, with a mysterious wink.
"Come in here..."
He nodded toward an empty
classroom to the left of the one-eyed statue. Harry followed Fred and George
inside. George closed the door quietly and then turned, beaming, to look at
Harry.
"Early Christmas present
for you, Harry," he said.
Fred pulled something from
inside his cloak with a flourish and laid it on one of the desks. It was a
large, square, very worn piece of parchment with nothing written on it. Harry,
suspecting one of Fred and George's jokes, stared at it.
"What's that supposed to
be?"
"This, Harry, is the secret
of our success," said George, patting the parchment fondly.
"It's a wrench, giving it
to you," said Fred, "but we decided last night, your need's greater
than ours."
"Anyway, we know it by
heart," said George. "We bequeath it to you. We don't really need it
anymore."
"And what do I need with a
bit of old parchment?" said Harry.
"A bit of old
parchment!" said Fred, closing his eyes with a grimace as though Harry had
mortally offended him. "Explain, George."
"Well...when we were in our
first year, Harry - young, carefree, and innocent -"
Harry snorted. He doubted
whether Fred and George had ever been innocent.
"- well, more innocent than
we are now - we got into a spot of bother with Filch."
"We let off a Dungbomb in
the corridor and it upset him for some reason -"
"So he hauled us off to his
office and started threatening us with the usual -"
"- detention -"
"- disembowelment -"
"- and we couldn't help
noticing a drawer in one of his filing cabinets marked Confiscated and
Highly Dangerous." "Don't tell me -"
said Harry, starting to grin.
"Well, what would you've
done?" said Fred. "George caused a diversion by dropping another
Dungbomb, I whipped the drawer open, and grabbed - this." "It's not as bad as it
sounds, you know," said George. "We don't reckon Filch ever found out
how to work it. He probably suspected what it was, though, or he wouldn't have
confiscated it."
"And you know how to work
it?"
"Oh yes," said Fred,
smirking. "This little beauty's taught us more than all the teachers in
this school."
"You're winding me
up," said Harry, looking at the ragged old bit of parchment.
"Oh, are we?" said
George.
He took out his wand, touched
the parchment lightly, and said, "I solemnly swear that I am up to no
good." And at once, thin ink lines
began to spread like a spider's web from the point that George's wand had
touched. They joined each other, they crisscrossed, they fanned into every
corner of the parchment; then words began to blossom across the top, great,
curly green words, that proclaimed: Messrs. Moony, Wormtail, Padfoot, and Prongs Purveyors of Aids to Magical Mischief-Makers are proud to present THE MARAUDER'S MAP
It was a map showing every
detail of the Hogwarts castle and grounds. But the truly remarkable thing were
the tiny ink dots moving around it, each labeled with a name in minuscule
writing. Astounded, Harry bent over it. A labeled dot in the top left corner
showed that Professor Dumbledore was pacing his study; the caretaker's cat,
Mrs. Norris, was prowling the second floor; and Peeves the Poltergeist was
currently bouncing around the trophy room. And as Harry's eyes traveled up and
down the familiar corridors, he noticed something else.
This map showed a set of
passages he had never entered. And many of them seemed to lead -
"Right into
Hogsmeade," said Fred, tracing one of them with his finger. "There
are seven in all. Now, Filch knows about these four" - he pointed them out
- "but we're sure we're the only ones who know about these. Don't
bother with the one behind the mirror on the fourth floor. We used it until
last winter, but it's caved in - completely blocked. And we don't reckon
anyone's ever used this one, because the Whomping Willow's planted right over
the entrance. But this one here, this one leads right into the cellar of
Honeydukes. We've used it loads of times. And as you might've noticed, the
entrance is right outside this room, through that one-eyed old crone's
hump."
"Moony, Wormtail, Padfoot,
and Prongs," sighed George, patting the heading of the map. "We owe
them so much."
"Noble men, working
tirelessly to help a new generation of lawbreakers," said Fred solemnly.
"Right," said George
briskly. "Don't forget to wipe it after you've used it -"
"- or anyone can read
it," Fred said warningly.
"Just tap it again and say,
"Mischief managed!" And it'll go blank."
"So, young Harry,"
said Fred, in an uncanny impersonation of Percy, "mind you behave
yourself."
"See you in
Honeydukes," said George, winking.
They left the room, both
smirking in a satisfied sort of way.
Harry stood there, gazing at the
miraculous map. He watched the tiny ink Mrs. Norris turn left and pause to
sniff at something on the floor. If Filch really didn't know...he wouldn't have
to pass the Dementors at all...
But even as he stood there,
flooded with excitement, something Harry had once heard Mr. Weasley say came
floating out of his memory.
Never trust anything that can
think for itself, if you can't see where it keeps its brain.
This map was one of those
dangerous magical objects Mr. Weasley had been warning against...Aids for
Magical Mischief Makers...but then, Harry reasoned, he only wanted to use it
to get into Hogsmeade, it wasn't as though he wanted to steal anything or
attack anyone...and Fred and George had been using it for years without anything
horrible happening...
Harry traced the secret passage
to Honeydukes with his finger.
Then, quite suddenly, as though
following orders, he rolled up the map, stuffed it inside his robes, and
hurried to the door of the classroom. He opened it a couple of inches. There
was no one outside. Very carefully, he edged out of the room and behind the
statue of the one-eyed witch.
What did he have to do? He
pulled out the map again and saw to his astonishment, that a new ink figure had
appeared upon it, labeled 'Harry Potter'. This figure was standing exactly
where the real Harry was standing, about halfway down the third-floor corridor.
Harry watched carefully. His little Ink self appeared to be tapping the witch
with his minute wand. Harry quickly took out his real wand and tapped the
statue. Nothing happened. He looked back at the map. The tiniest speech bubble
had appeared next to his figure. The word inside said, 'Dissendium.'
"Dissendium!" Harry
whispered, tapping the stone witch again. At once, the statue's hump
opened wide enough to admit a fairly thin person. Harry glanced quickly up and
down the corridor, then tucked the map away again, hoisted himself into the
hole headfirst, and pushed himself forward.
He slid a considerable way down
what felt like a stone slide, then landed on cold, damp earth. He stood up,
looking around. It was pitch dark. He held up his wand, muttered, "Lumos!"
and saw that he was in a very narrow, low, earthy passageway. He raised the
map, tapped it with the tip of his wand, and muttered, "Mischief
managed!" The map went blank at once. He folded it carefully, tucked it
inside his robes, then, heart beating fast, both excited and apprehensive, he
set off.
The passage twisted and turned,
more like the burrow of a giant rabbit than anything else. Harry hurried along
it, stumbling now and then on the uneven floor, holding his wand out in front
of him.
It took ages, but Harry had the
thought of Honeydukes to sustain him. After what felt like an hour, the passage
began to rise. Panting, Harry sped up, his face hot, his feet very cold.
Ten minutes later, he came to
the foot of some worn stone steps, which rose out of sight above him. Careful
not to make any noise, Harry began to climb. A hundred steps, two hundred
steps, he lost count as he climbed, watching his feet...then, without warning,
his head hit something hard.
It seemed to be a trapdoor.
Harry stood there, massaging the top of his head, listening. He couldn't hear
any sounds above him. Very slowly, he pushed the trapdoor open and peered over
the edge.
He was in a cellar, which was
full of wooden crates and boxes. Harry climbed out of the trapdoor and replaced
it - it blended so perfectly with the dusty floor that it was impossible to
tell it was there. Harry crept slowly toward the wooden staircase that led
upstairs. Now he could definitely hear voices, not to mention the tinkle of a
bell and the opening and shutting of a door.
Wondering what he ought to do,
he suddenly heard a door open much closer at hand; somebody was about to come
downstairs.
"And get another box of
Jelly Slugs, dear, they've nearly cleaned us out -" said a woman's voice.
A pair of feet was coming down
the staircase. Harry leapt behind an enormous crate and waited for the
footsteps to pass. He heard the man shifting boxes against the opposite wall.
He might not get another chance -
Quickly and silently, Harry
dodged out from his hiding place and climbed the stairs; looking back, he saw
an enormous backside and shiny bald head, buried in a box. Harry reached the
door at the top of the stairs, slipped through it, and found himself behind the
counter of Honeydukes - he ducked, crept sideways, and then straightened up.
Honeydukes was so crowded with
Hogwarts students that no one looked twice at Harry. He edged among them,
looking around, and suppressed a laugh as he imagined the look that would
spread over Dudley's piggy face if he could see where Harry was now.
There were shelves upon shelves
of the most succulent-looking sweets imaginable. Creamy chunks of nougat,
shimmering pink squares of coconut ice, fat, honey-colored toffees; hundreds of
different kinds of chocolate in neat rows; there was a large barrel of Every
Flavor Beans, and another of Fizzing Whizbees, the levitating sherbet balls
that Ron had mentioned; along yet another wall were 'Special Effects' - sweets:
Droobles Best Blowing Gum (which filled a room with bluebell-colored bubbles
that refused to pop for days), the strange, splintery Toothflossing
Stringmints, tiny black Pepper Imps ('breathe fire for your friends!'), Ice
Mice ('hear your teeth chatter and squeak!'), peppermint creams shaped like
toads ('hop realistically in the stomach!'), fragile sugar-spun quills, and
exploding bonbons.
Harry squeezed himself through a
crowd of sixth years and saw a sign hanging in the farthest corner of the shop
(UNUSUAL TASTES). Ron and Hermione were standing underneath it, examining a
tray of blood-flavored lollipops. Harry sneaked up behind them.
"Ugh, no, Harry won't want
one of those, they're for vampires, I expect," Hermione was saying.
"How about these?"
said Ron, shoving a jar of Cockroach Clusters under Hermione's nose.
"Definitely not," said
Harry.
Ron nearly dropped the jar.
"Harry!"
squealed Hermione. "What are you doing here? How - how did you -?" "Wow!" said Ron,
looking very impressed, "you've learned to Apparate!"
"'Course I haven't,"
said Harry. He dropped his voice so that none of the sixth years could hear him
and told them all about the Marauder's Map.
"How come Fred and George
never gave it to me!" said Ron, outraged. "I'm their
brother!" "But Harry isn't going
to keep it!" said Hermione, as though the idea were ludicrous. "He's
going to hand it in to Professor McGonagall, aren't you, Harry?"
"No, I'm not!" said
Harry.
"Are you mad?" said
Ron, goggling at Hermione. "Hand in something that good?"
"If I hand it in, I'll have
to say where I got it! Filch would know Fred and George had nicked it!"
"But what about Sirius
Black?" Hermione hissed. "He could be using one of the passages on
that map to get into the castle! The teachers have got to know!"
"He can't be getting in
through a passage," said Harry quickly. "There are seven secret
tunnels on the map, right? Fred and George reckon Filch already knows about
four of them. And of the other three - one of them's caved in, so no one can
get through it. One of them's got the Whomping Willow planted over the
entrance, so you can't get out of it. And the one I just came through - well -
it's really hard to see the entrance to it down in the cellar - so unless he
knew it was there -"
Harry hesitated. What if Black
did know the passage was there? Ron, however, cleared his throat significantly,
and pointed to a notice pasted on the inside of the sweetshop door.
BY ORDER OF THE MINISTRY OF
MAGIC
Customers are reminded that
until further notice, Dementors will be patrolling the streets of Hogsmeade
every night after sundown. This measure has been put in place for the safety of
Hogsmeade residents and will be lifted upon the recapture of Sirius Black. It
is therefore advisable that you complete your shopping well before nightfall.
Merry Christmas!
"See?" said Ron
quietly. "I'd like to see Black try and break into Honeydukes with
Dementors swarming all over the village. Anyway, Hermione, the Honeydukes
owners would hear a break-in, wouldn't they? They live over the shop!"
"Yes, but - but -"
Heroine seemed to be struggling to find another problem. "Look, Harry
still shouldn't be coming into Hogsmeade. He hasn't got a signed form! If
anyone finds out, he'll be in so much trouble! And it's not nightfall yet -
what if Sirius Black turns up today? Now?"
"He'd have a job spotting
Harry in this," said Ron, nodding through the mullioned windows at the
thick, swirling snow. "Come on, Hermione, it's Christmas. Harry deserves a
break."
Hermione bit her lip, looking
extremely worried.
"Are you going to report
me?" Harry asked her, grinning.
"Oh - of course not - but
honestly, Harry -"
"Seen the Fizzing Whizbees,
Harry?" said Ron, grabbing him and leading him over to their barrel.
"And the Jelly Slugs? And the Acid Pops? Fred gave me one of those when I
was seven - it burnt a hole right through my tongue. I remember Mum walloping
him with her broomstick." Ron stared broodingly into the Acid Pop box.
"Reckon Fred'd take a bite of Cockroach Cluster if I told him they were
peanuts?"
When Ron and Hermione had paid
for all their sweets, the three of them left Honeydukes for the blizzard
outside.
Hogsmeade looked like a
Christmas card; the little thatched cottages and shops were all covered in a
layer of crisp snow; there were holly wreaths on the doors and strings of
enchanted candles hanging in the trees.
Harry shivered; unlike the other
two, he didn't have his cloak. They headed up the street, heads bowed against
the wind, Ron and Hermione shouting through their scarves.
"That's the post office
-"
"Zonko's is up there
-"
"We could go up to the
Shrieking Shack -"
"Tell you what," said
Ron, his teeth chattering, "shall we go for a butterbeer in the Three
Broomsticks?"
Harry was more than willing; the
wind was fierce and his hands were freezing, so they crossed the road, and in a
few minutes were entering the tiny inn.
It was extremely crowded, noisy,
warm, and smoky. A curvy sort of woman with a pretty face was serving a bunch
of rowdy warlocks up at the bar.
"That's Madam
Rosmerta," said Ron. "I'll get the drinks, shall I?" he added,
going slightly red.
Harry and Hermione made their
way to the back of the room, where there was a small, vacant table between the
window and a handsome Christmas tree, which stood next to the fireplace. Ron
came back five minutes later, carrying three foaming tankards of hot
butterbeer.
"Merry Christmas!" he
said happily, raising his tankard.
Harry drank deeply. It was the
most delicious thing he'd ever tasted and seemed to heat every bit of him from
the inside.
A sudden breeze ruffled his
hair. The door of the Three Broomsticks had opened again. Harry looked over the
rim of his tankard and choked.
Professors McGonagall and
Flitwick had just entered the pub with a flurry of snowflakes, shortly followed
by Hagrid, who was deep in conversation with a portly man in a lime-green
bowler hat and a pinstriped cloak - Cornelius Fudge, Minister of Magic.
In an instant, Ron and Hermione
had both placed hands on the top of Harry's head and forced him off his stool
and under the table. Dripping with butterbeer and crouching out of sight, Harry
clutched his empty tankard and watched the teachers' and Fudge's feet move
toward the bar, pause, then turn and walk right toward him.
Somewhere above him, Hermione
whispered, "Mobiliarbus!" The Christmas tree beside
their table rose a few inches off the ground, drifted sideways, and landed with
a soft thump right in front of their table, hiding them from view. Staring
through the dense lower branches, Harry saw four sets of chair legs move back
from the table right beside theirs, then heard the grunts and sighs of the
teachers and minister as they sat down.
Next he saw another pair of
feet, wearing sparkly turquoise high heels, and heard a woman's voice.
"A small gillywater -"
"Mine," said Professor
McGonagall's voice.
"Four pints of mulled mead
-"
"Ta, Rosmerta," said
Hagrid.
"A cherry syrup and soda
with ice and umbrella -"
"Mmm!" said Professor
Flitwick, smacking his lips.
"So you'll be the red
currant rum, Minister."
"Thank you, Rosmerta,
m'dear," said Fudge's voice. "Lovely to see you again, I must say.
Have one yourself, won't you? Come and join us..."
"Well, thank you very much,
Minister."
Harry watched the glittering
heels march away and back again. His heart was pounding uncomfortably in his
throat. Why hadn't it occurred to him that this was the last weekend of term
for the teachers too? And how long were they going to sit there? He needed time
to sneak back into Honeydukes if he wanted to return to school tonight...
Hermione's leg gave a nervous twitch next to him.
"So, what brings you to
this neck of the woods, Minister?" came Madam Rosmerta's voice.
Harry saw the lower part of
Fudge's thick body twist in his chair as though he were checking for
eavesdroppers. Then he said in a quiet voice, "What else, m'dear, but
Sirius Black? I daresay you heard what happened up at the school at
Halloween?"
"I did hear a rumor,"
admitted Madam Rosmerta.
"Did you tell the whole
pub, Hagrid?" said Professor McGonagall exasperatedly.
"Do you think Black's still
in the area, Minister?" whispered Madam Rosmerta.
"I'm sure of it," said
Fudge shortly.
"You know that the
Dementors have searched the whole village twice?" said Madam Rosmerta, a
slight edge to her voice. "Scared all my customers away...It's very bad for
business, Minister."
"Rosmerta, dear, I don't
like them any more than you do," said Fudge uncomfortably. "Necessary
precaution... unfortunate, but there you are...I've just met some of them. They're
in a fury against Dumbledore - he won't let them inside the castle grounds."
"I should think not,"
said Professor McGonagall sharply. "How are we supposed to teach with
those horrors floating around?"
"Hear, hear!" squeaked
tiny Professor Flitwick, whose feet were dangling a foot from the ground.
"All the same,"
demurred Fudge, "they are here to protect you all from something much
worse...We all know what Black's capable of..."
"Do you know, I still have
trouble believing it," said Madam Rosmerta thoughtfully. "Of all the
people to go over to the Dark Side, Sirius Black was the last I'd have
thought...I mean, I remember him when he was a boy at Hogwarts. If you'd told me
then what he was going to become, I'd have said you'd had too much mead."
"You don't know the half of
it, Rosmerta," said Fudge gruffly. "The worst he did isn't widely known."
"The worst?" said
Madam Rosmerta, her voice alive with curiosity. "Worse than murdering all
those poor people, you mean?"
"I certainly do," said
Fudge.
"I can't believe that. What
could possibly be worse?"
"You say you remember him
at Hogwarts, Rosmerta," murmured Professor McGonagall. "Do you
remember who his best friend was?"
"Naturally," said
Madam Rosmerta, with a small laugh. "Never saw one without the other, did
you? The number of times I had them in here - ooh, they used to make me laugh.
Quite the double act, Sirius Black and James Potter!"
Harry dropped his tankard with a
loud clunk. Ron kicked him.
"Precisely," said
Professor McGonagall. "Black and Potter. Ringleaders of their little gang.
Both very bright, of course - exceptionally bright, in fact - but I don't think
we've ever had such a pair of troublemakers -"
"I dunno," chuckled
Hagrid. "Fred and George Weasley could give 'em a run fer their
money."
"You'd have thought Black
and Potter were brothers!" chimed in Professor Flitwick. "Inseparable!"
"Of course they were,"
said Fudge. "Potter trusted Black beyond all his other friends. Nothing
changed when they left school. Black was best man when James married Lily. Then
they named him godfather to Harry. Harry has no idea, of course. You can
imagine how the idea would torment him."
"Because Black turned out
to be in league with You-Know-Who?" whispered Madam Rosmerta.
"Worse even than that,
m'dear..." Fudge dropped his voice and proceeded in a sort of low rumble.
"Not many people are aware that the Potters knew You-Know-Who was after
them. Dumbledore, who was of course working tirelessly against You-Know-Who,
had a number of useful spies. One of them tipped him off, and he alerted James
and Lily at once. He advised them to go into hiding. Well, of course,
You-Know-Who wasn't an easy person to hide from. Dumbledore told them that
their best chance was the Fidelius Charm."
"How does that work?"
said Madam Rosmerta, breathless with interest. Professor Flitwick cleared his
throat.
"An immensely complex
spell," he said squeakily, "involving the magical concealment of a
secret inside a single, living soul. The information is hidden inside the
chosen person, or Secret-Keeper, and is henceforth impossible to find - unless,
of course, the Secret-Keeper chooses to divulge it. As long as the
Secret-Keeper refused to speak, You-Know-Who could search the village where
Lily and James were staying for years and never find them, not even if he had
his nose pressed against their sitting room window!"
"So Black was the Potters'
Secret-Keeper?" whispered Madam Rosmerta.
"Naturally," said
Professor McGonagall. "James Potter told Dumbledore that Black would die
rather than tell where they were, that Black was planning to go into hiding
himself...and yet, Dumbledore remained worried. I remember him offering to be the
Potters' Secret-Keeper himself."
"He suspected Black?"
gasped Madam Rosmerta.
"He was sure that somebody
close to the Potters had been keeping You-Know-Who informed of their
movements," said Professor McGonagall darkly. "Indeed, he had
suspected for some time that someone on our side had turned traitor and was
passing a lot of information to You-Know-Who."
"But James Potter insisted
on using Black?"
"He did," said Fudge
heavily. "And then, barely a week after the Fidelius Charm had been
performed -"
"Black betrayed them?"
breathed Madam Rosmerta.
"He did indeed. Black was
tired of his double-agent role, he was ready to declare his support openly for
You-Know-Who, and he seems to have planned this for the moment of the Potters'
death. But, as we all know, You-Know-Who met his downfall in little Harry
Potter. Powers gone, horribly weakened, he fled. And this left Black in a very
nasty position indeed. His master had fallen at the very moment when he, Black,
had shown his true colors as a traitor. He had no choice but to run for it
-"
"Filthy, stinkin'
turncoat!" Hagrid said, so loudly that half the bar went quiet.
"Shh!" said Professor
McGonagall.
"I met him!" growled
Hagrid. "I musta bin the last ter see him before he killed all them
people! It was me what rescued Harry from Lily an' James's house after they was
killed! Jus' got him outta the ruins, poor little thing, with a great slash
across his forehead, an' his parents dead...an' Sirius Black turns up, on that flyin'
motorbike he used ter ride. Never occurred ter me what he was doin' there. I
didn' know he'd bin Lily an' James's Secret-Keeper. Thought he'd jus' heard the
news o' You-Know-Who's attack an' come ter see what he could do. White an'
shakin', he was. An' yeh know what I did? I COMFORTED THE MURDERIN'
TRAITOR!" Hagrid roared.
"Hagrid, please!" said
Professor McGonagall. "Keep your voice down!"
"How was I ter know he
wasn' upset abou' Lily an' James? It was You-Know-Who he cared abou'! An' then
he says, "Give Harry ter me, Hagrid, I'm his godfather, I'll look after
him -" Ha! But I'd had me orders from Dumbledore, an' I told Black no,
Dumbledore said Harry was ter go ter his aunt an' uncle's. Black argued, but in
the end he gave in. Told me ter take his motorbike ter get Harry there. "I
won't need it anymore," he says.
"I shoulda known there was
somethin' fishy goin' on then. He loved that motorbike, what was he givin' it
ter me for? Why wouldn' he need it anymore? Fact was, it was too easy ter
trace. Dumbledore knew he'd bin the Potters' Secret-Keeper. Black knew he was
goin' ter have ter run fer it that night, knew it was a matter o' hours before
the Ministry was after him.
"But what if I'd given
Harry to him, eh? I bet he'd've pitched him off the bike halfway out ter sea. His bes'
friends' son! But when a wizard goes over ter the Dark Side, there's nothin'
and no one that matters to em anymore..."
A long silence followed Hagrid's
story. Then Madam Rosmerta said with some satisfaction, "But he didn't
manage to disappear, did he? The Ministry of Magic caught up with him next
day!"
"Alas, if only we
had," said Fudge bitterly. "It was not we who found him. It was
little Peter Pettigrew - another of the Potters' friends. Maddened by grief, no
doubt, and knowing that Black had been the Potters' Secret-Keeper, he went
after Black himself."
"Pettigrew...that fat little
boy who was always tagging around after them at Hogwarts?" said Madam
Rosmerta.
"Hero-worshipped Black and
Potter," said Professor McGonagall. "Never quite in their league,
talent-wise. I was often rather sharp with him. You can imagine how I - how I
regret that now..." She sounded as though she had a sudden head cold.
"There, now, Minerva,"
said Fudge kindly, "Pettigrew died a hero's death. Eyewitnesses - Muggles,
of course, we wiped their memories later - told us how Pettigrew cornered
Black. They say he was sobbing, 'Lily and James, Sirius! How could you?' And
then he went for his wand. Well, of course, Black was quicker. Blew Pettigrew
to smithereens..."
Professor McGonagall blew her
nose and said thickly, "Stupid boy...foolish boy...he was always hopeless at
dueling...should have left it to the Ministry..."
"I tell yeh, if I'd got ter
Black before little Pettigrew did, I wouldn't've messed around with wands - I'd
've ripped him limb - from - limb," Hagrid growled.
"You don't know what you're
talking about, Hagrid," said Fudge sharply. "Nobody but trained Hit
Wizards from the Magical Law Enforcement Squad would have stood a chance
against Black once he was cornered. I was Junior Minister in the Department of
Magical Catastrophes at the time, and I was one of the first on the scene after
Black murdered all those people. I - I will never forget it. I still dream
about it sometimes. A crater in the middle of the street, so deep it had
cracked the sewer below. Bodies everywhere. Muggles screaming. And Black
standing there laughing, with what was left of Pettigrew in front of him...a heap
of bloodstained robes and a few - a few fragments -"
Fudge's voice stopped abruptly.
There was the sound of five noses being blown.
"Well, there you have it,
Rosmerta," said Fudge thickly. "Black was taken away by twenty
members of the Magical Law Enforcement Squad and Pettigrew received the Order
of Merlin, First Class, which I think was some comfort to his poor mother.
Black's been in Azkaban ever since."
Madam Rosmerta let out a long
sigh.
"Is it true he's mad,
Minister?"
"I wish I could say that he
was," said Fudge slowly. "I certainly believe his master's defeat
unhinged him for a while. The murder of Pettigrew and all those Muggles was the
action of a cornered and desperate man - cruel... pointless. Yet I met Black on
my last inspection of Azkaban. You know, most of the prisoners in there sit
muttering to themselves in the dark; there's no sense in them...but I was shocked
at how normal Black seemed. He spoke quite rationally to me. It was
unnerving. You'd have thought he was merely bored - asked if I'd finished with
my newspaper, cool as you please, said he missed doing the crossword. Yes, I was
astounded at how little effect the Dementors seemed to be having on him - and
he was one of the most heavily guarded in the place, you know. Dementors
outside his door day and night."
"But what do you think he's
broken out to do?" said Madam Rosmerta. "Good gracious, Minister, he
isn't trying to rejoin You-Know-Who, is he?"
"I daresay that is his - er
- eventual plan," said Fudge evasively. "But we hope to catch Black
long before that. I must say, You-Know-Who alone and friendless is one
thing...but give him back his most devoted servant, and I shudder to think how
quickly he'll rise again..."
There was a small chink of glass
on wood. Someone had set down their glass.
"You know, Cornelius, if
you're dining with the headmaster, we'd better head back up to the
castle," said Professor McGonagall.
One by one, the pairs of feet in
front of Harry took the weight of their owners once more; hems of cloaks swung
into sight, and Madam Rosmerta's glittering heels disappeared behind the bar.
The door of the Three Broomsticks opened again, there was another flurry of
snow, and the teachers had disappeared.
"Harry?"
Ron's and Hermione's faces
appeared under the table. They were both staring at him, lost for words.
CHAPTER ELEVEN THE FIREBOLT
Harry didn't have a very clear idea
of how he had managed to get back into the Honeydukes cellar, through the
tunnel, and into the castle once more. All he knew was that the return trip
seemed to take no time at all, and that he hardly noticed what he was doing,
because his head was still pounding with the conversation he had just heard. Why had nobody ever told
him? Dumbledore, Hagrid, Mr. Weasley, Cornelius Fudge...why hadn't anyone ever
mentioned the fact that Harry's parents had died because their best friend had
betrayed them?
Ron and Hermione watched Harry
nervously all through dinner, not daring to talk about what they'd overheard,
because Percy was sitting close by them. When they went upstairs to the crowded
common room, it was to find Fred and George had set off half a dozen Dungbombs
in a fit of end-of-term high spirits. Harry, who didn't want Fred and George
asking him whether he'd reached Hogsmeade or not, sneaked quietly up to the
empty dormitory and headed straight for his bedside cabinet. He pushed his
books aside and quickly found what he was looking for - the leather-bound photo
album Hagrid had given him two years ago, which was full of wizard pictures of
his mother and father. He sat down on his bed, drew the hangings around him,
and started turning the pages, searching, until...
He stopped on a picture of his
parents' wedding day. There was his father waving up at him, beaming, the
untidy black hair Harry had inherited standing up in all directions. There was
his mother, alight with happiness, arm in arm with his dad. And there...that must
be him. Their best man...Harry had never given him a thought before.
If he hadn't known it was the
same person, he would never have guessed it was Black in this old photograph.
His face wasn't sunken and waxy, but handsome, full of laughter. Had he already
been working for Voldemort when this picture had been taken? Was he already
planning the deaths of the two people next to him? Did he realize he was facing
twelve years in Azkaban, twelve years that would make him unrecognizable?
But the Dementors don't affect
him, Harry thought, staring into the handsome, laughing face. He doesn't have
to hear my Mum screaming if they get too close -
Harry slammed the album shut,
reached over and stuffed it back into his cabinet, took off his robe and
glasses and got into bed, making sure the hangings were hiding him from view.
The dormitory door opened.
"Harry?" said Ron's
voice uncertainly.
But Harry lay still, pretending
to be asleep. He heard Ron leave again, and rolled over on his back, his eyes
wide open.
A hatred such as he had never
known before was coursing through Harry like poison. He could see Black
laughing at him through the darkness, as though somebody had pasted the picture
from the album over his eyes. He watched, as though somebody was playing him a
piece of film, Sirius Black blasting Peter Pettigrew (who resembled Neville
Longbottom) into a thousand pieces. He could hear (though having no idea what
Black's voice might sound like) a low, excited mutter. "It has happened,
My Lord...the Potters have made me their Secret-Keeper" and then came
another voice, laughing shrilly, the same laugh that Harry heard inside his
head whenever the Dementors drew near...
"Harry, you - you look
terrible."
Harry hadn't gotten to sleep
until daybreak. He had awoken to find the dormitory deserted, dressed, and gone
down the spiral staircase to a common room that was completely empty except for
Ron, who was eating a Peppermint Toad and massaging his stomach, and Hermione,
who had spread her homework over three tables.
"Where is everyone?"
said Harry.
"Gone! It's the first day
of the holidays, remember?" said Ron, watching Harry closely. "It's
nearly lunchtime; I was going to come and wake you up in a minute."
Harry slumped into a chair next
to the fire. Snow was still falling outside the windows. Crookshanks was spread
out in front of the fire like a large, ginger rug.
"You really don't look
well, you know," Hermione said, peering anxiously into his face.
"I'm fine," said
Harry.
"Harry, listen," said
Hermione, exchanging a look with Ron, "you must be really upset about what
we heard yesterday. But the thing is, you mustn't go doing anything
stupid."
"Like what?" said
Harry.
"Like trying to go after
Black," said Ron sharply.
Harry could tell they had
rehearsed this conversation while he had been asleep. He didn't say anything.
"You won't, will you,
Harry?" said Hermione.
"Because Black's not worth
dying for," said Ron.
Harry looked at them. They
didn't seem to understand at all.
"D'you know what I see and
hear every time a Dementor gets too near me?" Ron and Hermione shook their
heads, looking apprehensive. "I can hear my mum screaming and pleading
with Voldemort. And if you'd heard your mum screaming like that, just about to
be killed, you wouldn't forget it in a hurry. And if you found out someone who
was supposed to be a friend of hers betrayed her and sent Voldemort after her
-"
"There's nothing you can
do!" said Hermione, looking stricken. "The Dementors will catch Black
and he'll go back to Azkaban and - and serve him right!"
"You heard what Fudge said.
Black isn't affected by Azkaban like normal people are. It's not a punishment
for him like it is for the others."
"So what are you
saying?" said Ron, looking very tense. "You want to - to kill Black
or something?"
"Don't be silly," said
Hermione in a panicky voice. "Harry doesn't want to kill anyone, do you,
Harry?"
Again, Harry didn't answer. He
didn't know what he wanted to do. All he knew was that the idea of doing
nothing, while Black was at liberty, was almost more than he could stand.
"
Malfoy knows," he said abruptly. "Remember
what he said to me in Potions? 'If it was me, I'd hunt him down myself...I'd want
revenge.'"
"You're going to take
Malfoy's advice instead of ours?" said Ron furiously. "Listen...you
know what Pettigrew's mother got back after Black had finished with him? Dad
told me - the Order of Merlin, First Class, and Pettigrew's finger in a box.
That was the biggest bit of him they could find. Black's a madman, Harry, and
he's dangerous -"
"Malfoy's dad must have
told him," said Harry, ignoring Ron. "He was right in Voldemort's
inner circle -"
"Say You-Know-Who, will
you?" interjected Ron angrily.
"- so obviously, the
Malfoys knew Black was working for Voldemort -"
"- and Malfoy'd love to see
you blown into about a million pieces, like Pettigrew! Get a grip. Malfoy's
just hoping you'll get yourself killed before he has to play you at
Quidditch." "Harry, please,"
said Hermione, her eyes now shining with tears, "Please be
sensible. Black did a terrible, terrible thing, but d-don't put yourself in
danger, it's what Black wants...Oh, Harry, you'd be playing right into Black's
hands if you went looking for him. Your mum and dad wouldn't want you to get
hurt, would they? They'd never want you to go looking for Black!"
"I'll never know what
they'd have wanted, because thanks to Black, I've never spoken to them,"
said Harry shortly.
There was a silence in which
Crookshanks stretched luxuriously flexing his claws. Ron's pocket quivered.
"Look," said Ron,
obviously casting around for a change of subject, "it's the holidays! It's
nearly Christmas! Let's - let's go down and see Hagrid. We haven't visited him
for ages!"
"No!" said Hermione
quickly. "Harry isn't supposed to leave the castle, Ron -"
"Yeah, let's go," said
Harry, sitting up, "and I can ask him how come he never mentioned Black
when he told me all about my parents!"
Further discussion of Sirius
Black plainly wasn't what Ron had had in mind.
"Or we could have a game of
chess," he said hastily, "or Gobstones. Percy left a set -"
"No, let's visit
Hagrid," said Harry firmly. So they got their cloaks
from their dormitories and set off through the portrait hole ("Stand and
fight, you yellow-bellied mongrels!"), down through the empty castle and
out through the oak front doors.
They made their way slowly down
the lawn, making a shallow trench in the glittering, powdery snow, their socks
and the hems of their cloaks soaked and freezing. The Forbidden Forest looked
as though it had been enchanted, each tree smattered with silver, and Hagrid's
cabin looked like an iced cake.
Ron knocked, but there was no
answer.
"He's not out, is he?"
said Hermione, who was shivering under her cloak.
Ron had his ear to the door.
"There's a weird
noise," he said. "Listen - is that Fang?"
Harry and Hermione put their
ears to the door too. From inside the cabin came a series of low, throbbing
moans.
"Think we'd better go and
get someone?" said Ron nervously.
"Hagrid!" called
Harry, thumping the door. "Hagrid, are you in there?"
There was a sound of heavy
footsteps, then the door creaked open. Hagrid stood there with his eyes red and
swollen, tears splashing down the front of his leather vest. "You've heard?" he
bellowed, and he flung himself onto Harry's neck.
Hagrid being at least twice the
size of a normal man, this was no laughing matter. Harry, about to collapse
under Hagrid's weight, was rescued by Ron and Hermione, who each seized Hagrid
under an arm and heaved him back into the cabin. Hagrid allowed himself to be
steered into a chair and slumped over the table, sobbing uncontrollably, his
face glazed with tears that dripped down into his tangled beard.
"Hagrid, what is it?"
said Hermione, aghast.
Harry spotted an
official-looking letter lying open on the table.
"What's this, Hagrid?"
Hagrid's sobs redoubled, but he
shoved the letter toward Harry, who picked it up and read aloud:
Dear Mr. Hagrid,
Further to our inquiry into the attack by a Hippogriff on a student in your class, we
have accepted the assurances of Professor Dumbledore that you bear no
responsibility for the regrettable incident.
"Well, that's okay
then, Hagrid!" said Ron, clapping Hagrid on the shoulder. But Hagrid
continued to sob, and waved one of his gigantic hands, inviting Harry to read
on.
However, we must register our concern about the Hippogriff in question. We have decided
to uphold the official complaint of Mr. Lucius Malfoy, and this matter will
therefore be taken to the Committee for the Disposal of Dangerous Creatures.
The hearing will take place on April 20th, and we ask you to present yourself
and your Hippogriff at the Committee's offices in London on that date. In the
meantime, the Hippogriff should be kept tethered and isolated.
Yours in fellowship...
There followed a list of the
school governors.
"Oh," said Ron.
"But you said Buckbeak isn't a bad Hippogriff, Hagrid. I bet he'll get
off."
"Yeh don' know them
gargoyles at the Committee fer the Disposal o' Dangerous Creatures!"
choked Hagrid, wiping his eyes on his sleeve. "They've got it in fer
interestin' creatures!"
A sudden sound from the corner
of Hagrid's cabin made Harry, Ron, and Hermione whip around. Buckbeak the
Hippogriff was lying in the corner, chomping on something that was oozing blood
all over the floor.
"I couldn' leave him tied
up out there in the snow!" choked Hagrid. "All on his own! At
Christmas."
Harry, Ron, and Hermione looked
at one another. They had never seen eye to eye with Hagrid about what he called
'interesting creatures' and other people called 'terrifying monsters.' On the
other hand, there didn't seem to be any particular harm in Buckbeak. In fact,
by Hagrid's usual standards, he was positively cute.
"You'll have to put up a
good strong defense, Hagrid," said Hermione, sitting down and laying a
hand on Hagrid's massive forearm. "I'm sure you can prove Buckbeak is
safe."
"Won' make no
diff'rence!" sobbed Hagrid. "Them Disposal devils, they're all in
Lucius Malfoy's pocket! Scared o' him! Ad if I lose the case, Buckbeak -"
Hagrid drew his finger swiftly
across his throat, then gave a great wail and lurched forward, his face in his
arms.
"What about Dumbledore,
Hagrid?" said Harry.
"He's done more'n enough
fer me already," groaned Hagrid. "Got enough on his plate what with
keepin' them Dementors outta the castle, an' Sirius Black lurkin' around."
Ron and Hermione looked quickly
at Harry, as though expecting him to start berating Hagrid for not telling him
the truth about Black. But Harry couldn't bring himself to do it, not now that
he saw Hagrid so miserable and scared.
"Listen, Hagrid," he
said, "you can't give up. Hermione's right, You just need a good defense.
You can call us as witnesses -"
"I'm sure I've read about a
case of Hippogriff-baiting," said Hermione thoughtfully, "where the
Hippogriff got off. I'll look it up for you, Hagrid, and see exactly what
happened."
Hagrid howled still more loudly.
Harry and Hermione looked at Ron to help them.
"Er - shall I make a cup of
tea?" said Ron.
Harry stared at him.
"It's what my mum does
whenever someone's upset," Ron muttered, shrugging.
At last, after many more
assurances of help, with a steaming mug of tea in front of him, Hagrid blew his
nose on a handkerchief the size of a tablecloth and said, "Yer right. I
can' afford to go ter pieces. Gotta pull meself together..."
Fang the boarhound came timidly
out from under the table and laid his head on Hagrid's knee. "I've not bin meself lately," said Hagrid,
stroking Fang with one hand and mopping his face with the other. "Worried
abou' Buckbeak, an' no one likin' me classes -" "We do like them!" lied Hermione at once. "Yeah, they're great!" said Ron, crossing his
fingers under the table. "Er - how are the flobberworms?" "Dead," said Hagrid gloomily. "Too much
lettuce." "Oh no!" said Ron, his lip twitching. "An' them Dementors make me feel ruddy terrible an'
all," said Hagrid, with a sudden shudder. "Gotta walk past 'em ev'ry
time I want a drink in the Three Broomsticks. 'S like bein' back in Azkaban
-" He fell silent, gulping his tea. Harry, Ron, and
Hermione watched him breathlessly. They had never heard Hagrid talk about his
brief spell in Azkaban before. After a pause, Hermione said timidly, "Is
it awful in there, Hagrid?" "Yeh've no idea," said Hagrid quietly.
"Never bin anywhere like it. Thought I was goin' mad. Kep' goin' over
horrible stuff in me mind...the day I got expelled from Hogwarts...day me dad
died...day I had ter let Norbert go..." His eyes filled with tears. Norbert was the baby dragon
Hagrid had once won in a game of cards. "Yeh can' really remember who yeh are after a
while. An' yeh can' really see the point o' livin' at all. I used ter hope I'd
jus' die in me sleep. When they let me out, it was like bein' born again,
ev'rythin' came floodin' back, it was the bes' feelin' in the world. Mind, the
Dementors weren't keen on lettin' me go."
"But you were innocent!" said Hermione.
Hagrid snorted.
"Think that matters to them? They don' care. Long
as they've got a couple o' hundred humans stuck there with 'em, so they can
leech all the happiness out of 'em, they don' give a damn who's guilty an' who's
not."
Hagrid went quiet for a moment, staring into his tea.
Then he said quietly, "Thought o' jus' letting Buckbeak go...tryin' ter
make him fly away...but how d'yeh explain ter a Hippogriff it's gotta go inter
hidin'? An' - an' I'm scared o' breakin' the law..." He looked up at them,
tears leaking down his face again. "I don' ever want ter go back ter
Azkaban."
*
The trip to Hagrid's, though far from fun, had
nevertheless had the effect Ron and Hermione had hoped. Though Harry had by no
means forgotten about Black, he couldn't brood constantly on revenge if he
wanted to help Hagrid win his case against the Committee for the Disposal of
Dangerous Creatures. He, Ron, and Hermione went to the library the next day and
returned to the empty common room laden with books that might help prepare a
defense for Buckbeak. The three of them sat in front of the roaring fire,
slowly turning the pages of dusty volumes about famous cases of marauding
beasts, speaking occasionally when they ran across something relevant.
"Here's something...there was a case in 1722...but the
Hippogriff was convicted - ugh, look what they did to it, that's disgusting
-"
"This might help, look - a Manticore savaged
someone in 1296, and they let the Manticore off - oh - no, that was only
because everyone was too scared to go near it..."
Meanwhile, in the rest of the castle, the usual
magnificent Christmas decorations had been put up, despite the fact that hardly
any of the students remained to enjoy them. Thick streamers of holly and
mistletoe were strung along the corridors, mysterious lights shone from inside
every suit of armor, and the Great Hall was filled with its usual twelve
Christmas trees, glittering with golden stars. A powerful and delicious smell
of cooking pervaded the corridors, and by Christmas Eve, it had grown so strong
that even Scabbers poked his nose out of the shelter of Ron's pocket to sniff
hopefully at the air. On Christmas
morning, Harry was woken by Ron throwing his pillow at him.
"Oy! Presents!"
Harry reached for his glasses and put them on, squinting
through the semi-darkness to the foot of his bed, where a small heap of parcels
had appeared. Ron was already ripping the paper off his own presents.
"Another sweater from Mum...maroon again...see
if you've got one."
Harry had. Mrs. Weasley had sent him a scarlet sweater
with the Gryffindor lion knitted on the front, also a dozen home-baked mince
pies, some Christmas cake, and a box of nut brittle. As he moved all these
things aside, he saw a long, thin package lying underneath.
"What's that?" said Ron, looking over, a
freshly unwrapped pair of maroon socks in his hand.
"Dunno..."
Harry ripped the parcel open and gasped as a
magnificent, gleaming broomstick rolled out onto his bedspread. Ron dropped his
socks and jumped off his bed for a closer look.
"I don't believe it," he said hoarsely.
It was a Firebolt, identical to the dream broom Harry
had gone to see every day in Diagon Alley. Its handle glittered
as he picked it up. He could feel it vibrating and let
go; it hung in midair, unsupported, at exactly the right height for him to
mount it. His eyes moved from the golden registration number at the top of the
handle, right down to the perfectly smooth, streamlined birch twigs that made
up the tail. "Who
sent it to you?" said Ron in a hushed voice. "Look
and see if there's a card," said Harry. Ron
ripped apart the Firebolt's wrappings. "Nothing!
Blimey, who'd spend that much on you?" "Well,"
said Harry, feeling stunned, "I'm betting it wasn't the Dursleys." "I
bet it was Dumbledore," said Ron, now walking around and around the
Firebolt, taking in every glorious inch. "He sent you the Invisibility
Cloak anonymously..." "That
was my dad's, though," said Harry. "Dumbledore was just passing it on
to me. He wouldn't spend hundreds of Galleons on me. He can't go giving
students stuff like this -" "That's
why he wouldn't say it was from him!" said Ron. "In case some git
like Malfoy said it was favoritism. Hey, Harry -" Ron gave a great whoop
of laughter - "Malfoy! Wait 'til he sees you on this! He'll be sick
as a pig! This is an international standard broom, this is!" "I
can't believe this," Harry muttered, running a hand along the Firebolt,
while Ron sank onto Harry's bed, laughing his head off at the thought of
Malfoy. "Who-?" "I
know," said Ron, controlling himself, "I know who it could've been -
Lupin!" "What?"
said Harry, now starting to laugh himself "Lupin? Listen, if he had
this much gold, he'd be able to buy himself some new robes." "Yeah,
but he likes you," said Ron. "And he was away when your Nimbus got
smashed, and he might've heard about it and decided to visit Diagon Alley and
get this for you -" "What
d'you mean, he was away?" said Harry. "He was ill when I was playing
in that match." "Well,
he wasn't in the hospital wing," said Ron. "I was there, cleaning out
the bedpans on that detention from Snape, remember?" Harry
frowned at Ron. "I
can't see Lupin affording something like this." "What're
you two laughing about?" Hermione
had just come in, wearing her dressing gown and carrying Crookshanks, who was
looking very grumpy, with a string of tinsel tied around his neck. "Don't
bring him in here!" said Ron, hurriedly snatching Scabbers from the depths
of his bed and stowing him in his pajama pocket. But
Hermione wasn't listening. She dropped Crookshanks onto Seamus's empty bed and
stared, open-mouthed, at the Firebolt. "Oh,
Harry! Who sent you that?" "No
idea," said Harry. "There wasn't a card or anything with it." To
his great surprise, Hermione did not appear either excited or intrigued by the
news. On the contrary, her face fell, and she bit her lip. "What's
the matter with you?" said Ron. "I
don't know," said Hermione slowly, "but it's a bit odd, isn't it? I
mean, this is supposed to be quite a good broom, isn't it?" Ron
sighed exasperatedly. "It's
the best broom there is, Hermione," he said. "So
it must've been really expensive..." "Probably
cost more than all the Slytherins' brooms put together," said Ron happily. "Well...who'd
send Harry something as expensive as that, and not even tell him they'd sent
it?" said Hermione. "Who
cares?" said Ron impatiently. "Listen, Harry, can I have a go on it?
Can I?" "I
don't think anyone should ride that broom just yet!" said Hermione
shrilly. Harry
and Ron looked at her. "What
d'you think Harry's going to do with it - sweep the floor?" said Ron. But
before Hermione could answer, Crookshanks sprang from Seamus's bed, right at
Ron's chest. "GET
- HIM - OUT - OF - HERE!" Ron bellowed as Crookshanks's claws ripped his
pajamas and Scabbers attempted a wild escape over his shoulder. Ron seized
Scabbers by the tail and aimed a misjudged kick at Crookshanks that hit the
trunk at the end of Harry's bed, knocking it over and causing Ron to hop up and
down, howling with pain. Crookshanks's
fur suddenly stood on end. A shrill, tinny, whistling was filling the room. The
Pocket Sneakoscope had become dislodged from Uncle Vernon's old socks and was
whirling and gleaming on the floor. "I
forgot about that!" Harry said, bending down and picking up the
Sneakoscope. "I never wear those socks if I can help it..." The
Sneakoscope whirled and whistled in his palm. Crookshanks was hissing and
spitting at it. "You'd
better take that cat out of here, Hermione," said Ron furiously, sitting
on Harry's bed nursing his toe. "Can't you shut that thing up?" he
added to Harry as Hermione strode out of the room, Crookshanks's yellow eyes
still fixed maliciously on Ron. Harry
stuffed the Sneakoscope back inside the socks and threw it back into his trunk.
All that could be heard now were Ron's stifled moans of pain and rage. Scabbers
was huddled in Ron's hands. It had been a while since Harry had seen him out of
Ron's pocket, and he was unpleasantly surprised to see that Scabbers, once so
fat, was now very skinny; patches of fur seemed to have fallen out too. "He's
not looking too good, is he?" Harry said. "It's
stress!" said Ron. "He'd be fine if that big stupid furball left him
alone!" But
Harry, remembering what the woman at the Magical Menagerie had said about rats
living only three years, couldn't help feeling that unless Scabbers had powers
he had never revealed, he was reaching the end of his life. And despite Ron's
frequent complaints that Scabbers was both boring and useless, he was sure Ron
would be very miserable if Scabbers died. Christmas
spirit was definitely thin on the ground in the Gryffindor common room that
morning. Hermione had shut Crookshanks in her dormitory, but was furious with
Ron for trying to kick him; Ron was still fuming about Crookshanks's fresh
attempt to eat Scabbers. Harry gave up trying to make them talk to each other
and devoted himself to examining the Firebolt, which he had brought down to the
common room with him. For some reason this seemed to annoy Hermione as well;
she didn't say anything, but she kept looking darkly at the broom as though it
too had been criticizing her cat. At
lunchtime they went down to the Great Hall, to find that the House tables had
been moved against the walls again, and that a single table, set for twelve,
stood in the middle of the room. Professors Dumbledore, McGonagall, Snape,
Sprout, and Flitwick were there, along with Filch, the caretaker, who had taken
off his usual brown coat and was wearing a very old and rather moldy-looking
tailcoat. There were only three other students, two extremely nervous-looking
first years and a sullen-faced Slytherin fifth year. "Merry
Christmas!" said Dumbledore as Harry, Ron, and Hermione approached the
table. "As there are so few of us, it seemed foolish to use the House
tables...Sit down, sit down!" Harry,
Ron, and Hermione sat down side by side at the end of the table. "Crackers!"
said Dumbledore enthusiastically, offering the end of a large silver noisemaker
to Snape, who took it reluctantly and tugged. With a bang like a gunshot, the
cracker flew apart to reveal a large, pointed witches hat topped with a stuffed
vulture. Harry,
remembering the Boggart, caught Ron's eye and they both grinned; Snape's mouth
thinned and he pushed the hat toward Dumbledore, who swapped it for his
wizard's hat at once. "Dig
in!" he advised the table, beaming around. As
Harry was helping himself to roast potatoes, the doors of the Great Hall opened
again. It was Professor Trelawney, gliding toward them as though on wheels. She
had put on a green sequined dress in honor of the occasion, making her look
more than ever like a glittering, oversized dragonfly. "Sibyll,
this is a pleasant surprise!" said Dumbledore, standing up. "I
have been crystal gazing, Headmaster," said Professor Trelawney in her
mistiest, most faraway voice, "and to my astonishment, I saw myself
abandoning my solitary luncheon and coming to join you. Who am I to refuse the
promptings of fate? I at once hastened from my tower, and I do beg you to
forgive my lateness..." "Certainly,
certainly," said Dumbledore, his eyes twinkling. "Let me draw you up
a chair -" And
he did indeed draw a chair in midair with his wand, which revolved for a few
seconds before falling with a thud between Professors Snape and McGonagall.
Professor Trelawney, however, did not sit down; her enormous eyes had been
roving around the table, and she suddenly uttered a kind of soft scream. "I
dare not, Headmaster! If I join the table, we shall be thirteen! Nothing could
be more unlucky! Never forget that when thirteen dine together, the first to
rise will be the first to die!" "We'll
risk it, Sibyll," said Professor McGonagall impatiently. "Do sit
down, the turkey's getting stone cold." Professor
Trelawney hesitated, then lowered herself into the empty chair, eyes shut and
mouth clenched tight, as though expecting a thunderbolt to hit the table.
Professor McGonagall poked a large spoon into the nearest tureen. "Tripe,
Sibyll?" Professor
Trelawney ignored her. Eyes open again, she looked around once more and said,
"But where is dear Professor Lupin?" "I'm
afraid the poor fellow is ill again," said Dumbledore, indicating that
everybody should start serving themselves. "Most unfortunate that it
should happen on Christmas Day." "But
surely you already knew that, Sibyll?" said Professor McGonagall, her eyebrows
raised. Professor
Trelawney gave Professor McGonagall a very cold look. "Certainly
I knew, Minerva," she said quietly. "But one does not parade the fact
that one is All-Knowing. I frequently act as though I am not possessed of the
Inner Eye, so as not to make others nervous." "That
explains a great deal," said Professor McGonagall tartly. Professor
Trelawney's voice suddenly became a good deal less misty. "If
you must know, Minerva, I have seen that poor Professor Lupin will not be with
us for very long. He seems aware, himself, that his time is short. He
positively fled when I offered to crystal gaze for him -" "Imagine
that," said Professor McGonagall dryly. "I
doubt," said Dumbledore, in a cheerful but slightly raised voice, which
put an end to Professor McGonagall and Professor Trelawney's conversation,
"that Professor Lupin is in any immediate danger. Severus, you've made the
potion for him again?" "Yes,
Headmaster," said Snape. "Good,"
said Dumbledore. "Then he should be up and about in no time...Derek, have
you had any of the chipolatas? They're excellent." The
first-year boy went furiously red on being addressed directly by Dumbledore,
and took the platter of sausages with trembling hands. Professor
Trelawney behaved almost normally until the very end of Christmas dinner, two
hours later. Full to bursting with Christmas dinner and still wearing their
cracker hats, Harry and Ron got up first from the table and she shrieked
loudly. "My
dears! Which of you left his seat first? Which?" "Dunno,"
said Ron, looking uneasily at Harry. "I
doubt it will make much difference," said Professor McGonagall coldly,
"unless a mad axe-man is waiting outside the doors to slaughter the first
into the Entrance Hall." Even
Ron laughed. Professor Trelawney looked highly affronted. "Coming?"
Harry said to Hermione. "No,"
Hermione muttered. "I want a quick word with Professor McGonagall." "Probably
trying to see if she can take any more classes," yawned Ron as they make
their way into the Entrance Hall, which was completely devoid of mad axe-men. When
they reached the portrait hole they found Sir Cadogan enjoying a Christmas part
with a couple of monks, several previous headmasters of Hogwarts and his fat
pony. He pushed up his visor toasted them with a flagon of mead. "Merry
- hic - Christmas! Password?" "Scurvy
cur," said Ron. "And
the same to you, sir! roared Sir Cadogan, as the painting swung forward to
admit them. Harry
went straight up to the dormitory, collected his Firebolt and the Broomstick
Servicing Kit Hermione had given him for his birthday, brought them downstairs
and tried to find something to do with the Firebolt; however, there where no
bent twigs to clip, and the handle was so shiny already it seemed pointless to
polish it. He and Ron simply sat admiring it from every angle, until the
portrait hole opened, and Hermione came in, accompanied by Professor
McGonagall. Though
Professor McGonagall was Head of Gryffindor House, Harry had only seen her in
the common room once before, and that had been to make a very grave
announcement. He and Ron stared at her, both holding the Firebolt. Hermione
walked around them, sat down, picked up the nearest book and hid her face
behind it. "So
that's it, is it?" said Professor McGonagall beadily, walking over to the
fireside and staring at the Firebolt. "Miss Granger has just informed me
that you have been sent a broomstick, Potter." Harry
and Ron looked around at Hermione. They could see her forehead reddening over
the top of her book, which was upside-down. "May
I?" said Professor McGonagall, but she didn't wait for an answer before
pulling the Firebolt out of their hands. She examined it carefully from handle
to twig-ends. "Hmm. And there was no note at all, Potter? No card? No
message of any kind?" "No,"
said Harry blankly. "I
see..." said Professor McGonagall. "Well, I'm afraid I will have to
take this, Potter." "W
- what?" said Harry, scrambling to his feet. "Why?" "It
will need to be checked for jinxes," said Professor McGonagall. "Of
course, I'm no expert, but I daresay Madam Hooch and Professor Flitwick will
strip it down -" "Strip
it down?" repeated Ron, as though Professor McGonagall was mad. "It
shouldn't take more than a few weeks," said Professor McGonagall.
"You will have it back if we are sure it is jinx-free." "There's
nothing wrong with it!" said Harry, his voice shaking slightly.
"Honestly, Professor -" "You
can't know that, Potter," said Professor McGonagall, quite kindly,
"not until you've flown it, at any rate, and I'm afraid that is out of the
question until we are certain that it has not been tampered with. I shall keep
you informed." Professor
McGonagall turned on her heel and carried the Firebolt out of the portrait
hole, which closed behind her. Harry stood staring after her, the tin of
High-Finish Polish still clutched in his hands. Ron, however, rounded on
Hermione. "What
did you go running to McGonagall for?" Hermione
threw her book aside. She was still pink in the face, but stood up and faced
Ron defiantly. "Because
I thought - and Professor McGonagall agrees with me - that that broom was
probably sent to Harry by Sirius Black!" CHAPTER TWELVE THE PATRONUSHarry
knew that Hermione had meant well, but that didn't stop him from being angry
with her. He had been the owner of the best broom in the world for a few short
hours, and now, because of her interference, he didn't know whether he would
ever see it again. He was positive that there was nothing wrong with the
Firebolt now, but what sort of state would it be in once it had been subjected
to all sorts of anti-jinx tests? Ron
was furious with Hermione too. As far as he was concerned, the stripping-down
of a brand-new Firebolt was nothing less than criminal damage. Hermione, who
remained convinced that she had acted for the best, started avoiding the common
room. Harry and Ron supposed she had taken refuge in the library and didn't try
to persuade her to come back. All in all, they were glad when the rest of the
school returned shortly after New Year, and Gryffindor Tower became crowded and
noisy again. Wood sought Harry out on the night before term started. "Had
a good Christmas?" he said, and then, without waiting for an answer, he
sat down, lowered his voice, and said, "I've been, doing some thinking
over Christmas, Harry. After last match, you know. If the Dementors come to the
next one...I mean...we can't afford you to - well -" Wood
broke off, looking awkward. "I'm
working on it," said Harry quickly. "Professor Lupin said he'd train
me to ward off the Dementors. We should be starting this week. He said he'd
have time after Christmas." "Ah,"
said Wood, his expression clearing. "Well, in that case - I really didn't
want to lose you as Seeker, Harry. And have you ordered a new broom yet?" "No,"
said Harry. "What!
You'd better get a move on, you know - you can't ride that Shooting Star
against Ravenclaw!" "He
got a Firebolt for Christmas," said Ron. "A
Firebolt? No! Seriously? A - a real Firebolt?" "Don't
get excited, Oliver," said Harry gloomily. "I haven't got it anymore.
It was confiscated." And he explained all about how the Firebolt was now
being checked for jinxes. "Jinxed?
How could it be jinxed?" "Sirius
Black," Harry said wearily. "He's supposed to be after me. So
McGonagall reckons he might have sent it." Waving
aside the information that a famous murderer was after his Seeker, Wood said,
"But Black couldn't have bought a Firebolt! He's on the run! The whole
country's on the lookout for him! How could he just walk into Quality Quidditch
Supplies and buy a broomstick?" "I
know," said Harry, "but McGonagall still wants to strip it down
-" Wood
went pale. "I'll
go and talk to her, Harry," he promised. "I'll make her see reason...A
Firebolt...a real Firebolt, on our team...She wants Gryffindor to win as much as
we do...I'll make her see sense. A Firebolt..." * Classes
started again the next day. The last thing anyone felt like doing was spending
two hours on the grounds on a raw January morning, but Hagrid had provided a
bonfire full of salamanders for their enjoyment, and they spent an unusually
good lesson collecting dry wood and leaves to keep the fire blazing while the
flame-loving lizards scampered up and down the crumbling, white-hot logs. The
first Divination lesson of the new term was much less fun; Professor Trelawney
was now teaching them palmistry, and she lost no time in informing Harry that
he had the shortest life line she had ever seen. It
was Defense Against the Dark Arts that Harry was keen to get to; after his
conversation with Wood, he wanted to get started on his anti-Dementor lessons
as soon as possible. "Ah
yes," said Lupin, when Harry reminded him of his promise at the end of
class. "Let me see...how about eight o'clock on Thursday evening? The
History of Magic classroom should be large enough...I'll have to think carefully
about how we're going to do this...We can't bring a real Dementor into the castle
to practice on..." "Still
looks ill, doesn't he?" said Ron as they walked down the corridor, heading
to dinner. "What d'you reckon's the matter with him?" There
was a loud and impatient "tuh" from behind them. It was Hermione, who
had been sitting at the feet of a suit of armor, repacking her bag, which was
so full of books it wouldn't close. "And
what are you tutting at us for?" said Ron irritably. "Nothing,"
said Hermione in a lofty voice, heaving her bag back over her shoulder. "Yes,
you were," said Ron. "I said I wonder what's wrong with Lupin, and
you -" "Well,
isn't it obvious?" said Hermione, with a look of maddening
superiority. "If you
don't want to tell us, don't," snapped Ron. "Fine,"
said Hermione haughtily, and she marched off. "She
doesn't know," said Ron, staring resentfully after Hermione. "She's
just trying to get us to talk to her again." * At
eight o'clock on Thursday evening, Harry left Gryffindor Tower for the History
of Magic classroom. It was dark and empty when he arrived, but he lit the lamps
with his wand and had waited only five minutes when Professor Lupin turned up,
carrying a large packing case, which he heaved onto Professor Binn's desk. "What's
that?" said Harry. "Another
Boggart," said Lupin, stripping off his cloak. "I've been combing the
castle ever since Tuesday, and very luckily, I found this one lurking inside
Mr. Filch's filing cabinet. It's the nearest we'll get to a real Dementor. The
Boggart will turn into a Dementor when he sees you, so we'll be able to
practice on him. I can store him in my office when we're not using him; there's
a cupboard under my desk he'll like." "Okay,"
said Harry, trying to sound as though he wasn't apprehensive at all and merely
glad that Lupin had found such a good substitute for a real Dementor. "So..."
Professor Lupin had taken out his own wand, and indicated that Harry should do
the same. "The spell I am going to try and teach you is highly advanced
magic, Harry - well beyond Ordinary Wizarding Level. It is called the Patronus
Charm." "How
does it work?" said Harry nervously. "Well,
when it works correctly, It conjures up a Patronus," said Lupin,
"which is a kind of anti-Dementor - a guardian that acts as a shield
between you and the Dementor." Harry
had a sudden vision of himself crouching behind a Hagrid-sized figure holding a
large club. Professor Lupin continued, "The Patronus is a kind of positive
force, a projection of the very things that the Dementor feeds upon - hope,
happiness, the desire to survive - but it cannot feel despair, as real humans
can, so the Dementors can't hurt it. But I must warn you, Harry, that the charm
might be too advanced for you. Many qualified wizards have difficulty with
it." "What
does a Patronus look like?" said Harry curiously. "Each
one is unique to the wizard who conjures it." "And
how do you conjure it?" "With
an incantation, which will work only if you are concentrating, with all your
might, on a single, very happy memory." Harry
cast his mind about for a happy memory. Certainly, nothing that had happened to
him at the Dursleys' was going to do. Finally, he settled on the moment when he
had first ridden a broomstick. "Right,"
he said, trying to recall as exactly as possible the wonderful, soaring
sensation of his stomach. "The
incantation is this -" Lupin cleared his throat. "Expecto patronum!" "Expecto
patronum," Harry repeated under his breath, "expecto patronum." "Concentrating
hard on your happy memory?" "Oh
- yeah -" said Harry, quickly forcing his thoughts back to that first
broom ride. "Expecto patrono - no, patronum - sorry - expecto patronum,
expecto patronum" Something
whooshed suddenly out of the end of his wand; it looked like a wisp of silvery
gas. "Did
you see that?" said Harry excitedly. "Something happened!" "Very
good," said Lupin, smiling. "Right, then - ready to try it on a
Dementor?" "Yes,"
Harry said, gripping his wand very tightly, and moving into the middle of the
deserted classroom. He tried to keep his mind on flying, but something else
kept intruding...Any second now, he might hear his mother again...but he shouldn't
think that, or he would hear her again, and he didn't want to...or did he? Lupin
grasped the lid of the packing case and pulled. A
Dementor rose slowly from the box, its hooded face turned toward Harry, one
glistening, scabbed hand gripping its cloak. The lamps around the classroom
flickered and went out. The Dementor stepped from the box and started to sweep
silently toward Harry, drawing a deep, rattling breath. A wave of piercing cold
broke over him - "Expecto
patronum!" Harry yelled. "Expecto patronum! Expecto
-" But
the classroom and the Dementor were dissolving...Harry was falling again through
thick white fog, and his mother's voice was louder than ever, echoing inside
his head - "Not Harry! Not Harry! Please - I'll do anything -" "
Stand aside - stand aside, girl -" "Harry!" Harry
jerked back to life. He was lying flat on his back on the floor. The classroom
lamps were alight again. He didn't have to ask what had happened. "Sorry,"
he muttered, sitting up and feeling cold sweat trickling down behind his
glasses. "Are
you all right?" said Lupin. "Yes..."
Harry pulled himself up on one of the desks and leaned against it. "Here
-" Lupin handed him a Chocolate Frog. "Eat this before we try again.
I didn't expect you to do it your first time; in fact, I would have been
astounded if you had." "It's
getting worse," Harry muttered, biting off the Frog's head. "I could
hear her louder that time - and him - Voldemort -" Lupin
looked paler than usual. "Harry,
if you don't want to continue, I will more than understand -" "I
do!" said Harry fiercely, stuffing the rest of the Chocolate Frog into his
mouth. "I've got to! What if the Dementors turn up at our match against
Ravenclaw? I can't afford to fall off again. If we lose this game we've lost
the Quidditch Cup!" "All
right then..." said Lupin. "You might want to select another memory, a
happy memory, I mean, to concentrate on...That one doesn't seem to have been
strong enough..." Harry
thought hard and decided his feelings when Gryffindor had won the House
Championship last year had definitely qualified as very happy. He gripped his
wand tightly again and took up his position in the middle of the classroom. "Ready?"
said Lupin, gripping the box lid. "Ready,"
said Harry; trying hard to fill his head with happy thoughts about Gryffindor
winning, and not dark thoughts about what was going to happen when the box
opened. "Go!"
said Lupin, pulling off the lid. The room went icily cold and dark once more.
The Dementor glided forward, drawing its breath; one rotting hand was extending
toward Harry - "Expecto
patronum!" Harry yelled. "Expecto patronum! Expecto Pat -" White
fog obscured his senses...big, blurred shapes were moving around him...then came a
new voice, a man's voice, shouting, panicking - "Lily,
take Harry and go! It's him! Go! Run! I'll hold him off -" The sounds of someone stumbling from a room - a
door bursting open - a cackle of high- pitched laughter - "Harry!
Harry...wake up..." Lupin
was tapping Harry hard on the face. This time it was a minute before Harry
understood why he was lying on a dusty classroom floor. "I
heard my dad," Harry mumbled. "That's the first time I've ever heard
him - he tried to take on Voldemort himself, to give my mum time to run for it..." Harry
suddenly realized that there were tears on his face mingling with the sweat. He
bent his face as low as possible, wiping them off on his robes, pretending to
do up his shoelace, so that Lupin wouldn't see. "You
heard James?" said Lupin in a strange voice. "Yeah..."
Face dry, Harry looked up. "Why - you didn't know my dad, did you?" "I
- I did, as a matter of fact," said Lupin. "We were friends at
Hogwarts. Listen, Harry - perhaps we should leave it here for tonight. This
charm is ridiculously advanced...I shouldn't have suggested putting you through
this..." "No!"
said Harry. He got up again. "I'll have one more go! I'm not thinking of
happy enough things, that's what it is...hang on..." He
racked his brains. A really, really happy memory...one that he could turn into a
good, strong Patronus... The
moment when he'd first found out he was a wizard, and would be leaving the
Dursleys for Hogwarts! If that wasn't a happy memory, he didn't know what
was...Concentrating very hard on how he had felt when he'd realized he'd be
leaving Privet Drive, Harry got to his feet and faced the packing case once
more. "Ready?"
said Lupin, who looked as though he were doing this against his better
judgment. "Concentrating hard? All right - go!" He
pulled off the lid of the case for the third time, and the Dementor rose out of
it; the room fell cold and dark - "EXPECTO
PATRONUM!" Harry bellowed. "EXPECTO PATRONUM! EXPECTO PATRONUM!" The
screaming inside Harry's head had started again - except this time, it sounded
as though it were coming from a badly tuned radio - softer and louder and
softer again...and he could still see the Dementor...it had halted...and then a huge,
silver shadow came bursting out of the end of Harry's wand, to hover between
him and the Dementor, and though Harry's legs felt like water, he was still on
his feet - though for how much longer, he wasn't sure... "Riddikulus!"
roared Lupin, springing forward. There
was a loud crack, and Harry's cloudy Patronus vanished along with the Dementor;
he sank into a chair, feeling as exhausted as if he'd just run a mile, and felt
his legs shaking. Out of the corner of his eye, he saw Professor Lupin forcing
the Boggart back into the packing case with his wand; it had turned into a
silvery orb again. "Excellent!"
Lupin said, striding over to where Harry sat. "Excellent, Harry! That was
definitely a start!" "Can
we have another go? Just one more go?" "Not
now," said Lupin firmly. "You've had enough for one night. Here
-" He
handed Harry a large bar of Honeydukes' best chocolate. "Eat
the lot, or Madam Pomfrey will be after my blood. Same time next week?" "Okay,"
said Harry. He took a bite of the chocolate and watched Lupin extinguishing the
lamps that had rekindled with the disappearance of the Dementor. A thought had
just occurred to him. "Professor
Lupin?" he said. "If you knew my dad, you must've known Sirius Black
as well." Lupin
turned very quickly. "What
gives you that idea?" he said sharply. "Nothing
- I mean, I just knew they were friends at Hogwarts too..." Lupin's
face relaxed. "Yes,
I knew him," he said shortly. "Or I thought I did. You'd better be
off, Harry, it's getting late." Harry
left the classroom, walking along the corridor and around a corner, then took a
detour behind a suit of armor and sank down on its plinth to finish his chocolate,
wishing he hadn't mentioned Black, as Lupin was obviously not keen on the
subject. Then Harry's thoughts wandered back to his mother and father... He
felt drained and strangely empty, even though he was so full of chocolate.
Terrible though it was to hear his parents' last moments replayed inside his
head, these were the only times Harry had heard their voices since he was a
very small child. But he'd never be able to produce a proper Patronus if he
half wanted to hear his parents again... "They're
dead," he told himself sternly. "They're dead and listening to echoes
of them won't bring them back. You'd better get a grip on yourself if you want
that Quidditch Cup." He
stood up, crammed the last bit of chocolate into his mouth, and headed back to
Gryffindor Tower. * Ravenclaw
played Slytherin a week after the start of term. Slytherin won, though
narrowly. According to Wood, this was good news for Gryffindor, who would take
second place if they beat Ravenclaw too. He therefore increased the number of team
practices to five a week. This meant that with Lupin's anti-Dementor classes,
which in themselves were more draining than six Quidditch practices, Harry had
just one night a week to do all his homework. Even so, he was not showing the
strain nearly as much as Hermione, whose immense workload finally seemed to be
getting to her. Every night, without fail, Hermione was to be seen in a corner
of the common room, several tables spread with books, Arithmancy charts, rune
dictionaries, diagrams of Muggles lifting heavy objects, and file upon file of
extensive notes; she barely spoke to anybody and snapped when she was
interrupted. "How's
she doing it?" Ron muttered to Harry one evening as Harry sat finishing a
nasty essay on Undetectable Poisons for Snape. Harry looked up. Hermione was
barely visible behind a tottering pile of books. "Doing
what?" "Getting
to all her classes!" Ron said. "I heard her talking to Professor
Vector, that Arithmancy witch, this morning. They were going on about
yesterday's lesson, but Hermione can't've been there, because she was with us
in Care of Magical Creatures! And Ernie McMillan told me she's never missed a
Muggle Studies class, but half of them are at the same time as Divination, and
she's never missed one of them either!" Harry
didn't have time to fathom the mystery of Hermione's impossible schedule at the
moment; he really needed to get on with Snape's essay. Two seconds later,
however, he was interrupted again, this time by Wood. "Bad
news, Harry. I've just been to see Professor McGonagall about the Firebolt. She
- er - got a bit shirty with me. Told me I'd got my priorities wrong. Seemed to
think I cared more about winning the Cup than I do about you staying alive.
Just because I told her I didn't care if it threw you off, as long as you
caught the Snitch first." Wood shook his head in disbelief.
"Honestly, the way she was yelling at me...you'd think I'd said something
terrible. Then I asked her how much longer she was going to keep it..." He
screwed up his face and imitated Professor McGonagall's severe voice. "As
long as necessary, Wood"...I reckon it's time you ordered a new broom,
Harry. There's an order form at the back of Which Broomstick...you could
get a Nimbus Two Thousand and One, like Malfoy's got." "I'm
not buying anything Malfoy thinks is good," said Harry flatly. * January
faded imperceptibly into February, with no change in the bitterly cold weather.
The match against Ravenclaw was drawing nearer and nearer, but Harry still
hadn't ordered a new broom. He was now asking Professor McGonagall for news of
the Firebolt after every Transfiguration lesson, Ron standing hopefully at his
shoulder, Hermione rushing past with her face averted. "No,
Potter, you can't have it back yet," Professor McGonagall told him the
twelfth time this happened, before he'd even opened his mouth. "We've
checked for most of the usual curses, but Professor Flitwick believes the broom
might be carrying a Hurling Hex. I shall tell you once we've finished
checking it. Now, please stop badgering me." To make
matters even worse, Harry's anti-Dementor lessons were not going nearly as well
as he had hoped. Several sessions on, he was able to produce an indistinct,
silvery shadow every time the Boggart-Dementor approached him, but his Patronus
was too feeble to drive the Dementor away. All it did was hover, like a
semitransparent cloud, draining Harry of energy as he fought to keep it there.
Harry felt angry with himself, guilty about his secret desire to hear his
parents' voices again. "You're
expecting too much of yourself," said Professor Lupin, sternly in their
fourth week of practice. "For a thirteen-year-old wizard, even an
indistinct Patronus is a huge achievement. You aren't passing out anymore, are
you?" "I
thought a Patronus would - charge the Dementors down or something," said
Harry dispiritedly. "Make them disappear -" "The
true Patronus does do that," said Lupin. "But you've achieved a great
deal in a very short space of time. If the Dementors put in an appearance at
your next Quidditch match, You will be able to keep them at bay long enough to
get back to the ground." "You
said it's harder if there are loads of them," said Harry. "I
have complete confidence in you," said Lupin, smiling. "Here - you've
earned a drink. Something from the Three Broomsticks. You won't have tried it
before -" He
pulled two bottles out of his briefcase. "Butterbeer!"
said Harry, without thinking. "Yeah, I like that stuff!" Lupin
raised an eyebrow. "Oh
- Ron and Hermione brought me some back from Hogsmeade," Harry lied quickly. "I
see," said Lupin, though he still looked slightly suspicious. "Well -
let's drink to a Gryffindor victory against Ravenclaw! Not that I'm supposed to
take sides, as a teacher..." he added hastily. They
drank the butterbeer in silence, until Harry voiced something he'd been
wondering for a while. "What's
under a Dementor's hood?" Professor
Lupin lowered his bottle thoughtfully. "Hmmm
... well, the only people who really know are in no condition to tell us. You
see, the Dementor lowers its hood only to use its last and worst weapon." "What's
that?" "They
call it the Dementor's Kiss," said Lupin, with a slightly twisted smile.
"It's what Dementors do to those they wish to destroy utterly. I suppose
there must be some kind of mouth under there, because they clamp their jaws
upon the mouth of the victim and - and suck out his soul." Harry
accidentally spat out a bit of butterbeer. "What
- they kill -?" "Oh
no," said Lupin. "Much worse than that. You can exist without your
soul, you know, as long as your brain and heart are still working. But you'll
have no sense of self anymore, no memory, no...anything. There's no chance at all
of recovery. You'll just exist. As an empty shell. And your soul is gone
forever...lost." Lupin
drank a little more butterbeer, then said, "It's the fate that awaits
Sirius Black. It was in the Daily Prophet this morning. The Ministry
have given the Dementors permission to perform it if they find him." Harry
sat stunned for a moment at the idea of someone having their soul sucked out
through their mouth. But then he thought of Black. "He
deserves it," he said suddenly. "You
think so?" said Lupin lightly. "Do you really think anyone deserves
that?" "Yes,"
said Harry defiantly. "For...for some things..." He
would have liked to have told Lupin about the conversation he'd overheard about
Black in the Three Broomsticks, about Black betraying his mother and father,
but it would have involved revealing that he'd gone to Hogsmeade without
permission, and he knew Lupin wouldn't be very impressed by that. So he
finished his butterbeer, thanked Lupin, and left the History of Magic
classroom. Harry
half wished that he hadn't asked what was under a Dementor's hood, the answer
had been so horrible, and he was so lost in unpleasant thoughts of what it
would feel like to have your soul sucked out of you that he walked headlong
into Professor McGonagall halfway up the stairs. "Do
watch where you're going, Potter!" "Sorry,
Professor -" "I've
just been looking for you in the Gryffindor common room, Well, here it is, we've
done everything we could think of, and there doesn't seem to be anything wrong
with it at all - you've got a very good friend somewhere, Potter..." Harry's
jaw dropped. She was holding out his Firebolt, and it looked as magnificent as
ever. "I
can have it back?" Harry said weakly. "Seriously?" "Seriously,"
said Professor McGonagall, and she was actually smiling. "I daresay you'll
need to get the feel of it before Saturday's match, won't you? And Potter - do
try and win, won't you? Or we'll be out of the running for the eighth year in a
row, as Professor Snape was kind enough to remind me only last night..." Speechless,
Harry carried the Firebolt back upstairs toward Gryffindor Tower. As he turned
a corner, he saw Ron dashing toward him, grinning from ear to ear. "She
gave it to you? Excellent! Listen, can I still have a go on it? Tomorrow?" "Yeah...anything..."
said Harry, his heart lighter than it had been in a month. "You know what
- we should make up with Hermione...She was only trying to help..." "Yeah,
all right," said Ron. "She's in the common room now working - for a
change." They
turned into the corridor to Gryffindor Tower and saw Neville Longbottom,
pleading with Sir Cadogan, who seemed to be refusing him entrance. "I
wrote them down!" Neville was saying tearfully. "But I must've
dropped them somewhere!" "A
likely tale!" roared Sir Cadogan. Then, spotting Harry and Ron: "Good
even, my fine young yeomen! Come clap this loon in irons. He is trying to force
entry to the chambers within!" "Oh,
shut up," said Ron as he and Harry drew level with Neville. "I've
lost the passwords!" Neville told them miserably. "I made him tell me
what passwords he was going to use this week, because he keeps changing them,
and now I don't know what I've done with them!" "Oddsbodkins,"
said Harry to Sir Cadogan, who looked extremely disappointed and reluctantly
swung forward to let them into the common room. There was a sudden, excited
murmur as every head turned and the next moment, Harry was surrounded by people
exclaiming over his Firebolt. "Where'd
you get it, Harry?" "Will
you let me have a go?" "Have
you ridden it yet, Harry?" "Ravenclaw'll
have no chance, they're all on Cleansweep Sevens!" "Can
I just hold it, Harry?" After ten
minutes or so, during which the Firebolt was Passed around and admired from
every angle, the crowd dispersed and Harry and Ron had a clear view of
Hermione, the only person who hadn't rushed over to them, bent over her work
and carefully avoiding their eyes. Harry and Ron approached her table and at
last, she looked up. "I
got it back," said Harry, grinning at her and holding up the Firebolt. "See,
Hermione? There wasn't anything wrong with it!" said Ron. "Well
- there might have been!" said Hermione. "I mean, at least you
know now that it's safe!" "Yeah,
I suppose so," said Harry. "I'd better put it upstairs." "I'll
take it!" said Ron eagerly. "I've got to give Scabbers his rat
tonic." He
took the Firebolt and, holding it as if it were made of glass, carried it away
up the boys' staircase. "Can
I sit down, then?" Harry asked Hermione. "I
suppose so," said Hermione, moving a great stack of parchment off a chair. Harry
looked around at the cluttered table, at the long Arithmancy essay on which the
ink was still glistening, at the even longer Muggle Studies essay ('Explain Why
Muggles Need Electricity') and at the rune translation Hermione was now poring
over. "How
are you getting through all this stuff?" Harry asked her. "Oh,
well - you know - working hard," said Hermione. Close-up, Harry saw that
she looked almost as tired as Lupin. "Why
don't you just drop a couple of subjects?" Harry asked, watching her
lifting books as she searched for her rune dictionary. "I
couldn't do that!" said Hermione, looking scandalized. "Arithmancy
looks terrible," said Harry, picking up a very complicated-looking number
chart. "Oh
no, it's wonderful!" said Hermione earnestly. "It's my favorite
subject! It's -" But
exactly what was wonderful about Arithmancy, Harry never found out. At that
precise moment, a strangled yell echoed down the boys' staircase. The whole
common room fell silent, staring, petrified, at the entrance. Then came hurried
footsteps, growing louder and louder - and then Ron came leaping into view,
dragging with him a bedsheet. "LOOK!"
he bellowed, striding over to Hermione's table. "LOOK!" he yelled,
shaking the sheets in her face. "Ron,
what -?" "SCABBERS!
LOOK! SCABBERS!" Hermione
was leaning away from Ron, looking utterly bewildered. Harry looked down at the
sheet Ron was holding. There was something red on it. Something that looked
horribly like - "BLOOD!"
Ron yelled into the stunned silence. "HE'S GONE! AND YOU KNOW WHAT WAS ON
THE FLOOR?" "N
- no," said Hermione in a trembling voice. Ron
threw something down onto Hermione's rune translation. Hermione and Harry leaned
forward. Lying on top of the weird, spiky shapes were several long, ginger cat
hairs. CHAPTER THIRTEEN GRYFFINDOR VERSUS RAVENCLAWIt
looked like the end of Ron and Hermione's friendship. Each was so angry with
the other that Harry couldn't see how they'd ever make up. Ron
was enraged that Hermione had never taken Crookshanks's attempts to eat
Scabbers seriously, hadn't bothered to keep a close enough watch on him, and
was still trying to pretend that Crookshanks was innocent by suggesting that
Ron look for Scabbers under all the boys' beds. Hermione, meanwhile, maintained
fiercely that Ron had no proof that Crookshanks had eaten Scabbers, that the
ginger hairs might have been there since Christmas, and that Ron had been
prejudiced against her cat ever since Crookshanks had landed on Ron's head in
the Magical Menagerie. Personally,
Harry was sure that Crookshanks had eaten Scabbers, and when he tried to point
out to Hermione that the evidence all pointed that way, she lost her temper
with Harry too. "Okay,
side with Ron, I knew you would!" she said shrilly. "First the
Firebolt, now Scabbers, everything's my fault, isn't it! Just leave me alone,
Harry, I've got a lot of work to do!" Ron
had taken the loss of his rat very hard indeed. "Come
on, Ron, you were always saying how boring Scabbers was," said Fred
bracingly. "And he's been off-color for ages, he was wasting away. It was
probably better for him to snuff it quickly - one swallow - he probably didn't
feel a thing." "Fred!"
said Ginny indignantly. "All he
did was eat and sleep, Ron, you said it yourself," said George. "He
bit Goyle for us once!" Ron said miserably. "Remember, Harry?" "Yeah,
that's true," said Harry. "His
finest hour," said Fred, unable to keep a straight face. "Let the
scar on Goyle's finger stand as a lasting tribute to his memory. Oh, come on,
Ron, get yourself down to Hogsmeade and buy a new rat, what's the point of
moaning?" In a
last-ditch attempt to cheer Ron up, Harry persuaded him to come along to the
Gryffindor team's final practice before the Ravenclaw match, so that he could
have a ride on the Firebolt after they'd finished. This did seem to take Ron's
mind off Scabbers for a moment ("Great! Can I try and shoot a few goals on
it?") so they set off for the Quidditch field together. Madam
Hooch, who was still overseeing Gryffindor practices to keep an eye on Harry,
was just as impressed with the Firebolt as everyone else had been. She took it
in her hands before takeoff and gave them the benefit of her professional
opinion. "Look
at the balance on it! If the Nimbus series has a fault, it's a slight list to
the tail end - you often find they develop a drag after a few years. They've
updated the handle too, a bit slimmer than the Cleansweeps, reminds me of the
old Silver Arrows - a pity they've stopped making them. I learned to fly on
one, and a very fine old broom it was too..." She
continued in this vein for some time, until Wood said, "Er - Madam Hooch?
Is it okay if Harry has the Firebolt back? We need to practice..." "Oh
- right - here you are, then, Potter," said Madam Hooch. "I'll sit
over here with Weasley..." She
and Ron left the field to sit in the stadium, and the Gryffindor team gathered
around Wood for his final instructions for tomorrow's match. "Harry,
I've just found out who Ravenclaw is playing as Seeker. It's Cho Chang. She's a
fourth year, and she's pretty good...I really hoped she wouldn't be fit, she's
had some problems with injuries..." Wood scowled his displeasure that Cho
Chang had made a full recovery, then said, "On the other hand, she rides a
Comet Two Sixty, which is going to look like a joke next to the Firebolt."
He gave Harry's broom a look of fervent admiration, then said, "Okay,
everyone, let's go -" And
at long last, Harry mounted his Firebolt, and kicked off from the ground. It
was better than he'd ever dreamed. The Firebolt turned with the lightest touch;
it seemed to obey his thoughts rather than his grip; it sped across the field
at such speed that the stadium turned into a green-and-gray blur; Harry turned
it so sharply that Alicia Spinnet screamed, then he went into a perfectly
controlled dive, brushing the grassy field with his toes before rising thirty,
forty, fifty feet into the air again - "Harry,
I'm letting the Snitch out!" Wood called. Harry
turned and raced a Bludger toward the goal posts; he outstripped it easily, saw
the Snitch dart out from behind Wood, and within ten seconds had caught it
tightly in his hand. The
team cheered madly. Harry let the Snitch go again, gave it a minute's head
start, then tore after it, weaving in and out of the others; he spotted it
lurking near Katie Bell's knee, looped her easily, and caught it again. It
was the best practice ever; the team, inspired by the presence of the Firebolt
in their midst, performed their best moves faultlessly, and by the time they
hit the ground again, Wood didn't have a single criticism to make, which, as
George Weasley pointed out, was a first. "I
can't see what's going to stop us tomorrow!" said Wood. "Not unless -
Harry, you've sorted out your Dementor problem, haven't you?" "Yeah,"
said Harry, thinking of his feeble Patronus and wishing it were stronger. "The
Dementors won't turn up again, Oliver. Dumbledore'd go ballistic," said
Fred confidently. "Well,
let's hope not," said Wood. "Anyway - good work, everyone. Let's get
back to the tower...turn in early..." "I'm
staying out for a bit; Ron wants a go on the Firebolt," Harry told Wood,
and while the rest of the team headed off to the locker rooms, Harry strode
over to Ron, who vaulted the barrier to the stands and came to meet him. Madam
Hooch had fallen asleep in her seat. "Here
you go," said Harry, handing Ron the Firebolt. Ron,
an expression of ecstasy on his face, mounted the broom and zoomed off into the
gathering darkness while Harry walked around the edge of the field, watching
him. Night had fallen before Madam Hooch awoke with a start, told Harry and Ron
off for not waking her, and insisted that they go back to the castle. Harry
shouldered the Firebolt and he and Ron walked out of the shadowy stadium,
discussing the Firebolt's superbly smooth action, its phenomenal acceleration,
and its pinpoint turning. They were halfway toward the castle when Harry,
glancing to his left, saw something that made his heart turn over - a pair of
eyes, gleaming out of the darkness. Harry
stopped dead, his heart banging against his ribs. "What's
the matter?" said Ron. Harry
pointed. Ron pulled out his wand and muttered, "Lumos!" A beam of
light fell across the grass, hit the bottom of a tree, and illuminated its
branches; there, crouching among the budding leaves, was Crookshanks. "Get
out of here!" Ron roared, and he stooped down and seized a stone lying on
the grass, but before he could do anything else, Crookshanks had vanished with
one swish of his long ginger tail. "See?"
Ron said furiously, chucking the stone down again. "She's still letting
him wander about wherever he wants - probably washing down Scabbers with a
couple of birds now..." Harry
didn't say anything. He took a deep breath as relief seeped through him; he had
been sure for a moment that those eyes had belonged to the Grim. They set off
for the castle once more. slightly ashamed of his moment of panic, Harry didn't
say anything to Ron - nor did he look left or right until they had reached the
well lit entrance hall. * Harry
went down to breakfast the next morning with the rest of the boys in his
dormitory, all of whom seemed to think the Firebolt deserved a sort of guard of
honor. As Harry entered the Great Hall, heads turned in the direction of the
Firebolt, and there was a good deal of excited muttering. Harry saw, with
enormous satisfaction, that the Slytherin team were all looking thunderstruck. "Did
you see his face?" said Ron gleefully, looking back at Malfoy. "He
can't believe it! This is brilliant!" Wood,
too, was basking in the reflected glory of the Firebolt. "Put
it here, Harry," he said, laying the broom in the middle of the table and
carefully turning it so that its name faced upward. People from the Ravenclaw
and Hufflepuff tables were soon coming over to look. Cedric Diggory came over
to congratulate Harry on having acquired such a superb replacement for his
Nimbus, and Percy's Ravenclaw girlfriend, Penelope Clearwater, asked if she
could actually hold the Firebolt. "Now,
now, Penny, no sabotage!" said Percy heartily as she examined the Firebolt
closely. "Penelope and I have got a bet on," he told the team.
"Ten Galleons on the outcome of the match!" Penelope
put the Firebolt down again, thanked Harry, and went back to her table. "Harry
- make sure you win," said Percy, in an urgent whisper. "I haven't
got ten Galleons. Yes, I'm coming, Penny!" And he bustled off to join
her in a piece of toast. "Sure
you can manage that broom, Potter?" said a cold, drawling voice. Draco
Malfoy had arrived for a closer look, Crabbe and Goyle right behind him. "Yeah,
reckon so," said Harry casually. "Got
plenty of special features, hasn't it?" said Malfoy, eyes glittering
maliciously. "Shame it doesn't come with a parachute - in case you get too
near a Dementor." Crabbe
and Goyle sniggered. "Pity
you can't attach an extra arm to yours, Malfoy," said Harry. "Then it
could catch the Snitch for you." The
Gryffindor team laughed loudly. Malfoy's pale eyes narrowed, and he stalked
away. They watched him rejoin the rest of the Slytherin team, who put their
heads together, no doubt asking Malfoy whether Harry's broom really was a
Firebolt. At a
quarter to eleven, the Gryffindor team set off for the locker rooms. The
weather couldn't have been more different from their match against Hufflepuff.
It was a clear, cool day with a very light breeze; there would be no visibility
problems this time, and Harry, though nervous, was starting to feel the
excitement only a Quidditch match could bring. They could hear the rest of the
school moving into the stadium beyond. Harry took off his black school robes,
removed his wand from his pocket, and stuck it inside the T-shirt he was going
to wear under his Quidditch robes. He only hoped he wouldn't need it. He
wondered suddenly whether Professor Lupin was in the crowd, watching. "You
know what we've got to do," said Wood as they prepared to leave the locker
rooms. "If we lose this match, we're out of the running. just - just fly
like you did in practice yesterday, and we'll be okay!" They
walked out onto the field to tumultuous applause. The Ravenclaw team, dressed
in blue, were already standing in the middle of the field. Their Seeker, Cho
Chang, was the only girl on their team. She was shorter than Harry by about a
head, and Harry couldn't help noticing, nervous as he was, that she was
extremely pretty. She smiled at Harry as the teams faced each other behind
their captains, and he felt a slight lurch in the region of his stomach that he
didn't think had anything to do with nerves. "Wood,
Davies, shake hands," Madam Hooch said briskly, and Wood shook hands with
the Ravenclaw Captain. "Mount
your brooms... on my whistle... three - two - one -" Harry
kicked off into the air and the Firebolt zoomed higher and faster than any
other broom; he soared around the stadium and began squinting around for the
Snitch, listening all the while to the commentary, which was being provided by
the Weasley twins' friend Lee Jordan. "They're
off, and the big excitement this match is the Firebolt that Harry Potter is
flying for Gryffindor. According to Which Broomstick, the Firebolt's
going to be the broom of choice for the national teams at this year's World
Championship -" "Jordan,
would you mind telling us what's going on in the match?" interrupted Professor
McGonagall's voice. "Right
you are, Professor - just giving a bit of background information - the
Firebolt, incidentally, has a built-in auto-brake and -" "Jordan!" "Okay,
okay, Gryffindor in possession, Katie Bell of Gryffindor, heading for
goal..." Harry
streaked past Katie in the opposite direction, gazing around for a glint of
gold and noticing that Cho Chang was tailing him closely. She was undoubtedly a
very good flier - she kept cutting across him, forcing him to change direction. "Show
her your acceleration, Harry!" Fred yelled as he whooshed past in pursuit
of a Bludger that was aiming for Alicia. Harry
urged the Firebolt forward as they rounded the Ravenclaw goal posts and Cho
fell behind. Just as Katie succeeded in scoring the first goal of the match,
and the Gryffindor end of the field went wild, he saw it - the Snitch was close
to the ground, flitting near one of the barriers. Harry
dived; Cho saw what he was doing and tore after him - Harry was speeding up,
excitement flooding him; dives were his specialty, he was ten feet away - Then
a Bludger, hit by one of the Ravenclaw Beaters, came pelting out of nowhere;
Harry veered off course, avoiding it by an inch, and in those few, crucial
seconds, the Snitch had vanished. There
was a great "Ooooooh" of disappointment from the Gryffindor
supporters, but much applause for their Beater from the Ravenclaw end. George
Weasley vented his feelings by hitting the second Bludger directly at the
offending Beater, who was forced to roll right over in midair to avoid it. "Gryffindor
leads by eighty points to zero, and look at that Firebolt go! Potter's really
putting it through its paces now, see it turn - Chang's Comet is just no match
for it, the Firebolt's precision - balance is really noticeable in these long
-" "JORDAN!
ARE YOU BEING PAID TO ADVERTISE FIREBOLTS? GET ON WITH THE COMMENTARY!" Ravenclaw
was pulling back; they had now scored three goals, which put Gryffindor only
fifty points ahead - if Cho got the Snitch before him, Ravenclaw would win.
Harry dropped lower, narrowly avoiding a Ravenclaw Chaser, scanning the field
frantically - a glint of gold, a flutter of tiny wings - the Snitch was
circling the Gryffindor goal post... Harry
accelerated, eyes fixed on the speck of gold ahead - but just then, Cho appeared
out of thin air, blocking him - "HARRY,
THIS IS NO TIME TO BE A GENTLEMAN!" Wood roared as Harry swerved to avoid
a collision. "KNOCK HER OFF HER BROOM IF YOU HAVE TO!" Harry
turned and caught sight of Cho; she was grinning. The Snitch had vanished
again. Harry turned his Firebolt upward and was soon twenty feet above the
game. Out of the corner of his eye, he saw Cho following him...She'd decided to
mark him rather than search for the Snitch herself...All right, then...if she
wanted to tail him, she'd have to take the consequences... He
dived again, and Cho, thinking he'd seen the Snitch, tried to follow; Harry
pulled out of the dive very sharply; she hurtled downward; he rose fast as a
bullet once more, and then saw it, for the third time - the Snitch was
glittering way above the field at the Ravenclaw end. He
accelerated; so, many feet below, did Cho. He was winning, gaining on the
Snitch with every second - then - "Oh!"
screamed Cho, pointing. Distracted,
Harry looked down. Three
Dementors, three tall, black, hooded Dementors, were looking up at him. He
didn't stop to think. Plunging a hand down the neck of his robes, he whipped
out his wand and roared, "Expecto patronum!" Something
silver-white, something enormous, erupted from the end of his wand. He knew it
had shot directly at the Dementors but didn't pause to watch; his mind still
miraculously clear, he looked ahead - he was nearly there. He stretched out the
hand still grasping his wand and just managed to close his fingers over the
small, struggling Snitch. Madam
Hooch's whistle sounded. Harry turned around in midair and saw six scarlet
blurs bearing down on him; next moment, the whole team was hugging him so hard
he was nearly pulled off his broom. Down below he could hear the roars of the
Gryffindors in the crowd. "That's
my boy!" Wood kept yelling. Alicia, Angelina, and Katie had all kissed
Harry; Fred had him in a grip so tight Harry felt as though his head would come
off In complete disarray, the team managed to make its way back to the ground. Harry
got off his broom and looked up to see a gaggle of Gryffindor supporters
sprinting onto the field, Ron in the lead. Before he knew it, he had been
engulfed by the cheering crowd. "Yes!"
Ron yelled, yanking Harry's arm into the air. "Yes! Yes!" "Well
done, Harry!" said Percy, looking delighted. "Ten Galleons to
me! Must find Penelope, excuse me -" "Good
for you, Harry!" roared Seamus Finnigan. "Ruddy
brilliant!" boomed Hagrid over the heads of the milling Gryffindors. "That
was quite some Patronus," said a voice in Harry's ear. Harry
turned around to see Professor Lupin, who looked both shaken and pleased. "The
Dementors didn't affect me at all!" Harry said excitedly. "I didn't
feel a thing!" "That
would be because they - er - weren't Dementors," said Professor Lupin.
"Come and see - " He
led Harry out of the crowd until they were able to see the edge of the field. "You
gave Mr. Malfoy quite a fright," said Lupin. Harry
stared. Lying in a crumpled heap on the ground were Malfoy, Crabbe, Goyle, and
Marcus Flint, the Slytherin team Captain, all struggling to remove themselves
from long, black, hooded robes. It looked as though Malfoy had been standing on
Goyle's shoulders. Standing over them, with an expression of the utmost fury on
her face, was Professor McGonagall. "An
unworthy trick!" she was shouting. "A low and cowardly attempt to
sabotage the Gryffindor Seeker! Detention for all of you, and fifty points from
Slytherin! I shall be speaking to Professor Dumbledore about this, make no
mistake! Ah, here he comes now!" If
anything could have set the seal on Gryffindor's victory, it was this. Ron, who
had fought his way through to Harry's side, doubled up with laughter as they
watched Malfoy fighting to extricate himself from the robe, Goyle's head still
stuck inside it. "Come
on, Harry!" said George, fighting his way over. "Party! Gryffindor
common room, now!" "Right,"
said Harry, and feeling happier than he had in ages, he and the rest of the
team led the way, still in their scarlet robes, out of the stadium and back up
to the castle. * It
felt as though they had already won the Quidditch Cup; the party went on all
day and well into the night. Fred and George Weasley disappeared for a couple
of hours and returned with armfuls of bottles of butterbeer, pumpkin fizz, and
several bags full of Honeydukes sweets. "How
did you do that?" squealed Angelina Johnson as George started throwing
Peppermint Toads into the crowd. "With
a little help from Moony, Wormtail, Padfoot, and Prongs," Fred muttered in
Harry's ear. Only
one person wasn't joining in the festivities. Hermione, incredibly, was sitting
in a corner, attempting to read an enormous book entitled Home Life and
Social Habits of British Muggles. Harry broke away from the table where
Fred and George had started juggling butterbeer bottles and went over to her. "Did
you even come to the match?" he asked her. "Of
course I did," said Hermione in a strangely high-pitched voice, not
looking up. "And I'm very glad we won, and I think you did really well,
but I need to read this by Monday." "Come
on, Hermione, come and have some food," Harry said, looking over at Ron
and wondering whether he was in a good enough mood to bury the hatchet. "I
can't, Harry. I've still got four hundred and twenty-two pages to read!"
said Hermione, now sounding slightly hysterical. "Anyway..." She
glanced over at Ron too. "He doesn't want me to join in." There
was no arguing with this, as Ron chose that moment to say loudly, "If
Scabbers hadn't just been eaten, he could have had some of those Fudge
Flies. He used to really like them -" Hermione
burst into tears. Before Harry could say or do anything, she tucked the
enormous book under her arm, and, still sobbing, ran toward the staircase to
the girls' dormitories and out of sight. "Can't
you give her a break?" Harry asked Ron quietly. "No,"
said Ron flatly. "If she just acted like she was sorry - but she'll never
admit she's wrong, Hermione. She's still acting like Scabbers has gone on
vacation or something." The
Gryffindor party ended only when Professor McGonagall turned up in her tartan
dressing gown and hair net at one in the morning, to insist that they all go to
bed. Harry and Ron climbed the stairs to their dormitory, still discussing the
match. At last, exhausted, Harry climbed into bed, twitched the hangings of his
four-poster shut to block out a ray of moonlight, lay back, and felt himself
almost instantly drifting off to sleep... He had a
very strange dream. He was walking through a forest, his Firebolt over his
shoulder, following something silvery-white. It was winding its way through the
trees ahead, and he could only catch glimpses of it between the leaves. Anxious
to catch up with it, he sped up, but as he moved faster, so did his quarry.
Harry broke into a run, and ahead he heard hooves gathering speed. Now he was
running flat out, and ahead he could hear galloping. Then he turned a corner
into a clearing and - "AAAAAAAAAAAAAARRRRRRRRRRRRGGGHHHHHHH!
NOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOO!" Harry woke as suddenly as
though he'd been hit in the face. Disoriented in the total darkness, he fumbled
with his hangings, he could hear movements around him, and Seamus Finnigan's
voice from the other side of the room. "What's
going on?" Harry
thought he heard the dormitory door slam. At last finding the divide in his
curtains, he ripped them back, and at the same moment, Dean Thomas lit his
lamp. Ron
was sitting up in bed, the hangings torn from one side, a look of utmost terror
on his face. "Black!
Sirius Black! With a knife!" "What?" "Here! Just now!
Slashed the curtains! Woke me up!" "You
sure you weren't dreaming, Ron?" said Dean. "Look
at the curtains! I tell you, he was here!" They
all scrambled out of bed; Harry reached the dormitory door first, and they
sprinted back down the staircase. Doors opened behind them, and sleepy voices
called after them. "Who
shouted?" "What're
you doing?" The
common room was lit with the glow of the dying fire, still littered with the
debris from the party. It was deserted. "Are
you sure you weren't dreaming, Ron?" "I'm
telling you, I saw him!" "What's
all the noise?" "Professor
McGonagall told us to go to bed!" A few
of the girls had come down their staircase, pulling on dressing gowns and
yawning. Boys, too, were reappearing. "Excellent,
are we carrying on?" said Fred Weasley brightly. "Everyone
back upstairs!" said Percy, hurrying into the common room and pinning his
Head Boy badge to his pajamas as he spoke. "Perce
- Sirius Black!" said Ron faintly. "In our dormitory! With a knife!
Woke me up!" The
common room went very still. "Nonsense!"
said Percy, looking startled. "You had too much to eat, Ron - had a
nightmare -" "I'm
telling you -" "Now,
really, enough's enough!" Professor
McGonagall was back. She slammed the portrait behind her as she entered the
common room and stared furiously around. "I
am delighted that Gryffindor won the match, but this is getting ridiculous!
Percy, I expected better of you!" "I
certainly didn't authorize this, Professor!" said Percy, puffing himself
up indignantly. "I was just telling them all to get back to bed! My
brother Ron here had a nightmare -" "IT
WASN'T A NIGHTMARE!" Ron yelled. "PROFESSOR, I WOKE UP, AND SIRIUS
BLACK WAS STANDING OVER ME, HOLDING A KNIFE!" Professor
McGonagall stared at him. "Don't
be ridiculous, Weasley, how could he possibly have gotten through the portrait
hole?" "Ask
him!" said Ron, pointing a shaking finger at the back of Sir Cadogan's
picture. "Ask him if he saw -" Glaring
suspiciously at Ron, Professor McGonagall pushed the portrait back open and
went outside. The whole common room listened with bated breath. "Sir
Cadogan, did you just let a man enter Gryffindor Tower?" "Certainly,
good lady!" cried Sir Cadogan. There
was a stunned silence, both inside and outside the common room. "You
- you did?" said Professor McGonagall. "But - but the
password!" "He had
'em!" said Sir Cadogan proudly. "Had the whole week's, my lady! Read
'em off a little piece of paper!" Professor
McGonagall pulled herself back through the portrait hole to face the stunned
crowd. She was white as chalk. "Which
person," she said, her voice shaking, "which abysmally foolish person
wrote down this week's passwords and left them lying around?" There
was utter silence, broken by the smallest of terrified squeaks. Neville
Longbottom, trembling from head to fluffy slippered toes, raised his hand
slowly into the air. CHAPTER FOURTEEN SNAPE'S GRUDGENo
one in Gryffindor Tower slept that night. They knew that the castle was being
searched again, and the whole House stayed awake in the common room, waiting to
hear whether Black had been caught. Professor McGonagall came back at dawn, to
tell them that he had again escaped. Throughout
the day, everywhere they went they saw signs of tighter security; Professor
Flitwick could be seen teaching the front doors to recognize a large picture of
Sirius Black; Filch was suddenly bustling up and down the corridors, boarding
up everything from tiny cracks in the walls to mouse holes. Sir Cadogan had
been fired. His portrait had been taken back to its lonely landing on the seventh
floor, and the Fat Lady was back. She had been expertly restored, but was still
extremely nervous, and had agreed to return to her job only on condition that
she was given extra protection. A bunch of surly security trolls had been hired
to guard her. They paced the corridor in a menacing group, talking in grunts
and comparing the size of their clubs. Harry
couldn't help noticing that the statue of the one-eyed witch on the third floor
remained unguarded and unblocked. It seemed that Fred and George had been right
in thinking that they - and now Harry, Ron, and Hermione - were the only ones
who knew about the hidden passageway within it. "D'you
reckon we should tell someone?" Harry asked Ron. "We
know he's not coming in through Honeyduke's," said Ron dismissively.
"We'd've heard if the shop had been broken into." Harry
was glad Ron took this view. If the one-eyed witch was boarded up too, he would
never be able to go into Hogsmeade again. Ron
had become an instant celebrity. For the first time in his life, people were
paying more attention to him than to Harry, and it was clear that Ron was
rather enjoying the experience. Though still severely shaken by the night's
events, he was happy to tell anyone who asked what had happened, with a wealth
of detail. "...
I was asleep, and I heard this ripping noise, and I thought it was in my dream,
you know? But then there was this draft...I woke up and one side of the hangings
on my bed had been pulled down...I rolled over...and I saw him standing over
me...like a skeleton, with loads of filthy hair...holding this great long knife,
must've been twelve inches...and he looked at me, and I looked at him, and then I
yelled, and he scampered. "Why,
though?" Ron added to Harry as the group of second year girls who had been
listening to his chilling tale departed. "Why did he run?" Harry
had been wondering the same thing. Why had Black, having got the wrong bed, not
silenced Ron and proceeded to Harry? Black had proved twelve years ago that he
didn't mind murdering innocent people, and this time he had been facing five
unarmed boys, four of whom were asleep. "He
must've known he'd have a job getting back out of the castle once you'd yelled
and woken people up," said Harry thoughtfully. "He'd've had to kill
the whole house to get back through the portrait hole...then he would've met the
teachers..." Neville
was in total disgrace. Professor McGonagall was so furious with him she had
banned him from all future Hogsmeade visits, given him a detention, and
forbidden anyone to give him the password into the tower. Poor Neville was
forced to wait. outside the common room every night for somebody to let him in,
while the security trolls leered unpleasantly at him. None of these
punishments, however, came close to matching the one his grandmother had in
store for him. Two days after Black's break-in, she sent Neville the very worst
thing a Hogwarts student could receive over breakfast - a Howler. The
school owls swooped into the Great Hall carrying the mail as usual, and Neville
choked as a huge barn owl landed in front of him, a scarlet envelope clutched
in its beak. Harry and Ron, who were sitting opposite him, recognized the
letter as a Howler at once - Ron had got one from his mother the year before. "Run
for it, Neville," Ron advised. Neville
didn't need telling twice. He seized the envelope, and holding it before him
like a bomb, sprinted out of the hall, while the Slytherin table exploded with
laughter at the sight of him. They heard the Howler go off in the entrance hall
- Neville's grandmother's voice, magically magnified to a hundred times its
usual volume, shrieking about how he had brought shame on the whole family. Harry
was too busy feeling sorry for Neville to notice immediately that he had a
letter too. Hedwig got his attention by nipping him sharply on the wrist. "Ouch!
Oh - thanks, Hedwig."
Harry tore open the envelope while Hedwig helped
herself to some of Neville's cornflakes. The note inside said:
Dear Harry and Ron,
How about having tea with me this afternoon 'round six? I'll come collect you from
the castle. WAIT FOR ME IN THE ENTRANCE HALL; YOU'RE NOT ALLOWED OUT ON YOUR
OWN.
Cheers,
Hagrid
"He
probably wants to hear all about Black!" said Ron. So at six
o'clock that afternoon, Harry and Ron left Gryffindor Tower, passed the security
trolls at a run, and headed down to the entrance hall. Hagrid
was already waiting for them. "All
right, Hagrid!" said Ron. "S'pose you want to hear about Saturday
night, do you?" "I've
already heard all abou' it," said Hagrid, opening the front doors and
leading them outside. "Oh,"
said Ron, looking slightly put out. The
first thing they saw on entering Hagrid's cabin was Buckbeak, who was stretched
out on top of Hagrid's patchwork quilt, his enormous wings folded tight to his
body, enjoying a large plate of dead ferrets. Averting his eyes from this
unpleasant sight, Harry saw a gigantic, hairy brown suit and a very horrible
yellow-and-orange tie hanging from the top of Hagrid's wardrobe door. "What
are they for, Hagrid?" said Harry. "Buckbeak's
case against the Committee fer the Disposal o' Dangerous Creatures," said
Hagrid. "This Friday. Him an' me'll be goin' down ter London together.
I've booked two beds on the Knight Bus..." Harry felt a
nasty pang of guilt. He had completely forgotten that Buckbeak's trial was so
near, and judging by the uneasy look on Ron's face, he had too. They had also
forgotten their promise about helping him prepare Buckbeak's defense; the
arrival of the Firebolt had driven it clean out of their minds. Hagrid
poured them tea and offered them a plate of Bath buns but they knew better than
to accept; they had had too much experience with Hagrid's cooking. "I
got somethin' ter discuss with you two," said Hagrid, sitting himself
between them and looking uncharacteristically serious. "What?"
said Harry. "Hermione,"
said Hagrid. "What
about her?" said Ron. "She's
in a righ' state, that's what. She's bin comin' down ter visit me a lot since
Chris'mas. Bin feelin' lonely. Firs' yeh weren' talking to her because o' the
Firebolt, now yer not talkin' to her because her cat -" "-
ate Scabbers!" Ron interjected angrily. "Because
her cat acted like all cats do," Hagrid continued doggedly. "She's
cried a fair few times, yeh know. Goin' through a rough time at the moment.
Bitten off more'n she can chew, if yeh ask me, all the work she's tryin' ter
do. Still found time ter help me with Buckbeak's case, mind...She's found some
really good stuff fer me...reckon he'll stand a good chance now..." "Hagrid,
we should've helped as well - sorry -" Harry began awkwardly. "I'm
not blamin' yeh!" said Hagrid, waving Harry's apology aside. "Gawd
knows yeh've had enough ter be getting' on with. I've seen yeh practicin'
Quidditch ev'ry hour o' the day an' night - but I gotta tell yeh, I thought you
two'd value yer friend more'n broomsticks or rats. Tha's all." Harry
and Ron exchanged uncomfortable looks. "Really
upset, she was, when Black nearly stabbed yeh, Ron. She's got her heart in the
right place, Hermione has, an' you two not talkin' to her -" "If
she'd just get rid of that cat, I'd speak to her again!" Ron said angrily.
"But she's still sticking up for it! It's a maniac, and she won't hear a
word against it!" "Ah,
well, people can be a bit stupid abou' their pets," said Hagrid wisely.
Behind him, Buckbeak spat a few ferret bones onto Hagrid's pillow. They
spent the rest of their visit discussing Gryffindor's improved chances for the
Quidditch Cup. At nine o'clock, Hagrid walked them back up to the castle. A
large group of people was bunched around the bulletin board when they returned
to the common room. "Hogsmeade,
next weekend!" said Ron, craning over the heads to read the new notice.
"What d'you reckon?" he added quietly to Harry as they went to sit
down. "Well,
Filch hasn't done anything about the passage into Honeydukes..." Harry said,
even more quietly. "Harry!"
said a voice in his right ear. Harry started and looked around at Hermione, who
was sitting at the table right behind them and clearing a space in the wall of
books that had been hiding her. "Harry,
if you go into Hogsmeade again...I'll tell Professor McGonagall about that
map!" said Hermione. "Can
you hear someone talking, Harry?" growled Ron, not looking at Hermione. "Ron,
how can you let him go with you? After what Sirius Black nearly did to you!
I mean it, I'll tell -" "So now
you're trying to get Harry expelled!" said Ron furiously. "Haven't
you done enough damage this year?" Hermione
opened her mouth to respond, but with a soft hiss, Crookshanks leapt onto her
lap. Hermione took one frightened look at the expression on Ron's face,
gathered up Crookshanks, and hurried away toward the girls' dormitories. "So
how about it?" Ron said to Harry as though there had been no interruption.
"Come on, last time we went you didn't see anything. You haven't even been
inside Zonko's yet!" Harry
looked around to check that Hermione was well out of earshot. "Okay,"
he said. "But I'm taking the Invisibility Cloak this time." * On Saturday
morning, Harry packed his Invisibility Cloak in his bag, slipped the Marauder's
Map into his pocket, and went down to breakfast with everyone else. Hermione
kept shooting suspicious looks down the table at him, but he avoided her eye
and was careful to let her see him walking back up the marble staircase in the
entrance hall as everybody else proceeded to the front doors. "Bye!"
Harry called to Ron. "See you when you get back!" Ron
grinned and winked. Harry
hurried up to the third floor, slipping the Marauder's Map out of his pocket as
he went. Crouching behind the one-eyed witch, he smoothed it out. A tiny dot
was moving in his direction. Harry squinted at it. The minuscule writing next
to it read Neville Longbottom. Harry
quickly pulled out his wand, muttered, "Dissendium!" and shoved his
bag into the statue, but before he could climb in himself, Neville came around
the corner. "Harry!
I forgot you weren't going to Hogsmeade either!" "Hi,
Neville," said Harry, moving swiftly away from the statue and pushing the
map back into his pocket. "What are you up to?" "Nothing,"
shrugged Neville. "Want a game of Exploding Snap?" "Er
- not now - I was going to go to the library and do that vampire essay for
Lupin -" "I'll
come with you!" said Neville brightly. "I haven't done it
either!" "Er
- hang on - yeah, I forgot, I finished it last night!" "Great,
you can help me!" said Neville, his round face anxious. "I don't
understand that thing about the garlic at all - do they have to eat it, or
-" He
broke off with a small gasp, looking over Harry's shoulder. It
was Snape. Neville took a quick step behind Harry. "And
what are you two doing here?" said Snape, coming to a halt and looking
from one to the other. "An odd place to meet -" To
Harry's immense disquiet, Snape's black eyes flicked to the doorways on either
side of them, and then to the one-eyed witch. "We're
not - meeting here," said Harry. "We just - met here." "Indeed?"
said Snape. "You have a habit of turning up in unexpected places, Potter,
and you are very rarely there for no good reason...I suggest the pair of you
return to Gryffindor Tower, where you belong." Harry
and Neville set off without another word. As they turned the corner, Harry
looked back. Snape was running one of his hands over the one-eyed witch's head,
examining it closely. Harry
managed to shake Neville off at the Fat Lady by telling him the password, then
pretending he'd left his vampire essay in the library and doubling back. Once
out of sight of the security trolls, he pulled out the map again and held it
close to his nose. The
third floor corridor seemed to be deserted. Harry scanned the map carefully and
saw, with a leap of relief, that the tiny dot labeled Severus Snape was now
back in its office. He
sprinted back to the one-eyed witch, opened her hump, heaved himself inside,
and slid down to meet his bag at the bottom of the stone chute. He wiped the
Marauder's Map blank again, then set off at a run. * Harry,
completely hidden beneath the Invisibility Cloak, emerged into the sunlight
outside Honeydukes and prodded Ron in the back. "It's
me," he muttered. "What
kept you?" Ron hissed. "Snape
was hanging around." They
set off up the High Street. "Where
are you?" Ron kept muttering out of the corner of his mouth. "Are you
still there? This feels weird..." They
went to the post office; Ron pretended to be checking the price of an owl to
Bill in Egypt so that Harry could have a good look around. The owls sat hooting
softly down at him, at least three hundred of them; from Great Grays right down
to tiny little Scops owls ("Local Deliveries Only"), which were so
small they could have sat in the palm of Harry's hand. Then
they visited Zonko's, which was so packed with students Harry had to exercise
great care not to tread on anyone and cause a panic. There were jokes and
tricks to fulfill even Fred's and George's wildest dreams; Harry gave Ron
whispered orders and passed him some gold from under the cloak. They left
Zonko's with their money bags considerably lighter than they had been on
entering, but their pockets bulging with Dungbombs, Hiccup Sweets, Frog Spawn
Soap, and a Nose-Biting Teacup apiece. The
day was fine and breezy, and neither of them felt like staying indoors, so they
walked past the Three Broomsticks and climbed a slope to visit the Shrieking
Shack, the most haunted dwelling in Britain. It stood a little way above the
rest of the village, and even in daylight was slightly creepy, with its boarded
windows and dank overgrown garden. "Even
the Hogwarts ghosts avoid it," said Ron as they leaned on the fence,
looking up at it. "I asked Nearly Headless Nick...he says he's heard a very
rough crowd lives here. No one can get in. Fred and George tried, obviously,
but all the entrances are sealed shut..." Harry,
feeling hot from their climb, was just considering taking off the cloak for a
few minutes when they heard voices nearby. Someone was climbing toward the
house from the other side of the hill; moments later, Malfoy had appeared,
followed closely by Crabbe and Goyle. Malfoy was speaking. "...should
have an owl from Father any time now. He had to go to the hearing to tell them
about my arm...about how I couldn't use it for three months..." Crabbe
and Goyle sniggered. "I
really wish I could hear that great hairy moron trying to defend
himself...'There's no 'arm in 'im, 'onest -'...That Hippogriff's as good as dead
-" Malfoy
suddenly caught sight of Ron. His pale face split in a malevolent grin. "What
are you doing, Weasley?" Malfoy
looked up at the crumbling house behind Ron. "Suppose
you'd love to live here, wouldn't you, Weasley? Dreaming about having your own
bedroom? I heard your family all sleep in one room - is that true?" Harry
seized the back of Ron's robes to stop him from leaping on Malfoy. "Leave
him to me," he hissed in Ron's ear. The
opportunity was too perfect to miss. Harry crept silently around behind Malfoy,
Crabbe, and Goyle, bent down, and scooped a large handful of mud out of the
path. "We
were just discussing your friend Hagrid," Malfoy said to Ron. "Just
trying to imagine what he's saying to the Committee for the Disposal of
Dangerous Creatures. D'you think he'll cry when they cut off his Hippogriff's
-" SPLAT! Malfoy's
head jerked forward as the mud hit him; his silverblond hair was suddenly
dripping in muck. "What
the -?" Ron
had to hold onto the fence to keep himself standing, he was laughing so hard.
Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle spun stupidly on the spot, staring wildly around,
Malfoy trying to wipe his hair clean. "What
was that? Who did that?" "Very
haunted up here, isn't it?" said Ron, with the air of one commenting on
the weather. Crabbe
and Goyle were looking scared. Their bulging muscles were no use against
ghosts. Malfoy was staring madly around at the deserted landscape. Harry
sneaked along the path, where a particularly sloppy puddle yielded some
foul-smelling, green sludge. SPLATTER! Crabbe
and Goyle caught some this time. Goyle hopped furiously on the spot, trying to
rub it out of his small, dull eyes. "It
came from over there!" said Malfoy, wiping his face, and staring at a spot
some six feet to the left of Harry. Crabbe
blundered forward, his long arms outstretched like a zombie. Harry dodged
around him, picked up a stick, and lobbed it at Crabbe's back. Harry doubled up
with silent laughter as Crabbe did a kind of pirouette in midair, trying to see
who had thrown it. As Ron was the only person Crabbe could see, it was Ron he
started toward, but Harry stuck out his leg. Crabbe stumbled - and his huge,
flat foot caught the hem of Harry's cloak. Harry felt a great tug, then the
cloak slid off his face. For a
split second, Malfoy stared at him. "AAARGH!"
he yelled, pointing at Harry's head. Then he turned tail and ran, at breakneck
speed, back down the hill, Crabbe and Goyle behind him. Harry
tugged the cloak up again, but the damage was done. "Harry!"
Ron said, stumbling forward and staring hopelessly at the point where Harry had
disappeared, "you'd better run for it! If Malfoy tells anyone - you'd
better get back to the castle, quick -" "See
you later," said Harry, and without another word, he tore back down the
path toward Hogsmeade. Would
Malfoy believe what he had seen? Would anyone believe Malfoy? Nobody knew about
the Invisibility Cloak - nobody except Dumbledore. Harry's stomach turned over
- Dumbledore would know exactly what had happened, if Malfoy said anything - Back
into Honeydukes, back down the cellar steps, across the stone floor, through
the trapdoor - Harry pulled off the cloak, tucked it under his arm, and ran,
flat out, along the passage...Malfoy would get back first... how long would it take
him to find a teacher? Panting, a sharp pain in his side, Harry didn't slow
down until he reached the stone slide. He would have to leave the cloak where
it was, it was too much of a giveaway in case Malfoy had tipped off a teacher -
he hid it in a shadowy corner, then started to climb, fast as he could, his
sweaty hands slipping on the sides of the chute. He reached the inside of the
witch's hump, tapped it with his wand, stuck his head through, and hoisted
himself out; the hump closed, and just as Harry jumped out from behind the
statue, he heard quick footsteps approaching. It
was Snape. He approached Harry at a swift walk, his black robes swishing, then
stopped in front of him. "So,"
he said. There
was a look of suppressed triumph about him. Harry tried to look innocent, all
too aware of his sweaty face and his muddy hands, which he quickly hid in his
pockets. "Come
with me, Potter," said Snape. Harry
followed him downstairs, trying to wipe his hands clean on the inside of his
robes without Snape noticing. They walked down the stairs to the dungeons and
then into Snape's office. Harry
had been in here only once before, and he had been in very serious trouble then
too. Snape had acquired a few more slimy horrible things in jars since last
time, all standing on shelves behind his desk, glinting in the firelight and
adding to the threatening atmosphere. "Sit,"
said Snape. Harry
sat. Snape, however, remained, standing. "Mr.
Malfoy has just been to see me with a strange story, Potter," said Snape. Harry
didn't say anything. "He
tells me that he was up by the Shrieking Shack when he ran into Weasley -
apparently alone." Still,
Harry didn't speak. "Mr.
Malfoy states that he was standing talking to Weasley, when a large amount of
mud hit him in the back of the head. How do you think that could have
happened?" Harry
tried to look mildly surprised. "I
don't know, Professor." Snape's
eyes were boring into Harry's. It was exactly like trying to stare down a
Hippogriff. Harry tried hard not to blink. "Mr.
Malfoy then saw an extraordinary apparition. Can you imagine what it might have
been, Potter?" "No,"
said Harry, now trying to sound innocently curious. "It
was your head, Potter. Floating in midair." There
was a long silence. "Maybe
he'd better go to Madam Pomfrey," said Harry. "If he's seeing things
like -" "What
would your head have been doing in Hogsmeade, Potter?" said Snape softly.
"Your head is not allowed in Hogsmeade. No part of your body has
permission to be in Hogsmeade." "I
know that," said Harry, striving to keep his face free of guilt or fear.
"It sounds like Malfoy's having hallucin -" "Malfoy
is not having hallucinations," snarled Snape, and he bent down, a hand on
each arm of Harry's chair, so that their faces were a foot apart. "If your
head was in Hogsmeade, so was the rest of you." "I've
been up in Gryffindor Tower," said Harry. "Like you told -" "Can
anyone confirm that?" Harry
didn't say anything. Snape's thin mouth curled into a horrible smile. "So,"
he said, straightening up again. "Everyone from the Minister of Magic
downward has been trying to keep famous Harry Potter safe from Sirius Black.
But famous Harry Potter is a law unto himself. Let the ordinary people worry
about his safety! Famous Harry Potter goes where he wants to, with no thought
for the consequences." Harry
stayed silent. Snape was trying to provoke him into telling the truth. He
wasn't going to do it. Snape had no proof - yet. "How
extraordinarily like your father you are, Potter," Snape said suddenly,
his eyes glinting. "He too was exceedingly arrogant. A small amount of
talent on the Quidditch field made him think he was a cut above the rest of us
too. Strutting around the place with his friends and admirers...The resemblance
between you is uncanny." "My
dad didn't strut," said Harry, before he could stop himself. "And
neither do I." "Your
father didn't set much store by rules either," Snape went on, pressing his
advantage, his thin face full of malice. "Rules were for lesser mortals,
not Quidditch Cup-winners. His head was so swollen -" "SHUT
UP!" Harry
was suddenly on his feet. Rage such as he had not felt since his last night in
Privet Drive was coursing through him. He didn't care that Snape's face had
gone rigid, the black eyes flashing dangerously. "What
did you say to me, Potter?" "I told
you to shut up about my dad!" Harry yelled. "I know the truth, all
right? He saved your life! Dumbledore told me! You wouldn't even be here if it
wasn't for my dad!" Snape's
sallow skin had gone the color of sour milk. "And
did the headmaster tell you the circumstances in which your father saved my
life?" he whispered. "Or did he consider the details too unpleasant
for precious Potter's delicate ears?" Harry
bit his lip. He didn't know what had happened and didn't want to admit it - but
Snape seemed to have guessed the truth. "I
would hate for you to run away with a false idea of your father, Potter,"
he said, a terrible grin twisting his face. "Have you been imagining some
act of glorious heroism? Then let me correct you - your saintly father and his
friends played a highly amusing joke on me that would have resulted in my death
if your father hadn't got cold feet at the last moment. There was nothing brave
about what he did. He was saving his own skin as much as mine. Had their joke
succeeded, he would have been expelled from Hogwarts." Snape's
uneven, yellowish teeth were bared. "Turn
out your pockets, Potter!" he spat suddenly. Harry
didn't move. There was a pounding in his ears. "Turn
out your pockets, or we go straight to the headmaster! Pull them out,
Potter!" Cold
with dread, Harry slowly pulled out the bag of Zonko's tricks and the
Marauder's Map. Snap
picked up the Zonko's bag. "Ron
gave them to me," said Harry, praying he'd get a chance to tip Ron off
before Snape saw him. "He brought them back from Hogsmeade last time
-" "Indeed?
And you've been carrying them around ever since? How very touching...and what is
this?" Snape
had picked up the map. Harry tried with all his might to keep his face
impassive. "Spare
bit of parchment," he said with a shrug. Snape
turned it over, his eyes on Harry. "Surely
you don't need such a very old piece of parchment?" he said.
"Why don't I just - throw this away?" His hand
moved toward the fire. "No!"
Harry said quickly. "So!"
said Snape, his long nostrils quivering. "Is this another treasured gift
from Mr. Weasley? Or is it - something else? A letter, perhaps, written in
invisible ink? Or - instructions to get into Hogsmeade without passing the
Dementors?" Harry
blinked. Snape's eyes gleamed. "Let me
see, let me see..." he muttered, taking out his wand and smoothing the map
out on his desk. "Reveal your secret!" he said, touching the wand to
the parchment. Nothing
happened. Harry clenched his hands to stop them from shaking. "Show
yourself!" Snape said, tapping the map sharply. It
stayed blank. Harry was taking deep, calming breaths. "Professor
Severus Snape, master of this school, commands you to yield the information you
conceal!" Snape said, hitting the map with his wand. As
though an invisible hand were writing upon it, words appeared on the smooth
surface of the map. "Mooney
presents his compliments to Professor Snape, and begs him to keep his
abnormally large nose out of other people's business." Snape
froze. Harry stared, dumbstruck, at the message. But the map didn't stop there.
More writing was appearing beneath the first. "Mr.
Prongs agrees with Mr. Mooney and would like to add that Professor Snape is an
ugly git." It would
have been very funny if the situation hadn't been so serious. And there was
more... "Mr.
Padfoot would like to register his astonishment that an idiot like that ever
became a professor." Harry
closed his eyes in horror. When he'd opened them, the map had had its last
word. "Mr.
Wormtail bids Professor Snape good day, and advises him to wash his hair, the
slimeball." Harry
waited for the blow to fall. "So
..." said Snape softly. "We'll see about this..." He
strode across to his fire, seized a fistful of glittering powder from a jar on
the fireplace, and threw it into the flames. "Lupin!"
Snape called into the fire. "I want a word!" Utterly
bewildered, Harry stared at the fire. A large shape had appeared in it,
revolving very fast. Seconds later, Professor Lupin was clambering out of the
fireplace, brushing ash off his shabby robes. "You
called, Severus?" said Lupin mildly. "I
certainly did," said Snape, his face contorted with fury as he strode back
to his desk. "I have just asked Potter to empty his pockets. He was
carrying this." Snape
pointed at the parchment, on which the words of Messrs. Moony, Wormtail,
Padfoot, and Prongs were still shining. An odd, closed expression appeared on
Lupin's face. "Well?"
said Snape. Lupin
continued to stare at the map. Harry had the impression that Lupin was doing
some very quick thinking. "Well?"
said Snape again. "This parchment is plainly full of Dark Magic. This is
supposed to be your area of expertise, Lupin. Where do you imagine Potter got
such a thing?" Lupin
looked up and, by the merest half-glance in Harry's direction, warned him not
to interrupt. "Full
of Dark Magic?" he repeated mildly. "Do you really think so, Severus?
It looks to me as though it is merely a piece of parchment that insults anybody
who reads it. Childish, but surely not dangerous? I imagine Harry got it from a
joke shop -" "Indeed?"
said Snape. His jaw had gone rigid with anger. "You think a joke shop
could supply him with such a thing? You don't think it more likely that he got
it directly from the manufacturers?" Harry didn't
understand what Snape was talking about. Nor, apparently, did Lupin. "You
mean, by Mr. Wormtail or one of these people?" he said. "Harry, do
you know any of these men?" "No,"
said Harry quickly. "You
see, Severus?" said Lupin, turning back to Snape. "It looks like a
Zonko product to me -" Right
on cue, Ron came bursting into the office. He was completely out of breath, and
stopped just short of Snape's desk, clutching the stitch in his chest and
trying to speak. "I
- gave - Harry - that - stuff," he choked. "Bought - it...in Zonko's...
ages - ago..." "Well!"
said Lupin, clapping his hands together and looking around cheerfully.
"That seems to clear that up! Severus, I'll take this back, shall I?"
He folded the map and tucked it inside his robes. "Harry, Ron, come with
me, I need a word about my vampire essay - excuse us, Severus -" Harry
didn't dare look at Snape as they left his office. He. Ron, and Lupin walked
all the way back into the entrance hall before speaking. Then Harry turned to
Lupin. "Professor,
I -" "I
don't want to hear explanations," said Lupin shortly. He glanced around
the empty entrance hall and lowered his voice. "I happen to know that this
map was confiscated by Mr. Filch many years ago. Yes, I know it's a map,"
he said as Harry and Ron looked amazed. "I don't want to know how it fell
into your possession. I am, however, astounded that you didn't hand it
in. Particularly after what happened the last time a student left information
about the castle lying around. And I can't let you have it back, Harry." Harry
had expected that, and was too keen for explanations to protest. "Why
did Snape think I'd got it from the manufacturers?" "Because..."
Lupin hesitated, "because these mapmakers would have wanted to lure you
out of school. They'd think it extremely entertaining." "Do
you know them?" said Harry, impressed. "We've
met," he said shortly. He was looking at Harry more seriously than ever
before. "Don't
expect me to cover up for you again, Harry. I cannot make you take Sirius Black
seriously. But I would have thought that what you have heard when the Dementors
draw near you would have had more of an effect on you. Your parents gave their
lives to keep you alive, Harry. A poor way to repay them - gambling their
sacrifice for a bag of magic tricks." He
walked away, leaving Harry feeling worse by far than he had at any point in
Snape's office. Slowly, he and Ron mounted the marble staircase. As Harry
passed the one-eyed witch, he remembered the Invisibility Cloak - it was still
down there, but he didn't dare go and get it. "It's
my fault," said Ron abruptly. "I persuaded you to go. Lupin's right,
it was stupid, we shouldn't've done it -" He
broke off; they reached the corridor where the security trolls were pacing, and
Hermione was walking toward them. One look at her face convinced Harry that she
had heard what had happened. His heart plummeted - had she told Professor
McGonagall? "Come
to have a good gloat?" said Ron savagely as she stopped in front of them.
"Or have you just been to tell on us?" "No,"
said Hermione. She was holding a letter in her hands and her lip was trembling.
"I just thought you ought to know...Hagrid lost his case. Buckbeak is going
to be executed." CHAPTER FIFTEEN THE QUIDDITCH FINAL"He
sent me this," Hermione said, holding out the letter. Harry
took it. The parchment was damp, and enormous teardrops had smudged the ink so
badly in places that it was very difficult to read. Dear Hermione, We lost. I'm
allowed to bring him back to Hogwarts. Execution date to be fixed. Beaky
has enjoyed London. I
won't forget all the help you gave us. Hagrid
"They
can't do this," said Harry. "They can't. Buckbeak isn't dangerous." "Malfoy's
dad's frightened the Committee into it," said Hermione, wiping her eyes.
"You know what he's like. They're a bunch of doddery old fools, and they
were scared. There'll be an appeal, though, there always is. Only I can't see
any hope...Nothing will have changed." "Yeah,
it will," said Ron fiercely. "You won't have to do all the work alone
this time, Hermione. I'll help." "Oh,
Ron!" Hermione
flung her arms around Ron's neck and broke down completely. Ron, looking quite
terrified, patted her very awkwardly on the top of the head. Finally, Hermione
drew away. "Ron,
I'm really, really sorry about Scabbers..." she sobbed. "Oh
- well - he was old," said Ron, looking thoroughly relieved that she had
let go of him. "And he was a bit useless. You never know, Mum and Dad
might get me an owl now." The
safety measures imposed on the students since Black's second break-in made it
impossible for Harry, Ron, and Hermione to go and visit Hagrid in the evenings.
Their only chance of talking to him was during Care of Magical Creatures
lessons. He
seemed numb with shock at the verdict. "S'all
my fault. Got all tongue-tied. They was all sittin' there in black robes an' I
kep' droppin' me notes and forgettin' all them dates yeh looked up fer me,
Hermione. An' then Lucius Malfoy stood up an' said his bit, and the Committee
jus' did exac'ly what he told 'em..." "There's
still the appeal!" said Ron fiercely. "Don't give up yet, we're
working on it!" They
were walking back up to the castle with the rest of the class. Ahead they could
see Malfoy, who was walking with Crabbe and Goyle, and kept looking back,
laughing derisively. "S'no
good, Ron," said Hagrid sadly as they reached the castle steps. "That
Committee's in Lucius Malfoy's pocket. I'm jus' gonna make sure the rest o' Beaky's
time is the happiest he's ever had. I owe him that..." Hagrid
turned around and hurried back toward his cabin, his face buried in his
handkerchief. "Look
at him blubber!" Malfoy,
Crabbe, and Goyle had been standing just inside the castle doors, listening. "Have
you ever seen anything quite as pathetic?" said Malfoy. "And he's
supposed to be our teacher!" Harry
and Ron both made furious moves toward Malfoy, but Hermione got there first -
SMACK! She
had slapped Malfoy across the face with all the strength she could muster.
Malfoy staggered. Harry, Ron, Crabbe, and Goyle stood flabbergasted as Hermione
raised her hand again. "Don't
you dare call Hagrid pathetic, you foul - you evil -" "Hermione!"
said Ron weakly, and he tried to grab her hand as she swung it back. "Get
off, Ron!" Hermione
pulled out her wand. Malfoy stepped backward. Crabbe and Goyle looked at him
for instructions, thoroughly bewildered. "C'mon."
Malfoy muttered, and in a moment, all three of them had disappeared into the
passageway to the dungeons. "Hermione!"
Ron said again, sounding both stunned and impressed. "Harry,
you'd better beat him in the Quidditch final!" Hermione said shrilly.
"You just better had, because I can't stand it if Slytherin wins!" "We're
due in Charms," said Ron, still goggling at Hermione. "We'd better
go." They
hurried up the marble staircase toward Professor Flitwick's classroom. "You're
late, boys!" said Professor Flitwick reprovingly as Harry opened the
classroom door. "Come along, quickly, wands out, we're experimenting with
Cheering Charms today, we've already divided into pairs -" Harry
and Ron hurried to a desk at the back and opened their bags. Ron looked behind
him. "Where's
Hermione gone?" Harry
looked around too. Hermione hadn't entered the classroom, yet Harry knew she
had been right next to him when he had opened the door. "That's
weird," said Harry, staring at Ron. "Maybe - maybe she went to the
bathroom or something?" But
Hermione didn't turn up all lesson. "She
could've done with a Cheering Charm on her too," said Ron as the class
left for lunch, all grinning broadly - the Cheering Charms had left them with a
feeling of great contentment. Hermione
wasn't at lunch either. By the time they had finished their apple pie, the
after-effects of the Cheering Charms were wearing off, and Harry and Ron had
started to get slightly worried. "You
don't think Malfoy did something to her?" Ron said anxiously as they
hurried upstairs toward Gryffindor Tower. They
passed the security trolls, gave the Fat Lady the password
("Flibbertigibbet"), and scrambled through the portrait hole into the
common room. Hermione
was sitting at a table, fast asleep, her head resting on an open Arithmancy
book. They went to sit down on either side of her. Harry prodded her awake. "Wh
- what?" said Hermione, waking with a start and staring wildly around.
"Is it time to go? W - which lesson have we got now?" "Divination,
but it's not for another twenty minutes," said Harry. "Hermione, why
didn't you come to Charms?" "What?
Oh no!" Hermione squeaked. "I forgot to go to Charms!" "But
how could you forget?" said Harry. "You were with us till we were
right outside the classroom!" "I
don't believe it!" Hermione wailed. "Was Professor Flitwick angry?
Oh, it was Malfoy, I was thinking about him and I lost track of things!" "You
know what, Hermione?" said Ron, looking down at the enormous Arithmancy
book Hermione had been using as a pillow. "I reckon you're cracking up.
You're trying to do too much." "No,
I'm not!" said Hermione, brushing her hair out of her eyes and staring
hopelessly around for her bag. "I just made a mistake, that's all! I'd
better go and see Professor Flitwick and say sorry... I'll see you in
Divination!" Hermione
joined them at the foot of the ladder to Professor Trelawney's classroom twenty
minutes later, looking extremely harassed. "I
can't believe I missed Cheering Charms! And I bet they come up in our exams;
Professor Flitwick hinted they might!" Together
they climbed the ladder into the dim, stifling tower room. Glowing on every little
table was a crystal ball full of pearly white mist. Harry, Ron, and Hermione
sat down together at the same rickety table. "I
thought we weren't starting crystal balls until next term," Ron muttered,
casting a wary eye around for Professor Trelawney, in case she was lurking
nearby. "Don't
complain, this means we've finished palmistry," Harry muttered back.
"I was getting sick of her flinching every time she looked at my
hands." "Good
day to you!" said the familiar, misty voice, and Professor Trelawney made
her usual dramatic entrance out of the shadows. Parvati and Lavender quivered
with excitement, their faces lit by the milky glow of their crystal ball. "I
have decided to introduce the crystal ball a little earlier than I had
planned," said Professor Trelawney, sitting with her back to the fire and
gazing around. "The fates have informed me that your examination in June
will concern the Orb, and I am anxious to give you sufficient practice." Hermione
snorted. "Well,
honestly...'the fates have informed her'. Who sets the exam? She does! What an
amazing prediction!" she said, not troubling to keep her voice low. Harry
and Ron choked back laughs. It
was hard to tell whether Professor Trelawney had heard them as her face was
hidden in shadow. She continued, however, as though she had not. "Crystal
gazing is a particularly refined art," she said dreamily. "I do not
expect any of you to See when first you peer into the Orb's infinite depths. We
shall start by practicing relaxing the conscious mind and external eyes -"
Ron began to snigger uncontrollably and had to stuff his fist in his mouth to
stifle the noise - "so as to clear the Inner Eye and the superconscious.
Perhaps, if we are lucky, some of you will see before the end of the
class." And
so they began. Harry, at least, felt extremely foolish, staring blankly at the
crystal ball, trying to keep his mind empty when thoughts such as "this is
stupid" kept drifting across it. It didn't help that Ron kept breaking
into silent giggles and Hermione kept tutting. "Seen
anything yet?" Harry asked them after a quarter of an hour's quiet crystal
gazing. "Yeah,
there's a burn on this table," said Ron, pointing. "Someone's spilled
their candle." "This
is such a waste of time," Hermione hissed. "I could be practicing something
useful. I could be catching up on Cheering Charms -" Professor
Trelawney rustled past. "Would
anyone like me to help them interpret the shadowy portents within their
Orb?" she murmured over the clinking of her bangles. "I
don't need help," Ron whispered. "It's obvious what this means.
There's going to be loads of fog tonight." Both
Harry and Hermione burst out laughing. "Now,
really!" said Professor Trelawney as everyone's heads turned in their
direction. Parvati and Lavender were looking scandalized. "You are
disturbing the clairvoyant vibrations!" She approached their table and
peered into their crystal ball. Harry felt his heart sinking. He was sure he
knew what was coming - "There
is something here!" Professor Trelawney whispered, lowering her face to
the ball, so that it was reflected twice in her huge glasses. "Something
moving... but what is it?" Harry
was prepared to bet everything he owned, Including his Firebolt, that it wasn't
good news, whatever it was. And sure enough - "My
dear," Professor Trelawney breathed, gazing up at Harry. "It is here,
plainer than ever before... my dear, stalking toward you, growing ever closer...
the Gr -" "Oh,
for goodness' sake!" said Hermione loudly. "Not that ridiculous Grim
again!" Professor
Trelawney raised her enormous eyes to Hermione's face. Parvati whispered
something to Lavender, and they both glared at Hermione too. Professor
Trelawney stood up, surveying Hermione with unmistakable anger. "I
am sorry to say that from the moment you have arrived in this class my dear, it
has been apparent that you do not have what the noble art of Divination
requires. Indeed, I don't remember ever meeting a student whose mind was so
hopelessly mundane." There
was a moment's silence. Then - "Fine!"
said Hermione suddenly, getting up and cramming Unfogging the Future
back into her bag. "Fine!" she repeated, swinging the bag over her
shoulder and almost knocking Ron off his chair. "I give up! I'm
leaving!" And
to the whole class's amazement, Hermione strode over to the trapdoor, kicked it
open, and climbed down the ladder out of sight. It
took a few minutes for the class to settle down again. Professor Trelawney
seemed to have forgotten all about the Grim. She turned abruptly from Harry and
Ron's table, breathing rather heavily as she tugged her gauzy shawl more
closely to her. "Ooooo!"
said Lavender suddenly, making everyone start. "Ooooo, Professor
Trelawney, I've just remembered! You saw her leaving, didn't you? Didn't you,
Professor? 'Around Easter, one of our number will leave us forever!' You said
it ages ago, Professor!" Professor
Trelawney gave her a dewy smile. "Yes,
my dear, I did indeed know that Miss Granger would be leaving us. One hopes,
however, that one might have mistaken the Signs...The Inner Eye can be a burden,
you know..." Lavender
and Parvati looked deeply impressed, and moved over so that Professor Trelawney
could join their table instead. "Some
day Hermione's having, eh?" Ron muttered to Harry, looking awed. "Yeah..." Harry
glanced into the crystal ball but saw nothing but swirling white mist. Had
Professor Trelawney really seen the Grim again? Would he? The last thing he
needed was another near-fatal accident, with the Quidditch final drawing ever
nearer. The
Easter holidays were not exactly relaxing. The third years had never had so
much homework. Neville Longbottom seemed close to a nervous collapse, and he
wasn't the only one. "Call
this a holiday!" Seamus Finnigan roared at the common room one afternoon.
"The exams are ages away, what're they playing at?" But
nobody had as much to do as Hermione. Even without Divination, she was taking
more subjects than anybody else. She was usually last to leave the common room
at night, first to arrive at the library the next morning; she had shadows like
Lupin's under her eyes, and seemed constantly close to tears. Ron
had taken over responsibility for Buckbeak's appeal. When he wasn't doing his
own work, he was poring over enormously thick volumes with names like The
Handbook of Hippogriff Psychology and Fowl or Foul? A Study of Hippogriff
Brutality. He was so absorbed, he even forgot to be horrible to
Crookshanks. Harry,
meanwhile, had to fit in his homework around Quidditch practice every day, not
to mention endless discussions of tactics with Wood. The Gryffindor-Slytherin
match would take place on the first Saturday after the Easter holidays.
Slytherin was leading the tournament by exactly two hundred points. This meant
(as Wood constantly reminded his team) that they needed to win the match by
more than that amount to win the Cup. It also meant that the burden of winning
fell largely on Harry, because capturing the Snitch was worth one hundred and
fifty points. "So
you must catch it only if we're more than fifty points up," Wood told
Harry constantly. "Only if we're more than fifty points up, Harry, or we
win the match but lose the Cup. You've got that, Haven't you? You must catch
the Snitch only if we're -" "I
KNOW, OLIVER!" Harry yelled. The
whole of Gryffindor House was obsessed with the coming match. Gryffindor hadn't
won the Quidditch Cup since the legendary Charlie Weasley (Ron's second oldest
brother) had been Seeker. But Harry doubted whether any of them, even Wood,
wanted to win as much as he did. The enmity between Harry and Malfoy was at its
highest point ever. Malfoy was still smarting about the mud-throwing incident
in Hogsmeade and was even more furious that Harry had somehow wormed his way
out of punishment. Harry hadn't forgotten Malfoy's attempt to sabotage him in
the match against Ravenclaw, but it was the matter of Buckbeak that made him
most determined to beat Malfoy in front of the entire school. Never,
in anyone's memory, had a match approached in such a highly charged atmosphere.
By the time the holidays were over, tension between the two teams and their
Houses was at the breaking point. A number of small scuffles broke out in the
corridors, culminating in a nasty incident in which a Gryffindor fourth year
and a Slytherin sixth year ended up in the hospital wing with leeks sprouting
out of their ears. Harry
was having a particularly bad time of it. He couldn't walk to class without
Slytherins sticking out their legs and trying to trip him up; Crabbe and Goyle
kept popping up wherever he went, and slouching away looking disappointed when
they saw him surrounded by people. Wood had given instructions that Harry
should be accompanied everywhere he went, in case the Slytherins tried to put
him out of action. The whole of Gryffindor House took up the challenge
enthusiastically, so that it was impossible for Harry to get to classes on time
because he was surrounded by a vast, chattering crowd. Harry was more concerned
for his Firebolt's safety than his own. When he wasn't flying it, he locked it
securely in his trunk and frequently dashed back up to Gryffindor Tower at
break times to check that it was still there. All
usual pursuits were abandoned in the Gryffindor common room the night before
the match. Even Hermione had put down her books. "I
can't work, I can't concentrate," she said nervously. There
was a great deal of noise. Fred and George Weasley were dealing with the
pressure by being louder and more exuberant than ever. Oliver Wood was crouched
over a model of a Quidditch field in the corner, prodding little figures across
it with his wand and muttering to himself Angelina, Alicia, and Katie were
laughing at Fred's and George's jokes. Harry was sitting with Ron and Hermione,
removed from the center of things, trying not to think about the next day,
because every time he did, he had the horrible sensation that something very
large was fighting to get out of his stomach. "You're
going to be fine," Hermione told him, though she looked positively
terrified. "You've
got a Firebolt!" said Ron. "Yeah
..." said Harry, his stomach writhing. It
came as a relief when Wood suddenly stood up and yelled, "Team! Bed!" Harry
slept badly. First he dreamed that he had overslept, and that Wood was yelling,
"Where were you? We had to use Neville instead!" Then he dreamed that
Malfoy and the rest of the Slytherin team arrived for the match riding dragons.
He was flying at breakneck speed, trying to avoid a spurt of flames from
Malfoy's steed's mouth, when he realized he had forgotten his Firebolt. He fell
through the air and woke with a start. It
was a few seconds before Harry remembered that the match hadn't taken place
yet, that he was safe in bed, and that the Slytherin team definitely wouldn't
be allowed to play on dragons. He was feeling very thirsty. Quietly as he
could, he got out of his four-poster and went to pour himself some water from
the silver jug beneath the window. The
grounds were still and quiet. No breath of wind disturbed the treetops in the
Forbidden Forest; the Whomping Willow was motionless and innocent-looking. It
looked as though the conditions for the match would be perfect. Harry
set down his goblet and was about to turn back to his bed when something caught
his eye. An animal of some kind was prowling across the silvery lawn. Harry
dashed to his bedside table, snatched up his glasses, and put them on, then
hurried back to the window. It couldn't be the Grim - not now - not right
before the match - He
peered out at the grounds again and, after a minute's frantic searching,
spotted it. It was skirting the edge of the forest now...It wasn't the Grim at
all... it was a cat... Harry clutched the window ledge in relief as he recognized
the bottlebrush tail. It was only Crookshanks... Or
was it only Crookshanks? Harry squinted, pressing his nose flat against the
glass. Crookshanks seemed to have come to a halt. Harry was sure he could see
something else moving in the shadow of the trees too. And
just then, it emerged - a gigantic, shaggy black dog, moving stealthily across
the lawn, Crookshanks trotting at its side. Harry stared. What did this mean?
If Crookshanks could see the dog as well, how could it be an omen of Harry's
death? "Ron!"
Harry hissed. "Ron! Wake up!" "Huh?" "I
need you to tell me if you can see something!" "S'all
dark, Harry," Ron muttered thickly. "What're you on about?" "Down
here -" Harry
looked quickly back out of the window. Crookshanks
and the dog had vanished. Harry climbed onto the windowsill to look right down
into the shadows of the castle, but they weren't there. Where had they gone? A
loud snore told him Ron had fallen asleep again. Harry
and the rest of the Gryffindor team entered the Great Hall the next day to
enormous applause. Harry couldn't help grinning broadly as he saw that both the
Ravenclaw and Hufflepuff tables were applauding them too. The Slytherin table
hissed loudly as they passed. Harry noticed that Malfoy looked even paler than
usual. Wood
spent the whole of breakfast urging his team to eat, while touching nothing
himself. Then he hurried them off to the field before anyone else had finished,
so they could get an idea of the conditions. As they left the Great Hall,
everyone applauded again. "Good
luck, Harry!" called Cho. Harry felt himself blushing. "Okay
- no wind to speak of - sun's a bit bright, that could impair your vision,
watch out for it - ground's fairly hard, good, that'll give us a fast kickoff
-" Wood
paced the field, staring around with the team behind him. Finally, they saw the
front doors of the castle open in the distance and the rest of the school
spilling onto the lawn. "Locker
rooms," said Wood tersely. None
of them spoke as they changed into their scarlet robes. Harry wondered if they
were feeling like he was: as though he'd eaten something extremely wriggly for
breakfast. In what seemed like no time at all, Wood was saying, "Okay,
it's time, let's go -" They
walked out onto the field to a tidal wave of noise. Three quarters of the crowd
was wearing scarlet rosettes, waving scarlet flags with the Gryffindor lion
upon them, or brandishing banners with slogans like "GO GRYFFINDOR!"
and "LIONS FOR THE CUP" Behind the Slytherin goal posts, however, two
hundred people were wearing green; the silver serpent of Slytherin glittered on
their flags, and Professor Snape sat in the very front row, wearing green like
everyone else, and a very grim smile. "And
here are the Gryffindors!" yelled Lee Jordan, who was acting as
commentator as usual. "Potter, Bell, Johnson, Spinnet, Weasley, Weasley,
and Wood. Widely acknowledged as the best team Hogwarts has seen in a good few
years -" Lee's
comments were drowned by a tide of 'boos' from the Slytherin end. "And
here come the Slytherin team, led by Captain Flint. He's made some changes in
the lineup and seems to be going for size rather than skill -" More
boos from the Slytherin crowd. Harry, however, thought Lee had a point. Malfoy
was easily the smallest person On the Slytherin team; the rest of them were
enormous. "Captains,
shake hands!" said Madam Hooch. Flint
and Wood approached each other and grasped each other's hand very tightly; it
looked as though each was trying to break the other's fingers. "Mount
your brooms!" said Madam Hooch. "Three...two...one..." The
sound of her whistle was lost in the roar from the crowd as fourteen brooms
rose into the air. Harry felt his hair fly back off his forehead; his nerves
left him in the thrill of the flight; he glanced around, saw Malfoy on his
tail, and sped off in search of the Snitch. "And
it's Gryffindor in possession, Alicia Spinner of Gryffindor with the Quaffle,
heading straight for the Slytherin goal posts, looking good, Alicia! Argh, no -
Quaffle intercepted by Warrington, Warrington of Slytherin tearing UP the field
- WHAM! - nice Bludger work there by George Weasley, Warrington drops the
Quaffle, it's caught by - Johnson, Gryffindor back in possession, come on,
Angelina - nice swerve around Montague - duck, Angelina, that's a Bludger!- SHE
SCORES! TEN-ZERO TO GRYFFINDOR!" Angelina
punched the air as she soared around the end of the field; the sea of scarlet
below was screaming its delight "OUCH!" Angelina
was nearly thrown from her broom as Marcus Flint went smashing into her. "Sorry!"
said Flint as the crowd below booed. "Sorry, didn't see her!" A
moment later, Fred Weasley chucked his Beater's club at the back of Flint's
head. Flint's nose smashed into the handle of his broom and began to bleed. "That
will do!" shrieked Madam Hooch, zooming between then. "Penalty shot
to Gryffindor for an unprovoked attack on their Chaser! Penalty shot to
Slytherin for deliberate damage to their Chaser!" "Come
off it, Miss!" howled Fred, but Madam Hooch blew her whistle and Alicia
flew forward to take the penalty. "Come
on, Alicia!" yelled Lee into the silence that had descended on the crowd.
"YES! SHE'S BEATEN THE KEEPER! TWENTY-ZERO TO GRYFFINDOR!" Harry
turned the Firebolt sharply to watch Flint, still bleeding freely, fly forward
to take the Slytherin penalty. Wood was hovering in front of the Gryffindor
goal posts, his jaw clenched. "'Course,
Wood's a superb Keeper!" Lee Jordan told the crowd as Flint waited for
Madam Hooch's whistle. "Superb! Very difficult to pass - very difficult
indeed - YES! I DON'T BELIEVE IT! HE'S SAVED IT!" Relieved,
Harry zoomed away, gazing around for the Snitch, but still making sure he
caught every word of Lee's commentary. It was essential that he hold Malfoy off
the Snitch until Gryffindor was more than fifty points up - "Gryffindor
in possession, no, Slytherin in possession - no! Gryffindor back in possession
and it's Katie Bell, Katie Bell for Gryffindor with the Quaffle, she's
streaking up the field - THAT WAS DELIBERATE!" Montague,
a Slytherin Chaser, had swerved in front of Katie, and instead of seizing the
Quaffle had grabbed her head. Katie cart-wheeled in the air, managed to stay on
her broom, but dropped the Quaffle. Madam
Hooch's whistle rang out again as she soared over to Montague and began
shouting at him. A minute later, Katie had put another penalty past the
Slytherin Seeker. "THIRTY-ZERO!
TAKE THAT, YOU DIRTY, CHEATING -" "Jordan,
if you can't commentate in an unbiased way -" "I'm
telling it like it is, Professor!" Harry
felt a huge jolt of excitement. He had seen the Snitch - it was shimmering at
the foot of one of the Gryffindor goal posts - but he mustn't catch it yet -
and if Malfoy saw it - Faking
a look of sudden concentration, Harry pulled his Firebolt around and sped off
toward the Slytherin end - it worked. Malfoy went haring after him, clearly
thinking Harry had seen the Snitch there... WHOOSH. One
of the Bludgers came streaking past Harry's right ear, hit by the gigantic
Slytherin Beater, Derrick. Then again... WHOOSH. The
second Bludger grazed Harry's elbow. The other Beater, Bole, was closing in. Harry
had a fleeting glimpse of Bole and Derrick zooming toward him, clubs raised -
He turned the Firebolt upward at the last second, and Bole and Derrick collided
with a sickening crunch. "Ha
haaa!" yelled Lee Jordan as the Slytherin Beaters lurched away from each
other, clutching their heads. "Too bad, boys! You'll need to get up
earlier than that to beat a Firebolt! And it's Gryffindor in possession again,
as Johnson takes the Quaffle - Flint alongside her - poke him in the eye,
Angelina! - it was a joke, Professor, it was a joke - oh no - Flint in
possession, Flint flying toward the Gryffindor goal posts, come on now, Wood,
save -!" But
Flint had scored; there was an eruption of cheers from the Slytherin end, and
Lee swore so badly that Professor McGonagall tried to tug the magical megaphone
away from him. "Sorry,
Professor, sorry! Won't happen again! So, Gryffindor in the lead, thirty points
to ten, and Gryffindor in possession -" It
was turning into the dirtiest game Harry had ever played in. Enraged that
Gryffindor had taken such an early lead, the Slytherins were rapidly resorting
to any means to take the Quaffle. Bole hit Alicia with his club and tried to
say he'd thought she was a Bludger. George Weasley elbowed Bole in the face in
retaliation. Madam Hooch awarded both teams penalties, and Wood pulled off
another spectacular save, making the score forty-ten to Gryffindor. The
Snitch had disappeared again. Malfoy was still keeping close to Harry as he
soared over the match, looking around for it once Gryffindor was fifty points
ahead - Katie
scored. Fifty-ten. Fred and George Weasley were swooping around her, clubs
raised, in case any of the Slytherins were thinking of revenge. Bole and
Derrick took advantage of Fred's and George's absence to aim both Bludgers at
Wood; they caught him in the stomach, one after the other, and he rolled over
in the air, clutching his broom, completely winded. Madam
Hooch was beside herself - "YOU
DO NOT ATTACK THE KEEPER UNLESS THE QUAFFLE IS WITHIN THE SCORING AREA!"
she shrieked at Bole and Derrick. "Gryffindor penalty!" And
Angelina scored. Sixty-ten. Moments later, Fred Weasley pelted a Bludger at
Warrington, knocking the Quaffle out of his hands; Alicia seized it and put it
through the Slytherin goal - seventy-ten. The
Gryffindor crowd below was screaming itself hoarse - Gryffindor was sixty
points in the lead, and if Harry caught the Snitch now, the Cup was theirs.
Harry could almost feel hundreds of eyes following him as he soared around the
field, high above the rest of the game, with Malfoy speeding along behind him. And
then he saw it. The Snitch was sparkling twenty feet above him. Harry
put on a huge burst of speed; the wind was roaring in his ears; he stretched
out his hand, but suddenly, the Firebolt was slowing down - Horrified,
he looked around. Malfoy had thrown himself forward, grabbed hold of the
Firebolt's tail, and was pulling it back. "You
-" Harry
was angry enough to hit Malfoy, but couldn't reach - Malfoy was panting with
the effort of holding onto the Firebolt, but his eyes were sparkling
maliciously. He had achieved what he'd wanted to do - the Snitch had
disappeared again. "Penalty!
Penalty to Gryffindor! I've never seen such tactics." Madam Hooch
screeched, shooting up to where Malfoy was sliding back onto his Nimbus Two
Thousand and One. "YOU
CHEATING SCUM!" Lee Jordan was howling into the megaphone, dancing out of
Professor McGonagall's reach. "YOU FILTHY, CHEATING B -" Professor
McGonagall didn't even bother to tell him off She was actually shaking her
finger in Malfoy's direction, her hat had fallen off, and she too was shouting
furiously. Alicia
took Gryffindor's penalty, but she was so angry she missed by several feet. The
Gryffindor team was losing concentration and the Slytherins, delighted by
Malfoy's foul on Harry, were being spurred on to greater heights. "Slytherin
in possession, Slytherin heading for goal - Montague scores -" Lee
groaned. "Seventy-twenty to Gryffindor..." Harry
was now marking Malfoy so closely their knees kept hitting each other. Harry
wasn't going to let Malfoy anywhere near the Snitch... "Get
out of it, Potter!" Malfoy yelled in frustration as he tried to turn and
found Harry blocking him. "Angelina
Johnson gets the Quaffle for Gryffindor, come on, Angelina, COME ON!" Harry
looked around. Every single Slytherin player apart from Malfoy was streaking up
the pitch toward Angelina, including the Slytherin Keeper - they were all going
to block her - Harry wheeled the Firebolt around, bent so low he was lying flat
along the handle, and kicked it forward. Like a bullet, he shot toward the
Slytherins. "AAAAAAARRRGH!" They
scattered as the Firebolt zoomed toward them; Angelina's way was clear. "SHE
SCORES! SHE SCORES! Gryffindor leads by eighty Points to twenty!" Harry,
who had almost pelted headlong into the stands, skidded to a halt in midair,
reversed, and zoomed back into the middle of the field. And
then he saw something to make his heart stand still. Malfoy was diving, a look
of triumph on his face - there, a few feet above the grass below, was a tiny,
golden glimmer - Harry
urged the Firebolt downward, but Malfoy was miles ahead - "Go!
Go! Go!" Harry urged his broom. He was gaining on Malfoy - Harry flattened
himself to the broom handle as Bole sent a Bludger at him - he was at Malfoy's
ankles - he was level - Harry
threw himself forward, took both hands off his broom. He knocked Malfoy's arm
out of the way and - "YES!" He
pulled out of his dive, his hand in the air, and the stadium exploded. Harry
soared above the crowd, an odd ringing in his ears. The tiny golden ball was
held tight in his fist, beating its wings hopelessly against his fingers. Then
Wood was speeding toward him, half-blinded by tears; he seized Harry around the
neck and sobbed unrestrainedly into his shoulder. Harry felt two large thumps
as Fred and George hit them; then Angelina's, Alicia's, and Katie's voices,
"We've won the Cup! We've won the Cup!" Tangled together in a many-armed
hug, the Gryffindor team sank, yelling hoarsely, back to earth. Wave
upon wave of crimson supporters was pouring over the barriers onto the field.
Hands were raining down on their backs. Harry had a confused impression of
noise and bodies pressing in on him. Then he, and the rest of the team, were
hoisted onto the shoulders of the crowd. Thrust into the light, he saw Hagrid,
Plastered with crimson rosettes - "Yeh beat 'em, Harry, yeh beat 'em! Wait
till I tell Buckbeak!" There
was Percy, jumping up and down like a maniac, all dignity forgotten. Professor
McGonagall was sobbing harder even than Wood, wiping her eyes with an enormous
Gryffindor flag; and there, fighting their way toward Harry, were Ron and
Hermione. Words failed them. They simply beamed as Harry was borne toward the
stands, where Dumbledore stood waiting with the enormous Quidditch Cup. If
only there had been a Dementor around...As a sobbing Wood passed Harry the Cup,
as he lifted it into the air, Harry felt he could have produced the world's
best Patronus. CHAPTER SIXTEEN PROFESSOR TRELAWNEY'S PREDICTIONHarry's
euphoria at finally winning the Quidditch Cup lasted at least a week. Even the
weather seemed to be celebrating; as June approached, the days became cloudless
and sultry, and all anybody felt like doing was strolling onto the grounds and
flopping down on the grass with several pints of iced pumpkin juice, perhaps
playing a casual game of Gobstones or watching the giant squid propel itself
dreamily across the surface of the lake. But
they couldn't. Exams were nearly upon them, and instead of lazing around
outside, the students were forced to remain inside the castle, trying to bully
their brains into concentrating while enticing wafts of summer air drifted in
through the windows. Even Fred and George Weasley had been spotted working;
they were about to take their O.W.L.s (Ordinary Wizarding Levels). Percy was
getting ready to take his N.E.W.T.s (Nastily Exhausting Wizarding Tests), the
highest qualification Hogwarts offered. As Percy hoped to enter the Ministry of
Magic, he needed top grades. He was becoming increasingly edgy, and gave very
severe punishments to anybody who disturbed the quiet of the common room in the
evenings. In fact, the only person who seemed more anxious than Percy was
Hermione. Harry
and Ron had given up asking her how she was managing to attend several classes
at once, but they couldn't restrain themselves when they saw the exam schedule
she had drawn up for herself. The first column read: Monday 9
o'clock, Arithmancy 9
o'clock, Transfiguration Lunch 1
o'clock, Charms 1
o'clock, Ancient Runes "Hermione?"
Ron said cautiously, because she was liable to explode when interrupted these
days. "Er - are you sure you've copied down these times right?" "What?"
snapped Hermione, picking up the exam schedule and examining it. "Yes, of
course I have." "Is
there any point asking how you're going to sit for two exams at once?"
said Harry. "No,"
said Hermione shortly. "Have either of you seen my copy of Numerology
and Gramatica?" "Oh,
yeah, I borrowed it for a bit of bedtime reading," said Ron, but very
quietly. Hermione started shifting heaps of parchment. Harry, Ron, and Hermione
had plenty of opportunity to speak to Hagrid. "Beaky's
gettin' a bit depressed," Hagrid told them, bending low on the pretense of
checking that Harry's flobberworm was still alive. "Bin cooped up too
long. But still...we'll know day after tomorrow - one way or the other -" They
had Potions that afternoon, which was an unqualified disaster. Try as Harry
might, he couldn't get his Confusing Concoction to thicken, and Snape, standing
watch with an air of vindictive pleasure, scribbled something that looked
suspiciously like a zero onto his notes before moving away. Then
came Astronomy at midnight, up on the tallest tower; History of Magic on
Wednesday morning, in which Harry scribbled everything Florean Fortescue had
ever told him about medieval witch-hunts, while wishing he could have had one
of Fortescue's choco-nut sundaes with him in the stifling classroom. Wednesday
afternoon meant Herbology, in the greenhouses under a baking-hot sun; then back
to the common room once more, with sunburnt necks, thinking longingly of this
time next day, when it would all be over. Their
second to last exam, on Thursday morning, was Defense Against the Dark Arts.
Professor Lupin had compiled the most unusual exam any of them had ever taken;
a sort of obstacle course outside in the sun, where they had to wade across a
deep paddling pool containing a Grindylow, cross a series of potholes full of
Red Caps, squish their way across a patch of marsh while ignoring misleading
directions from a Hinkypunk, then climb into an old trunk and battle with a new
Boggart. "Excellent,
Harry," Lupin muttered as Harry climbed out of the trunk, grinning.
"Full marks." Flushed
with his success, Harry hung around to watch Ron and Hermione. Ron did very
well until he reached the Hinkypunk, which successfully confused him into
sinking waist-high into the quagmire. Hermione did everything perfectly until
she reached the trunk with the Boggart in it. After about a minute inside it,
she burst out again, screaming. "Hermione!"
said Lupin, startled. "What's the matter?" "P-P-Professor
McGonagall!" Hermione gasped, pointing into the trunk. "Sh-she said I'd
failed everything!" It
took a little while to calm Hermione down. When at last she had regained a grip
on herself, she, Harry, and Ron went back to the castle. Ron was still slightly
inclined to laugh at Hermione's Boggart, but an argument was averted by the
sight that met them on the top of the steps. Cornelius
Fudge, sweating slightly in his pinstriped cloak, was standing there staring
out at the grounds. He started at the sight of Harry. "Hello
there, Harry!" he said. "Just had an exam, I expect? Nearly
finished?" "Yes,"
said Harry. Hermione and Ron, not being on speaking terms with the Minister of
Magic, hovered awkwardly in the background. "Lovely
day," said Fudge, casting an eye over the lake. "Pity...pity..." He
sighed deeply and looked down at Harry. "I'm
here on an unpleasant mission, Harry. The Committee for the Disposal of
Dangerous Creatures required a witness to the execution of a mad Hippogriff. As
I needed to visit Hogwarts to check on the Black situation, I was asked to step
in." "Does
that mean the appeal's already happened?" Ron interrupted, stepping
forward. "No,
no, it's scheduled for this afternoon," said Fudge, looking curiously at
Ron. "Then
you might not have to witness an execution at all!" said Ron stoutly.
"The Hippogriff might get off!" Before
Fudge could answer, two wizards came through the castle doors behind him. One
was so ancient he appeared to be withering before their very eyes; the other
was tall and strapping, with a thin back mustache. Harry gathered that they
were representatives of the Committee for the Disposal of Dangerous Creatures,
because the very old wizard squinted toward Hagrid's cabin and said in a feeble
voice, "Dear, dear, I'm getting too old for this...Two o'clock, isn't it,
Fudge?" The
black-mustached man was fingering something in his belt; Harry looked and saw
that he was running one broad thumb along the blade of a shining axe. Ron
opened his mouth to say something, but Hermione nudged him hard in the ribs and
jerked her head toward the entrance hall. "Why'd
you stop me?" said Ron angrily as they entered the Great Hall for lunch.
"Did you see them? They've even got the axe ready! This isn't
justice!" "Ron,
your dad works for the Ministry, you can't go saying things like that to his
boss!" said Hermione, but she too looked very upset. "As long as
Hagrid keeps his head this time, and argues his case properly, they can't
possibly execute Buckbeak..." But
Harry could tell Hermione didn't really believe what she was saying. All around
them, people were talking excitedly as they ate their lunch, happily
anticipating the end of the exams that afternoon, but Harry, Ron, and Hermione,
lost in worry about Hagrid and Buckbeak, didn't join in. Harry's
and Ron's last exam was Divination; Hermione's, Muggle Studies. They walked up
the marble staircase together; Hermione left them on the first floor and Harry
and Ron proceeded all the way up to the seventh, where many of their class were
sitting on the spiral staircase to Professor Trelawney's classroom, trying to
cram in a bit of last-minute studying. "She's
seeing us all separately," Neville informed them as they went to sit down
next to him. He had his copy of Unfogging the Future open on his lap at
the pages devoted to crystal gazing. "Have either of you ever seen
anything in a crystal ball?" he asked them unhappily. "Nope,"
said Ron in an offhand voice. He kept checking his watch; Harry. knew that he
was counting down the time until Buckbeak's appeal started. The
line of people outside the classroom shortened very slowly. As each person
climbed back down the silver ladder, the rest of the class hissed, "What
did she ask? Was it okay?" But
they all refused to say. "She
says the crystal ball's told her that if I tell you, I'll have a horrible
accident!" squeaked Neville as he clambered back down the ladder toward
Harry and Ron, who had now reached the landing. "That's
convenient," snorted Ron. "You know, I'm starting to think Hermione
was right about her" - he jabbed his thumb toward the trapdoor overhead -
"she's a right old fraud." "Yeah,"
said Harry, looking at his own watch. It was now two o'clock. "Wish she'd
hurry up..." Parvati
came back down the ladder glowing with pride. "She
says I've got all the makings of a true Seer," she informed Harry and Ron.
"I saw loads of stuff...Well, good luck!" She
hurried off down the spiral staircase toward Lavender. "Ronald
Weasley," said the familiar, misty voice from over their heads. Ron
grimaced at Harry and climbed the silver ladder out of sight. Harry was now the
only person left to be tested. He settled himself on the floor with his back
against the wall, listening to a fly buzzing in the sunny window, his mind
across the grounds with Hagrid. Finally,
after about twenty minutes, Ron's large feet reappeared on the ladder. "How'd
it go?" Harry asked him, standing up. "Rubbish,"
said Ron. "Couldn't see a thing, so I made some stuff up. Don't think she
was convinced, though..." "Meet
you in the common room," Harry muttered as Professor Trelawney's voice
called, "Harry Potter!" The
tower room was hotter than ever before; the curtains were closed, the fire was
alight, and the usual sickly scent made Harry cough as he stumbled through the
clutter of chairs and table to where Professor Trelawney sat waiting for him
before a large crystal ball. "Good
day, my dear," she said softly. "If you would kindly gaze into the
Orb...Take your time, now...then tell me what you see within it..." Harry
bent over the crystal ball and stared, stared as hard as he could, willing it
to show him something other than swirling white fog, but nothing happened. "Well?"
Professor Trelawney prompted delicately. "What do you see?" The
heat was overpowering and his nostrils were stinging with the perfumed smoke
wafting from the fire beside them. He thought of what Ron had just said, and
decided to pretend. "Er
-" said Harry, "a dark shape...um..." "What
does it resemble?" whispered Professor Trelawney. "Think, now..." Harry
cast his mind around and it landed on Buckbeak. "A
Hippogriff," he said firmly. "Indeed!"
whispered Professor Trelawney, scribbling keenly on the parchment perched upon
her knees. "My boy, you may well be seeing the outcome of poor Hagrid's
trouble with the Ministry of Magic! Look closer...Does the Hippogriff appear
to...have its head?" "Yes,"
said Harry firmly. "Are
you sure?" Professor Trelawney urged him. "Are you quite sure, dear?
You don't see it writhing on the ground, perhaps, and a shadowy figure raising
an axe behind it?" "No!"
said Harry, starting to feel slightly sick. "No
blood? No weeping Hagrid?" "No!"
said Harry again, wanting more than ever to leave the room and the heat.
"It looks fine, it's - flying away..." Professor
Trelawney sighed. "Well,
dear, I think we'll leave it there...A little disappointing...but I'm sure you did
your best." Relieved,
Harry got up, picked up his bag and turned to go, but then a loud, harsh voice
spoke behind him. "IT
WILL HAPPEN TONIGHT." Harry
wheeled around. Professor Trelawney had gone rigid in her armchair; her eyes
were unfocused and her mouth sagging. "S
- sorry?" said Harry. But
Professor Trelawney didn't seem to hear him. Her eyes started to roll. Harry
sat there in a panic. She looked as though she was about to have some sort of
seizure. He hesitated, thinking of running to the hospital wing - and then
Professor Trelawney spoke again, in the same harsh voice, quite unlike her own: "THE
DARK LORD LIES ALONE AND FRIENDLESS, ABANDONED BY HIS FOLLOWERS. HIS SERVANT
HAS BEEN CHAINED THESE TWELVE YEARS. TONIGHT, BEFORE MIDNIGHT...THE SERVANT WILL
BREAK FREE AND SET OUT TO REJOIN HIS MASTER. THE DARK LORD WILL RISE AGAIN WITH
HIS SERVANT'S AID, GREATER AND MORE TERRIBLE THAN EVER HE WAS. TONIGHT...BEFORE
MIDNIGHT...THE SERVANT...WILL SET OUT...TO REJOIN...HIS MASTER..." Professor
Trelawney's head fell forward onto her chest. She made a grunting sort of noise.
Harry sat there, staring at her. Then, quite suddenly, Professor Trelawney's
head snapped up again. "I'm
so sorry, dear boy," she said dreamily, "the heat of the day, you
know...I drifted off for a moment..." Harry
sat there, staring at her. "Is
there anything wrong, my dear?" "You
- you just told me that the - the Dark Lord's going to rise again...that his
servant's going to go back to him." Professor
Trelawney looked thoroughly startled. "The
Dark Lord? He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named? My dear boy, that's hardly something to
joke about...Rise again, indeed -" "But
you just said it! You said the Dark Lord -" "I
think you must have dozed off too, dear!" said Professor Trelawney.
"I would certainly not presume to predict anything quite as far-fetched as
that!" Harry
climbed back down the ladder and the spiral staircase, wondering...had he just
heard Professor Trelawney make a real prediction? Or had that been her idea of
an impressive end to the test? Five
minutes later he was dashing past the security trolls outside the entrance to
Gryffindor Tower, Professor Trelawney's words still resounding in his head.
People were striding past him in the opposite direction, laughing and joking,
heading for the grounds and a bit of long-awaited freedom; by the time he had
reached the portrait hole and entered the common room, it was almost deserted.
Over in the corner, however, sat Ron and Hermione. "Professor
Trelawney," Harry panted, "just told me -" But
he stopped abruptly at the sight of their faces. "Buckbeak
lost," said Ron weakly. "Hagrid's just sent this." Hagrid's
note was dry this time, no tears had splattered it, yet his hand seemed to have
shaken so much as he wrote that it was hardly legible.
Lost appeal. They're going to execute at sunset.
Nothing you can do. Don't come down. I don't want you to see it.
Hagrid "We've
got to go," said Harry at once. "He can't just sit there on his own,
waiting for the executioner!" "Sunset,
though," said Ron, who was staring out the window ill a glazed sort of
way. "We'd never be allowed...'specially you, Harry..." Harry
sank his head into his hands, thinking. "If
we only had the Invisibility Cloak..." "Where
is it?" said Hermione. Harry
told her about leaving it in the passageway under the one-eyed witch. "...
if Snape sees me anywhere near there again, I'm in serious trouble," he
finished. "That's
true," said Hermione, getting to her feet. "If he sees you...How do you
open the witch's hump again?" "You
- you tap it and say, 'Dissendium,'" said Harry. "But -" Hermione
didn't wait for the rest of his sentence; she strode across the room, pushed
open the Fat Lady's portrait and vanished from sight. "She
hasn't gone to get it?" Ron said, staring after her. She
had. Hermione returned a quarter of an hour later with the silvery cloak folded
carefully under her robes. "Hermione,
I don't know what's gotten, into you lately!" said Ron, astounded.
"First you hit Malfoy, then you walk out on Professor Trelawney -" Hermione
looked rather flattered. They
went down to dinner with everybody else, but did not return to Gryffindor Tower
afterward. Harry had the cloak hidden down the front of his robes; he had to
keep his arms folded to hide the lump. They skulked in an empty chamber off the
entrance hall, listening, until they were sure it was deserted. They heard a
last pair of people hurrying across the hall and a door slamming. Hermione
poked her head around the door. "Okay,"
she whispered, "no one there - cloak on -" Walking
very close together so that nobody would see them, they crossed the hall on
tiptoe beneath the cloak, then walked down the stone front steps into the
grounds. The sun was already sinking behind the Forbidden Forest, gilding the
top branches of the trees. They
reached Hagrid's cabin and knocked. He was a minute in answering, and when he
did, he looked all around for his visitor, pale-faced and trembling. "It's
us," Harry hissed. "We're wearing the Invisibility Cloak. Let us in
and we can take it off." "Yeh
shouldn've come!" Hagrid whispered, but he stood back, and they stepped
inside. Hagrid shut the door quickly and Harry pulled off the cloak. Hagrid
was not crying, nor did he throw himself upon their necks. He looked like a man
who did not know where he was or what to do. This helplessness was worse to
watch than tears. "Wan'
some tea?" he said. His great hands were shaking as he reached for the
kettle. "Where's
Buckbeak, Hagrid?" said Hermione hesitantly. "I
- I took him outside," said Hagrid, spilling milk all over the table as he
filled up the jug. "He's tethered in me pumpkin patch. Thought he oughta
see the trees an' - an' smell fresh air - before -" Hagrid's
hand trembled so violently that the milk jug slipped from his grasp and
shattered all over the floor. "I'll
do it, Hagrid," said Hermione quickly, hurrying over and starting to clean
up the mess. "There's
another one in the cupboard," Hagrid said, sitting down and wiping his
forehead on his sleeve. Harry glanced at Ron, who looked back hopelessly. "Isn't
there anything anyone can do, Hagrid?" Harry asked fiercely, sitting down
next to him. "Dumbledore -" "He's
tried," said Hagrid. "He's got no power ter overrule the Committee.
He told 'em Buckbeak's all right, but they're scared...Yeh know what Lucius
Malfoy's like...threatened 'em, I expect...an' the executioner, Macnair, he's an
old pal o' Malfoy's...but it'll be quick an' clean...an' I'll be beside him..." Hagrid
swallowed. His eyes were darting all over the cabin as though looking for some
shred of hope or comfort. "Dumbledore's
gonna come down while it - while it happens. Wrote me this mornin'. Said he
wants ter - ter be with me. Great man, Dumbledore..." Hermione,
who had been rummaging in Hagrid's cupboard for another milk jug, let out a
small, quickly stifled sob. She straightened up with the new jug in her hands,
fighting back tears. "We'll
stay with you too, Hagrid," she began, but Hagrid shook his shaggy head. "Yeh're
ter go back up ter the castle. I told yeh, I don' wan' yeh watchin'. An' yeh
shouldn' be down here anyway...If Fudge an' Dumbledore catch yeh out without
permission, Harry, yeh'll be in big trouble." Silent
tears were now streaming down Hermione's face, but she hid them from Hagrid,
bustling around making tea. Then, as she picked up the milk bottle to pour some
into the jug, she let out a shriek. "Ron,
I don't believe it - it's Scabbers!" Ron
gaped at her. "What
are you talking about?" Hermione
carried the milk jug over to the table and turned it upside down. With a
frantic squeak, and much scrambling to get back inside, Scabbers the rat came
sliding out onto the table. "Scabbers!"
said Ron blankly. "Scabbers, what are you doing here?" He
grabbed the struggling rat and held him up to the light. Scabbers looked
dreadful. He was thinner than ever, large tufts of hair had fallen out leaving
wide bald patches, and he writhed in Ron's hands as though desperate to free
himself "It's
okay, Scabbers!" said Ron. "No cats! There's nothing here to hurt
you!" Hagrid
suddenly stood up, his eyes fixed on the window. His normally ruddy face had
gone the color of parchment. "They're
comin'..." Harry,
Ron, and Hermione whipped around. A group of men was walking down the distant
castle steps. In front was Albus Dumbledore, his silver beard gleaming in the
dying sun. Next to him trotted Cornelius Fudge. Behind them came the feeble old
Committee member and the executioner, Macnair. "Yeh
gotta go," said Hagrid. Every inch of him was trembling. "They mustn'
find yeh here...Go now..." Ron
stuffed Scabbers into his pocket and Hermione picked up the cloak. "I'll
let yeh out the back way," said Hagrid. They
followed him to the door into his back garden. Harry felt strangely unreal, and
even more so when he saw Buckbeak a few yards away, tethered to a tree behind
Hagrid's pumpkin patch. Buckbeak seemed to know something was happening. He
turned his sharp head from side to side and pawed the ground nervously. "It's
okay, Beaky," said Hagrid softly. "It's okay..." He turned to
Harry, Ron, and Hermione. "Go on," he said. "Get goin'." But
they didn't move. "Hagrid,
we can't -" "We'll
tell them what really happened -" "They
can't kill him -" "Go!"
said Hagrid fiercely. "It's bad enough without you lot in trouble an'
all!" They
had no choice. As Hermione threw the cloak over Harry and Ron, they heard
voices at the front of the cabin. Hagrid looked at the place where they had just
vanished from sight. "Go
quick," he said hoarsely. "Don' listen..." And
he strode back into his cabin as someone knocked at the front door. Slowly,
in a kind of horrified trance, Harry, Ron, and Hermione set off silently around
Hagrid's house. As they reached the other side, the front door closed with a
sharp snap. "Please,
let's hurry," Hermione whispered. "I can't stand it, I can't bear
it..." They
started up the sloping lawn toward the castle. The sun was sinking fast now;
the sky had turned to a clear, purple-tinged gray, but to the west there was a
ruby-red glow. Ron
stopped dead. "Oh,
please, Ron," Hermione began. "It's
Scabbers - he won't - stay put -" Ron
was bent over, trying to keep Scabbers in his pocket, but the rat was going
berserk; squeaking madly, twisting and flailing, trying to sink his teeth into
Ron's hand. "Scabbers,
it's me, you idiot, it's Ron," Ron hissed. They
heard a door open behind them and men's voices. "Oh,
Ron, please let's move, they're going to do it!" Hermione breathed. "Okay
- Scabbers, stay put -" They
walked forward; Harry, like Hermione, was trying not to listen to the rumble of
voices behind them. Ron stopped again. "I
can't hold him - Scabbers, shut up, everyone'll hear us -" The
rat was squealing wildly, but not loudly enough to cover up the sounds drifting
from Hagrid's garden. There was a jumble of indistinct male voices, a silence,
and then, without warning, the unmistakable swish and thud of an axe. Hermione
swayed on the spot. "They
did it!" she whispered to Harry. "I'd - don't believe it - they did
it!" CHAPTER SEVENTEEN CAT, RAT, AND DOGHarry's
mind had gone blank with shock. The three of them stood transfixed with horror
under the Invisibility Cloak. The very last rays of the setting sun were
casting a bloody light over the long-shadowed grounds. Then, behind them, they
heard a wild howling. "Hagrid,"
Harry muttered. Without thinking about what he was doing, he made to turn back,
but both Ron and Hermione seized his arms. "We
can't," said Ron, who was paper-white. "He'll be in worse trouble if
they know we've been to see him..." Hermione's
breathing was shallow and uneven. "How
- could - they?" she choked. "How could they?" "Come
on," said Ron, whose teeth seemed to be chattering. They
set off back toward the castle, walking slowly to keep themselves hidden under
the cloak. The light was fading fast now. By
the time they reached open ground, darkness was settling like a spell around
them. "Scabbers,
keep still," Ron hissed, clamping his hand over his chest. The rat was
wriggling madly. Ron came to a sudden halt, trying to force Scabbers deeper
into his pocket. "What's the matter with you, You stupid rat? Stay still -
OUCH! He bit me!" "Ron,
be quiet!" Hermione whispered urgently. "Fudge'll be out here in a
minute -" "He
won't - stay - put -" Scabbers
was plainly terrified. He was writhing with all his might, trying to break free
of Ron's grip. "What's
the matter with him?" But
Harry had just seen - stinking toward them, his body low to the ground, wide
yellow eyes glinting eerily in the darkness - Crookshanks. Whether he could see
them or was following the sound of Scabbers's squeaks, Harry couldn't tell. "Crookshanks!"
Hermione moaned. "No, go away, Crookshanks! Go away!" But
the cat was getting nearer - "Scabbers
- NO!" Too
late - the rat had slipped between Ron's clutching fingers, hit the ground, and
scampered away. In one bound, Crookshanks sprang after him, and before Harry or
Hermione could stop him, Ron had thrown the Invisibility Cloak off himself and
pelted away into the darkness. "Ron!"
Hermione moaned. She
and Harry looked at each other, then followed at a sprint; it was impossible to
run full out under the cloak; they pulled it off and it streamed behind them
like a banner as they hurtled after Ron; they could hear his feet thundering
along ahead and his shouts at Crookshanks. "Get
away from him - get away - Scabbers, come here -" There
was a loud thud. "Gotcha!
Get off, you stinking cat -" Harry
and Hermione almost fell over Ron; they skidded to a stop right in front of
him. He was sprawled on the ground, but Scabbers was back in his pocket; he had
both hands held tight over the quivering lump. "Ron
- come on back under the cloak -" Hermione panted. "Dumbledore - the
Minister - they'll be coming back out in a minute -" But
before they could cover themselves again, before they could even catch their
breath, they heard the soft pounding of gigantic paws... Something was bounding
toward them, quiet as a shadow - an enormous, pale-eyed, jet-black dog. Harry
reached for his wand, but too late - the dog had made an enormous leap and the
front paws hit him on the chest; he keeled over backward in a whirl of hair; he
felt its hot breath, saw inch-long teeth - But
the force of its leap had carried it too far; it rolled off him. Dazed, feeling
as though his ribs were broken, Harry tried to stand up; he could hear it
growling as it skidded around for a new attack. Ron
was on his feet. As the dog sprang back toward them he pushed Harry aside; the
dog's jaws fastened instead around Ron's outstretched arm. Harry lunged
forward, he seized a handful of the brute's hair, but it was dragging Ron away
as easily as though he were a rag doll - Then,
out of nowhere, something hit Harry so hard across the face he was knocked off
his feet again. He heard Hermione shriek with pain and fall too. Harry
groped for his wand, blinking blood out of his eyes "Lumos!"
he whispered. The
wandlight showed him the trunk of a thick tree; they had chased Scabbers into
the shadow of the Whomping Willow and its branches were creaking as though in a
high wind, whipping backward and forward to stop them going nearer. And
there, at the base of the trunk, was the dog, dragging Ron backward into a
large gap in the roots - Ron was fighting furiously, but his head and torso
were slipping out of sight - "Ron!"
Harry shouted, trying to follow, but a heavy branch whipped lethally through
the air and he was forced backward again. All
they could see now was one of Ron's legs, which he had hooked around a root in
an effort to stop the dog from pulling him farther underground - but a horrible
crack cut the air like a gunshot; Ron's leg had broken, and a moment later, his
foot vanished from sight. "Harry
- we've got to go for help -" Hermione gasped; she was bleeding too; the
Willow had cut her across the shoulder. "No!
That thing's big enough to eat him; we haven't got time -" "Harry
- we're never going to get through without help -" Another
branch whipped down at them, twigs clenched like knuckles. "If
that dog can get in, we can," Harry panted, darting here and there, trying
to find a way through the vicious, swishing branches, but he couldn't get an
inch nearer to the tree roots without being in range of the tree's blows. "Oh,
help, help," Hermione whispered frantically, dancing uncertainly on the
spot, "Please..." Crookshanks
darted forward. He slithered between the battering branches like a snake and
placed his front paws upon a knot on the trunk. Abruptly,
as though the tree had been turned to marble, it stopped moving. Not a leaf
twitched or shook. "Crookshanks!"
Hermione whispered uncertainly. She now grasped Harry's arm painfully hard.
"How did he know -?" "He's
friends with that dog," said Harry grimly. "I've seen them together.
Come on - and keep your wand out -" They
covered the distance to the trunk in seconds, but before they had reached the
gap in the roots, Crookshanks had slid into it with a flick of his bottlebrush
tail. Harry went next; he crawled forward, headfirst, and slid down an earthy
slope to the bottom of a very low tunnel. Crookshanks was a little way along,
his eyes flashing in the light from Harry's wand. Seconds later, Hermione
slithered down beside him. "Where's
Ron?" she whispered in a terrified voice. "This
way," said Harry, setting off, bent-backed, after Crookshanks. "Where
does this tunnel come out?" Hermione asked breathlessly from behind him. "I
don't know...It's marked on the Marauder's Map but Fred and George said no one's
ever gotten into it...It goes off the edge of the map, but it looked like it was
heading for Hogsmeade..." They
moved as fast as they could, bent almost double; ahead of them, Crookshanks's
tail bobbed in and out of view. On and on went the passage; it felt at least as
long as the one to Honeydukes... All Harry could think of was Ron and what the
enormous dog might be doing to him...He was drawing breath in sharp, painful
gasps, running at a crouch... And
then the tunnel began to rise; moments later it twisted, and Crookshanks had
gone. Ahead Harry could see a patch of dim light through a small opening. He
and Hermione paused, gasping for breath, edging forward. Both raised their
wands to see what lay beyond. It
was a room, a very disordered, dusty room. Paper was peeling from the walls;
there were stains all over the floor; every piece of furniture was broken as
though somebody had smashed it. The windows were all boarded up. Harry
glanced at Hermione, who looked very frightened but nodded. Harry
pulled himself out of the hole, staring around. The room was deserted, but a
door to their right stood open, leading to a shadowy hallway. Hermione suddenly
grabbed Harry's arm again. Her wide eyes were traveling around the boarded
windows. "Harry,"
she whispered, "I think we're in the Shrieking Shack." Harry
looked around. His eyes fell on a wooden chair near them. Large chunks had been
torn out of it; one of the legs had been ripped off entirely. "Ghosts
didn't do that," he said slowly. At
that moment, there was a creak overhead. Something had moved upstairs. Both of
them looked up at the ceiling. Hermione's grip on Harry's arm was so tight he
was losing feeling in his fingers. He raised his eyebrows at her; she nodded
again and let go. Quietly
as they could, they crept out into the hall and up the crumbling staircase.
Everything was covered in a thick layer of dust except the floor, where a wide
shiny stripe had been made by something being dragged upstairs. They
reached the dark landing. "Nox,"
they whispered together, and the lights at the end of their wands went out.
Only one door was open. As they crept toward it, they heard movement from
behind it; a low moan, and then a deep, loud purring. They exchanged a last
look, a last nod. Wand
held tightly before him, Harry kicked the door wide open. On a
magnificent four-poster bed with dusty hangings lay Crookshanks, purring loudly
at the sight of them. On the floor beside him, clutching his leg, which stuck
out at a strange angle, was Ron. Harry
and Hermione dashed across to him. "Ron
- are you okay?" "Where's
the dog?" "Not
a dog," Ron moaned. His teeth were gritted with pain. "Harry, it's a
trap -" "What
-" "He's
the dog...he's an Animagus." Ron
was staring over Harry's shoulder. Harry wheeled around. With a snap, the man
in the shadows closed the door behind them. A
mass of filthy, matted hair hung to his elbows. If eyes hadn't been shining out
of the deep, dark sockets, he might have been a corpse. The waxy skin was
stretched so tightly over the bones of his face, it looked like a skull. His
yellow teeth were bared in a grin. It was Sirius Black. "Expelliarmus!"
he croaked, pointing Ron's wand at them. Harry's
and Hermione's wands shot out of their hands, high in the air, and Black caught
them. Then he took a step closer. His eyes were fixed on Harry. "I
thought you'd come and help your friend," he said hoarsely. His
voice sounded as though he had long since lost the habit of using it.
"Your father would have done the same for me. Brave of you not to run for
a teacher. I'm grateful...it will make everything much easier..." The
taunt about his father rang in Harry's ears as though Black had bellowed it. A
boiling hate erupted in Harry's chest, leaving no place for fear. For the first
time in his life, he wanted his wand back in his hand, not to defend himself,
but to attack...to kill. Without knowing what he was doing, he started forward,
but there was a sudden movement on either side of him and two pairs of hands
grabbed him and held him back... "No, Harry!" Hermione gasped in a
petrified whisper; Ron, however, spoke to Black. "If
you want to kill Harry, you'll have to kill us too!" he said fiercely,
though the effort of standing upright was draining him of still more color, and
he swayed slightly as he spoke. Something
flickered in Black's shadowed eyes. "Lie
down," he said quietly to Ron. "You will damage that leg even
more." "Did
you hear me?" Ron said weakly, though he was clinging painfully to Harry
to stay upright. "You'll have to kill all three of us!" "There'll
be only one murder here tonight," said Black, and his grin widened. "Why's
that?" Harry spat, trying to wrench himself free of Ron, and Hermione.
"Didn't care last time, did you? Didn't mind slaughtering all those
Muggles to get at Pettigrew...What's the matter, gone soft in Azkaban?" "Harry!"
Hermione whimpered. "Be quiet!" "HE
KILLED MY MUM AND DAD!" Harry roared, and with a huge effort he broke free
of Hermione's and Ron's restraint and lunged forward - He
had forgotten about magic - he had forgotten that he was short and skinny and
thirteen, whereas Black was a tall, full-grown man - all Harry knew was that he
wanted to hurt Black as badly as he could and that he didn't care how much he
got hurt in return - Perhaps
it was the shock of Harry doing something so stupid, but Black didn't raise the
wands in time - one of Harry's hands fastened over his wasted wrist, forcing
the wand tips away; the knuckles of Harry's other hand collided with the side
of Black's head and they fell, backward, into the wall - Hermione
was screaming; Ron was yelling; there was a blinding flash as the wands in
Black's hand sent a jet of sparks into the air that missed Harry's face by
inches; Harry felt the shrunken arm under his fingers twisting madly, but he
clung on, his other hand punching every part of Black it could find. But
Black's free hand had found Harry's throat "No,"
he hissed, "I've waited too long -" The
fingers tightened, Harry choked, his glasses askew. Then
he saw Hermione's foot swing out of nowhere. Black let go of Harry with a grunt
of pain; Ron had thrown himself on Black's wand hand and Harry heard a faint
clatter - He
fought free of the tangle of bodies and saw his own wand rolling across the
floor; he threw himself toward it but "Argh!"
Crookshanks
had joined the fray; both sets of front claws had sunk themselves deep into
Harry's arm; Harry threw him off, but Crookshanks now darted toward Harry's
wand - "NO
YOU DON'T!" roared Harry, and he aimed a kick at Crookshanks that made the
cat leap aside, spitting; Harry snatched up his wand and turned - "Get
out of the way!" he shouted at Ron and Hermione. They
didn't need telling twice. Hermione, gasping for breath, her lip bleeding,
scrambled aside, snatching up her and Ron's wands. Ron crawled to the
four-poster and collapsed onto it, panting, his white face now tinged with
green, both hands clutching his broken leg. Black
was sprawled at the bottom of the wall. His thin chest rose and fell rapidly as
he watched Harry walking slowly nearer, his wand pointing straight at Black's
heart. "Going
to kill me, Harry?" he whispered. Harry
stopped right above him, his wand still pointing at Black's chest, looking down
at him. A livid bruise was rising around Black's left eye and his nose was
bleeding. "You
killed my parents," said Harry, his voice shaking slightly, but his wand
hand quite steady. Black
stared up at him out of those sunken eyes. "I
don't deny it," he said very quietly. "But if you knew the whole
story." "The
whole story?" Harry repeated, a furious pounding in his ears. "You
sold them to Voldemort. That's all I need to know." "You've
got to listen to me," Black said, and there was a note of urgency in his
voice now. "You'll regret it if you don't...You don't understand..." "I
understand a lot better than you think," said Harry, and his voice shook
more than ever. "You never heard her, did you? My mum...trying to stop
Voldemort killing me...and you did that...you did it..." Before
either of them could say another word, something ginger streaked past Harry;
Crookshanks leapt onto Black's chest and settled himself there, right over
Black's heart. Black blinked and looked down at the cat. "Get
off," he murmured, trying to push Crookshanks off him. But
Crookshanks sank his claws into Black's robes and wouldn't shift. He turned his
ugly, squashed face to Harry and looked up at him with those great yellow eyes.
To his right, Hermione gave a dry sob. Harry
stared down at Black and Crookshanks, his grip tightening on the wand. So what
if he had to kill the cat too? It was in league with Black...If it was prepared
to die, trying to protect Black, that wasn't Harry's business... If Black wanted
to save it, that only proved he cared more for Crookshanks than for Harry's
parents... Harry
raised the wand. Now was the moment to do it. Now was the moment to avenge his
mother and father. He was going to kill Black. He had to kill Black. This was
his chance... The
seconds lengthened. And still Harry stood frozen there, wand poised, Black
staring up at him, Crookshanks on his chest. Ron's ragged breathing came from
near the bed; Hermione was quite silent. And
then came a new sound - Muffled
footsteps were echoing up through the floor - someone was moving downstairs. "WE'RE
UP HERE!" Hermione screamed suddenly. "WE'RE UP HERE - SIRIUS BLACK -
QUICK!" Black
made a startled movement that almost dislodged Crookshanks; Harry gripped his
wand convulsively - Do it now! said a voice in his head - but the footsteps
were thundering up the stairs and Harry still hadn't done it. The
door of the room burst open in a shower of red sparks and Harry wheeled around
as Professor Lupin came hurtling into the room, his face bloodless, his wand
raised and ready. His eyes flickered over Ron, lying on the floor, over
Hermione, cowering next to the door, to Harry, standing there with his wand
covering Black, and then to Black himself, crumpled and bleeding at Harry's feet. "Expelliarmus!"
Lupin shouted. Harry's wand
flew once more out of his hand; so did the two Hermione was holding. Lupin
caught them all deftly, then moved into the room, staring at Black, who still
had Crookshanks lying protectively across his chest. Harry
stood there, feeling suddenly empty. He hadn't done it. His nerve had failed
him. Black was going to be handed back to the Dementors. Then
Lupin spoke, in a very tense voice. "Where
is he, Sirius?" Harry
looked quickly at Lupin. He didn't understand what Lupin meant. Who was Lupin
talking about? He turned to look at Black again. Black's
face was quite expressionless. For a few seconds, he didn't move at all. Then,
very slowly, he raised his empty hand and pointed straight at Ron. Mystified,
Harry glanced around at Ron, who looked bewildered. "But
then..." Lupin muttered, staring at Black so intently it seemed he was
trying to read his mind, "...why hasn't he shown himself before now?
Unless" - Lupin's eyes suddenly widened, as though he was seeing something
beyond Black, something none of the rest could see, "- unless he was the
one...unless you switched... without telling me?" Very
slowly, his sunken gaze never leaving Lupin's face, Black nodded. "Professor,"
Harry interrupted loudly, "what's going on -?" But
he never finished the question, because what he saw made his voice die in his
throat. Lupin was lowering his wand, gazing fixed at Black. The Professor
walked to Black's side, seized his hand, pulled him to his feet so that
Crookshanks fell to the floor, and embraced Black like a brother. Harry
felt as though the bottom had dropped out of his stomach. "I
DON'T BELIEVE IT!" Hermione screamed. Lupin
let go of Black and turned to her. She had raised herself off the floor and was
pointing at Lupin, wild-eyed. "You - you -" "Hermione
-" "-
you and him!" "Hermione,
calm down -" "I
didn't tell anyone!" Hermione shrieked. "I've been covering up for
you -" "Hermione,
listen to me, please" Lupin shouted. "I can explain -" Harry
could feel himself shaking, not with fear, but with a fresh wave of fury. "I
trusted you," he shouted at Lupin, his voice wavering, out of control,
"and all the time you've been his friend!" "You're
wrong," said Lupin. "I haven't been Sirius's friend, but I am now -
Let me explain..." "NO!"
Hermione screamed. "Harry, don't trust him, he's been helping Black get
into the castle, he wants you dead too - he's a werewolf!" There
was a ringing silence. Everyone's eyes were now on Lupin, who looked remarkably
calm, though rather pale. "Not
at all up to your usual standard, Hermione," he said. "Only one out
of three, I'm afraid. I have not been helping Sirius get into the castle and I
certainly don't want Harry dead. An odd shiver passed over his face. "But
I won't deny that I am a werewolf." Ron
made a valiant effort to get up again but fell back with a whimper of pain.
Lupin made toward him, looking concerned, but Ron gasped, "Get away from
me, werewolf!" Lupin
stopped dead. Then, with an obvious effort, he turned to Hermione and said,
"How long have you known?" "Ages,"
Hermione whispered. "Since I did Professor Snape's essay..." "He'll
be delighted," said Lupin coolly. "He assigned that essay hoping
someone would realize what my symptoms meant... Did you check the lunar chart and
realize that I was always ill at the full moon? Or did you realize that the
Boggart changed into the moon when it saw me?" "Both,"
Hermione said quietly. Lupin
forced a laugh. "You're
the cleverest witch of your age I've ever met, Hermione." "I'm
not," Hermione whispered. "If I'd been a bit cleverer, I'd have told
everyone what you are!" "But
they already know," said Lupin. "At least, the staff do." "Dumbledore
hired you when he knew you were a werewolf," Ron gasped. "Is he
mad?" "Some
of the staff thought so," said Lupin. "He had to work very hard to
convince certain teachers that I'm trustworthy -" "AND
HE WAS WRONG!" Harry yelled. "YOU'VE BEEN HELPING HIM ALL THE
TIME!" He was pointing at Black, who suddenly crossed to the four-poster
bed and sank onto it, his face hidden in one shaking hand. Crookshanks leapt up
beside him and stepped onto his lap, purring. Ron edged away from both of them,
dragging his leg. "I
have not been helping Sirius," said Lupin. "If you'll give me a
chance, I'll explain. Look -" He
separated Harry's, Ron's and Hermione's wands and threw each back to its owner;
Harry caught his, stunned. "There,"
said Lupin, sticking his own wand back into his belt "You're armed, we're
not. Now will you listen?" Harry
didn't know what to think. Was it a trick? "If
you haven't been helping him," he said, with a furious glance at Black,
"how did you know he was here?" "The
map," said Lupin. "The Marauder's Map. I was in my office examining
it -" "You
know how to work it?" Harry said suspiciously. "Of
course I know how to work it," said Lupin, waving his hand impatiently.
"I helped write it. I'm Moony - that was my friends' nickname for me at
school." "You
wrote -?" "The
important thing is, I was watching it carefully this evening, because I had an
idea that you, Ron, and Hermione might try and sneak out of the castle to visit
Hagrid before his Hippogriff was executed. And I was right, wasn't I?" He
had started to pace up and down, looking at them. Little patches of dust rose
at his feet. "You
might have been wearing your father's old cloak, Harry-" "How
d'you know about the cloak?" "The
number of times I saw James disappearing under it..." said Lupin, waving an
impatient hand again. "The point is, even if you're wearing an
Invisibility Cloak, you still show up on the Marauder's Map. I watched you
cross the grounds and enter Hagrid's hut. Twenty minutes later, you left
Hagrid, and set off back toward the castle. But you were now accompanied by
somebody else." "What?"
said Harry. "No, we weren't!" I
couldn't believe my eyes,' said Lupin, still pacing, and ignoring Harry's
interruption. "I thought the map must be malfunctioning. How could he be
with you?" "No
one was with us!" said Harry. "And
then I saw another dot, moving fast toward you, labeled Sirius Black...I saw him
collide with you; I watched as he pulled two of you into the Whomping Willow
-" "One
of us!" Ron said angrily. "No,
Ron," said Lupin. "Two of you." He
had stopped his pacing, his eyes moving over Ron. "Do
you think I could have a look at the rat?" he said evenly. "What?"
said Ron. "What's Scabbers got to do with it?" "Everything,"
said Lupin. "Could I see him, please?" Ron
hesitated, then put a hand inside his robes. Scabbers emerged, thrashing
desperately; Ron had to seize his long bald tail to stop him escaping.
Crookshanks stood up on Black's leg and made a soft hissing noise. Lupin
moved closer to Ron. He seemed to be holding his breath as he gazed intently at
Scabbers. "What?"
Ron said again, holding Scabbers close to him, looking scared. "What's my
rat got to do with anything?" "That's
not a rat," croaked Sirius Black suddenly. "What
d'you mean - of course he's a rat -" "No,
he's not," said Lupin quietly. "He's a wizard." "An
Animagus," said Black, "by the name of Peter Pettigrew." CHAPTER EIGHTEEN MOONY, WORMTAIL, PADFOOT, and PRONGSIt
took a few seconds for the absurdity of this statement to sink in. Then Ron
voiced what Harry was thinking. "You're
both mental." "Ridiculous!"
said Hermione faintly. "Peter
Pettigrew's dead!" said Harry. "He killed him twelve years ago!"
He pointed at Black, whose face twitched convulsively. "I
meant to," he growled, his yellow teeth bared, "but little Peter got
the better of me...not this time, though!" And
Crookshanks was thrown to the floor as Black lunged at Scabbers; Ron yelled
with pain as Black's weight fell on his broken leg. "Sirius,
NO!" Lupin yelled, launching himself forwards and dragging Black away from
Ron again, "WAIT! You can't do it just like that - they need to understand
- we've got to explain -" "We
can explain afterwards!" snarled Black, trying to throw Lupin off. One
hand was still clawing the air as it tried to reach Scabbers, who was squealing
like a piglet, scratching Ron's face and neck as he tried to escape. "They've
- got - a - right - to - know - everything!" Lupin panted, still trying to
restrain Black. "Ron's kept him as a pet! There are parts of it even I
don't understand, and Harry - you owe Harry the truth, Sirius!" Black
stopped struggling, though his hollowed eyes were still fixed on Scabbers, who
was clamped tightly under Ron's bitten, scratched, and bleeding hands. "All
right, then," Black said, without taking his eyes off the rat. "Tell
them whatever you like. But make it quick, Remus. I want to commit the murder I
was imprisoned for..." "You're
nutters, both of you," said Ron shakily, looking round at Harry and
Hermione for support. "I've had enough of this. I'm off." He
tried to heave himself up on his good leg, but Lupin raised his wand again,
pointing it at Scabbers. "You're
going to hear me out, Ron," he said quietly. "Just keep a tight hold
on Peter while you listen." "HE'S
NOT PETER, HE'S SCABBERS!" Ron yelled, trying to force the rat back into
his front pocket, but Scabbers was fighting too hard; Ron swayed and
overbalanced, and Harry caught him am pushed him back down to the bed. Then,
ignoring Black, Harry turned to Lupin. "There
were witnesses who saw Pettigrew die," he said. "A whole street full
of them..." "They
didn't see what they thought they saw!" said Black savagely, still
watching Scabbers struggling in Ron's hands. "Everyone
thought Sirius killed Peter," said Lupin, nodding. "I believed it
myself - until I saw the map tonight. Because the Marauder's map never
lies...Peter's alive. Ron's holding him, Harry." Harry
looked down at Ron, and as their eyes met, they agreed, silently: Black and
Lupin were both out of their minds. Their story made no sense whatsoever. How
could Scabbers be Peter Pettigrew? Azkaban must have unhinged Black after all -
but why was Lupin playing along with him? Then
Hermione spoke, in a trembling, would-be calm sort of voice, as though trying
to will Professor Lupin to talk sensibly. "But
Professor Lupin...Scabbers can't be Pettigrew...it just can't be true, you know it
can't..." "Why
can't it be true?" Lupin said calmly, as though they were in class, and
Hermione had simply spotted a problem in an experiment with Grindylows. "Because...
because people would know if Peter Pettigrew had been an Animagus. We did
Animagi in class with Professor McGonagall. And I looked them up when I did my
homework - the Ministry of Magic keeps tabs on witches and wizards who can
become animals; there's a register showing what animal they become, and their
markings and things...and I went and looked Professor McGonagall up on the
register, and there have been only seven Animagi this century, and Pettigrew's
name wasn't on the list." Harry
had barely had time to marvel inwardly at the effort Hermione put into her
homework, when Lupin started to laugh. "Right
again, Hermione!" he said. "But the Ministry never knew that here
used to be three unregistered Animagi running around Hogwarts." "If
you're going to tell them the story, get a move on, Remus," said Black,
who was still watching Scabbers's every desperate move. "I've waited
twelve years, I'm not going to wait much longer." "All
right...but you'll need to help me, Sirius," said Lupin, "I only know
how it began..." Lupin
broke off. There had been a loud creak behind him. The bedroom door had opened
of its own accord. All five of them stared at it. Then Lupin strode toward it
and looked out into the landing. "No
one there..." "This
place is haunted!" said Ron. "It's
not,' said Lupin, still looking at the door in a puzzled way. "The
Shrieking Shack was never haunted...The screams and howls the villagers used to
hear were made by me." He
pushed his graying hair out of his eyes, thought for a moment then said,
"That's where all of this starts - with my becoming a werewolf, None of
this could have happened if I hadn't been bitter...and if I hadn't been so
foolhardy..." He
looked sober and tired. Ron started to interrupt, but Hermione, said,
"Shh!" She was watching Lupin very intently. "I
as a very small boy when I received the bite. My parents tried everything, but
in those days there was no cure. The potion that Professor Snape has been
making for me is a very recent discovery. It makes me safe, you see. As long as
I take it in the week, preceding the full moon, I keep my mind when I
transform...I'm able to curl up in my office, a harmless wolf, and wait for the
moon to wane again. "Before
the Wolfsbane Potion was discovered, however, I became a fully fledged monster
once a month. It seemed impossible that I would be able to come to Hogwarts.
Other parents weren't likely to want their children exposed to me. "But
then Dumbledore became Headmaster, and he was sympathetic. He said that as long
as we took certain precautions, there was no reason I shouldn't come to
school..." Lupin sighed, and looked directly at Harry. "I told you,
months ago, that the Whomping Willow was planted the year I came to Hogwarts.
The truth is that it was planted because I came to Hogwarts. This house" -
Lupin looked miserably around the room, - "the tunnel that leads to it -
they were built for my use. Once a month, I was smuggled out of the castle,
into this place, to transform. The tree was placed at the tunnel mouth to stop
anyone coming across me while I was dangerous." Harry
couldn't see where this story was going, but he was listening raptly all the
same. The only sound apart from Lupin's voice was Scabbers's frightened
squeaking. "My
transformations in those days were - were terrible. It is very painful to turn
into a werewolf. I was separated from humans to bite, so I bit and scratched
myself instead. The villagers heard the noise and the screaming and thought
they were hearing particularly violent spirits. Dumbledore encouraged the
rumor...Even now, when the house has been silent for years, the villagers don't
dare approach it..." "But
apart from my transformations, I was happier than I had ever been in my life.
For the first time ever, I had friends, three great friends. Sirius Black...Peter
Pettigrew...and, of course, your father, Harry - James Potter." "Now,
my three friends could hardly fail to notice that I disappeared once a month. I
made up all sorts of stories. I told them my mother was ill, and that I had to
go home to see her...I was terrified they would desert me the moment they found
out what I was. But of course, they, like you, Hermione, worked out the
truth..." "And
they didn't desert me at all. Instead, they did something for me that would
make my transformations not only bearable, but the best times of my life. They
became Animagi." "My
dad too?" said Harry, astounded. "Yes,
indeed," said Lupin. "It took them the best part of three years to
work out how to do it. Your father and Sirius here were the cleverest students
in the school, and lucky they were, because the Animagus transformation can go
horribly wrong - one reason the Ministry keeps a close watch on those
attempting to do it. Peter needed all the help he could get from James and
Sirius. Finally, in our fifth year, they managed it. They could each turn into
a different animal at will." "But
how did that help you?" said Hermione, sounding puzzled. "They
couldn't keep me company as humans, so they kept me company as animals,"
said Lupin. "A werewolf is only a danger to people. They sneaked out of
the castle every month under James's Invisibility Cloak. They
transformed...Peter, as the smallest, could slip beneath the Willow's attacking
branches and touch the knot that freezes it. They would then slip down the
tunnel and join me. Under their influence, I became less dangerous. My body was
still wolfish, but my mind seemed to become less so while I was with
them." "Hurry
up, Remus," snarled Black, who was still watching Scabbers with a horrible
sort of hunger on his face. "I'm
getting there, Sirius, I'm getting there...well, highly exciting possibilities
were open to us now that we could all transform. Soon we were leaving the
Shrieking Shack and roaming the school grounds and the village by night. Sirius
and James transformed into such large animals, they were able to keep a
werewolf in check. I doubt whether any Hogwarts students ever found out more
about the Hogwarts grounds and Hogsmeade than we did... And that's how we came to
write the Marauder's Map, and sign it with our nicknames. Sirius is Padfoot.
Peter is Wormtail. James was Prongs." "What
sort of animal -?" Harry began, but Hermione cut him off. "That was
still really dangerous! Running around in the dark with a werewolf! What if
you'd given the others the slip, and bitten somebody?" "A
thought that still haunts me," said Lupin heavily. "And there were
near misses, many of them. We laughed about them afterwards. We were young,
thoughtless - carried away with our own cleverness." "I
sometimes felt guilty about betraying Dumbledore's trust, of course...he had
admitted me to Hogwarts when no other headmaster would have done so, and he had
no idea I was breaking the rules he had set down for my own and others' safety.
He never knew I had led three fellow students into becoming Animagi illegally.
But I always managed to forget my guilty feelings every time we sat down to
plan our next month's adventure. And I haven't changed..." Lupin's
face had hardened, and there was self-disgust in his voice. "All this
year, I have been battling with myself, wondering whether I should tell
Dumbledore that Sirius was an Animagus. But I didn't do it. Why? Because I was
too cowardly. It would have meant admitting that I'd betrayed his trust while I
was at school, admitting that I'd led others along with me...and Dumbledore's
trust has meant everything to me. He let me into Hogwarts as a boy, and he gave
me a job when I have been shunned all my adult life, unable to find paid work
because of what I am. And so I convinced myself that Sirius was getting into
the school using dark arts he learned from Voldemort, that being an Animagus
had nothing to do with it...so, in a way, Snape's been right about me all
along." "Snape?"
said Black harshly, taking his eyes off Scabbers; for the first time in minutes
and looking up at Lupin. "What's Snape got to do with it?" "He's
here, Sirius," said Lupin heavily. "He's teaching here as well."
He looked up at Harry, Ron, and Hermione. "Professor
Snape was at school with us. He fought very hard against my appointment to the
Defense Against the Dark Arts job. He has been telling Dumbledore all year that
I am not to be trusted. He has his reasons...you see, Sirius here played a trick
on him which nearly killed him, a trick which involved me -" Black
made a derisive noise. "It
served him right," he sneered. "Sneaking around, trying to find out
what we were up to...hoping he could get us expelled..." "Severus
was very interested in where I went every month." Lupin told Harry, Ron,
and Hermione. "We were in the same year, you know, and we - er - didn't
like each other very much. He especially disliked James. Jealous, I think, of
James's talent on the Quidditch field...anyway Snape had seen me crossing the
grounds with Madam Pomfrey one evening as she led me toward the Whomping Willow
to transform. Sirius thought it would be - er - amusing, to tell Snape all he
had to do was prod the knot on the tree trunk with a long stick, and he'd be
able to get in after me. Well, of course, Snape tried it - if he'd got as far
as this house, he'd have met a fully grown werewolf - but your father, who'd
heard what Sirius had done, went after Snape and pulled him back, at great risk
to his life...Snape glimpsed me, though, at the end of the tunnel. He was
forbidden by Dumbledore to tell anybody, but from that time on he knew what I
was..." "So
that's why Snape doesn't like you," said Harry slowly, "because he
thought you were in on the joke?" "That's
right," sneered a cold voice from the wall behind Lupin. Severus
Snape was pulling off the Invisibility Cloak, his wand pointing directly at
Lupin. CHAPTER NINETEEN THE SERVANT OF LORD VOLDEMORTHermione
screamed. Black leapt to his feet. Harry felt as though he'd received a huge
electric shock. "I
found this at the base of the Whomping Willow," said Snape, throwing the
cloak aside, careful to keep this wand pointing directly at Lupin's chest.
"Very useful, Potter, I thank you..." Snape
was slightly breathless, but his face was full of suppressed triumph.
"You're wondering, perhaps, how I knew you were here?" he said, his
eyes glittering. "I've just been to your office, Lupin. You forgot to take
your potion tonight, so I took a gobletful along. And very lucky I did...lucky
for me, I mean. Lying on your desk was a certain map. One glance at it told me
all I needed to know. I saw you running along this passageway and out of
sight." "Severus
-" Lupin began, but Snape overrode him. "I've
told the headmaster again and again that you're helping your old friend Black
into the castle, Lupin, and here's the proof. Not even I dreamed you would have
the nerve to use this old place as your hideout -" "Severus,
you're making a mistake," said Lupin urgently. "You haven't heard
everything - I can explain - Sirius is not here to kill Harry -" "Two
more for Azkaban tonight," said Snape, his eyes now gleaming fanatically.
"I shall be interested to see how Dumbledore takes this...He was quite
convinced you were harmless, you know, Lupin...a tame werewolf -" "You
fool," said Lupin softly. "Is a schoolboy grudge worth putting an
innocent man back inside Azkaban?" BANG!
Thin, snakelike cords burst from the end of Snape's wand and twisted themselves
around Lupin's mouth, wrists, and ankles; he overbalanced and fell to the
floor, unable to move. With a roar of rage, Black started toward Snape, but
Snape pointed his wand straight between Black's eyes. "Give
me a reason," he whispered. "Give me a reason to do it, and I swear I
will." Black
stopped dead. It would have been impossible to say which face showed more
hatred. Harry
stood there, paralyzed, not knowing what to do or whom to believe. He glanced
around at Ron and Hermione. Ron looked just as confused as he did, still
fighting to keep hold on the struggling Scabbers. Hermione, however, took an
uncertain step toward Snape and said, in a very breathless voice,
"Professor Snape - it wouldn't hurt to hear what they've got to say,
w-would it?" "Miss
Granger, you are already facing suspension from this school," Snape spat.
"You, Potter, and Weasley are out-of-bounds, in the company of a convicted
murderer and a werewolf. For once in your life, hold your tongue." "But
if - if there was a mistake -" "KEEP
QUIET, YOU STUPID GIRL!" Snape shouted, looking suddenly quite deranged.
"DON'T TALK ABOUT WHAT YOU DON'T UNDERSTAND!" A few sparks shot out
of the end of his wand, which was still pointed at Black's face. Hermione fell
silent. "Vengeance
is very sweet," Snape breathed at Black. "How I hoped I would be the
one to catch you..." "The
joke's on you again, Severus," Black snarled. "As long as this boy
brings his rat up to the castle" - he jerked his head at Ron - "I'll
come quietly..." "Up
to the castle?" said Snape silkily. "I don't think we need to go that
far. All I have to do is call the Dementors once we get out of the Willow.
They'll be very pleased to see you, Black...pleased enough to give you a little
kiss, I daresay...I -" What
little color there was in Black's face left it. "You
-you've got to hear me out," he croaked. "The rat - look at the rat
-" But
there was a mad glint in Snape's eyes that Harry had never seen before. He
seemed beyond reason. "Come
on, all of you," he said. He clicked his fingers, and the ends of the
cords that bound Lupin flew to his hands. "I'll drag the werewolf. Perhaps
the Dementors will have a kiss for him too -" Before
he knew what he was doing, Harry had crossed the room in three strides and
blocked the door. "Get
out of the way, Potter, you're in enough trouble already," snarled Snape.
"If I hadn't been here to save your skin -" "Professor
Lupin could have killed me about a hundred times this year," Harry said.
"I've been alone with him loads of times, having defense lessons against
the Dementors. If he was helping Black, why didn't he just finish me off then?" "Don't
ask me to fathom the way a werewolf's mind works," hissed Snape. "Get
out of the way, Potter." "YOU'RE
PATHETIC!" Harry yelled. "JUST BECAUSE THEY MADE A FOOL OF YOU AT
SCHOOL YOU WON'T EVEN LISTEN -" "SILENCE!
I WILL NOT BE SPOKEN TO LIKE THAT!" Snape shrieked, looking madder than
ever. "Like father, like son, Potter! I have just saved your neck; you
should be thanking me on bended knee! You would have been well served if he'd
killed you! You'd have died like your father, too arrogant to believe you might
be mistaken in Black - now get out of the way, or I will make you. GET OUT OF
THE WAY, POTTER!" Harry
made up his mind in a split second. Before Snape could take even one step
toward him, he had raised his wand. "Expelliarmus!"
he yelled - except that his wasn't the only voice that shouted. There was a
blast that made the door rattle on its hinges; Snape was lifted off his feet
and slammed into the wall, then slid down it to the floor, a trickle of blood
oozing from under his hair. He had been knocked out. Harry
looked around. Both Ron and Hermione had tried to disarm Snape at exactly the
same moment. Snape's wand soared in a high arc and landed on the bed next to
Crookshanks. "You
shouldn't have done that," said Black, looking at Harry. "You
should have left him to me..." Harry
avoided Black's eyes. He wasn't sure, even now, that he'd done the right thing. "We
attacked a teacher...We attacked a teacher..." Hermione whimpered, staring at
the lifeless Snape with frightened eyes. "Oh, we're going to be in so much
trouble -" Lupin
was struggling against his bonds. Black bent down quickly and untied him. Lupin
straightened up, rubbing his arms where the ropes had cut into them. "Thank
you, Harry," he said. "I'm
still not saying I believe you," he told Lupin. "Then
it's time we offered you some proof," said Lupin. "You, boy - give me
Peter, please. Now." Ron
clutched Scabbers closer to his chest. "Come
off it," he said weakly. "Are you trying to say he broke out of
Azkaban just to get his hands on Scabbers? I mean..." He looked up at Harry
and Hermione for support, "Okay, say Pettigrew could turn into a rat -
there are millions of rats - how's he supposed to know which one he is after if
he was locked up in Azkaban?" "You
know, Sirius, that's a fair question," said Lupin, turning to Black and
frowning slightly. "How did you find out where he was?" Black
put one of his claw-like hands inside his robes and took out a crumpled piece
of paper, which he smoothed flat and held out to show the others. It
was the photograph of Ron and his family that had appeared in the Daily
Prophet the previous summer, and there, on Ron's shoulder, was Scabbers. "How
did you get this?" Lupin asked Black, thunderstruck. "Fudge,"
said Black. "When he came to inspect Azkaban last year, he gave me his
paper. And there was Peter, on the front page on this boy's shoulder...I knew him
at once...how many times had I seen him transform? And the caption said the boy
would be going back to Hogwarts...to where Harry was..." "My
God," said Lupin softly, staring from Scabbers to the picture in the paper
and back again. "His front paw..." "What
about it?" said Ron defiantly. "He's
got a toe missing," said Black. "Of
course," Lupin breathed. "So simple...so brilliant...he cut it off
himself?" "Just
before he transformed," said Black. "When I cornered him, he yelled
for the whole street to hear that I'd betrayed Lily and James. Then, before I
could curse him, he blew apart the street with the wand behind his back, killed
everyone within twenty feet of himself - and sped down into the sewer with the
other rats..." "Didn't
you ever hear, Ron?" said Lupin. "The biggest bit of Peter they found
was his finger." "Look,
Scabbers probably had a fight with another rat or something! He's been in my
family for ages, right -" "Twelve
years, in fact," said Lupin. "Didn't you ever wonder why he was
living so long?" "We
- we've been taking good care of him!" said Ron. "Not
looking too good at the moment, though, is he?" said Lupin. "I'd
guess he's been losing weight ever since he heard Sirius was on the loose
again..." "He's
been scared of that mad cat!" said Ron, nodding toward Crookshanks, who
was still purring on the bed. But
that wasn't right, Harry thought suddenly...Scabbers had been looking ill before
he met Crookshanks... ever since Ron's return from Egypt...since the time when
Black had escaped... "This
cat isn't mad," said Black hoarsely. He reached out a bony hand and
stroked Crookshanks's fluffy head. "He's the most intelligent of his kind
I've ever met. He recognized Peter for what he was right away. And when he met
me, he knew I was no dog. It was a while before he trusted me...Finally, I
managed to communicate to him what I was after, and he's been helping me..." "What
do you mean?" breathed Hermione. "He
tried to bring Peter to me, but couldn't...so he stole the passwords into
Gryffindor Tower for me...As I understand it, he took them from a boy's bedside
table..." Harry's
brain seemed to be sagging under the weight of what he was hearing. It was
absurd...and yet... "But Peter got wind
of what was going on and ran for it." croaked Black. "This cat -
Crookshanks, did you call him? - told me Peter had left blood on the sheets...I
supposed he bit himself...Well, faking his own death had worked once." These
words jolted Harry to his senses. "And
why did he fake his death?" he said furiously. "Because he knew you
were about to kill him like you killed my parents!" "No,"
said Lupin, "Harry-" "And
now you've come to finish him off!" "Yes,
I have," said Black, with an evil look at Scabbers. "Then
I should've let Snape take you!" Harry shouted. "Harry,"
said Lupin hurriedly, "don't you see? All this time we've thought Sirius
betrayed your parents, and Peter tracked him down - but it was the other way
around, don't you see? Peter betrayed your mother and father - Sirius tracked
Peter down -" "THAT'S
NOT TRUE!" Harry yelled. "HE WAS THEIR SECRET-KEEPER! HE SAID SO
BEFORE YOU TURNED UP. HE SAID HE KILLED THEM!" He
was pointing at Black, who shook his head slowly; the sunken eyes were suddenly
over bright. "Harry...I
as good as killed them," he croaked. "I persuaded Lily and James to
change to Peter at the last moment, persuaded them to use him as Secret-Keeper
instead of me...I'm to blame, I know it...The night they died, I'd arranged to
check on Peter, make sure he was still safe, but when I arrived at his hiding
place, he'd gone. Yet there was no sign of a struggle. It didn't feel right. I
was scared. I set out for your parents' house straight away. And when I saw
their house, destroyed, and their bodies...I realized what Peter must've
done...what I'd done..." His
voice broke. He turned away. "Enough
of this," said Lupin, and there was a steely note in his voice Harry had
never heard before. "There's one certain way to prove what really
happened. Ron, give me that rat." "What
are you going to do with him if I give him to you?" Ron asked Lupin
tensely. "Force
him to show himself," said Lupin. "If he really is a rat, it won't
hurt him." Ron
hesitated. Then at long last, he held out Scabbers and Lupin took him. Scabbers
began to squeak without stopping, twisting and turning, his tiny black eyes
bulging in his head. "Ready, Sirius?" said Lupin. Black
had already retrieved Snape's wand from the bed. He approached Lupin and the
struggling rat, and his wet eyes suddenly seemed to be burning in his face. "Together?"
he said quietly. "I
think so", said Lupin, holding Scabbers tightly in one hand and his wand
in the other. "On the count of three. One - two - THREE!" A
flash of blue-white light erupted from both wands; for a moment, Scabbers was frozen
in midair, his small gray form twisting madly - Ron yelled - the rat fell and
hit the floor. There was another blinding flash of light and then - It
was like watching a speeded-up film of a growing tree. A head was shooting
upward from the ground; limbs were sprouting; a moment later, a man was
standing where Scabbers had been, cringing and wringing his hands. Crookshanks
was spitting and snarling on the bed; the hair on his back was standing up. He
was a very short man, hardly taller than Harry and Hermione. His thin,
colorless hair was unkempt and there was a large bald patch on top. He had the
shrunken appearance of a plump man who has lost a lot of weight in a short
time. His skin looked grubby, almost like Scabbers's fur, and something of the
rat lingered around his pointed nose and his very small, watery eyes. He looked
around at them all, his breathing fast and shallow. Harry saw his eyes dart to
the door and back again. "Well,
hello, Peter," said Lupin pleasantly, as though rats frequently erupted
into old school friends around him. "Long time, no see." "S-Sirius...R-Remus..."
Even Pettigrew's voice was squeaky. Again, his eyes darted toward the door.
"My friends...my old friends..." Black's
wand arm rose, but Lupin seized him around the wrist, gave him a warning took,
then turned again to Pettigrew, his voice light and casual. "We've
been having a little chat, Peter, about what happened the night Lily and James
died. You might have missed the finer points while you were squeaking around
down there on the bed -" "Remus,"
gasped Pettigrew, and Harry could see beads of sweat breaking out over his
pasty face, "you don't believe him, do you...? He tried to kill me,
Remus..." "So
we've heard," said Lupin, more coldly. "I'd like to clear up one or
two little matters with you, Peter, if you'll be so -" "He's
come to try and kill me again!" Pettigrew squeaked suddenly, pointing at
Black, and Harry saw that he used his middle finger, because his index was
missing. "He killed Lily and James and now he's going to kill me
too...You've got to help me, Remus..." Black's
face looked more skull-like than ever as he stared at Pettigrew with his
fathomless eyes. "No
one's going to try and kill you until we've sorted a few things out," said
Lupin. "Sorted
things out?" squealed Pettigrew, looking wildly about him once more, eyes
taking in the boarded windows and, again, the only door. "I knew he'd come
after me! I knew he'd be back for me! I've been waiting for this for twelve
years!" "You
knew Sirius was going to break out of Azkaban?" said Lupin, his brow
furrowed. "When nobody has ever done it before?" "He's
got dark powers the rest of us can only dream of!" Pettigrew shouted
shrilly. "How else did he get out of there? I suppose
He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named taught him a few tricks!" Black
started to laugh, a horrible, mirthless laugh that filled the whole room. "Voldemort,
teach me tricks?" he said. Pettigrew
flinched as though Black had brandished a whip at him. "What,
scared to hear your old master's name?" said Black. "I don't blame
you, Peter. His lot aren't very happy with you, are they?" "Don't
know what you mean, Sirius -" muttered Pettigrew, his breathing faster
than ever. His whole face was shining with sweat now. "You
haven't been hiding from me for twelve years," said Black. "You've
been hiding from Voldemort's old supporters. I heard things in Azkaban,
Peter...They all think you're dead, or you'd have to answer to them...I've heard
them screaming all sorts of things in their sleep. Sounds like they think the
double-crosser double-crossed them. Voldemort went to the Potters' on your
information...and Voldemort met his downfall there. And not all Voldemort's
supporters ended up in Azkaban, did they? There are still plenty out here,
biding their time, pretending they've seen the error of their ways. If they
ever got wind that you were still alive, Peter -" "Don't
know...what you're talking about..." said Pettigrew again, more shrilly than
ever. He wiped his face on his sleeve and looked up at Lupin. "You don't
believe this - this madness, Remus -" "I
must admit, Peter, I have difficulty in understanding why an innocent man would
want to spend twelve years as a rat," said Lupin evenly. "Innocent,
but scared!" squealed Pettigrew. "If Voldemort's supporters were
after me, it was because I put one of their best men in Azkaban - the spy,
Sirius Black!" Black's
face contorted. "How
dare you," he growled, sounding suddenly like the bearsized dog he had
been. "I, a spy for Voldemort? When did I ever sneak around people who were
stronger and more powerful than myself? But you, Peter - I'll never understand
why I didn't see you were the spy from the start. You always liked big friends
who'd look after you, didn't you? It used to be us...me and Remus...and
James..." Pettigrew
wiped his face again; he was almost panting for breath. "Me,
a spy...must be out of your mind...never...don't know how you can say such a -" "Lily
and James only made you Secret-Keeper because I suggested it," Black
hissed, so venomously that Pettigrew took a step backward. "I thought it
was the perfect plan...a bluff...Voldemort would be sure to come after me, would
never dream they'd use a weak, talentless thing like you...It must have been the
finest moment of your miserable life, telling Voldemort you could hand him the
Potters." Pettigrew
was muttering distractedly; Harry caught words like "far-fetched" and
"lunacy," but he couldn't help paying more attention to the ashen
color of Pettigrew's face and the way his eyes continued to dart toward the
windows and door. "Professor
Lupin?" said Hermione timidly. "Can - can I say something?" "Certainly,
Hermione," said Lupin courteously. "Well
- Scabbers - I mean, this - this man - he's been sleeping in Harry's dormitory
for three years. If he's working for You-Know-Who, how come he never tried to
hurt Harry before now?" "There!"
said Pettigrew shrilly, pointing at Ron with his maimed hand. "Thank you!
You see, Remus? I have never hurt a hair of Harry's head! Why should I?" "I'll
tell you why," said Black. "Because you never did anything for anyone
unless you could see what was in it for you. Voldemort's been in hiding for
fifteen years, they say he's half dead. You weren't about to commit murder
right under Albus Dumbledore's nose, for a wreck of a wizard who'd lost all of his
power, were you? You'd want to be quite sure he was the biggest bully in the
playground before you went back to him, wouldn't you? Why else did you find a
wizard family to take you in? Keeping an ear out for news, weren't you, Peter?
Just in case your old protector regained strength, and it was safe to rejoin
him..." Pettigrew
opened his mouth and closed it several times. He seemed to have lost the
ability to talk. "Er
- Mr. Black - Sirius?" said Hermione. Black
jumped at being addressed like this and stared at Hermione as though he had
never seen anything quite like her. "If
you don't mind me asking, how - how did you get out of Azkaban, if you didn't
use Dark Magic?" "Thank
you!" gasped Pettigrew, nodding frantically at her. "Exactly!
Precisely what I -" But
Lupin silenced him with a look. Black was frowning slightly at Hermione, but
not as though he were annoyed with her. He seemed to be pondering his answer. "I
don't know how I did it," he said slowly. "I think the only reason I
never lost my mind is that I knew I was innocent. That wasn't a happy thought,
so the Dementors couldn't suck it out of me...but it kept me sane and knowing who
I am...helped me keep my powers...so when it all became...too much...I could transform
in my cell...become a dog. Dementors can't see, you know..." He swallowed.
"They feel their way toward people by feeding off their emotions...They
could tell that my feelings were less - less human, less complex when I was a
dog...but they thought, of course, that I was losing my mind like everyone else
in there, so it didn't trouble them. But I was weak, very weak, and I had no
hope of driving them away from me without a wand..." "But
then I saw Peter in that picture...I realized he was at Hogwarts with
Harry...perfectly positioned to act, if one hint reached his ears that the Dark
Side was gathering strength again..." Pettigrew
was shaking his head, mouthing noiselessly, but staring all the while at Black
as though hypnotized. "...ready
to strike at the moment he could be sure of allies...and to deliver the last
Potter to them. if he gave them Harry, who'd dare say he'd betrayed Lord
Voldemort? He'd be welcomed back with honors..." "So
you see, I had to do something. I was the only one who knew Peter was still
alive..." Harry
remembered what Mr. Weasley had told Mrs. Wealsey. 'The guards say he's been
talking in his sleep... always the same words... 'He's at Hogwarts.'' "It
was as if someone had lit a fire In my head, and the Dementors couldn't destroy
it...It wasn't a happy feeling...it was an obsession...but it gave me strength, it
cleared my mind. So, one night when they opened my door to bring food, I
slipped past them as a dog...It's so much harder for them to sense animal
emotions that they were confused...I was thin, very thin...thin enough to slip
through the bars...I swam as a dog back to the mainland...I journeyed north and
slipped into the Hogwarts grounds as a dog. I've been living in the forest ever
since, except when I came to watch the Quidditch, of course. You fly as well as
your father did, Harry..." He
looked at Harry, who did not look away. "Believe
me," croaked Black. "Believe me, Harry. I never betrayed James and
Lily. I would have died before I betrayed them." And
at long last, Harry believed him. Throat too tight to speak, he nodded. "No!" Pettigrew
had fallen to his knees as though Harry's nod had been his own death sentence.
He shuffled forward on his knees, groveling, his hands clasped in front of him
as though praying. "Sirius
- it's me...it's Peter...your friend...you wouldn't -" Black
kicked out and Pettigrew recoiled. "There's
enough filth on my robes without you touching them," said Black. "Remus!"
Pettigrew squeaked, turning to Lupin instead, writhing imploringly in front of
him. "You don't believe this - wouldn't Sirius have told you they'd
changed the plan?" "Not
if he thought I was the spy, Peter," said Lupin. "I assume that's why
you didn't tell me, Sirius?" he said casually over Pettigrew's head. "Forgive
me, Remus," said Black. "Not
at all, Padfoot, old friend," said Lupin, who was now rolling up his
sleeves. "And will you, in turn, forgive me for believing you were the
spy?" "Of
course," said Black, and the ghost of a grin flitted across his gaunt
face. He, too, began rolling up his sleeves. "Shall we kill him
together?" "Yes,
I think so," said Lupin grimly. "You
wouldn't...you won't..." gasped Pettigrew. And he scrambled around to Ron. "Ron...haven't
I been a good friend...a good pet? You won't let them kill me, Ron, will
you...you're on my side, aren't you?" But
Ron was staring at Pettigrew with the utmost revulsion. "I
let you sleep in my bed!" he said. "Kind
boy...kind master..." Pettigrew crawled toward Ron "You won't let them do
it...I was your rat...I was a good pet..." "If
you made a better rat than a human, it's not much to boast about, Peter," said
Black harshly. Ron, going still paler with pain, wrenched his broken leg out of
Pettigrew's reach. Pettigrew turned on his knees, staggered forward, and seized
the hem of Hermione's robes. "Sweet
girl...clever girl...you - you won't let them...Help me..." Hermione
pulled her robes out of Pettigrew's clutching hands and backed away against the
wall, looking horrified. Pettigrew
knelt, trembling uncontrollably, and turned his head slowly toward Harry. "Harry...Harry...you
look just like your father...just like him..." "HOW
DARE YOU SPEAK TO HARRY?" roared Black. "HOW DARE YOU FACE HIM? HOW
DARE YOU TALK ABOUT JAMES IN FRONT OF HIM?" "Harry,"
whispered Pettigrew, shuffling toward him, hands outstretched. "Harry,
James wouldn't have wanted me killed...James would have understood, Harry...he
would have shown me mercy..." Both
Black and Lupin strode forward, seized Pettigrew's shoulders, and threw him
backward onto the floor. He sat there, twitching with terror, staring up at
them. "You
sold Lily and James to Voldemort," said Black, who was shaking too.
"Do you deny it?" Pettigrew
burst into tears. It was horrible to watch, like an oversized, balding baby,
cowering on the floor. "Sirius,
Sirius, what could I have done? The Dark Lord...you have no idea...he has weapons
you can't imagine...I was scared, Sirius, I was never brave like you and Remus
and James. I never meant it to happen...He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named forced me
-" "DON'T
LIE!" bellowed Black. "YOU'D BEEN PASSING INFORMATION TO HIM FOR A
YEAR BEFORE LILY AND JAMES DIED! YOU WERE HIS SPY!" "He
- he was taking over everywhere!" gasped Pettigrew. "Wh-what was
there to be gained by refusing him?" "What
was there to be gained by fighting the most evil wizard who has ever
existed?" said Black, with a terrible fury in his face. "Only
innocent lives, Peter!" "You
don't understand!" whined Pettigrew. "He would have killed me,
Sirius!" "THEN
YOU SHOULD HAVE DIED!" roared Black. "DIED RATHER THAN BETRAY YOUR
FRIENDS, AS WE WOULD HAVE DONE FOR YOU!" Black
and Lupin stood shoulder to shoulder, wands raised. "You
should have realized," said Lupin quietly, "if Voldemort didn't kill
you, we would. Good-bye, Peter." Hermione
covered her face with her hands and turned to the wall. "NO!"
Harry yelled. He ran forward, placing himself in front Pettigrew, facing the
wands. "You can't kill him," he said breathlessly. "You
can't." Black
and Lupin both looked staggered. "Harry,
this piece of vermin is the reason you have no parents," Black snarled.
"This cringing bit of filth would have seen you die too, without turning a
hair. You heard him. His own stinking skin meant more to him than your whole
family." "I
know," Harry panted. "We'll take him up to the castle. We'll hand him
over to the Dementors...He can go to Azkaban...but don't kill him." "Harry!"
gasped Pettigrew, and he flung his arms around Harry's knees. "You - thank
you - it's more than I deserve - thank you -" "Get
off me," Harry spat, throwing Pettigrew's hands off him in disgust.
"I'm not doing this for you. I'm doing it because - I don't reckon my dad
would've wanted them to become killers - just for you." No
one moved or made a sound except Pettigrew, whose breath was coming in wheezes
as he clutched his chest. Black and Lupin were looking at each other. Then,
with one movement, they lowered their wands. "You're
the only person who has the right to decide, Harry," said Black. "But
think... think what he did..." "He
can go to Azkaban," Harry repeated. "If anyone deserves that place,
he does..." Pettigrew
was still wheezing behind him. "Very
well," said Lupin. "Stand aside, Harry." Harry
hesitated. "I'm
going to tie him up," said Lupin. "That's all, I swear." Harry
stepped out of the way. Thin cords shot from Lupin's wand this time, and next
moment, Pettigrew was wriggling on the floor, bound and gagged. "But
if you transform, Peter," growled Black, his own wand pointing at
Pettigrew too, "we will kill you. You agree, Harry?" Harry
looked down at the pitiful figure on the floor and nodded so that Pettigrew
could see him. "Right,"
said Lupin, suddenly businesslike. "Ron, I can't mend bones nearly as well
as Madam Pomfrey, so I think it's best if we just strap your leg up until we
can get you to the hospital wing." He
hurried over to Ron, bent down, tapped Ron's leg with his wand, and muttered,
"Ferula." Bandages spun up Ron's leg, strapping it tightly to a
splint. Lupin helped him to his feet; Ron put his weight gingerly on the leg
and didn't wince. "That's
better," he said. "Thanks." "What
about Professor Snape?" said Hermione in a small voice, looking down at
Snape's prone figure. "There's
nothing seriously wrong with him," said Lupin, bending over Snape and
checking his pulse. "You were just a little - overenthusiastic. Still out
cold. Er - perhaps it will be best if we don't revive him until we're safety
back in the castle. We can take him like this..." He
muttered, "Mobilicorpus." As though invisible strings were tied to
Snape's wrists, neck, and knees, he was pulled into a standing position, head
still lolling unpleasantly, like a grotesque puppet. He hung a few inches above
the ground, his limp feet dangling. Lupin picked up the Invisibility Cloak and
tucked it safely into his pocket. "And
two of us should be chained to this," said Black, nudging Pettigrew with
his toe. "Just to make sure." "I'll
do it," said Lupin. "And
me," said Ron savagely, limping forward. Black
conjured heavy manacles from thin air; soon Pettigrew was upright again, left
arm chained to Lupin's right, right arm to Ron's left. Ron's face was set. He
seemed to have taken Scabbers's true identity as a personal insult. Crookshanks
leapt lightly off the bed and led the way out of the room, his bottlebrush tail
held jauntily high. CHAPTER TWENTY THE DEMENTOR'S KISSHarry
had never been part of a stranger group. Crookshanks led the way down the
stairs; Lupin, Pettigrew, and Ron went next, looking like entrants in a
six-legged race. Next came Professor Snape, drifting creepily along, his toes
hitting each stair as they descended, held up by his own wand, which was being
pointed at him by Sirius. Harry and Hermione brought up the rear. Getting
back into the tunnel was difficult. Lupin, Pettigrew, and Ron had to turn
sideways to manage it; Lupin still had Pettigrew covered with his wand. Harry
could see them edging awkwardly along the tunnel in single file. Crookshanks
was still in the lead. Harry went right after Black, who was still making Snape
drift along ahead of them; he kept bumping his lolling head on the low ceiling.
Harry had the impression Black was making no effort to prevent this. "You
know what this means?" Black said abruptly to Harry as they made their
slow progress along the tunnel. "Turning Pettigrew in?" "You're
free," said Harry. "Yes..."
said Black. "But I'm also - I don't know if anyone ever told you - I'm
your godfather." "Yeah,
I knew that," said Harry. "Well...
your parents appointed me your guardian," said Black stiffly. "If
anything happened to them..." Harry
waited. Did Black mean what he thought he meant? "I'll
understand, of course, if you want to stay with your aunt and uncle," said
Black. "But... well... think about it. Once my name's cleared... if you wanted
a... a different home..." Some
sort of explosion took place in the pit of Harry's stomach. "What
- live with you?" he said, accidentally cracking his head on a bit of rock
protruding from the ceiling. "Leave the Dursleys?" "Of
course, I thought you wouldn't want to," said Black quickly. "I
understand, I just thought I'd -" "Are
you insane?" said Harry, his voice easily as croaky as Black's. "Of
course I want to leave the Dursleys! Have you got a house? When can I move
in?" Black
turned right around to look at him; Snape's head was scraping the ceiling but
Black didn't seem to care. "You
want to?" he said. "You mean it?" "Yeah,
I mean it!" said Harry. Black's
gaunt face broke into the first true smile Harry had seen upon it. The
difference it made was startling, as though a person ten years younger were
shining through the starved mask; for a moment, he was recognizable as the man
who had laughed at Harry's parents' wedding. They
did not speak again until they had reached the end of the tunnel. Crookshanks
darted up first; he had evidently pressed his paw to the knot on the trunk,
because Lupin, Pettigrew, and Ron clambered upward without any sound of
savaging branches. Black
saw Snape up through the hole, then stood back for Harry and Hermione to pass.
At last, all of them were out. The
grounds were very dark now; the only light came from the distant windows of the
castle. Without a word, they set off. Pettigrew was still wheezing and
occasionally whimpering. Harry's mind was buzzing. He was going to leave the
Dursleys. He was going to live with Sirius Black, his parents' best friend... He
felt dazed... What would happen when he told the Dursleys he was going to live
with the convict they'd seen on television...! "One
wrong move, Peter," said Lupin threateningly ahead. His wand was still
pointed sideways at Pettigrew's chest. Silently
they tramped through the grounds, the castle lights growing slowly larger.
Snape was still drifting weirdly ahead of Black, his chin bumping on his chest.
And then - A
cloud shifted. There were suddenly dim shadows on the ground. Their party was
bathed in moonlight. Snape
collided with Lupin, Pettigrew, and Ron, who had stopped abruptly. Black froze.
He flung out one arm to make Harry and Hermione stop. Harry
could see Lupin's silhouette. He had gone rigid. Then his limbs began to shake. "Oh,
my -" Hermione gasped. "He didn't take his potion tonight! He's not
safe!" "Run,"
Black whispered. "Run. Now." But
Harry couldn't run. Ron was chained to Pettigrew and Lupin. He leapt forward
but Black caught him around the chest and threw him back. "Leave
it to me - RUN!" There
was a terrible snarling noise. Lupin's head was lengthening. So was his body.
His shoulders were hunching. Hair was sprouting visibly on his face and hands,
which were curling into clawed paws. Crookshanks's hair was on end again; he
was backing away - As
the werewolf reared, snapping its long jaws, Sirius disappeared from Harry's
side. He had transformed. The enormous, bearlike dog bounded forward. As the
werewolf wrenched itself free of the manacle binding it, the dog seized it
about the neck and pulled it backward, away from Ron and Pettigrew. They were
locked, jaw to jaw, claws ripping at each other. Harry
stood, transfixed by the sight, too intent upon the battle to notice anything
else. It was Hermione's scream that alerted him - Pettigrew
had dived for Lupin's dropped wand. Ron, unsteady on his bandaged leg, fell.
There was a bang, a burst of light - and Ron lay motionless on the ground.
Another bang - Crookshanks flew into the air and back to the earth in a heap. "Expelliarmus."
Harry yelled, pointing his own wand at Pettigrew; Lupin's wand flew high into
the air and out of sight. "Stay where you are!" Harry shouted,
running forward. Too
late. Pettigrew had transformed. Harry saw his bald tail whip through the
manacle on Ron's outstretched arm and heard a scurrying through the grass. There
was a howl and a rumbling growl; Harry turned to see the werewolf taking
flight; it was galloping into the forest - "Sirius,
he's gone, Pettigrew transformed!" Harry yelled. Black
was bleeding; there were gashes across his muzzle and back, but at Harry's
words he scrambled up again, and in an instant, the sound of his paws faded to
silence as he pounded away across the grounds. Harry
and Hermione dashed over to Ron. "What
did he do to him?" Hermione whispered. Ron's eyes were only half-closed,
his mouth hung open; he was definitely alive, they could hear him breathing,
but he didn't seem to recognize them. "I
don't know..." Harry
looked desperately around. Black and Lupin both gone... they had no one but Snape
for company, still hanging, unconscious, in midair. "We'd
better get them up to the castle and tell someone," said Harry, pushing
his hair out of his eyes, trying to think straight. "Come -" But
then, from beyond the range of their vision, they heard a yelping, a whining: a
dog in pain... "Sirius,"
Harry muttered, staring into the darkness. He
had a moment's indecision, but there was nothing they could do for Ron at the
moment, and by the sound of it, Black was in trouble - Harry
set off at a run, Hermione right behind him. The yelping seemed to be coming
from the ground near the edge of the lake. They pelted toward it, and Harry,
running flat out, felt the cold without realizing what it must mean - The
yelping stopped abruptly. As they reached the lakeshore, they saw why - Sirius
had turned back into a man. He was crouched on all fours, his hands over his
head. "Nooo,"
he moaned. "Nooo... please..." And
then Harry saw them. Dementors, at least a hundred of them, gliding in a black
mass around the lake toward them. He spun around, the familiar, icy cold
penetrating his insides, fog starting to obscure his vision; more were
appearing out of the darkness on every side; they were encircling them... "Hermione,
think of something happy!" Harry yelled, raising his wand, blinking
furiously to try and clear his vision, shaking his head to rid it of the faint
screaming that had started inside it - I'm
going to live with my godfather. I'm leaving the Dursleys. He
forced himself to think of Black, and only Black, and began to chant:
"Expecto patronum! Expecto patronum!" Black
gave a shudder, rolled over, and lay motionless on the ground, pale as death. He'll
be all right. I'm going to go and live with him. "Expecto
patronum! Hermione, help me! Expecto patronum!" "Expecto
-" Hermione whispered, "expecto - expecto -" But
she couldn't do it. The Dementors were closing in, barely ten feet from them.
They formed a solid wall around Harry and Hermione, and were getting closer... "EXPECTO
PATRONUM!" Harry yelled, trying to blot the screaming from his ears.
"EXPECTO PATRONUM!" A
thin wisp of silver escaped his wand and hovered like mist before him. At the
same moment, Harry felt Hermione collapse next to him. He was alone... completely
alone... "Expecto
- expecto patronum -" Harry
felt his knees hit the cold grass. Fog was clouding his eyes. With a huge
effort, he fought to remember - Sirius was innocent - innocent - We'll be okay
- I'm going to live with him - "Expecto
patronum!" he gasped. By
the feeble light of his formless Patronus, he saw a Dementor halt, very close
to him. It couldn't walk through the cloud of silver mist Harry had conjured. A
dead, slimy hand slid out from under the cloak. It made a gesture as though to
sweep the Patronus aside. "No
- no -" Harry gasped. "He's innocent... expecto expecto patronum
-" He
could feet them watching him, hear their rattling breath like an evil wind
around him. The nearest Dementor seemed to be considering him. Then it raised
both its rotting hands - and lowered its hood. Where
there should have been eyes, there was only thin, gray scabbed skin, stretched
blankly over empty sockets. But there was a mouth... a gaping, shapeless hole,
sucking the air with the sound of a death rattle. A
paralyzing terror filled Harry so that he couldn't move or speak. His Patronus
flickered and died. White
fog was blinding him. He had to fight... expecto patronum... he couldn't see... and
in the distance, he heard the familiar screaming... expecto patronum... he groped
in the mist for Sirius, and found his arm... they weren't going to take him... But a
pair of strong, clammy hands suddenly attached themselves around Harry's neck.
They were forcing his face upward... He could feel its breath... It was going to
get rid of him first... He could feel its putrid breath... His mother was screaming
in his ears... She was going to be the last thing he ever heard - And
then, through the fog that was drowning him, he thought he saw a silvery light
growing brighter and brighter... He felt himself fall forward onto the grass...
Facedown, too weak to move, sick and shaking, Harry opened his eyes. The
Dementor must have released him. The blinding light was illuminating the grass
around him...The screaming had stopped, the cold was ebbing away... Something
was driving the Dementors back... It was circling around him and Black and
Hermione... They were leaving... The
air was warm again... With
every ounce of strength he could muster, Harry raised his head a few inches and
saw an animal amid the light, galloping away across the lake... Eyes blurred with
sweat, Harry tried to make out what it was... It was as bright as a unicorn...
Fighting to stay conscious, Harry watched it can'ter to a halt as it reached
the opposite shore. For a moment, Harry saw, by its brightness, somebody
welcoming it back... raising his hand to pat it... someone who looked strangely
familiar... but it couldn't be... Harry
didn't understand. He couldn't think anymore. He felt the last of his strength
leave him, and his head hit the ground as he fainted. CHAPTER TWENTY-ONE HERMIONE'S SECRET"Shocking
business... shocking... miracle none of them died... never heard the like... by
thunder, it was lucky you were there, Snape..." "Thank
you, Minister." "Order
of Merlin, Second Class, I'd say. First Class, if I can wangle it!" "Thank
you very much indeed, Minister." "Nasty
cut you've got there... Black's work, I suppose?" "As
a matter of fact, it was Potter, Weasley, and Granger, Minister..." "No!" "Black
had bewitched them, I saw it immediately. A Confundus Charm, to judge by their
behavior. They seemed to think there was a possibility he was innocent. They
weren't responsible for their actions. On the other hand, their interference
might have permitted Black to escape... They obviously thought they were going to
catch Black single-handed. They've got away with a great deal before now... I'm
afraid it's given them a rather high opinion of themselves... and of course
Potter has always been allowed an extraordinary amount of license by the
headmaster -" "Ah,
well, Snape... Harry Potter, you know... we've all got a bit of a blind spot where
he's concerned." "And
yet - is it good for him to be given so much special treatment? Personally, I
try and treat him like any other student. And any other student would be
suspended - at the very least - for leading his friends into such danger. Consider,
Minister - against all school rules - after all the precautions put in place
for his protection - out-of-bounds, at night, consorting with a werewolf and a
murderer - and I have reason to believe he has been visiting Hogsmeade
illegally too -" "Well,
well... we shall see, Snape, we shall see... The boy has undoubtedly been
foolish..." Harry
lay listening with his eyes tight shut. He felt very groggy. The words he was
hearing seemed to be traveling very slowly from his ears to his brain, so that
it was difficult to understand... His limbs felt like lead; his eyelids too
heavy to lift... He wanted to lie here, on this comfortable bed, forever... "What
amazes me most is the behavior of the Dementors... you've really no idea what
made them retreat, Snape?" "No,
Minister... by the time I had come 'round they were heading back to their
positions at the entrances..." "Extraordinary.
And yet Black, and Harry, and the girl -" "All
unconscious by the time I reached them. I bound and gagged Black, naturally,
conjured stretchers, and brought them all straight back to the castle." There
was a pause. Harry's brain seemed to be moving a little faster, and as it did,
a gnawing sensation grew in the pit of his stomach... He
opened his eyes. Everything
was slightly blurred. Somebody had removed his glasses. He was lying in the
dark hospital wing. At the very end of the ward, he could make out Madam
Pomfrey with her back to him, bending over a bed. Harry squinted. Ron's red
hair was visible beneath Madam Pomfrey's arm. Harry
moved his head over on the pillow. In the bed to his right lay Hermione.
Moonlight was falling across her bed. Her eyes were open too. She looked
petrified, and when she saw that Harry was awake, pressed a finger to her lips,
then pointed to the hospital wing door. It was ajar, and the voices of
Cornelius Fudge and Snape were coming through it from the corridor outside. Madam
Pomfrey now came walking briskly up the dark ward to Harry's bed. He turned to
took at her. She was carrying the largest block of chocolate he had ever seen
in his life. It looked like a small boulder. "Ah,
you're awake!" she said briskly. She placed the chocolate on Harry's
bedside table and began breaking it apart with a small hammer. "How's
Ron?" said Harry and Hermione together. "He'll
live," said Madam Pomfrey grimly. "As for you two, you'll be staying
here until I'm satisfied you're - Potter, what do you think you're doing?" Harry
was sitting up, putting his glasses back on, and picking up his wand. "I
need to see the headmaster," he said. "Potter,"
said Madam Pomfrey soothingly, "it's all right. They've got Black. He's
locked away upstairs. The Dementors will be performing the kiss any moment now
-" "WHAT?" Harry
jumped up out of bed; Hermione had done the same. But his shout had been heard
in the corridor outside; next second, Cornelius Fudge and Snape had entered the
ward. "Harry,
Harry, what's this?" said Fudge, looking agitated. "You should be in
bed - has he had any chocolate?" he asked Madam Pomfrey anxiously. "Minister,
listen!" Harry said. "Sirius Black's innocent! Peter Pettigrew faked
his own death! We saw him tonight! You can't let the Dementors do that thing to
Sirius, he's -" But
Fudge was shaking his head with a small smile on his face. "Harry,
Harry, you're very confused, you've been through a dreadful ordeal, lie back
down, now, we've got everything under control..." "YOU
HAVEN'T!" Harry yelled. "YOU'VE GOT THE WRONG MAN!" "Minister,
listen, please," Hermione said; she had hurried to Harry's side and was gazing
imploringly into Fudge's face. "I saw him too. It was Ron's rat, he's an
Animagus, Pettigrew, I mean, and -" "You
see, Minister?" said Snape. "Confunded, both of them... Black's done a
very good job on them..." "WE'RE
NOT CONFUNDED!" Harry roared. "Minister!
Professor!" said Madam Pomfrey angrily. "I must insist that you
leave. Potter is my patient, and he should not be distressed!" "I'm
not distressed, I'm trying to tell them what happened!" Harry said
furiously. "If they'd just listen -" But
Madam Pomfrey suddenly stuffed a large chunk of chocolate into Harry's mouth;
he choked, and she seized the opportunity to force him back onto the bed. "Now,
please, Minister, these children need care. Please leave." The
door opened again. It was Dumbledore. Harry swallowed his mouthful of chocolate
with great difficulty and got up again. "Professor
Dumbledore, Sirius Black -" "For
heaven's sake!" said Madam Pomfrey hysterically. "Is this a hospital
wing or not? Headmaster, I must insist -" "My
apologies, Poppy, but I need a word with Mr. Potter and Miss Granger,"
said Dumbledore calmly. "I have just been talking to Sirius Black -" "I
suppose he's told you the same fairy tale he's planted in Potter's mind?"
spat Snape. "Something about a rat, and Pettigrew being alive -" "That,
indeed, is Black's story," said Dumbledore, surveying Snape closely
through his half-moon spectacles. "And
does my evidence count for nothing?" snarled Snape. "Peter Pettigrew
was not in the Shrieking Shack, nor did I see any sign of him on the
grounds." "That
was because you were knocked out, Professor!" said Hermione earnestly.
"You didn't arrive in time to hear." "Miss
Granger, HOLD YOUR TONGUE!" "Now,
Snape," said Fudge, startled, "the young lady is disturbed in her
mind, we must make allowances -" "I
would like to speak to Harry and Hermione alone," said Dumbledore
abruptly. "Cornelius, Severus, Poppy - please leave us." "Headmaster!"
sputtered Madam Pomfrey. "They need treatment, they need rest -" "This
cannot wait," said Dumbledore. "I must insist." Madam
Pomfrey pursed her lips and strode away into her office at the end of the ward,
slamming the door behind her. Fudge consulted the large gold pocket watch
dangling from his waistcoat. "The
Dementors should have arrived by now," he said. "I'll go and meet
them. Dumbledore, I'll see you upstairs." He
crossed to the door and held it open for Snape, but Snape hadn't moved. "You
surely don't believe a word of Black's story?" Snape whispered, his eyes
fixed on Dumbledore's face. "I
wish to speak to Harry and Hermione alone," Dumbledore repeated. Snape
took a step toward Dumbledore. "Sirius
Black showed he was capable of murder at the age of sixteen," he breathed.
"You haven't forgotten that, Headmaster? You haven't forgotten that he
once tried to kill me?" "My
memory is as good as it ever was, Severus," said Dumbledore quietly. Snape
turned on his heel and marched through the door Fudge was still holding. It
closed behind them, and Dumbledore turned to Harry and Hermione. They both
burst into speech at the same time. "Professor,
Black's telling the truth - we saw Pettigrew - he escaped when Professor Lupin
turned into a werewolf -" "-
he's a rat -" "-
Pettigrew's front paw, I mean, finger, he cut it off -" "-
Pettigrew attacked Ron, it wasn't Sirius -" But
Dumbledore held up his hand to stem the flood of explanations. "It
is your turn to listen, and I beg you will not interrupt me, because there is
very little time," he said quietly. "There is not a shred of proof to
support Black's story, except your word - and the word of two thirteen-year-old
wizards will not convince anybody. A street full of eyewitnesses swore they saw
Sirius murder Pettigrew. I myself gave evidence to the Ministry that Sirius had
been the Potters' Secret-Keeper." "Professor
Lupin can tell you -" Harry said, unable to stop himself "Professor
Lupin is currently deep in the forest, unable to tell anyone anything. By the
time he is human again, it will be too late, Sirius will be worse than dead. I
might add that werewolves are so mistrusted by most of our kind that his
support will count for very little and the fact that he and Sirius are old
friends -" "But
-" "Listen
to me, Harry. It is too late, you understand me? You must see that Professor
Snape's version of events is far more convincing than yours." "He
hates Sirius," Hermione said desperately. "All because of some stupid
trick Sirius played on him -" "Sirius
has not acted like an innocent man. The attack on the Fat Lady - entering
Gryffindor Tower with a knife - without Pettigrew, alive or dead, we have no
chance of overturning Sirius's sentence." "But
you believe us." "Yes,
I do," said Dumbledore quietly. "But I have no power to make other
men see the truth, or to overrule the Minister of Magic..." Harry
stared up into the grave face and felt as though the ground beneath him were
falling sharply away. He had grown used to the idea that Dumbledore could solve
anything. He had expected Dumbledore to pull some amazing solution out of the
air. But no... their last hope was gone. "What
we need," said Dumbledore slowly, and his light blue eyes moved from Harry
to Hermione, "is more time." "But
-" Hermione began. And then her eyes became very round. "OH!" "Now,
pay attention," said Dumbledore, speaking very low, and very clearly.
"Sirius is locked in Professor Flitwick's office on the seventh floor.
Thirteenth window from the right of the West Tower. If all goes well, you will
be able to save more than one innocent life tonight. But remember this, both of
you: you must not be seen. Miss Granger, you know the law - you know what is at
stake...You - must - not - be -seen." Harry
didn't have a clue what was going on. Dumbledore had turned on his heel and
looked back as he reached the door. "I
am going to lock you in. It is -" he consulted his watch, "five
minutes to midnight. Miss Granger, three turns should do it. Good luck." "Good
luck?" Harry repeated as the door closed behind Dumbledore. "Three
turns? What's he talking about? What are we supposed to do?" But
Hermione was fumbling with the neck of her robes, pulling from beneath them a
very long, very fine gold chain. "Harry,
come here," she said urgently. "Quick!" Harry
moved toward her, completely bewildered. She was holding the chain out. He saw
a tiny, sparkling hourglass hanging from it. "Here
-" She
had thrown the chain around his neck too. "Ready?"
she said breathlessly. "What
are we doing?" Harry said, completely lost. Hermione
turned the hourglass over three times. The
dark ward dissolved. Harry had the sensation that he was flying very fast,
backward. A blur of colors and shapes rushed past him, his ears were pounding,
he tried to yell but couldn't hear his own voice - And
then he felt solid ground beneath his feet, and everything came into focus
again - He
was standing next to Hermione in the deserted entrance hall and a stream of
golden sunlight was falling across the paved floor from the open front doors.
He looked wildly around at Hermione, the chain of the hourglass cutting into
his neck. "Hermione,
what -?" "In
here!" Hermione seized Harry's arm and dragged him across the hall to the
door of a broom closet; she opened it, pushed him inside among the buckets and
mops, then slammed the door behind them. "What
- how - Hermione, what happened?" "We've
gone back in time," Hermione whispered, lifting the chain off Harry's neck
in the darkness. "Three hours back..." Harry
found his own leg and gave it a very hard pinch. It hurt a lot, which seemed to
rule out the possibility that he was having a very bizarre dream. "But
-" "Shh!
Listen! Someone's coming! I think - I think it might be us!' Hermione had her
ear pressed against the cupboard door. "Footsteps
across the hall... yes, I think it's us going down to Hagrid's!" "Are
you telling me," Harry whispered, "that we're here in this cupboard
and we're out there too?" "Yes,"
said Hermione, her ear still glued to the cupboard door. "I'm sure it's
us. It doesn't sound like more than three people... and we're walking slowly
because we're under the Invisibility Cloak - " She
broke off, still listening intently. "We've
gone down the front steps..." Hermione
sat down on an upturned bucket, looking desperately anxious, but Harry wanted a
few questions answered. "Where
did you get that hourglass thing?" "It's
called a Time-Turner," Hermione whispered, "and I got it from
Professor McGonagall on our first day back. I've been using it all year to get
to all my lessons. Professor McGonagall made me swear I wouldn't tell anyone.
She had to write all sorts of letters to the Ministry of Magic so I could have
one. She had to tell them that I was a model student, and that I'd never, ever
use it for anything except my studies... I've been turning it back so I could do
hours over again, that's how I've been doing several lessons at once, see? But... "Harry,
I don't understand what Dumbledore wants us to do. Why did he tell us to go
back three hours? How's that going to help Sirius?" Harry
stared at her shadowy face. "There
must be something that happened around now he wants us to change," he said
slowly. "What happened? We were walking down to Hagrid's three hours
ago..." "This
is three hours ago, and we are walking down to Hagrid's," said Hermione.
"We just heard ourselves leaving..." Harry
frowned; he felt as though he were screwing up his whole brain in
concentration. "Dumbledore
just said - just said we could save more than one innocent life..." And then
it hit him. "Hermione, we're going to save Buckbeak!" "But
- how will that help Sirius?" "Dumbledore
said - he just told us where the window is - the window of Flitwick's office!
Where they've got Sirius locked up! We've got to fly Buckbeak up to the window
and rescue Sirius! Sirius can escape on Buckbeak - they can escape
together!" From
what Harry could see of Hermione's face, she looked terrified. "If
we manage that without being seen, it'll be a miracle!" "Well,
we've got to try, haven't we?" said Harry. He stood up and pressed his ear
against the door. "Doesn't sound like anyone's there... Come on, let's
go." Harry
pushed open the closet door. The entrance hall was deserted. As quietly and
quickly as they could, they darted out of the closet and down the stone steps.
The shadows were already lengthening, the tops of the trees in the Forbidden
Forest gilded once more with gold. "If
anyone's looking out of the window -" Hermione squeaked, looking up at the
castle behind them. "We'll
run for it," said Harry determinedly. "Straight into the forest, all
right? We'll have to hide behind a tree or something and keep a lookout -" "Okay,
but we'll go around by the greenhouses!' said Hermione breathlessly. "We
need to keep out of sight of Hagrid's front door, or we'll see us! We must be
nearly at Hagrid's by now!" Still
working out what she meant, Harry set off at a sprint, Hermione behind him.
They tore across the vegetable gardens to the greenhouses, paused for a moment
behind them, then set off again, fast as they could, skirting around the
Whomping Willow, tearing toward the shelter of the forest... Safe
in the shadows of the trees, Harry turned around; seconds later, Hermione
arrived beside him, panting. "Right,"
she gasped. "We need to sneak over to Hagrid's... Keep out of sight,
Harry..." They
made their way silently through the trees, keeping to the very edge of the
forest. Then, as they glimpsed the front of Hagrid's house, they heard a knock
upon his door. They moved quickly behind a wide oak trunk and peered out from
either side. Hagrid had appeared in his doorway, shaking and white, looking around
to see who had knocked. And Harry heard his own voice. "It's
us. We're wearing the Invisibility Cloak. Let us in and we can take it
off." "Yeh
shouldn've come!" Hagrid whispered. He stood back, then shut the door
quickly. "This
is the weirdest thing we've ever done," Harry said fervently. "Let's
move along a bit," Hermione whispered. "We need to get nearer to
Buckbeak!" They
crept through the trees until they saw the nervous Hippogriff, tethered to the
fence around Hagrid's pumpkin patch. "Now?"
Harry whispered. "No!"
said Hermione. "If we steal him now, those Committee people will think
Hagrid set him free! We've got to wait until they've seen he's tied
outside!" "That's
going to give us about sixty seconds," said Harry. This was starting to
seem impossible. At
that moment, there was a crash of breaking china from inside Hagrid's cabin. "That's
Hagrid breaking the milk jug," Hermione whispered. "I'm going to find
Scabbers in a moment -" Sure
enough, a few minutes later, they heard Hermione's shriek of surprise. "Hermione,"
said Harry suddenly, "what if we - we just run in there and grab Pettigrew
-" "No!"
said Hermione in a terrified whisper. "Don't you understand? We're
breaking one of the most important wizarding laws! Nobody's supposed to change
time, nobody! You heard Dumbledore, if we're seen -" "We'd
only be seen by ourselves and Hagrid!" "Harry,
what do you think you'd do if you saw yourself bursting into Hagrid's
house?" said Hermione. "I'd
- I'd think I'd gone mad," said Harry, "or I'd think there was some
Dark Magic going on -" "Exactly!
You wouldn't understand, you might even attack yourself! Don't you see?
Professor McGonagall told me what awful things have happened when wizards have
meddled with time... Loads of them ended up killing their past or future selves
by mistake!" "Okay!"
said Harry. "It was just an idea, I just thought -" But
Hermione nudged him and pointed toward the castle. Harry moved his head a few
inches to get a clear view of the distant front doors. Dumbledore, Fudge, the
old Committee member, and Macnair the executioner were coming down the steps. "We're
about to come out!" Hermione breathed. And
sure enough, moments later, Hagrid's back door opened, and Harry saw himself,
Ron, and Hermione walking out of it with Hagrid. It was, without a doubt, the
strangest sensation of his life, standing behind the tree, and watching himself
in the pumpkin patch. "It's
Okay, Beaky, it's okay..." Hagrid said to Buckbeak. Then he turned to Harry,
Ron, and Hermione. "Go on. Get goin'." "Hagrid,
we can't -" "We'll
tell them what really happened -" "They
can't kill him -" "Go!
It's bad enough without you lot in trouble an' all!" Harry
watched the Hermione in the pumpkin patch throw the Invisibility Cloak over him
and Ron. "Go
quick. Don' listen..." There
was a knock on Hagrid's front door. The execution party had arrived. Hagrid
turned, around and headed back into his cabin, leaving the back door ajar.
Harry watched the grass flatten in patches all around the cabin and heard three
pairs of feet retreating. He, Ron, and Hermione had gone... but the Harry and
Hermione hidden in the trees could now hear what was happening inside the cabin
through the back door. "Where
is the beast?" came the cold voice of Macnair. "Out
- outside," Hagrid croaked. Harry
pulled his head out of sight as Macnair's face appeared at Hagrid's window,
staring out at Buckbeak. Then they heard Fudge. "We
- er - have to read you the official notice of execution, Hagrid. I'll make it
quick. And then you and Macnair need to sign it. Macnair, You're supposed to
listen too, that's procedure -" Macnair's
face vanished from the window. It was now or never. "Wait
here," Harry whispered to Hermione. "I'll do it." As
Fudge's voice started again, Harry darted out from behind his tree, vaulted the
fence into the pumpkin patch, and approached Buckbeak. "It
is the decision of the Committee for the Disposal of Dangerous Creatures that
the Hippogriff Buckbeak, hereafter called the condemned, shall he executed on
the sixth of June at sundown -" Careful
not to blink, Harry stared up into Buckbeak's fierce orange eyes once more and
bowed. Buckbeak sank to his scaly knees and then stood up again. Harry began to
fumble with the knot of rope tying Buckbeak to the fence. "...
sentenced to execution by beheading, to be carried out by the Committee's
appointed executioner, Walden Macnair..." "Come
on, Buckbeak," Harry murmured, "come on, we're going to help you.
Quietly... quietly..." "...
as witnessed below. Hagrid, you sign here..." Harry
threw all his weight onto the rope, but Buckbeak had dug in his front feet. "Well,
let's get this over with," said the reedy voice of the Committee member
from inside Hagrid's cabin. "Hagrid, perhaps it will be better if you stay
inside -" "No,
I - I wan' ter be with him... I don' wan' him ter be alone -" Footsteps
echoed from within the cabin. "Buckbeak,
move!" Harry hissed. Harry
tugged harder on the rope around Buckbeak's neck. The Hippogriff began to walk,
rustling its wings irritably. They were still ten feet away from the forest, in
plain view of Hagrid's back door. "One moment, please, Macnair," came
Dumbledore's voice. "You need to sign too." The footsteps stopped.
Harry heaved on the rope. Buckbeak snapped his beak and walked a little faster. Hermione's
white face was sticking out from behind a tree. "Harry,
hurry!" she mouthed. Harry
could still hear Dumbledore's voice talking from within the cabin. He gave the
rope another wrench. Buckbeak broke into a grudging trot. They had reached the trees... "Quick!
Quick!" Hermione moaned, darting out from behind her tree, seizing the
rope too and adding her weight to make Buckbeak move faster. Harry looked over
his shoulder; they were now blocked from sight; they couldn't see Hagrid's
garden at all. "Stop!"
he whispered to Hermione. "They might hear us." Hagrid's
back door had opened with a bang. Harry, Hermione, and Buckbeak stood quite
still; even the Hippogriff seemed to be listening intently. Silence... then - "Where
is it?" said the reedy voice of the Committee member. "Where is the
beast?" "It
was tied here!" said the executioner furiously. "I saw it! Just
here!" "How
extraordinary," said Dumbledore. There was a note of amusement in his
voice. "Beaky!"
said Hagrid huskily. There
was a swishing noise, and the thud of an axe. The executioner seemed to have
swung it into the fence in anger. And then came the howling, and this time they
could hear Hagrid's words through his sobs. "Gone!
Gone! Bless his little beak, he's gone! Musta pulled himself free! Beaky, yeh
clever boy!" Buckbeak
started to strain against the rope, trying to get back to Hagrid. Harry and
Hermione tightened their grip and dug their heels into the forest floor to stop
him. "Someone
untied him!" the executioner was snarling. "We should search the
grounds, the forest." "Macnair,
if Buckbeak has indeed been stolen, do you really think the thief will have led
him away on foot?" said Dumbledore, still sounding amused. "Search
the skies, if you will... Hagrid, I could do with a cup of tea. Or a large
brandy." "O'
- o' course, Professor," said Hagrid, who sounded weak with happiness.
"Come in, come in..." Harry
and Hermione listened closely. They heard footsteps, the soft cursing of the
executioner, the snap of the door, and then silence once more. "Now
what?" whispered Harry, looking around. "We'll
have to hide in here," said Hermione, who looked very shaken. "We
need to wait until they've gone back to the castle. Then we wait until it's
safe to fly Buckbeak up to Sirius's window. He won't be there for another
couple of hours... Oh, this is going to be difficult..." She
looked nervously over her shoulder into the depths of the forest. The sun was
setting now. "We're
going to have to move," said Harry, thinking hard. "We've got to be
able to see the Whomping Willow, or we won't know what's going on." "Okay,"
said Hermione, getting a firmer grip on Buckbeak's rope. "But we've got to
keep out of sight, Harry, remember..." They
moved around the edge of the forest, darkness falling thickly around them,
until they were hidden behind a clump of trees through which they could make
out the Willow. "There's
Ron!" said Harry suddenly. A
dark figure was sprinting across the lawn and its shout echoed through the
still night air. "Get
away from him - get away - Scabbers, come here -" And
then they saw two more figures materialize out of nowhere. Harry watched
himself and Hermione chasing after Ron. Then he saw Ron dive. "Gotcha!
Get off, you stinking cat -" "There's
Sirius!" said Harry. The great shape of the dog had bounded out from the
roots of the Willow. They saw him bowl Harry over, then seize on... "Looks
even worse from here, doesn't it?" said Harry, watching the dog pulling
Ron into the roots. "Ouch - look, I just got walloped by the tree - and so
did you - this is weird-" The
Whomping Willow was creaking and lashing out with its lower branches; they
could see themselves darting here and there, trying to reach the trunk. And
then the tree froze. "That
was Crookshanks pressing the knot," said Hermione. "And
there we go..." Harry muttered. "We're in." The
moment they disappeared, the tree began to move again. Seconds later, they
heard footsteps quite close by. Dumbledore, Macnair, Fudge, and the old
Committee member were making their way up to the castle. "Right
after we'd gone down into the passage!" said Hermione. "If only
Dumbledore had come with us..." "Macnair
and Fudge would've come too," said Harry bitterly. "I bet you
anything Fudge would've told Macnair to murder Sirius on the spot..." They
watched the four men climb the castle steps and disappear from view. For a few
minutes the scene was deserted. Then - "Here
comes Lupin!" said Harry as they saw another figure sprinting down the
stone steps and halting toward the Willow. Harry looked up at the sky. Clouds
were obscuring the moon completely. They
watched Lupin seize a broken branch from the ground and prod the knot on the
trunk. The tree stopped fighting, and Lupin, too, disappeared into the gap in
its roots. "If
he'd only grabbed the cloak," said Harry. "It's just lying
there..." He
turned to Hermione. "If
I just dashed out now and grabbed it, Snape'd never be able to get it and
-" "Harry,
we mustn't be seen!" "How
can you stand this?" he asked Hermione fiercely. "Just standing here
and watching it happen?" He hesitated. "I'm going to grab the
cloak!" "Harry,
no!" Hermione
seized the back of Harry's robes not a moment too soon. Just then, they heard a
burst of song. It was Hagrid, making his way up to the castle, singing at the
top of his voice, and weaving slightly as he walked. A large bottle was
swinging from his hands. "See?"
Hermione whispered. "See what would have happened? We've got to keep out
of sight! No, Buckbeak!" The
Hippogriff was making frantic attempts to get to Hagrid again; Harry seized his
rope too, straining to hold Buckbeak back. They watched Hagrid meander tipsily
up to the castle. He was gone. Buckbeak stopped fighting to get away. His head
drooped sadly. Barely
two minutes later, the castle doors flew open yet again, and Snape came
charging out of them, running toward the Willow. Harry's
fists clenched as they watched Snape skid to a halt next to the tree, looking
around. He grabbed the cloak and held it up. "Get
your filthy hands off it," Harry snarled under his breath. "Shh!" Snape
seized the branch Lupin had used to freeze the tree, prodded the knot, and
vanished from view as he put on the cloak. "So
that's it," said Hermione quietly. "We're all down there... and now
we've just got to wait until we come back up again..." She
took the end of Buckbeak's rope and tied it securely around the nearest tree,
then sat down on the dry ground, arms around her knees. "Harry,
there's something I don't understand... Why didn't the Dementors get Sirius? I
remember them coming, and then I think I passed out... there were so many of
them..." Harry
sat down too. He explained what he'd seen; how, as the nearest Dementor had
lowered its mouth to Harry's, a large silver something had come galloping
across the lake and forced the Dementors to retreat. Hermione's
mouth was slightly open by the time Harry had finished. "But
what was it?" "There's
only one thing it could have been, to make the Dementors go," said Harry.
"A real Patronus. A powerful one." "But
who conjured it?" Harry
didn't say anything. He was thinking back to the person he'd seen on the other
bank of the lake. He knew who he thought it had been... but how could it have
been? "Didn't
you see what they looked like?" said Hermione eagerly. "Was it one of
the teachers?" "No,"
said Harry. "He wasn't a teacher." "But
it must have been a really powerful wizard, to drive all those Dementors away...
If the Patronus was shining so brightly, didn't it light him up? Couldn't you
see -?" "Yeah,
I saw him," said Harry slowly. "But... maybe I imagined it... I wasn't
thinking straight... I passed out right afterward..." "Who
did you think it was?" "I
think -" Harry swallowed, knowing how strange this was going to sound.
"I think it was my dad." Harry
glanced up at Hermione and saw that her mouth was fully open now. She was
gazing at him with a mixture of alarm and pity. "Harry,
your dad's - well - dead," she said quietly. "I
know that," said Harry quickly. "You
think you saw his ghost?" "I
don't know... no... he looked solid..." "But
then -" "Maybe
I was seeing things," said Harry. "But... from what I could see... it
looked like him... I've got photos of him..." Hermione
was still looking at him as though worried about his sanity. "I know it
sounds crazy," said Harry flatly. He turned to took at Buckbeak, who was
digging his beak into the ground, apparently searching for worms. But he wasn't
really watching Buckbeak. He
was thinking about his father and about his father's three oldest friends...
Moony, Wormtail, Padfoot, and Prongs... Had all four of them been out on the
grounds tonight? Wormtail had reappeared this evening when everyone had thought
he was dead... Was it so impossible his father had done the same? Had he been
seeing things across the take? The figure had been too far away to see
distinctly... yet he had felt sure, for a moment, before he'd lost
consciousness... The
leaves overhead rustled faintly in the breeze. The moon drifted in and out of
sight behind the shifting clouds. Hermione sat with her face turned toward the
Willow, waiting. And
then, at last, after over an hour... "Here
we come!" Hermione whispered. She
and Harry got to their feet. Buckbeak raised his head. They saw Lupin, Ron, and
Pettigrew clambering awkwardly out of the hole in the roots. Then came Hermione...
then the unconscious Snape, drifting weirdly upward. Next came Harry and Black.
They all began to walk toward the castle. Harry's
heart was starting to beat very fast. He glanced up at the sky. Any moment now,
that cloud was going to move aside and show the moon... "Harry,"
Hermione muttered as though she knew exactly what he was thinking, "we've
got to stay put. We mustn't be seen. There's nothing we can do..." "So
we're just going to let Pettigrew escape all over again..." said Harry
quietly. "How
do you expect to find a rat in the dark?" snapped Hermione. "There's
nothing we can do! We came back to help Sirius; we're not supposed to be doing
anything else!" "All
right!" The
moon slid out from behind its cloud. They saw the tiny figures across the grounds
stop. Then they saw movement - "There
goes Lupin," Hermione whispered. "He's transforming." "Hermione!"
said Harry suddenly. "We've got to move!" "We
mustn't, I keep telling you -" "Not
to interfere! Lupin's going to run into the forest, right at us!" Hermione
gasped. "Quick!"
she moaned, dashing to untie Buckbeak. "Quick! Where are we going to go?
Where are we going to hide? The Dementors will be coming any moment -" "Back
to Hagrid's!" Harry said. "It's empty now - come on!" They
ran as fast as they could, Buckbeak cantering along behind them. They could
hear the werewolf howling behind them... The
cabin was in sight; Harry skidded to the door, wrenched it open, and Hermione
and Buckbeak flashed past him; Harry threw himself in after them and bolted the
door. Fang the boarhound barked loudly. "Shh,
Fang, it's us!" said Hermione, hurrying over and scratching his ears to
quiet him. "That was really close!" she said to Harry. "Yeah..." Harry
was looking out of the window. It was much harder to see what was going on from
here. Buckbeak seemed very happy to find himself back inside Hagrid's house. He
lay down in front of the fire, folded his wings contentedly, and seemed ready
for a good nap. "I
think I'd better go outside again, you know," said Harry slowly. "I
can't see what's going on - we won't know when it's time -" Hermione
looked up. Her expression was suspicious. "I'm
not going to try and interfere," said Harry quickly. "But if we don't
see what's going on, how're we going to know when it's time to rescue
Sirius?" "Well...
okay, then... I'll wait here with Buckbeak... but Harry, be careful - there's a
werewolf out there - and the Dementors." Harry
stepped outside again and edged around the cabin. He could hear yelping in the
distance. That meant the Dementors were closing in on Sirius... He and Hermione
would be running to him any moment... Harry
stared out toward the lake, his heart doing a kind of drumroll in his chest...
Whoever had sent that Patronus would be appearing at any moment... For a
fraction of a second he stood, irresolute, in front of Hagrid's door. You must
not be seen. But he didn't want to be seen. He wanted to do the seeing... He had
to know... And
there were the Dementors. They were emerging out of the darkness from every direction,
gliding around the edges of the lake... They were moving away from where Harry
stood, to the opposite bank... He wouldn't have to get near them... Harry
began to run. He had no thought in his head except his father... If it was him...
if it really was him... he had to know, had to find out... The
lake was coming nearer and nearer, but there was no sign of anybody. On the
opposite bank, he could see tiny glimmers of silver - his own attempts at a
Patronus - There
was a bush at the very edge of the water. Harry threw himself behind it,
peering desperately through the leaves. On the opposite bank, the glimmers of
silver were suddenly extinguished. A terrified excitement shot through him -
any moment now - "Come
on!" he muttered, staring about. "Where are you? Dad, come on -" But
no one came. Harry raised his head to look at the circle of Dementors across
the lake. One of them was lowering its hood. It was time for the rescuer to
appear - but no one was coming to help this time - And
then it hit him - he understood. He hadn't seen his father he had seen himself
- Harry
flung himself out from behind the bush and pulled out his wand. "EXPECTO
PATRONUM! " he yelled. And
out of the end of his wand burst, not a shapeless cloud of mist, but a
blinding, dazzling, silver animal. He screwed up his eyes, trying to see what
it was. It looked like a horse. It was galloping silently away from him, across
the black surface of the lake. He saw it lower its head and charge at the
swarming Dementors... Now it was galloping around and around the black shapes on
the ground, and the Dementors were falling back, scattering, retreating into
the darkness... They were gone. The
Patronus turned. It was cantering back toward Harry across the still surface of
the water. It wasn't a horse. It wasn't a unicorn, either. It was a stag. It
was shining brightly as the moon above... it was coming back to him... It
stopped on the bank. Its hooves made no mark on the soft ground as it stared at
Harry with its large, silver eyes. Slowly, it bowed its antlered head. And
Harry realized... "Prongs," he whispered. But
as his trembling fingertips stretched toward the creature, it vanished. Harry
stood there, hand still outstretched. Then, with a great leap of his heart, he
heard hooves behind him. He whirled around and saw Hermione dashing toward him,
dragging Buckbeak behind her. "What
did you do?" she said fiercely. "You said you were only going to keep
a lookout!" "I
just saved all our lives..." said Harry. "Get behind here behind this
bush - I'll explain." Hermione
listened to what had just happened with her mouth open yet again. "Did
anyone see you?" "Yes,
haven't you been listening? I saw me but I thought I was my dad! It's
okay!" "Harry,
I can't believe it... You conjured up a Patronus that drove away all those
Dementors! That's very, very advanced magic." "I
knew I could do it this time," said Harry, "because I'd already done
it... Does that make sense?" "I
don't know - Harry, look at Snape!" Together
they peered around the bush at the other bank. Snape had regained
consciousness. He was conjuring stretchers and lifting the limp forms of Harry,
Hermione, and Black onto them. A fourth stretcher, no doubt bearing Ron, was
already floating at his side. Then, wand held out in front of him, he moved them
away toward the castle. "Right,
it's nearly time," said Hermione tensely, looking at her watch.
"We've got about forty-five minutes until Dumbledore locks the door to the
hospital wing. We've got to rescue Sirius and get back into the ward before
anybody realizes we're missing..." They
waited, watching the moving clouds reflected in the lake, while the bush next
to them whispered in the breeze. Buckbeak, bored, was ferreting for worms
again. "Do
you reckon he's up there yet?" said Harry, checking his watch. He looked
up at the castle and began counting the windows to the right of the West Tower. "Look!"
Hermione whispered. "Who's that? Someone's coming back out of the
castle!" Harry
stared through the darkness. The man was hurrying across the grounds, toward
one of the entrances. Something shiny glinted in his belt. "Macnair!"
said Harry. "The executioner! He's gone to get the Dementors! This is it,
Hermione -" Hermione
put her hands on Buckbeak's back and Harry gave her a leg up. Then he placed
his foot on one of the lower branches of the bush and climbed up in front of
her. He pulled Buckbeak's rope back over his neck and tied it to the other side
of his collar like reins. "Ready?"
he whispered to Hermione. "You'd better hold on to me -" He
nudged Buckbeak's sides with his heels. Buckbeak
soared straight into the dark air. Harry gripped his flanks with his knees,
feeling the great wings rising powerfully beneath them. Hermione was holding
Harry very tight around the waist; he could hear her muttering, "Oh, no -
I don't like this oh, I really don't like this -" Harry
urged Buckbeak forward. They were gliding quietly toward the upper floors of
the castle... Harry pulled hard on the left-hand side of the rope, and Buckbeak
turned. Harry was trying to count the windows flashing past - "Whoa!"
he said, pulling backward as hard as he could. Buckbeak
slowed down and they found themselves at a stop, unless you counted the fact
that they kept rising up and down several feet as the Hippogriff beat his wings
to remain airborne. "He's
there!" Harry said, spotting Sirius as they rose up beside the window. He
reached out, and as Buckbeak's wings fell, was able to tap sharply on the
glass. Black
looked up. Harry saw his jaw drop. He leapt from his chair, hurried to the
window and tried to open it, but it was locked. "Stand
back!" Hermione called to him, and she took out her wand, still gripping
the back of Harry's robes with her left hand. "Alohomora!" The
window sprang open. "How
- how -?" said Black weakly, staring at the Hippogriff. "Get
on - there's not much time," said Harry, gripping Buckbeak firmly on
either side of his sleek neck to hold him steady. "You've got to get out
of here -the Dementors are coming - Macnair's gone to get them." Black
placed a hand on either side of the window frame and heaved his head and
shoulders out of it. It was very lucky he was so thin. In seconds, he had
managed to fling one leg over Buckbeak's back and pull himself onto the
Hippogriff behind Hermione. "Okay,
Buckbeak, up!" said Harry, shaking the rope. "Up to the tower - come
on." The
Hippogriff gave one sweep of its mighty wings and they were soaring upward
again, high as the top of the West Tower. Buckbeak landed with a clatter on the
battlements, and Harry and Hermione slid off him at once. "Sirius,
you'd better go, quick," Harry panted. "They'll reach Flitwick's
office any moment, they'll find out you're gone." Buckbeak
pawed the ground, tossing his sharp head. "What
happened to the other boy? Ron?" croaked Sirius. "He's
going to be okay. He's still out of it, but Madam Pomfrey says she'll be able
to make him better. Quick - go -" But
Black was still staring down at Harry. "How
can I ever thank -" "GO!"
Harry and Hermione shouted together. Black
wheeled Buckbeak around, facing the open sky. "We'll
see each other again," he said. "You are - truly your father's son,
Harry..." He
squeezed Buckbeak's sides with his heels. Harry and Hermione jumped back as the
enormous wings rose once more... The Hippogriff took off into the air... He and his
rider became smaller and smaller as Harry gazed after them... then a cloud
drifted across the moon... They were gone. CHAPTER TWENTY-TWO OWL POST AGAIN"Harry!" Hermione
was tugging at his sleeve, staring at her watch. "We've got exactly ten
minutes to get back down to the hospital wing without anybody seeing us -
before Dumbledore locks the door -" "Okay,"
said Harry, wrenching his gaze from the sky, "let's go..." They
slipped through the doorway behind them and down a tightly spiraling stone
staircase. As they reached the bottom of it, they heard voices. They flattened
themselves against the wall and listened. It sounded like Fudge and Snape. They
were walking quickly along the corridor at the foot of the staircase. "...
only hope Dumbledore's not going to make difficulties," Snape was saying.
"The Kiss will be performed immediately?" "As
soon as Macnair returns with the Dementors. This whole Black affair has been
highly embarrassing. I can't tell you how much I'm looking forward to informing
the Daily Prophet that we've got him at last... I daresay they'll want to
interview you, Snape... and once young Harry's back in his right mind, I expect
he'll want to tell the Prophet exactly how you saved him..." Harry
clenched his teeth. He caught a glimpse of Snape's smirk as he and Fudge passed
Harry and Hermione's hiding place. Their footsteps died away. Harry and
Hermione waited a few moments to make sure they'd really gone, then started to
run in the opposite direction. Down one staircase, then another, along a new
corridor - then they heard a cackling ahead.
"Peeves!" Harry muttered, grabbing
Hermione's wrist. "In here!"
They tore into a deserted classroom to their
left just in time. Peeves seemed to be bouncing along the corridor in boisterous
good spirits, laughing his head off.
"Oh, he's horrible," whispered
Hermione, her ear to the door. "I bet he's all excited because the
Dementors are going to finish off Sirius..." She checked her watch.
"Three minutes, Harry!"
They waited until Peeves's gloating voice had
faded into the distance, then slid back out of the room and broke into a run
again.
"Hermione - what'll happen - if we don't
get back inside before Dumbledore locks the door?" Harry panted.
"I don't want to think about it!" Hermione
moaned, checking her watch again. "One minute!"
They had reached the end of the corridor with
the hospital wing entrance. "Okay - I can hear Dumbledore," said
Hermione tensely. "Come on, Harry!"
They crept along the corridor. The door opened.
Dumbledore's back appeared.
"I am going to lock you in," they
heard him saying. "it is five minutes to midnight. Miss Granger, three
turns should do it. Good luck."
Dumbledore backed out of the room, closed the
door, and took out his wand to magically lock it. Panicking, Harry and Hermione
ran forward. Dumbledore looked up, and a wide smile appeared under the long
silver mustache. "Well?" he said quietly.
"We did it!" said Harry breathlessly.
"Sirius has gone, on Buckbeak..."
Dumbledore beamed at them.
"Well done. I think -" He listened
intently for any sound within the hospital wing. "Yes, I think you've gone
too - get inside - I'll lock you in -"
Harry and Hermione slipped back inside the
dormitory. It was empty except for Ron, who was still lying motionless in the
end bed. As the lock clicked behind them, Harry and Hermione crept back to
their own beds, Hermione tucking the Time-Turner back under her robes. A moment
later, Madam Pomfrey came striding back out of her office.
"Did I hear the headmaster leaving? Am I
allowed to look after my patients now?"
She was in a very bad mood. Harry and Hermione
thought it best to accept their chocolate quietly. Madam Pomfrey stood over
them, making sure they ate it. But Harry could hardly swallow. He and Hermione
were waiting, listening, their nerves jangling... And then, as they both took a
fourth piece of chocolate from Madam Pomfrey, they heard a distant roar of fury
echoing from somewhere above them...
"What was that?" said Madam Pomfrey in
alarm.
Now they could hear angry voices, growing louder
and louder. Madam Pomfrey was staring at the door.
"Really - they'll wake everybody up! What
do they think they're doing?"
Harry was trying to hear what the voices were
saying. They were drawing nearer -
"He must have Disapparated, Severus. We
should have left somebody in the room with him. When this gets out -"
"HE DIDN'T DISAPPARATE!" Snape roared,
now very close at hand. "YOU CAN'T APPARATE OR DISAPPARATE INSIDE THIS
CASTLE! THIS - HAS - SOMETHING - TO - DO - WITH - POTTER!"
"Severus - be reasonable - Harry has been
locked up -"
BAM.
The door of the hospital wing burst open.
Fudge, Snape, and Dumbledore came striding into
the ward. Dumbledore alone looked calm. Indeed, he looked as though he was
quite enjoying himself. Fudge appeared angry. But Snape was beside himself.
"OUT WITH IT, POTTER!" he bellowed.
"WHAT DID YOU DO?"
"Professor Snape!" shrieked Madam
Pomfrey. "Control yourself!"
"See here, Snape, be reasonable," said
Fudge. "This door's been locked, we just saw -"
"THEY HELPED HIM ESCAPE, I KNOW IT!"
Snape howled, pointing at Harry and Hermione. His face was twisted; spit was
flying from his mouth.
"Calm down, man!" Fudge barked.
"You're talking nonsense!"
"YOU DON'T KNOW POTTER!" shrieked
Snape. "HE DID IT, I KNOW HE DID IT -"
"That will do, Severus," said
Dumbledore quietly. "Think about what you are saying. This door has been
locked since I left the ward ten minutes ago. Madam Pomfrey, have these
students left their beds?"
"Of course not!" said Madam Pomfrey,
bristling. "I would have heard them!"
"Well, there you have it, Severus,"
said Dumbledore calmly. "Unless you are suggesting that Harry and Hermione
are able to be in two places at once, I'm afraid I don't see any point in
troubling them further."
Snape stood there, seething, staring from Fudge,
who looked thoroughly shocked at his behavior, to Dumbledore, whose eyes were
twinkling behind his glasses. Snape whirled about, robes swishing behind him,
and stormed out of the ward.
"Fellow seems quite unbalanced," said
Fudge, staring after him. "I'd watch out for him if I were you,
Dumbledore."
"Oh, he's not unbalanced," said
Dumbledore quietly. "He's just suffered a severe disappointment."
"He's not the only one!" puffed Fudge.
"The Daily Prophet's going to have a field day! We had Black cornered and
he slipped through our fingers yet again! All it needs now is for the story of
that Hippogriff's escape to get out, and I'll be a laughingstock! Well... I'd
better go and notify the Ministry...."
"And the Dementors?" said Dumbledore.
"They'll be removed from the school, I trust?"
"Oh yes, they'll have to go," said
Fudge, running his fingers distractedly through his hair. "Never dreamed
they'd attempt to administer the Kiss on an innocent boy... Completely out of
control... no, I'll have them packed off back to Azkaban tonight... Perhaps we
should think about dragons at the school entrance..."
"Hagrid would like that," said
Dumbledore, smiling at Harry and Hermione. As he and Fudge left the dormitory,
Madam Pomfrey hurried to the door and locked it again. Muttering angrily to
herself, she headed back to her office.
There was a low moan from the other end of the
ward. Ron had woken up. They could see him sitting up, rubbing his head,
looking around.
"What - what happened?" he groaned.
"Harry? Why are we in here? Where's Sirius? Where's Lupin? What's going
on?"
Harry and Hermione looked at each other.
"You explain," said Harry, helping
himself to some more chocolate.
*
When Harry, Ron, and Hermione left the hospital
wing at noon the next day, it was to find an almost deserted castle. The
sweltering, heat and the end of the exams meant that everyone was taking full
advantage of another Hogsmeade visit. Neither Ron nor Hermione felt like going,
however, so they and Harry wandered onto the grounds, still talking about the
extraordinary events of the previous night and wondering where Sirius and
Buckbeak were now. Sitting near the lake, watching the giant squid waving its
tentacles lazily above the water, Harry lost the thread of the conversation as
he looked across to the opposite bank. The stag had galloped toward him from
there just last night...
A shadow fell across them and they looked up to
see a very bleary-eyed Hagrid, mopping his sweaty face with one of his
tablecloth-sized handkerchiefs and beaming down at them.
"Know I shouldn' feel happy, after wha'
happened las' night," he said. "I mean, Black escapin' again, an,
everythin' - but guess what?"
"What?" they said, pretending to look
curious.
"Beaky! He escaped! He's free! Bin
celebratin' all night!"
"That's wonderful!" said Hermione,
giving Ron a reproving look because he looked as though he was close to
laughing.
"Yeah... can't've tied him up properly,"
said Hagrid, gazing happily out over the grounds. "I was worried this
mornin', mind... thought he mighta met Professor Lupin on the grounds, but Lupin
says he never ate anythin' las' night..."
"What?" said Harry quickly.
"Blimey, haven' yeh heard?" said
Hagrid, his smile fading a little. He lowered his voice, even though there was
nobody in sight. "Er - Snape told all the Slytherins this mornin'...
Thought everyone'd know by now... Professor Lupin's a werewolf, see. An' he was
loose on the grounds las' night... He's packin' now, o' course."
"He's packing?" said Harry, alarmed.
"Why?"
"Leavin', isn' he?" said Hagrid,
looking surprised that Harry had to ask. "Resigned firs' thing this
mornin'. Says he can't risk it happenin again."
Harry scrambled to his feet.
"I'm going to see him," he said to Ron
and Hermione.
"But if he's resigned -"
"- doesn't sound like there's anything we
can do -"
"I don't care. I still want to see him.
I'll meet you back here."
Lupin's office door was open. He had already
packed most of his things. The Grindylow's empty tank stood next to his
battered old suitcase, which was open and nearly full. Lupin was bending over
something on his desk and looked up only when Harry knocked on the door.
"I saw you coming," said Lupin,
smiling. He pointed to the parchment he had been poring over. It was the
Marauder's Map.
"I just saw Hagrid," said Harry.
"And he said you'd resigned. It's not true, is it?"
"I'm afraid it is," said Lupin. He
started opening his desk drawers and taking out the contents.
"Why?" said Harry. "The Ministry
of Magic don't think you were helping Sirius, do they?"
Lupin crossed to the door and closed it behind
Harry.
"No. Professor Dumbledore managed to
convince Fudge that I was trying to save your lives." He sighed.
"That was the final straw for Severus. I think the loss of the Order of
Merlin hit him hard. So he - er - accidentally let slip that I am a werewolf
this morning at breakfast."
"You're not leaving just because of
that!" said Harry.
Lupin smiled wryly.
"This time tomorrow, the owls will start
arriving from parents... They will not want a werewolf teaching their children,
Harry. And after last night, I see their point. I could have bitten any of
you... That must never happen again."
"You're the best Defense Against the Dark
Arts teacher we've ever had!" said Harry. "Don't go!"
Lupin shook his head and didn't speak. He
carried on emptying his drawers. Then, while Harry was trying to think of a
good argument to make him stay, Lupin said, "From what the headmaster told
me this morning, you saved a lot of lives last night, Harry. If I'm proud of
anything I've done this year, it's how much you've learned... Tell me about your
Patronus."
"How d'you know about that?" said
Harry, distracted.
"What else could have driven the Dementors
back?"
Harry told Lupin what had happened. When he'd
finished, Lupin was smiling again.
"Yes, your father was always a stag when he
transformed," he said. "You guessed right... that's why we called him
Prongs."
Lupin threw his last few books into his case,
closed the desk drawers, and turned to look at Harry.
"Here - I brought this from the Shrieking
Shack last night," he said, handing Harry back the Invisibility Cloak.
"And..." He hesitated, then held out the Marauder's Map too. "I am
no longer your teacher, so I don't feel guilty about giving you back this as
well. It's no use to me, and I daresay you, Ron, and Hermione will find uses
for it."
Harry took the map and grinned.
"You told me Moony, Wormtail, Padfoot, and
Prongs would've wanted to lure me out of school... you said they'd have thought
it was funny."
"And so we would have," said Lupin,
now reaching down to close his case. "I have no hesitation in saying that
James would have been highly disappointed if his son had never found any of the
secret passages out of the castle."
There was a knock on the door. Harry hastily
stuffed the Marauder's Map and the Invisibility Cloak into his pocket.
It was Professor Dumbledore. He didn't look
surprised to see Harry there.
"Your carriage is at the gates,
Remus," he said.
"Thank You, Headmaster."
Lupin picked up his old suitcase and the empty
Grindylow tank.
"Well - good-bye, Harry," he said,
smiling. "It has been a real pleasure teaching you. I feel sure we'll meet
again sometime. Headmaster, there is no need to see me to the gates, I can manage..."
Harry had the impression that Lupin wanted to
leave as quickly as possible.
"Good-bye, then, Remus," said
Dumbledore soberly. Lupin shifted the Grindylow tank slightly so that he and
Dumbledore could shake hands. Then, with a final nod to Harry and a swift
smile, Lupin left the office.
Harry sat down in his vacated chair, staring
glumly at the floor. He heard the door close and looked up. Dumbledore was
still there.
"Why so miserable, Harry?" he said
quietly. "You should be very proud of yourself after last night."
"It didn't make any difference," said
Harry bitterly. "Pettigrew got away."
"Didn't make any difference?" said
Dumbledore quietly, "It made all the difference in the world, Harry. You
helped uncover the truth. You saved an innocent man from a terrible fate."
Terrible. Something stirred in Harry's memory.
Greater and more terrible than ever before... Professor Trelawney's prediction!
"Professor Dumbledore - yesterday, when I
was having my Divination exam, Professor Trelawney went very - very
strange."
"Indeed?" said Dumbledore. "Er -
stranger than usual, you mean?"
"Yes... her voice went all deep and her eyes
rolled and she said... she said Voldemort's servant was going to set out to
return to him before midnight... She said the servant would help him come back
to power." Harry stared up at Dumbledore. "And then she sort of
became normal again, and she couldn't remember anything she'd said. Was it -
was she making a real prediction?"
Dumbledore looked mildly impressed.
"Do you know, Harry, I think she might have
been." he said thoughtfully. "Who'd have thought it? That brings her
total of real predictions up to two. I should offer her a pay raise..."
"But -" Harry looked at him, aghast.
How could Dumbledore take this so calmly?
"But - I stopped Sirius and Professor Lupin
from killing Pettigrew! That makes it my fault if Voldemort comes back!"
"It does not," said Dumbledore
quietly. "Hasn't your experience with the Time-Turner taught you anything,
Harry? The consequences of our actions are always so complicated, so diverse,
that predicting the future is a very difficult business indeed... Professor
Trelawney, bless her, is living proof of that... You did a very noble thing, in
saving Pettigrew's life."
"But if he helps Voldemort back to power..."
"Pettigrew owes his life to you. You have
sent Voldemort a deputy who is in your debt... When one wizard saves another
wizard's life, it creates a certain bond between them... and I'm much mistaken if
Voldemort wants his servant in the debt of Harry Potter."
"I don't want a connection with
Pettigrew!" said Harry. "He betrayed my parents!"
"This is magic at its deepest, its most
impenetrable, Harry. But trust me... the time may come when you will be very glad
you saved Pettigrew's life."
Harry couldn't imagine when that would be.
Dumbledore looked as though he knew what Harry was thinking.
"I knew your father very well, both at
Hogwarts and later, Harry," he said gently. "He would have saved
Pettigrew too, I am sure of it."
Harry looked up at him. Dumbledore wouldn't
laugh - he could tell Dumbledore...
"I thought it was my dad who'd conjured my
Patronus. I mean, when I saw myself across the lake... I thought I was seeing
him."
"An easy mistake to make," said
Dumbledore softly. "I expect you'll tire of hearing it, but you do look
extraordinarily like James. Except for the eyes... you have your mother's
eyes."
Harry shook his head.
"It was stupid, thinking it was him,"
he muttered. "I mean, I knew he was dead."
"You think the dead we loved ever truly leave
us? You think that we don't recall them more clearly than ever in times of
great trouble? Your father is alive in you, Harry, and shows himself most
plainly when you have need of him. How else could you produce that particular
Patronus? Prongs rode again last night."
It took a moment for Harry to realize what
Dumbledore had said.
"Last night Sirius told me all about how
they became Animagi," said Dumbledore, smiling. "An extraordinary
achievement - not least, keeping it quiet from me. And then I remembered the
most unusual form your Patronus took, when it charged Mr. Malfoy down at your
Quidditch match against Ravenclaw. You know, Harry, in a way, you did see your
father last night... You found him inside yourself."
And Dumbledore left the office, leaving Harry to
his very confused thoughts.
*
Nobody at Hogwarts now knew the truth of what
had happened the night that Sirius, Buckbeak, and Pettigrew had vanished except
Harry, Ron, Hermione, and Professor Dumbledore. As the end of term approached,
Harry heard many different theories about what had really happened, but none of
them came close to the truth.
Malfoy was furious about Buckbeak. He was
convinced that Hagrid had found a way of smuggling the Hippogriff to safety,
and seemed outraged that he and his father had been outwitted by a gamekeeper.
Percy Weasley, meanwhile, had much to say on the subject of Sirius's escape.
"If I manage to get into the Ministry, I'll
have a lot of proposals to make about Magical Law Enforcement!" he told
the only person who would listen - his girlfriend, Penelope.
Though the weather was perfect, though the
atmosphere was so cheerful, though he knew they had achieved the near
impossible in helping Sirius to freedom, Harry had never approached the end of
a school year in worse spirits.
He certainly wasn't the only one who was sorry
to see Professor Lupin go. The whole of Harry's Defense Against the Dark Arts
class was miserable about his resignation.
"Wonder what they'll give us next
year?" said Seamus Finnigan gloomily.
"Maybe a vampire," suggested Dean
Thomas hopefully.
It wasn't only Professor Lupin's departure that
was weighing on Harry's mind. He couldn't help thinking a lot about Professor
Trelawney's prediction. He kept wondering where Pettigrew was now, whether he had
sought sanctuary with Voldemort yet. But the thing that was lowering Harry's
spirits most of all was the prospect of returning to the Dursleys. For maybe
half an hour, a glorious half hour, he had believed he would be living with
Sirius from now on...his parents' best friend...It would have been the next best
thing to having his own father back. And while no news of Sirius was definitely
good news, because it meant he had successfully gone into hiding, Harry
couldn't help feeling miserable when he thought of the home he might have had,
and the fact that it was now impossible.
The exam results came out on the last day of
term. Harry, Ron, and Hermione had passed every subject. Harry was amazed that
he had got through Potions. He had a shrewd suspicion that Dumbledore might
have stepped in to stop Snape failing him on purpose. Snape's behavior toward
Harry over the past week had been quite alarming. Harry wouldn't have thought
it possible that Snape's dislike for him could increase, but it certainly had.
A muscle twitched unpleasantly at the corner of Snape's thin mouth every time
he looked at Harry, and he was constantly flexing his fingers, as though
itching to place them around Harry's throat.
Percy had got his top-grade N.E.W.T.s; Fred and
George had scraped a handful of O.W.L.s each. Gryffindor House, meanwhile,
largely thanks to their spectacular performance in the Quidditch Cup, had won
the House championship for the third year running. This meant that the end of
term feast took place amid decorations of scarlet and gold, and that the
Gryffindor table was the noisiest of the lot, as everybody celebrated. Even
Harry managed to forget about the journey back to the Dursleys the next day as
he ate, drank, talked, and laughed with the rest.
*
As the Hogwarts Express pulled out of the
station the next morning, Hermione gave Harry and Ron some surprising news.
"I went to see Professor McGonagall this
morning, just before breakfast. I've decided to drop Muggle Studies."
"But you passed your exam with three hundred
and twenty percent!" said Ron.
"I know," sighed Hermione, "but I
can't stand another year like this one. That Time-Turner, it was driving me
mad. I've handed it in. Without Muggle Studies and Divination, I'll be able to
have a normal schedule again."
"I still can't believe you didn't tell us
about it," said Ron grumpily. "We're supposed to be your
friends."
"I promised I wouldn't tell anyone,"
said Hermione severely. She looked around at Harry, who was watching Hogwarts
disappear from view behind a mountain. Two whole months before he'd see it
again...
"Oh, cheer up, Harry!" said Hermione
sadly.
"I'm okay," said Harry quickly.
"Just thinking about the holidays."
"Yeah, I've been thinking about them
too," said Ron. "Harry, you've got to come and stay with us. I'll fix
it up with Mum and Dad, then I'll call you. I know how to use a fellytone now
-"
"A telephone, Ron," said Hermione.
"Honestly, you should take Muggle Studies next year..."
Ron ignored her.
"It's the Quidditch World Cup this summer!
How about it, Harry? Come and stay, and we'll go and see it! Dad can usually
get tickets from work."
This proposal had the effect of cheering Harry
up a great deal.
"Yeah... I bet the Dursleys'd be pleased to
let me come... especially after what I did to Aunt Marge..."
Feeling considerably more cheerful, Harry joined
Ron and Hermione in several games of Exploding Snap, and when the witch with
the tea cart arrived, he bought himself a very large lunch, though nothing with
chocolate in it.
But it was late in the afternoon before the
thing that made him truly happy turned up...
"Harry," said Hermione suddenly,
peering over his shoulder. "What's that thing outside your window?"
Harry turned to look outside. Something very
small and gray was bobbing in and out of sight beyond the glass. He stood up
for a better look and saw that it was a tiny owl, carrying a letter that was
much too big for it. The owl was so small, in fact, that it kept tumbling over
in the air, buffeted this way and that in the train's slipstream. Harry quickly
pulled down the window, stretched out his arm, and caught it. It felt like a
very fluffy Snitch. He brought it carefully inside.
The owl dropped its letter onto Harry's seat and
began zooming around their compartment, apparently very pleased with itself for
accomplishing its task. Hedwig clicked her beak with a sort of dignified
disapproval. Crookshanks sat up in his seat, following the owl with his great
yellow eyes. Ron, noticing this, snatched the owl safely out of harm's way.
Harry picked up the letter. It was addressed to
him. He ripped open the letter, and shouted, "It's from Sirius!"
"What?" said Ron and Hermione
excitedly. "Read it aloud!"
Dear Harry,
I hope this finds you before you reach your aunt
and uncle. I don't know whether they're used to owl post.
Buckbeak and I are in hiding. I won't tell you
where, in case this owl falls into the wrong hands. I have some doubt about his
reliability, but he is the best I could find, and he did seem eager for the
job.
I believe the Dementors are still searching for
me, but they haven't a hope of finding me here. I am planning to allow some
Muggles to glimpse me soon, a long way from Hogwarts, so that the security on
the castle will be lifted.
There is something I never got around to telling
you during our brief meeting. It was I who sent you the Firebolt -
"Ha!" said Hermione triumphantly.
"See! I told you it was from him!"
"Yes, but he hadn't jinxed it, had
he?" said Ron. "Ouch!" The tiny owl now hooting happily in his
hand, had nibbled one of his fingers in what it seemed to think was an
affectionate way.
- Crookshanks took the order to the Owl Office
for me. I used your name but told them to take the gold from my own Gringotts
vault. Please consider it as thirteen birthdays' worth of presents from your
godfather.
I would also like to apologize for the fright I
think I gave you that night last year when you left your uncle's house. I had
only hoped to get a glimpse of you before starting my journey north, but I
think the sight of me alarmed you.
I am enclosing something else for you, which I
think will make your next year at Hogwarts more enjoyable.
If ever you need me, send word. Your owl will
find me.
I'll write again soon.
Sirius
Harry looked eagerly inside the envelope. There
was another piece of parchment in there. He read it through quickly and felt
suddenly as warm and contented as though he'd swallowed a bottle of hot
butterbeer in one gulp.
I, Sirius Black, Harry Potter's godfather,
hereby give him permission to visit Hogsmeade on weekends.
"That'll be good enough for
Dumbledore!" said Harry happily. He looked back at Sirius's letter.
"Hang on, there's a PS..."
I thought your friend Ron might like to keep
this owl, as it's my fault he no longer has a rat.
Ron's eyes widened. The minute owl was still
hooting excitedly. "Keep him?" he said uncertainly. He looked closely
at the owl for a moment; then, to Harry's and Hermione's great surprise, he
held him out for Crookshanks to sniff.
"What do you reckon?" Ron asked the
cat. "Definitely an owl?"
Crookshanks purred.
"That's good enough for me," said Ron
happily. "He's mine."
Harry read and reread the letter from Sirius all
the way back into King's Cross station. It was still clutched tightly in his
hand as he, Ron, and Hermione stepped back through the barrier of platform nine
and three-quarters. Harry spotted Uncle Vernon at once. He was standing a good
distance from Mr. and Mrs. Weasley, eyeing them suspiciously, and when Mrs.
Weasley hugged Harry in greeting, his worst suspicions about them seemed
confirmed.
"I'll call about the World Cup!" Ron
yelled after Harry as Harry bid him and Hermione good-bye, then wheeled the
trolley bearing his trunk and Hedwig's cage toward Uncle Vernon, who greeted
him in his usual fashion.
"What's that?" he snarled, staring at
the envelope Harry was still clutching in his hand. "If it's another form
for me to sign, you've got another -"
"It's not," said Harry cheerfully.
"It's a letter from my godfather."
"Godfather?" sputtered Uncle Vernon.
"You haven't got a godfather!"
"Yes, I have," said Harry brightly.
"He was my mum and dad's best friend. He's a convicted murderer, but he's
broken out of wizard prison and he's on the run. He likes to keep in touch with
me, though... keep up with my news... check if I'm happy..."
And, grinning broadly at the look of horror on
Uncle Vernon's face, Harry set off toward the station exit, Hedwig rattling
along in front of him, for what looked like a much better summer than the last.
by J.K. Rowling
Book 3 in the Harry Potter Series
CHAPTER ONE OWL POST
Harry Potter was a highly
unusual boy in many ways. For one thing, he hated the summer holidays more than
any other time of year. For another, he really wanted to do his homework but
was forced to do it in secret, in the dead of night. And he also happened to be
a wizard.
It was nearly midnight, and he
was lying on his stomach in bed, the blankets drawn right over his head like a
tent, a flashlight in one hand and a large leather-bound book (A History of
Magic by Bathilda Bagshot) propped open against the pillow. Harry moved the
tip of his eagle-feather quill down the page, frowning as he looked for
something that would help him write his essay, 'Witch Burning in the Fourteenth
Century Was Completely Pointless - discuss.'
The quill paused at the top of a
likely looking paragraph. Harry pushed his round glasses up the bridge of his
nose, moved his flashlight closer to the book, and read:
Non-magic people (more
commonly known as Muggles) were particularly afraid of magic in medieval times,
but not very good at recognizing it. On the rare occasion that they did catch a
real witch or wizard, burning had no effect whatsoever. The witch or wizard
would perform a basic Flame-Freezing Charm and then pretend to shriek with pain
while enjoying a gentle, tickling sensation. Indeed, Wendelin the Weird enjoyed
being burned so much that she allowed herself to be caught no less than
forty-seven times in various disguises.
Harry put his quill between
his teeth and reached underneath his pillow for his inkbottle and a roll of
parchment. Slowly and very carefully he unscrewed the ink bottle, dipped his
quill into it, and began to write, pausing every now and then to listen,
because if any of the Dursleys heard the scratching of his quill on their way
to the bathroom, he'd probably find himself locked in the cupboard under the
stairs for the rest of the summer.
The Dursley family of Number
Four, Privet Drive, was the reason that Harry never enjoyed his summer
holidays. Uncle Vernon, Aunt Petunia, and their son, Dudley, were Harry's only
living relatives. They were Muggles, and they had a very medieval attitude
toward magic. Harry's dead parents, who had been a witch and wizard themselves,
were never mentioned under the Dursleys' roof. For years, Aunt Petunia and
Uncle Vernon had hoped that if they kept Harry as downtrodden as possible, they
would be able to squash the magic out of him. To their fury, they had not been
unsuccessful. These days they lived in terror of anyone finding out that Harry
had spent most of the last two years at Hogwarts School of Witchcraft and
Wizardry. The most they could do, however, was to lock away Harry's spell
books, wand, cauldron, and broomstick at the start of the summer break, and
forbid him to talk to the neighbors.
This separation from his spell
books had been a real problem for Harry, because his teachers at Hogwarts had
given him a lot of holiday work. One of the essays, a particularly nasty one
about shrinking potions, was for Harry's least favorite teacher, Professor Snape,
who would be delighted to have an excuse to give Harry detention for a month.
Harry had therefore seized his chance in the first week of the holidays. While
Uncle Vernon, Aunt Petunia, and Dudley had gone out into the front garden to
admire Uncle Vernon's new company car (in very loud voices, so that the rest of
the street would notice it too), Harry had crept downstairs, picked the lock on
the cupboard under the stairs, grabbed some of his books, and hidden them in
his bedroom. As long as he didn't leave spots of ink on the sheets, the
Dursleys need never know that he was studying magic by night.
Harry was particularly keen to
avoid trouble with his aunt and uncle at the moment, as they were already in an
especially bad mood with him, all because he'd received a telephone call from a
fellow wizard one week into the school vacation.
Ron Weasley, who was one of
Harry's best friends at Hogwarts, came from a whole family of wizards. This
meant that he knew a lot of things Harry didn't, but had never used a telephone
before. Most unluckily, it had been Uncle Vernon who had answered the call.
"Vernon Dursley
speaking."
Harry, who happened to be in the
room at the time, froze as he heard Ron's voice answer.
"HELLO? HELLO? CAN YOU HEAR
ME? I - WANT - TO - TALK - TO - HARRY - POTTER!"
was yelling so loudly that Uncle
Vernon jumped and held the receiver a foot away from his ear, staring at it
with an expression of mingled fury and alarm.
"WHO IS THIS?" he
roared in the direction of the mouthpiece. "WHO ARE YOU?"
"RON - WEASLEY!" Ron
bellowed back, as though he and Uncle Vernon were speaking from opposite ends
of a football field. "I'M - A - FRIEND - OF - HARRY'S - FROM - SCHOOL
-"
Uncle Vernon's small eyes
swiveled around to Harry, who was rooted to the spot.
"THERE IS NO HARRY POTTER
HERE!" he roared, now holding the receiver at arm's length, as though
frightened it might explode. "I DON'T KNOW WHAT SCHOOL YOU'RE TALKING
ABOUT! NEVER CONTACT ME AGAIN! DON'T YOU COME NEAR MY FAMILY!"
And he threw the receiver back
onto the telephone as if dropping a poisonous spider. The fight that had followed
had been one of the worst ever.
"HOW DARE YOU GIVE THIS
NUMBER TO PEOPLE LIKE - PEOPLE LIKE YOU!" Uncle Vernon had roared,
spraying Harry with spit.
Ron obviously realized that he'd
gotten Harry into trouble, because he hadn't called again. Harry's other best
friend from Hogwarts, Hermione Granger, hadn't been in touch either. Harry
suspected that Ron had warned Hermione not to call, which was a pity, because
Hermione, the cleverest witch in Harry's year, had Muggle parents, knew
perfectly well how to use a telephone, and would probably have had enough sense
not to say that she went to Hogwarts.
So Harry had had no word from
any of his wizarding friends for five long weeks, and this summer was turning
out to be almost as bad as the last one. There was just one very small
improvement - after swearing that he wouldn't use her to send letters to any of
his friends, Harry had been allowed to let his owl, Hedwig, out at night. Uncle
Vernon had given in because of the racket Hedwig made if she was locked in her
cage all the time.
Harry finished writing about
Wendelin the Weird and paused to listen again. The silence in the dark house
was broken only by the distant, grunting snores of his enormous cousin, Dudley.
It must be very late, Harry thought. His eyes were itching with tiredness.
Perhaps he'd finish this essay tomorrow night...
He replaced the top of the ink
bottle; pulled an old pillowcase from under his bed; put the flashlight, A
History of Magic, his essay, quill, and ink inside it; got out of bed; and
hid the lot under a loose floorboard under his bed. Then he stood up,
stretched, and checked the time on the luminous alarm clock on his bedside
table.
It was one o'clock in the
morning. Harry's stomach gave a funny jolt. He had been thirteen years old,
without realizing it, for a whole hour.
Yet another unusual thing about
Harry was how little he looked forward to his birthdays. He had never received
a birthday card in his life. The Dursleys had completely ignored his last two
birthdays, and he had no reason to suppose they would remember this one.
Harry walked across the dark
room, past Hedwig's large, empty cage, to the open window. He leaned on the
sill, the cool night air pleasant on his face after a long time under the
blankets. Hedwig had been absent for two nights now. Harry wasn't worried about
her: she'd been gone this long before. But he hoped she'd be back soon - she
was the only living creature in this house who didn't flinch at the sight of
him.
Harry, though still rather small
and skinny for his age, had grown a few inches over the last year. His
jet-black hair, however, was just as it always had been - stubbornly untidy,
whatever he did to it. The eyes behind his glasses were bright green, and on
his forehead, clearly visible through his hair, was a thin scar, shaped like a
bolt of lightning.
Of all the unusual things about
Harry, this scar was the most extraordinary of all. It was not, as the Dursleys
had pretended for ten years, a souvenir of the car crash that had killed
Harry's parents, because Lily and James Potter had not died in a car crash.
They had been murdered, murdered by the most feared Dark wizard for a hundred
years, Lord Voldemort. Harry had escaped from the same attack with nothing more
than a scar on his forehead, where Voldemort's curse, instead of killing him,
had rebounded upon its originator. Barely alive, Voldemort had fled...
But Harry had come face-to-face
with him at Hogwarts. Remembering their last meeting as he stood at the dark
window, Harry had to admit he was lucky even to have reached his thirteenth
birthday.
He scanned the starry sky for a
sign of Hedwig, perhaps soaring back to him with a dead mouse dangling from her
beak, expecting praise. Gazing absently over the rooftops, it was a few seconds
before Harry realized what he was seeing.
Silhouetted against the golden
moon, and growing larger every moment, was a large, strangely lopsided
creature, and it was flapping in Harry's direction. He stood quite still,
watching it sink lower and lower. For a split second he hesitated, his hand on
the window latch, wondering whether to slam it shut. But then the bizarre
creature soared over one of the street lamps of Privet Drive, and Harry,
realizing what it was, leapt aside.
Through the window soared three
owls, two of them holding up the third, which appeared to be unconscious. They
landed with a soft flump on Harry's bed, and the middle owl, which was
large and gray, keeled right over and lay motionless. There was a large package
tied to its legs.
Harry recognized the unconscious
owl at once - his name was Errol, and he belonged to the Weasley family. Harry
dashed to the bed, untied the cords around Errol's legs, took off the parcel,
and then carried Errol to Hedwig's cage. Errol opened one bleary eye, gave a
feeble hoot of thanks, and began to gulp some water.
Harry turned back to the
remaining owls. One of them, the large snowy female, was his own Hedwig. She,
too, was carrying a parcel and looked extremely pleased with herself. She gave
Harry an affectionate nip with her beak as he removed her burden, then flew
across the room to join Errol.
Harry didn't recognize the third
owl, a handsome tawny one, but he knew at once where it had come from, because
in addition to a third package, it was carrying a letter bearing the Hogwarts
crest. When Harry relieved this owl of its burden, it ruffled its feathers
importantly, stretched its wings, and took off through the window into the
night.
Harry sat down on his bed and
grabbed Errol's package, ripped off the brown paper, and discovered a present
wrapped in gold and his first ever birthday card. Fingers trembling slightly,
he opened the envelope. Two pieces of paper fell out - a letter and a newspaper
clipping.
The clipping had clearly come
out of the wizarding newspaper, the Daily Prophet, because the people in
the black-and-white picture were moving. Harry picked up the clipping, smoothed
it out, and read:
MINISTRY OF MAGIC EMPLOYEE SCOOPS GRAND PRIZE
Arthur Weasley, Head of the Misuse of
Muggle Artifacts Office at the Ministry of Magic, has won the annual Daily
Prophet Grand Prize Galleon Draw. A delighted Mr. Weasley told the Daily
Prophet, "We will be spending the gold on a summer holiday in Egypt, where
our eldest son, Bill, works as a curse breaker for Gringotts Wizarding
Bank." The Weasley family will be spending a
month in Egypt, returning for the start of the new school year at Hogwarts,
which five of the Weasley children currently attend.
Harry scanned the moving
photograph, and a grin spread across his face as he saw all nine of the
Weasleys waving furiously at him, standing in front of a large pyramid. Plump
little Mrs. Weasley; tall, balding Mr. Weasley; six sons; and one daughter, all
(though the black-and-white picture didn't show it) with flaming-red hair.
Right in the middle of the picture was Ron, tall and gangling, with his pet
rat, Scabbers, on his shoulder and his arm around his little sister, Ginny.
Harry couldn't think of anyone
who deserved to win a large pile of gold more than the Weasleys, who were very
nice and extremely poor. He picked up Ron's letter and unfolded it.
Dear Harry,
Happy birthday!
Look, I'm really sorry about that telephone call. I hope the Muggles didn't give you
a hard time. I asked Dad, and he reckons I shouldn't have shouted.
It's amazing here in Egypt. Bill's taken us around all the tombs and you wouldn't
believe the curses those old Egyptian wizards put on them. Mum wouldn't let
Ginny come in the last one. There were all these mutant skeletons in there, of
Muggles who'd broken in and grown extra heads and stuff.
I couldn't believe it when Dad won the Daily Prophet Draw. Seven hundred
galleons! Most of it's gone on this trip, but they're going to buy me a new
wand for next year.
Harry remembered only too well
the occasion when Ron's old wand had snapped. It had happened when the car the
two of them had been flying to Hogwarts had crashed into a tree on the school
grounds.
We'll be back about a week before term starts and we'll be going up to London to get
my wand and our new books. Any chance of meeting you there?
Don't let the Muggles get you down!
Try and come to London,
Ron
P.S. Percy's Head Boy. He got
the letter last week.
Harry glanced back at the
photograph. Percy, who was in his seventh and final year at Hogwarts, was
looking particularly smug. He had pinned his Head Boy badge to the fez perched
jauntily on top of his neat hair, his horn-rimmed glasses flashing in the
Egyptian sun.
Harry now turned to his present
and unwrapped it. Inside was what looked like a miniature glass spinning top.
There was another note from Ron beneath it.
Harry
- this is a Pocket Sneakoscope. If there's someone untrustworthy around, it's
supposed to light up and spin. Bill says it's rubbish sold for wizard tourists
and isn't reliable, because it kept lighting up at dinner last night. But he
didn't realize Fred and George had put beetles in his soup.
Bye - Ron
Harry put the Pocket Sneakoscope
on his bedside table, where it stood quite still, balanced on its point,
reflecting the luminous hands of his clock. He looked at it happily for a few
seconds, then picked up the parcel Hedwig had brought.
Inside this, too, there was a
wrapped present, a card, and a letter, this time from Hermione.
Dear Harry,
Ron wrote to me and told me about his phone call to your Uncle Vernon. I do hope
you're all right.
I'm on holiday in France at the moment and I didn't know how I was going to send
this to you - what if they'd opened it at customs? - but then Hedwig turned up!
I think she wanted to make sure you got something for your birthday for a
change. I bought your present by owl-order; there was an advertisement in the
Daily Prophet (I've been getting it delivered; it's so good to keep up with
what's going on in the wizarding world), Did you see that picture of Ron and
his family a week ago? I bet he's learning loads. I'm really jealous - the
ancient Egyptian wizards were fascinating.
There's some interesting local history of witchcraft here, too. I've rewritten my whole
History of Magic essay to include some of the things I've found out, I hope
it's not too long - it's two rolls of parchment more than Professor Binns asked
for.
Ron says he's going to be in London in the last week of the holidays. Can you make
it? Will your aunt and uncle let you come? I really hope you can. If not, I'll
see you on the Hogwarts Express on September first!
Love from
Hermione
P.S. Ron says Percy's Head Boy.
I'll bet Percy's really pleased. Ron doesn't seem too happy about it.
Harry laughed as he put
Hermione's letter aside and picked up her present. It was very heavy. Knowing
Hermione, he was sure it would be a large book full of very difficult spells -
but it wasn't. His heart gave a huge bound as he ripped back the paper and saw
a sleek black leather case, with silver words stamped across it, reading Broomstick
Servicing Kit.
"Wow, Hermione!" Harry
whispered, unzipping the case to look inside.
There was a large jar of
Fleetwood's High-Finish Handle Polish, a pair of gleaming silver Tail-Twig
Clippers, a tiny brass compass to clip on your broom for long journeys, and a Handbook
of Do-It-Yourself Broomcare.
Apart from his friends, the
thing that Harry missed most about Hogwarts was Quidditch, the most popular sport
in the magical world - highly dangerous, very exciting, and played on
broomsticks. Harry happened to be a very good Quidditch player; he had been the
youngest person in a century to be picked for one of the Hogwarts House teams.
One of Harry's most prized possessions was his Nimbus Two Thousand racing
broom.
Harry put the leather case aside
and picked up his last parcel. He recognized the untidy scrawl on the brown
paper at once: this was from Hagrid, the Hogwarts gamekeeper. He tore off the
top layer of paper and glimpsed something green and leathery, but before he
could unwrap it properly, the parcel gave a strange quiver, and whatever was
inside it snapped loudly - as though it had jaws.
Harry froze. He knew that Hagrid
would never send him anything dangerous on purpose, but then, Hagrid didn't
have a normal person's view of what was dangerous. Hagrid had been known to
befriend giant spiders, buy vicious, three-headed dogs from men in pubs, and
sneak illegal dragon eggs into his cabin.
Harry poked the parcel
nervously. It snapped loudly again. Harry reached for the lamp on his bedside
table, gripped it firmly in one hand, and raised it over his head, ready to
strike. Then he seized the rest of the wrapping paper in his other hand and
pulled.
And out fell - a book. Harry
just had time to register its handsome green cover, emblazoned with the golden
title The Monster Book of Monsters, before it flipped onto its edge and
scuttled sideways along the bed like some weird crab.
"Uh-oh," Harry
muttered.
The book toppled off the bed
with a loud clunk and shuffled rapidly across the room. Harry followed it
stealthily. The book was hiding in the dark space under his desk. Praying that
the Dursleys were still fast asleep, Harry got down on his hands and knees and
reached toward it.
"Ouch!"
The book snapped shut on his
hand and then flapped past him, still scuttling on its covers. Harry scrambled
around, threw himself forward, and managed to flatten it. Uncle Vernon gave a
loud, sleepy grunt in the room next door.
Hedwig and Errol watched
interestedly as Harry clamped the struggling book tightly in his arms, hurried
to his chest of drawers, and pulled out a belt, which he buckled tightly around
it. The Monster Book shuddered angrily, but could no longer flap and snap, so
Harry threw it down on the bed and reached for Hagrid's card.
Dear Harry,
Happy Birthday!
Think you might find this useful for next year. Won't say no more here. Tell you when
I see you.
Hope the Muggles are treating you right.
All the best,
Hagrid
It struck Harry as ominous that
Hagrid thought a biting book would come in useful, but he put Hagrid's card up
next to Ron's and Hermione's, grinning more broadly than ever. Now there was
only the letter from Hogwarts left.
Noticing that it was rather thicker
than usual, Harry slit open the envelope, pulled out the first page of
parchment within, and read:
Dear Mr. Potter,
Please note that the new school year will begin on September the first. The Hogwarts
Express will leave from King's Cross station, platform nine and three-quarters,
at eleven o'clock.
Third years are permitted to visit the village of Hogsmeade on certain weekends.
Please give the enclosed permission form to your parent or guardian to sign.
A list of books for next year is enclosed.
Yours sincerely,
Professor M. McGonagall
Deputy Headmistress
Harry pulled out the Hogsmeade
permission form and looked at it, no longer grinning. It would be wonderful to
visit Hogsmeade on weekends; he knew it was an entirely wizarding village, and he
had never set foot there. But how on earth was he going to persuade Uncle
Vernon or Aunt Petunia to sign the form?
He looked over at the alarm
clock. It was now two o'clock in the morning.
Deciding that he'd worry about
the Hogsmeade form when he woke up, Harry got back into bed and reached up to
cross off another day on the chart he'd made for himself, counting down the
days left until his return to Hogwarts. Then he took off his glasses and lay
down; eyes open, facing his three birthday cards.
Extremely unusual though he was,
at that moment Harry Potter felt just like everyone else - glad, for the first
time in his life, that it was his birthday. CHAPTER TWO AUNT MARGE'S BIG MISTAKE
Harry went down to breakfast the
next morning to find the three Dursleys already sitting around the kitchen
table. They were watching a brand-new television, a welcome-home-for-the-summer
present for Dudley, who had been complaining loudly about the long walk between
the fridge and the television in the living room. Dudley had spent most of the
summer in the kitchen, his piggy little eyes fixed on the screen and his five
chins wobbling as he ate continually.
Harry sat down between Dudley
and Uncle Vernon, a large, beefy man with very little neck and a lot of
mustache. Far from wishing Harry a happy birthday, none of the Dursleys made
any sign that they had noticed Harry enter the room, but Harry was far too used
to this to care. He helped himself to a piece of toast and then looked up at
the reporter on the television, who was halfway through a report on an escaped
convict. "...the public is warned
that Black is armed and extremely dangerous. A special hot line has been set
up, and any sighting of Black should be reported immediately."
"No need to tell us he's
no good," snorted Uncle Vernon, staring over the top of his newspaper at
the prisoner. "Look at the state of him, the filthy layabout! Look at his
hair!"
He shot a nasty look sideways at
Harry, whose untidy hair had always been a source of great annoyance to Uncle
Vernon. Compared to the man on the television, however, whose gaunt face was
surrounded by a matted, elbow-length tangle, Harry felt very well groomed
indeed.
The reporter had reappeared.
"The Ministry of
Agriculture and Fisheries will announce today -"
"Hang on!" barked
Uncle Vernon, staring furiously at the reporter. "You didn't tell us where
that maniac's escaped from! What use is that? Lunatic could be coming up the
street right now!" Aunt Petunia, who was bony
and horse-faced, whipped around and peered intently out of the kitchen window.
Harry knew Aunt Petunia would simply love to be the one to call the hot line
number. She was the nosiest woman in the world and spent most of her life
spying on the boring, law-abiding neighbors.
"When will they learn,"
said Uncle Vernon, pounding the table with his large purple fist, "that
hanging's the only way to deal with these people?"
"Very true," said Aunt
Petunia, who was still squinting into next door's runner-beans.
Uncle Vernon drained his teacup,
glanced at his watch, and added, "I'd better be off in a minute, Petunia.
Marge's train gets in at ten."
Harry, whose thoughts had been
upstairs with the Broomstick Servicing Kit, was brought back to earth with an
unpleasant bump.
"Aunt Marge?" he
blurted out. "Sh-she's not coming here, is she?"
Aunt Marge was Uncle Vernon's
sister. Even though she was not a blood relative of Harry's (whose mother had
been Aunt Petunia's sister), he had been forced to call her 'Aunt' all his
life. Aunt Marge lived in the country, in a house with a large garden, where
she bred bulldogs. She didn't often stay at Privet Drive, because she couldn't
bear to leave her precious dogs, but each of her visits stood out horribly
vividly in Harry's mind.
At Dudley's fifth birthday
party, Aunt Margo had whacked Harry around the shins with her walking stick to
stop him from beating Dudley at musical statues. A few years later, she had
turned up at Christmas with a computerized robot for Dudley and a box of dog
biscuits for Harry. On her last visit, the year before Harry started at
Hogwarts, Harry had accidentally trodden on the tail of her favorite dog.
Ripper had chased Harry out into the garden and up a tree, and Aunt Marge had
refused to call him off until past midnight. The memory of this incident still
brought tears of laughter to Dudley's eyes.
"Marge'll be here for a
week," Uncle Vernon snarled, "and while we're on the subject,"
he pointed a fat finger threateningly at Harry, "we need to get a few
things straight before I go and collect her."
Dudley smirked and withdrew his
gaze from the television. Watching Harry being bullied by Uncle Vernon was
Dudley's favorite form of entertainment.
"Firstly," growled
Uncle Vernon, "you'll keep a civil tongue in your head when you're talking
to Marge."
"All right," said
Harry bitterly, "if she does when she's talking to me."
"Secondly," said Uncle
Vernon, acting as though he had not heard Harry's reply, "as Marge doesn't
know anything about your abnormality, I don't want any - any funny stuff
while she's here. You behave yourself, got me?"
"I will if she does,"
said Harry through gritted teeth.
"And thirdly," said
Uncle Vernon, his mean little eyes now slits in his great purple face,
"we've told Marge you attend St. Brutus's Secure Center for Incurably
Criminal Boys."
"What?"
Harry yelled.
"And you'll be sticking to
that story, boy, or there'll be trouble," spat Uncle Vernon.
Harry sat there, white-faced and
furious, staring at Uncle Vernon, hardly able to believe it. Aunt Marge coming
for a weeklong visit - it was the worst birthday present the Dursleys had ever
given him, including that pair of Uncle Vernon's old socks.
"Well, Petunia," said
Uncle Vernon, getting heavily to his feet, "I'll be off to the station,
then. Want to come along for the ride, Dudders?"
"No," said Dudley,
whose attention had returned to the television now that Uncle Vernon had
finished threatening Harry.
"Duddy's got to make
himself smart for his auntie," said Aunt Petunia, smoothing Dudley's thick
blond hair. "Mummy's bought him a lovely new bow-tie."
Uncle Vernon clapped Dudley on
his porky shoulder.
"See you in a bit,
then," he said, and he left the kitchen.
Harry, who had been sitting in a
kind of horrified trance, had a sudden idea. Abandoning his toast, he got
quickly to his feet and followed Uncle Vernon to the front door.
Uncle Vernon was pulling on his
car coat.
"I'm not taking you,"
he snarled as he turned to see Harry watching him. "Like I wanted to
come," said Harry coldly. "I want to ask you something."
Uncle Vernon eyed him
suspiciously.
"Third years at Hog - at my
school are allowed to visit the village sometimes," said Harry.
"So?" snapped Uncle
Vernon, taking his car keys from a hook next to the door.
"I need you to sign the
permission form," said Harry in a rush.
"And why should I do that?"
sneered Uncle Vernon.
"Well," said Harry,
choosing his words carefully, "it'll be hard work, pretending to Aunt
Marge I go to that St. Whatsits..."
"St. Brutus's Secure Center
for Incurably Criminal Boys!" bellowed Uncle Vernon, and Harry was pleased
to hear a definite note of panic in Uncle Vernon's voice.
"Exactly," said Harry,
looking calmly up into Uncle Vernon's large, purple face. "It's a lot to
remember. I'll have to make it sound convincing, won't I? What if I
accidentally let something slip?"
"You'll get the stuffing
knocked out of you, won't you?"
roared Uncle Vernon, advancing on Harry with his fist
raised. But Harry stood his ground.
"Knocking the stuffing out
of me won't make Aunt Marge forget what I could tell her," he said grimly.
Uncle Vernon stopped, his fist
still raised, his face an ugly puce.
"But if you sign my
permission form," Harry went on quickly, "I swear Ill remember where
I'm supposed to go to school, and Ill act like a Mug - like I'm normal and
everything."
Harry could tell that Uncle
Vernon was thinking it over, even if his teeth were bared and a vein was
throbbing in his temple.
"Right," he snapped
finally. "I shall monitor your behavior carefully during Marge's visit.
If, at the end of it, you've toed the line and kept to the story, Ill sign your
ruddy form."
He wheeled around, pulled open
the front door, and slammed it so hard that one of the little panes of glass at
the top fell out.
Harry didn't return to the
kitchen. He went back upstairs to his bedroom. If he was going to act like a
real Muggle, heed better start now. Slowly and sadly he gathered up all his
presents and his birthday cards and hid them under the loose floorboard with
his homework. Then he went to Hedwig's cage. Errol seemed to have recovered; he
and Hedwig were both asleep, heads under their wings. Harry sighed, then poked
them both awake.
"Hedwig," he said
gloomily, "you're going to have to clear off for a week. Go with Errol.
Ron'll look after you. Ill write him a note, explaining. And don't look at me like
that" - Hedwig's large amber eyes were reproachful - "it's not my
fault. It's the only way I'll be allowed to visit Hogsmeade with Ron and
Hermione."
Ten minutes later, Errol and
Hedwig (who had a note to Ron bound to her leg) soared out of the window and
out of sight. Harry, now feeling thoroughly miserable, put the empty cage away
inside the wardrobe.
But Harry didn't have long to
brood. In next to no time, Aunt Petunia was shrieking up the stairs for Harry
to come down and get ready to welcome their guest.
"Do something about your
hair!" Aunt Petunia snapped as he reached the hall.
Harry couldn't see the point of
trying to make his hair lie flat. Aunt Marge loved criticizing him, so the
untidier he looked, the happier she would be.
All too soon, there was a crunch
of gravel outside as Uncle Vernon's car pulled back into the driveway, then the
clunk of the car doors and footsteps on the garden path.
"Get the door!" Aunt
Petunia hissed at Harry.
A feeling of great gloom in his
stomach, Harry pulled the door open.
On the threshold stood Aunt
Marge. She was very like Uncle Vernon: large, beefy, and purple-faced, she even
had a mustache, though not as bushy as his. In one hand she held an enormous
suitcase, and tucked under the other was an old and evil-tempered bulldog.
"Where's my Dudders?"
roared Aunt Marge. "Where's my neffy poo?"
Dudley came waddling down the
hall, his blond hair plastered flat to his fat head, a bow tie just visible
under his many chins. Aunt Marge thrust the suitcase into Harry's stomach,
knocking the wind out of him, seized Dudley in a tight one-armed hug, and
planted a large kiss on his cheek.
Harry knew perfectly well that
Dudley only put up with Aunt Marge's hugs because he was well paid for it, and
sure enough, when they broke apart, Dudley had a crisp twenty-pound note
clutched in his fat fist.
"Petunia!" shouted
Aunt Marge, striding past Harry as though he was a hat-stand. Aunt Marge and
Aunt Petunia kissed, or rather, Aunt Marge bumped her large jaw against Aunt
Petunias bony cheekbone.
Uncle Vernon now came in,
smiling jovially as he shut the door.
"Tea, Marge?" he said.
"And what will Ripper take?"
"Ripper can have some tea
out of my saucer," said Aunt Marge as they all proceeded into the kitchen,
leaving Harry alone in the hall with the suitcase. But Harry wasn't
complaining; any excuse not to be with Aunt Marge was fine by him, so he began
to heave the case upstairs into the spare bedroom, taking as long as he could.
By the time he got back to the kitchen, Aunt Marge had been supplied with tea and
fruitcake, and Ripper was lapping noisily in the corner. Harry saw Aunt Petunia
wince slightly as specks of tea and drool flecked her clean floor. Aunt Petunia
hated animals.
"Who's looking after the
other dogs, Marge?" Uncle Vernon asked.
"Oh, I've got Colonel
Fubster managing them," boomed Aunt Marge. "He's retired now, good
for him to have something to do. But I couldn't leave poor old Ripper. He pines
if he's away from me."
Ripper began to growl again as
Harry sat down. This directed Aunt Marge's attention to Harry for the first
time.
"So!" she barked.
"Still here, are you?"
"Yes," said Harry.
"Don't you say
"yes" in that ungrateful tone," Aunt Marge growled. "It's
damn good of Vernon and Petunia to keep you. Wouldn't have done it myself.
You'd have gone straight to an orphanage if you'd been dumped on my doorstep."
Harry was bursting to say that
he'd rather live in an orphanage than with the Dursleys, but the thought of the
Hogsmeade form stopped him. He forced his face into a painful smile.
"Don't you smirk at
me!" boomed Aunt Marge. "I can see you haven't improved since I last
saw you. I hoped school would knock some manners into you." She took a
large gulp of tea, wiped her mustache, and said, "Where is it that you
send him, again, Vernon?"
"St. Brutus's," said
Uncle Vernon promptly. "It's a first-rate institution for hopeless
cases."
"I see," said Aunt
Marge. "Do they use the cane at St. Brutus's, boy?" she barked across
the table.
"Er -"
Uncle Vernon nodded curtly
behind Aunt Marge's back.
"Yes," said Harry.
Then, feeling he might as well do the thing properly, he added, "All the
time."
"Excellent," said Aunt
Marge. "I won't have this namby-pamby, wishy-washy nonsense about not
hitting people who deserve it. A good thrashing is what's needed in ninety-nine
cases out of a hundred. Have you been beaten often?"
"Oh, yeah," said
Harry, "loads of times."
Aunt Marge narrowed her eyes.
"I still don't like your
tone, boy," she said. "If you can speak of your beatings in that
casual way, they clearly aren't hitting you hard enough. Petunia, I'd write if
I were you. Make it clear that you approve the use of extreme force in this
boy's case."
Perhaps Uncle Vernon was worried
that Harry might forget their bargain; in any case, he changed the subject
abruptly.
"Heard the news this
morning, Marge? What about that escaped prisoner, eh?"
As Aunt Marge started to make
herself at home, Harry caught himself thinking almost longingly of life at
number four without her. Uncle Vernon and Aunt Petunia usually encouraged Harry
to stay out of their way, which Harry was only too happy to do. Aunt Marge, on
the other hand, wanted Harry under her eye at all times, so that she could boom
out suggestions for his improvement. She delighted in comparing Harry with
Dudley, and took huge pleasure in buying Dudley expensive presents while
glaring at Harry, as though daring him to ask why he hadn't got a present too.
She also kept throwing out dark hints about what made Harry such an
unsatisfactory person.
"You mustn't blame yourself
for the way the boy's turned out, Vernon," she said over lunch on the
third day. "If there's something rotten on the inside, there's
nothing anyone can do about it."
Harry tried to concentrate on
his food, but his hands shook and his face was starting to burn with anger. Remember
the form, he told himself. Think about Hogsmeade. Don't say anything.
Don't rise -
Aunt Marge reached for her glass
of wine.
"It's one of the basic
rules of breeding," she said. "You see it all the time with dogs. If
there's something wrong with the bitch, there'll be something wrong with the
pup -"
At that moment, the wineglass
Aunt Marge was holding exploded in her hand. Shards of glass flew in every
direction and Aunt Marge sputtered and blinked, her great ruddy face dripping.
"Marge!" squealed Aunt
Petunia. "Marge, are you all right?"
"Not to worry,"
grunted Aunt Marge, mopping her face with her napkin. "Must have squeezed
it too hard. Did the same thing at Colonel Fubster's the other day. No need to
fuss, Petunia, I have a very firm grip..."
But Aunt Petunia and Uncle
Vernon were both looking at Harry suspiciously, so he decided he'd better skip
dessert and escape from the table as soon as he could.
Outside in the hall, he leaned
against the wall, breathing deeply. It had been a long time since he'd lost
control and made something explode. He couldn't afford to let it happen again.
The Hogsmeade form wasn't the only thing at stake - if he carried on like that,
he'd be in trouble with the Ministry of Magic.
Harry was still an underage
wizard, and he was forbidden by wizard law to do magic outside school. His
record wasn't exactly clean either. Only last summer he'd gotten an official
warning that had stated quite clearly that if the Ministry got wind of any more
magic in Privet Drive, Harry would face expulsion from Hogwarts.
He heard the Dursleys leaving
the table and hurried upstairs out of the way.
Harry got through the next three
days by forcing himself to think about his Handbook of Do-It-Yourself
Broomcare whenever Aunt Marge started on him. This worked quite well,
though it seemed to give him a glazed look, because Aunt Marge started voicing
the opinion that he was mentally subnormal.
At last, at long last, the final
evening of Marge's stay arrived. Aunt Petunia cooked a fancy dinner and Uncle
Vernon uncorked several bottles of wine. They got all the way through the soup
and the salmon without a single mention of Harry's faults; during the lemon
meringue pie, Uncle Vernon bored them a with a long talk about Grunnings, his
drill-making company; then Aunt Petunia made coffee and Uncle Vernon brought
out a bottle of brandy.
"Can I tempt you,
Marge?"
Aunt Marge had already had quite
a lot of wine. Her huge face was very red.
"Just a small one,
then," she chuckled. "A bit more than that...and a bit more...that's the
ticket."
Dudley was eating his fourth
slice of pie. Aunt Petunia was sipping coffee with her little finger sticking
out. Harry really wanted to disappear into his bedroom, but he met Uncle
Vernon's angry little eyes and knew he would have to sit it out.
"Aah," said Aunt
Marge, smacking her lips and putting the empty brandy glass back down.
"Excellent nosh, Petunia. It's normally just a fry-up for me of an
evening, with twelve dogs to look after..." She burped richly and patted her
great tweed stomach. "Pardon me. But I do like to see a healthy-sized
boy," she went on, winking at Dudley. "You'll be a proper-sized man,
Dudders, like your father. Yes, I'll have a spot more brandy, Vernon..."
"Now, this one here -"
She jerked her head at Harry,
who felt his stomach clench. The Handbook, he thought quickly.
"This one's got a mean,
runty look about him. You get that with dogs. I had Colonel Fubster drown one
last year. Ratty little thing it was. Weak. Underbred."
Harry was trying to remember
page twelve of his book: A Charm to Cure Reluctant Reversers.
"It all comes down to
blood, as I was saying the other day. Bad blood will out. Now, I'm saying
nothing against your family, Petunia" - she patted Aunt Petunia's bony
hand with her shovel-like one "but your sister was a bad egg. They turn up
in the best families. Then she ran off with a wastrel and here's the result
right in front of us."
Harry was staring at his plate,
a funny ringing in his ears. Grasp your broom firmly by the tail, he
thought. But he couldn't remember what came next. Aunt Marge's voice seemed to
be boring into him like one of Uncle Vernon's drills.
"This Potter," said
Aunt Marge loudly, seizing the brandy bottle and splashing more into her glass
and over the tablecloth, "you never told me what he did?"
Uncle Vernon and Aunt Petunia
were looking extremely tense. Dudley had even looked up from his pie to gape at
his parents.
"He - didn't work,"
said Uncle Vernon, with half a glance at Harry. "Unemployed."
"As I expected!" said
Aunt Marge, taking a huge swig of brandy and wiping her chin on her sleeve.
"A no-account, good-for-nothing, lazy scrounger who -"
"He was not," said
Harry suddenly. The table went very quiet. Harry was shaking all over. He had
never felt so angry in his life.
"MORE BRANDY!" yelled
Uncle Vernon, who had gone very white. He emptied the bottle into Aunt Marge's
glass. "You, boy," he snarled at Harry. "Go to bed, go on
-"
"No, Vernon," hiccuped
Aunt Marge, holding up a hand, her tiny bloodshot eyes fixed on Harry's.
"Go on, boy, go on. Proud of your parents, are you? They go and get
themselves killed in a car crash (drunk, I expect) -"
"They didn't die in a car
crash!" said Harry, who found himself on his feet.
"They died in a car crash,
you nasty little liar, and left you to be a burden on their decent, hardworking
relatives!" screamed Aunt Marge, swelling with fury. "You are an
insolent, ungrateful little -"
But Aunt Marge suddenly stopped
speaking. For a moment, it looked as though words had failed her. She seemed to
be swelling with inexpressible anger - but the swelling didn't stop. Her great
red face started to expand, her tiny eyes bulged, and her mouth stretched too
tightly for speech - next second, several buttons had just burst from her tweed
jacket and pinged off the walls - she was inflating like a monstrous balloon,
her stomach bursting free of her tweed waistband, each of her fingers blowing
up like a salami...
"MARGE!" yelled Uncle
Vernon and Aunt Petunia together as Aunt Marge's whole body began to rise off
her chair toward the ceiling. She was entirely round, now, like a vast life
buoy with piggy eyes, and her hands and feet stuck out weirdly as she drifted
up into the air, making apoplectic popping noises. Ripper came skidding into the
room, barking madly.
"NOOOOOOO!"
Uncle Vernon seized one of
Marge's feet and tried to pull her down again, but was almost lifted from the
floor himself. A second later, Ripper leapt forward and sank his teeth into
Uncle Vernon's leg.
Harry tore from the dining room
before anyone could stop him, heading for the cupboard under the stairs. The
cupboard door burst magically open as he reached it. In seconds, he had heaved
his trunk to the front door. He sprinted upstairs and threw himself under the
bed, wrenching up the loose floorboard, and grabbed the pillowcase full of his
books and birthday presents. He wriggled out, seized Hedwig's empty cage, and
dashed back downstairs to his trunk, just as Uncle Vernon burst out of the
dining room, his trouser leg in bloody tatters.
"COME BACK IN HERE!"
he bellowed. "COME BACK AND PUT HER RIGHT!"
But a reckless rage had come
over Harry. He kicked his trunk open, pulled out his wand, and pointed it at
Uncle Vernon.
"She deserved it,"
Harry said, breathing very fast. "She deserved what she got. You keep away
from me."
He fumbled behind him for the
latch on the door.
"I'm going," Harry
said. "I've had enough." And in the next moment, he
was out in the dark, quiet street, heaving his heavy trunk behind him, Hedwig's
cage under his arm. CHAPTER THREE THE KNIGHT BUS
Harry was several streets away
before he collapsed onto a low wall in Magnolia Crescent, panting from the
effort of dragging his trunk. He sat quite still, anger still surging through
him, listening to the frantic thumping of his heart.
But after ten minutes alone in
the dark street, a new emotion overtook him: panic. Whichever way he looked at
it, he had never been in a worse fix. He was stranded, quite alone, in the dark
Muggle world, with absolutely nowhere to go. And the worst of it was, he had
just done serious magic, which meant that he was almost certainly expelled from
Hogwarts. He had broken the Decree for the Restriction of Underage Wizardry so
badly, he was surprised Ministry of Magic representatives weren't swooping down
on him where he sat.
Harry shivered and looked up and
down Magnolia Crescent.
What, was going to happen to
him? Would he be arrested, or would he simply be outlawed from the wizarding
world? He thought of Ron and Hermione, and his heart sank even lower. Harry was
sure that, criminal or not, Ron and Hermione would want to help him now, but
they were both abroad, and with Hedwig gone, he had no means of contacting
them.
He didn't have any Muggle money,
either. There was a little wizard gold in the money bag at the bottom of his
trunk, but the rest of the fortune his parents had left him was stored in a
vault at Gringotts Wizarding Bank in London. He'd never be able to drag his
trunk all the way to London. Unless...
He looked down at his wand, which
he was still clutching in his hand. If he was already expelled (his heart was.
now thumping painfully fast), a bit more magic couldn't hurt. He had the
Invisibility Cloak he had inherited from his father - what if he bewitched the
trunk to make it feather-light, tied it to his broomstick, covered himself in
the cloak, and flew to London? Then he could get the rest of his money out of
his vault and...begin his life as an outcast. It was a horrible prospect, but he
couldn't sit on this wall forever, or he'd find himself trying to explain to
Muggle police why he was out in the dead of night with a trunk full of spell
books and a broomstick.
Harry opened his trunk again and
pushed the contents aside, looking for the Invisibility Cloak - but before he
had found it, he straightened up suddenly, looking around him once more.
A funny prickling on the back of
his neck had made Harry feel he was being watched, but the street appeared to
be deserted, and no lights shone from any of the large square houses.
He bent over his trunk again,
but almost immediately stood up once more, his hand clenched on his wand. He
had sensed rather than heard it: someone or something was standing in the
narrow gap between the garage and the fence behind him. Harry squinted at the
black alleyway. If only it would move, then he'd know whether it was just a
stray cat or - something else.
"Lumos," Harry
muttered, and a light appeared at the end of his wand, almost dazzling him. He
held it high over his head, and the pebble-dashed walls of number two suddenly
sparkled; the garage door gleamed, and between them Harry saw, quite
distinctly, the hulking outline of something very big, with wide, gleaming
eyes.
Harry stepped backward. His legs
hit his trunk and he tripped. His wand flew out of his hand as he flung out an
arm to break his fall, and he landed, hard, in the gutter.
There was a deafening BANG, and
Harry threw up his hands to shield his eyes against a sudden blinding light...
With a yell, he rolled back onto
the pavement, just in time. A second later, a gigantic pair of wheels and
headlights screeched to a halt exactly where Harry had just been lying. They
belonged, as Harry saw when he raised his head, to a triple-decker, violently
purple bus, which had appeared out of thin air. Gold lettering over the
windshield spelled The Knight Bus.
For a split second, Harry
wondered if he had been knocked silly by his fall. Then a conductor in a purple
uniform leapt out of the bus and began to speak loudly to the night.
"Welcome to the Knight Bus,
emergency transport for the stranded witch or wizard. just stick out your wand
hand, step on board, and we can take you anywhere you want to go. My name is
Stan Shunpike, and I will be your conductor this eve-"
The conductor stopped abruptly.
He had just caught sight of Harry, who was still sitting on the ground. Harry
snatched up his wand again and scrambled to his feet. Close up, he saw that
Stan Shunpike was only a few years older than he was, eighteen or nineteen at
most, with large, protruding ears and quite a few pimples.
"What were you doin' down
there?" said Stan, dropping his professional manner.
"Fell over," said
Harry.
"'Choo fall over for?"
sniggered Stan.
"I didn't do it on
purpose," said Harry, annoyed. One of the knees in his jeans was torn, and
the hand he had thrown out to break his fall was bleeding. He suddenly
remembered why he had fallen over and turned around quickly to stare at the
alleyway between the garage and fence. The Knight Bus's headlamps were flooding
it with light, and it was empty.
"'Choo lookin' at?"
said Stan.
"There was a big black
thing," said Harry, pointing uncertainly into the gap. "Like a
dog...but massive..."
He looked around at Stan, whose
mouth was slightly open. With a feeling of unease, Harry saw Stan's eyes move
to the scar on Harry's forehead.
"Woss that on your
'ead?" said Stan abruptly.
"Nothing," said Harry
quickly, flattening his hair over his scar. If the Ministry of Magic was
looking for him, he didn't want to make it too easy for them.
"Woss your name?" Stan
persisted.
"Neville Longbottom,"
said Harry, saying the first name that came into his head. "So - so this
bus," he went on quickly, hoping to distract Stan, "did you say it
goes anywhere?"
"Yep," said Stan
proudly, "anywhere you like, 'long it's on land. Can't do nuffink
underwater.
"Ere," he said,
looking suspicious again, "you did flag us down, dincha? Stuck out
your wand 'and, dincha?"
"Yes," said Harry
quickly. "Listen, how much would it be to get to London?"
"Eleven Sickles," said
Stan, "but for firteen you get 'ot chocolate, and for fifteen you get an
'ot-water bottle an' a toofbrush in the color of your choice."
Harry rummaged once more in his
trunk, extracted his money bag, and shoved some gold into Stan's hand. He and
Stan then lifted his trunk, with Hedwig's cage balanced on top, up the steps of
the bus.
There were no seats; instead,
half a dozen brass bedsteads stood beside the curtained windows. Candles were
burning in brackets beside each bed, illuminating the wood-paneled walls. A
tiny wizard in a nightcap at the rear of the bus muttered, "Not now,
thanks, I'm pickling some slugs" and rolled over in his sleep.
"You 'ave this one,"
Stan whispered, shoving Harry's trunk under the bed right behind the driver,
who was sitting in an armchair in front of the steering wheel. "This is
our driver, Ernie Prang. This is Neville Longbottom, Ern."
Ernie Prang, an elderly wizard
wearing very thick glasses, nodded to Harry, who nervously flattened his bangs
again and sat down on his bed.
"Take 'er away, Ern,"
said Stan, sitting down in the armchair next to Ernie's.
There was another tremendous
BANG, and the next moment Harry found himself flat on his bed, thrown backward
by the speed of the Knight Bus. Pulling himself up, Harry stared out of the
dark window and saw that they were now bowling along a completely different
street. Stan was watching Harry's stunned face with great enjoyment.
"This is where we was
before you flagged us down," he said. "Where are we, Ern? Somewhere
in Wales?"
"Ar," said Ernie.
"How come the Muggles don't
hear the bus?" said Harry.
"Them!" said Stan
contemptuously. "Don' listen properly, do they? Don' look properly either.
Never notice nuffink, they don'."
"Best go wake up Madam
Marsh, Stan," said Ern. "We'll be in Abergavenny in a minute."
Stan passed Harry's bed and
disappeared up a narrow wooden staircase. Harry was still looking out of the
window, feeling increasingly nervous. Ernie didn't seem to have mastered the
use of a steering wheel. The Knight Bus kept mounting the pavement, but it didn't
hit anything; lines of lampposts, mailboxes, and trash cans jumped out of its
way as it approached and back into position once it had passed.
Stan came back downstairs,
followed by a faintly green witch wrapped in a traveling cloak.
"'Ere you go, Madam Marsh,"
said Stan happily as Ern stamped on the brake and the beds slid a foot or so
toward the front of the bus. Madam Marsh clamped a handkerchief to her mouth
and tottered down the steps. Stan threw her bag out after her and rammed the
doors shut; there was another loud BANG, and they were thundering down a narrow
country lane, trees leaping out of the way.
Harry wouldn't have been able to
sleep even if he had been traveling on a bus that didn't keep banging loudly
and jumping a hundred miles at a time. His stomach churned as he fell back to
wondering what was going to happen to him, and whether the Dursleys had managed
to get Aunt Marge off the ceiling yet.
Stan had unfurled a copy of the Daily
Prophet and was now reading with his tongue between his teeth. A large
photograph of a sunken-faced man with long, matted hair blinked slowly at Harry
from the front page. He looked strangely familiar.
"That man!" Harry
said, forgetting his troubles for a moment. "He was on the Muggle
news!"
Stanley turned to the front page
and chuckled.
"Sirius Black," he
said, nodding. "'Course 'e was on the Muggle news, Neville. Where you
been?"
He gave a superior sort of
chuckle at the blank look on Harry's face, removed the front page, and handed
it to Harry.
"You oughta read the papers
more, Neville."
Harry held the paper up to the
candlelight and read:
BLACK STILL AT LARGE
Sirius Black, possibly the most
infamous prisoner ever to be held in Azkaban fortress, is still eluding
capture, the Ministry of Magic confirmed today.
"We
are doing all we can to recapture Black," said the Minister of Magic,
Cornelius Fudge, this morning, "and we beg the magical community to remain
calm."
Fudge has been criticized by some members of the International Federation of Warlocks
for informing the Muggle Prime Minister of the crisis.
"Well,
really, I had to, don't you know," said an irritable Fudge. "Black is
mad. He's a danger to anyone who crosses him, magic or Muggle. I have the Prime
Minister's assurance that he will not breathe a word of Black's true identity
to anyone. And let's face it - who'd believe him if he did?"
While Muggles have been told that Black is carrying a gun (a kind of metal wand that
Muggles use to kill each other), the magical community lives in fear of a
massacre like that of twelve years ago, when Black murdered thirteen people
with a single curse.
Harry looked into the shadowed
eyes of Sirius Black, the only part of the sunken face that seemed alive. Harry
had never met a vampire, but he had seen pictures of them in his Defense
Against the Dark Arts classes, and Black, with his waxy white skin, looked just
like one.
"Scary-lookin' fing,
inee?" said Stan, who had been watching Harry read.
"He murdered thirteen
people?" said Harry, handing the page back to Stan, "with one
curse?"
"Yep," said Stan,
"in front of witnesses an' all. Broad daylight. Big trouble it caused,
dinnit, Ern?"
"Ar," said Ern darkly.
Stan swiveled in his armchair,
his hands on the back, the better to look at Harry.
"Black woz a big supporter
of You-Know-'Oo," he said.
"What, Voldemort?"
said Harry, without thinking.
Even Stan's pimples went white;
Ern jerked the steering wheel so hard that a whole farmhouse had to jump aside
to avoid the bus.
"You outta your tree?"
yelped Stan. "'Choo say 'is name for?"
"Sorry," said Harry
hastily. "Sorry, I - I forgot -"
"Forgot!" said Stan
weakly. "Blimey, my 'eart's goin' that fast..."
"So - so Black was a
supporter of You-Know-Who?" Harry prompted apologetically.
"Yeah," said Stan,
still rubbing his chest. "Yeah, that's right. Very close to You-Know-'Oo,
they say...anyway, when little 'Arry Potter got the better of You-Know-'Oo"
- Harry nervously flattened his bangs down again - "all You-Know-'Oo's
supporters was tracked down, wasn't they, Ern? Most of 'em knew it was all over,
wiv You-Know-'Oo gone, and they came quiet. But not Sirius Black. I 'eard he
thought 'e'd be second-in-command once You-Know-'Oo 'ad taken over. "Anyway, they cornered
Black in the middle of a street full of Muggles an' Black took out 'is wand and
'e blasted 'alf the street apart, an' a wizard got it, an' so did a dozen
Muggles what got in the way. 'Orrible, eh? An' you know what Black did
then?" Stan continued in a dramatic whisper.
"What?" said Harry.
"Laughed," said Stan.
"Jus' stood there an' laughed. An' when reinforcements from the Ministry
of Magic got there, 'e went wiv em quiet as anyfink, still laughing 'is 'ead
off. 'Cos 'e's mad, inee, Ern? Inee mad?"
"If he weren't when he went
to Azkaban, he will be now," said Ern in his slow voice. "I'd blow
meself up before I set foot in that place. Serves him right, mind you...after
what he did..."
"They 'ad a job coverin' it
up, din' they, Ern?" Stan said. "'Ole street blown up an' all them
Muggles dead. What was it they said 'ad 'appened, Ern?"
"Gas explosion,"
grunted Ernie.
"An' now 'e's out,"
said Stan, examining the newspaper picture of Black's gaunt face again.
"Never been a breakout from Azkaban before, 'as there, Ern? Beats me 'ow
'e did it. Frightenin', eh? Mind, I don't fancy 'is chances against them
Azkaban guards, eh, Ern?"
Ernie suddenly shivered.
"Talk about summat else, Stan, there's a good lad. Them Azkaban guards
give me the collywobbles."
Stan put the paper away
reluctantly, and Harry leaned against the window of the Knight Bus, feeling worse
than ever. He couldn't help imagining what Stan might be telling his passengers
in a few nights' time.
"'Ear about that 'Arry
Potter? Blew up 'is aunt! We 'ad 'im 'ere on the Knight Bus, di'n't we, Ern? 'E
was tryin' to run for it..."
He, Harry, had broken wizard law
just like Sirius Black. Was inflating Aunt Marge bad enough to land him in
Azkaban? Harry didn't know anything about the wizard prison, though everyone
he'd ever heard speak of it did so in the same fearful tone. Hagrid, the
Hogwarts gamekeeper, had spent two months there only last year. Harry wouldn't
soon forget the look of terror on Hagrid's face when he had been told where he
was going, and Hagrid was one of the bravest people Harry knew.
The Knight Bus rolled through
the darkness, scattering bushes and wastebaskets, telephone booths and trees,
and Harry lay, restless and miserable, on his feather bed. After a while, Stan
remembered that Harry had paid for hot chocolate, but poured it all over
Harry's pillow when the bus moved abruptly from Anglesea to Aberdeen. One by
one, wizards and witches in dressing gowns and slippers descended from the
upper floors to leave the bus. They all looked very pleased to go.
Finally, Harry was the only
passenger left.
"Right then, Neville,"
said Stan, clapping his hands, "whereabouts in London?"
"Diagon Alley," said
Harry.
"Righto," said Stan.
"'Old tight, then."
BANG.
They were thundering along
Charing Cross Road. Harry sat up and watched buildings and benches squeezing
themselves out of the Knight Bus's way. The sky was getting a little lighter.
He would lie low for a couple of hours, go to Gringotts the moment it opened,
then set off - where, he didn't know.
Ern slammed on the brakes and
the Knight Bus skidded to a halt in front of a small and shabby-looking pub,
the Leaky Cauldron, behind which lay the magical entrance to Diagon Alley.
"Thanks," Harry said
to Ern.
He jumped down the steps and
helped Stan lower his trunk and Hedwig's cage onto the pavement.
"Well," said Harry.
"'Bye then!"
But Stan wasn't paying
attention. Still standing in the doorway to the bus) he was goggling at the
shadowy entrance to the Leaky Cauldron.
"There you are,
Harry," said a voice.
Before Harry could turn, he felt
a hand on his shoulder. At the same time, Stan shouted, "Blimey! Ern, come
'ere! Come 'ere!"
Harry looked up at the owner of
the hand on his shoulder and felt a bucketful of ice cascade into his stomach -
he had walked right into Cornelius Fudge, the Minister of Magic himself.
Stan leapt onto the pavement
beside them.
"What didja call Neville,
Minister?" he said excitedly.
Fudge, a portly little man in a
long, pinstriped cloak, looked cold and exhausted.
"Neville?" he
repeated, frowning. "This is Harry Potter."
"I knew it!" Stan
shouted gleefully. "Ern! Ern! Guess 'oo Neville is, Ern! 'E's 'Arry
Potter! I can see 'is scar!"
"Yes," said Fudge
testily, "well, I'm very glad the Knight Bus picked Harry up, but he and I
need to step inside the Leaky Cauldron now..."
Fudge increased the pressure on
Harry's shoulder, and Harry found himself being steered inside the pub. A
stooping figure bearing a lantern appeared through the door behind the bar. It
was Tom, the wizened, toothless landlord.
"You've got him,
Minister!" said Tom. "Will you be wanting anything? Beer?
Brandy?"
"Perhaps a pot of
tea," said Fudge, who still hadn't let go of Harry.
There was a loud scraping and
puffing from behind them, and Stan and Ern appeared, carrying Harry's trunk and
Hedwig's cage and looking around excitedly.
"'Ow come you di'n't tell
us 'oo you are, eh, Neville?" said Stan, beaming at Harry, while Ernie's
owlish face peered interestedly over Stan's shoulder.
"And a private parlor,
please, Tom," said Fudge pointedly.
"'Bye," Harry said
miserably to Stan and Ern as Tom beckoned Fudge toward the passage that led
from the bar.
"'Bye, Neville!"
called Stan.
Fudge marched Harry along the
narrow passage after Tom's lantern, and then into a small parlor. Tom clicked
his fingers, a fire burst into life in the grate, and he bowed himself out of
the room.
"Sit down, Harry,"
said Fudge, indicating a chair by the fire.
Harry sat down, feeling goose
bumps rising up his arms despite the glow of the fire. Fudge took off his
pinstriped cloak and tossed it aside, then hitched up the trousers of his
bottle-green suit and sat down opposite Harry.
"I am Cornelius Fudge,
Harry. The Minister of Magic."
Harry already knew this, of
course; he had seen Fudge once before, but as he had been wearing his father's
Invisibility Cloak at the time, Fudge wasn't to know that.
Tom the innkeeper reappeared,
wearing an apron over his nightshirt and bearing a tray of tea and crumpets. He
placed the tray on a table between Fudge and Harry and left the parlor, closing
the door behind him.
"Well, Harry," said
Fudge, pouring out tea, "you've had us all in a right flap, I don't mind
telling you. Running away from your aunt and uncle's house like that! I'd
started to think...but you're safe, and that's what matters."
Fudge buttered himself a crumpet
and pushed the plate toward Harry.
"Eat, Harry, you look dead
on your feet. Now then...You will be pleased to hear that we have dealt with the
unfortunate blowing-up of Miss Marjorie Dursley. Two members of the Accidental
Magic Reversal Department were dispatched to Privet Drive a few hours ago. Miss
Dursley has been punctured and her memory has been modified. She has no
recollection of the incident at all. So that's that, and no harm done."
Fudge smiled at Harry over the
rim of his teacup, rather like an uncle surveying a favorite nephew. Harry, who
couldn't believe his ears, opened his mouth to speak, couldn't think of
anything to say, and closed it again.
"Ah, you're worrying about
the reaction of your aunt and uncle?" said Fudge. "Well, I won't deny
that they are extremely angry, Harry, but they are prepared to take you back
next summer as long as you stay at Hogwarts for the Christmas and Easter
holidays."
Harry unstuck his throat.
"I always stay at Hogwarts
for the Christmas and Easter holidays," he said, "and I don't ever
want to go back to Privet Drive."
"Now, now, I'm sure you'll
feel differently once you've calmed down," said Fudge in a worried tone.
"They are your family, after all, and I'm sure you are fond of each other
- er - very deep down."
It didn't occur to Harry to put
Fudge right. He was still waiting to hear what was going to happen to him now.
"So all that remains,"
said Fudge, now buttering himself a second crumpet, "is to decide where
you're going to spend the last two weeks of your vacation. I suggest you take a
room here at the Leaky Cauldron and..."
"Hang on," blurted
Harry. "What about my punishment?"
Fudge blinked.
"Punishment?"
"I broke the law!"
Harry said. "The Decree for the Restriction of Underage Wizardry!"
"Oh, my dear boy, we're not
going to punish you for a little thing like that!" cried Fudge, waving his
crumpet impatiently. "It was an accident! We don't send people to Azkaban
just for blowing up their aunts!"
But this didn't tally at all
with Harry's past dealings with the Ministry of Magic.
"Last year, I got an
official warning just because a house-elf smashed a pudding in my uncle's
house!" he told Fudge, frowning. "The Ministry of Magic said I'd be
expelled from Hogwarts if there was any more magic there!"
Unless Harry's eyes were
deceiving him, Fudge was suddenly looking awkward.
"Circumstances change,
Harry...We have to take into account...in the present climate...Surely you don't want
to be expelled?"
"Of course I don't,"
said Harry.
"Well then, what's all the
fuss about?" laughed Fudge. "Now, have a crumpet, Harry, while I go and
see if Tom's got a room for you."
Fudge strode out of the parlor
and Harry stared after him. There was something extremely odd going on. Why had
Fudge been waiting for him at the Leaky Cauldron, if not to punish him for what
he'd done? And now Harry came to think of it, surely it wasn't usual for the
Minister of Magic himself to get involved in matters of underage magic?
Fudge came back, accompanied by
Tom the innkeeper.
"Room eleven's free,
Harry," said Fudge. "I think you'll be very comfortable. just one
thing, and I'm sure you'll understand...I don't want you wandering off into
Muggle London, all right? Keep to Diagon Alley. And you're to be back here
before dark each night. Sure you'll understand. Tom will be keeping an eye on
you for me."
"Okay," said Harry
slowly, "but why?"
"Don't want to lose you
again, do we?" said Fudge with a hearty laugh. "No, no...best we know
where you are...I mean..."
Fudge cleared his throat loudly
and picked up his pinstriped cloak.
"Well, I'll be off, plenty
to do, you know..."
"Have you had any luck with
Black yet?" Harry asked.
Fudge's finger slipped on the
silver fastenings of his cloak.
"What's that? Oh, you've
heard - well, no, not yet, but it's only a matter of time. The Azkaban guards
have never yet failed...and they are angrier than I've ever seen them."
Fudge shuddered slightly.
"So, I'll say
good-bye."
He held out his hand and Harry,
shaking it, had a sudden idea.
"Er - Minister? Can I ask
you something?"
"Certainly," said
Fudge with a smile.
"Well, third years at
Hogwarts are allowed to visit Hogsmeade, but my aunt and uncle didn't sign the
permission form. D'you think you could -?"
Fudge was looking uncomfortable.
"Ah," he said.
"No, no, I'm very sorry, Harry, but as I'm not your parent or guardian
-"
"But you're the Minister of
Magic," said Harry eagerly. "If you gave me permission..."
"No, I'm sorry, Harry, but
rules are rules," said Fudge flatly.
"Perhaps you'll be able to
visit Hogsmeade next year. In fact, I think it's best if you don't...yes...well,
I'll be off. Enjoy your stay, Harry."
And with a last smile and shake
of Harry's hand, Fudge left the room. Tom now moved forward, beaming at Harry.
"If you'll follow me, Mr.
Potter," he said, "I've already taken your things up..."
Harry followed Tom up a handsome
wooden staircase to a door with a brass number eleven on it, which Tom unlocked
and opened for him.
Inside was a very
comfortable-looking bed, some highly polished oak furniture, a cheerfully
crackling fire and, perched on top of the wardrobe -
"Hedwig!" Harry
gasped.
The snowy owl clicked her beak
and fluttered down onto Harry's arm.
"Very smart owl you've got
there," chuckled Tom. "Arrived about five minutes after you did. If
there's anything you need, Mr. Potter, don't hesitate to ask."
He gave another bow and left.
Harry sat on his bed for a long
time, absentmindedly stroking Hedwig. The sky outside the window was changing
rapidly from deep, velvety blue to cold, steely gray and then, slowly, to pink
shot with gold. Harry could hardly believe that he'd left Privet Drive only a
few hours ago, that he wasn't expelled, and that he was now facing two
completely Dursley-free weeks.
"It's been a very weird
night, Hedwig," he yawned.
And without even removing his
glasses, he slumped back onto his pillows and fell asleep. CHAPTER FOUR THE LEAKY CAULDRON
It took Harry several days to
get used to his strange new freedom. Never before had he been able to get up
whenever he wanted or eat whatever he fancied. He could even go wherever he
pleased, as long as it was in Diagon Alley, and as this long cobbled street was
packed with the most fascinating wizarding shops in the world, Harry felt no
desire to break his word to Fudge and stray back into the Muggle world.
Harry ate breakfast each morning
in the Leaky Cauldron, where he liked watching the other guests: funny little
witches from the country, up for a day's shopping; venerable-looking wizards
arguing over the latest article in Transfiguration Today; wild-looking
warlocks; raucous dwarfs; and once, what looked suspiciously like a hag, who
ordered a plate of raw liver from behind a thick woolen balaclava.
After breakfast Harry would go
out into the backyard, take out his wand, tap the third brick from the left
above the trash bin, and stand back as the archway into Diagon Alley opened in the
wall.
Harry spent the long sunny days
exploring the shops and eating under the brightly colored umbrellas outside
cafes, where his fellow diners were showing one another their purchases
("It's a lunascope, old boy - no more messing around with moon charts,
see?") or else discussing the case of Sirius Black ("Personally, I
won't let any of the children out alone until he's back in Azkaban").
Harry didn't have to do his homework under the blankets by flashlight anymore;
now he could sit in the bright sunshine outside Florean Fortescue's Ice Cream
Parlor, finishing all his essays with occasional help from Florean Fortescue
himself, who, apart from knowing a great deal about medieval witch burnings,
gave Harry free sundaes every half an hour.
Once Harry had refilled his
money bag with gold Galleons, silver Sickles, and bronze Knuts from his vault
at Gringotts, he had to exercise a lot of self-control not to spend the whole
lot at once. He had to keep reminding himself that he had five years to go at
Hogwarts, and how it would feel to ask the Dursleys for money for spellbooks,
to stop himself from buying a handsome set of solid gold Gobstones (a wizarding
game rather like marbles, in which the stones squirt a nasty-smelling liquid
into the other player's face when they lose a point). He was sorely tempted,
too, by the perfect, moving model of the galaxy in a large glass ball, which
would have meant he never had to take another Astronomy lesson. But the thing
that tested Harry's resolution most appeared in his favorite shop, Quality
Quidditch Supplies, a week after he'd arrived at the Leaky Cauldron.
Curious to know what the crowd
in the shop was staring at, Harry edged his way inside and squeezed in among
the excited witches and wizards until he glimpsed a newly erected podium, on
which was mounted the most magnificent broom he had ever seen in his life.
"Just come out - prototype
-" a square-jawed wizard was telling his companion.
"It's the fastest broom in
the world, isn't it, Dad?" squeaked a boy younger than Harry, who was
swinging off his father's arm.
"Irish International Side's
just put in an order for seven of these beauties!" the proprietor of the
shop told the crowd. "And they're favorites for the World Cup!"
A large witch in front of Harry
moved, and he was able to read the sign next to the broom:
** THE FIREBOLT **
THIS STATE-OF-THE-ART RACING
BROOM SPORTS A STREAM-LINED, SUPERFINE HANDLE OF ASH, TREATED WITH A
DIAMOND-HARD POLISH AND HAND-NUMBERED WITH ITS OWN REGISTRATION NUMBER. EACH
INDIVIDUALLY SELECTED BIRCH TWIG IN THE BROOMTAIL HAS BEEN HONED TO AERODYNAMIC
PERFECTION, GIVING THE FIREBOLT UNSURPASSABLE BALANCE AND PINPOINT PRECISION.
THE FIREBOLT HAS AN ACCELERATION OF 150 MILES AN HOUR IN TEN SECONDS AND
INCORPORATES AN UNBREAKABLE BRAKING CHARM. PRICE ON REQUEST.
Price on request...Harry didn't
like to think how much gold the Firebolt would cost. He had never wanted
anything as much in his whole life - but he had never lost a Quidditch match on
his Nimbus Two Thousand, and what was the point in emptying his Gringotts vault
for the Firebolt, when he had a very good broom already? Harry didn't ask for
the price, but he returned, almost every day after that, just to look at the
Firebolt.
There were, however, things that
Harry needed to buy. He went to the Apothecary to replenish his store of
potions ingredients, and as his school robes were now several inches too short
in the arm and leg, he visited Madam Malkin's Robes for All Occasions and
bought new ones. Most important of all, he had to buy his new schoolbooks,
which would include those for his two new subjects, Care of Magical Creatures
and Divination.
Harry got a surprise as he
looked in at the bookshop window. Instead of the usual display of gold-embossed
spellbooks the size of paving slabs, there was a large iron cage behind the
glass that held about a hundred copies of The Monster Book of Monsters. Torn
pages were flying everywhere as the books grappled with each other, locked
together in furious wrestling matches and snapping aggressively.
Harry pulled his booklist out of
his pocket and consulted it for the first time. The Monster Book of Monsters
was listed as the required book for Care of Magical Creatures. Now Harry
understood why Hagrid had said it would come in useful. He felt relieved; he
had been wondering whether Hagrid wanted help with some terrifying new pet.
As Harry entered Flourish and
Blotts, the manager came hurrying toward him.
"Hogwarts?" he said
abruptly. "Come to get your new books?"
"Yes," said Harry,
"I need -"
"Get out of the way,"
said the manager impatiently, brushing Harry aside. He drew on a pair of very
thick gloves, picked up a large, knobbly walking stick, and proceeded toward
the door of the Monster Books' cage. "Hang on," said
Harry quickly, "I've already got one of those."
"Have you?" A look of
enormous relief spread over the manager's face. "Thank heavens for that.
I've been bitten five times already this morning -"
A loud ripping noise rent the
air; two of the Monster Books had seized a third and were pulling it apart.
"Stop it! Stop it!"
cried the manager, poking the walking stick through the bars and knocking the
books apart. "I'm never stocking them again, never! It's been bedlam! I
thought we'd seen the worst when we bought two hundred copies of the Invisible
Book of Invisibility - cost a fortune, and we never found them...Well...is
there anything else I can help you with?"
"Yes," said Harry,
looking down his booklist, "I need Unfogging the Future by
Cassandra Vablatsky."
"Ah, starting Divination,
are you?" said the manager, stripping off his gloves and leading Harry
into the back of the shop, where there was a corner devoted to fortune-telling.
A small table was stacked with volumes such as Predicting the Unpredictable:
Insulate Yourself Against Shocks and Broken Balls: When Fortunes Turn Foul.
"Here you are," said
the manager, who had climbed a set of steps to take down a thick, black-bound
book. "Unfogging the Future. Very good guide to all your basic
fortune-telling methods - palmistry, crystal balls, bird entrails."
But Harry wasn't listening. His
eyes had fallen on another book, which was among a display on a small table: Death
Omens - What to Do When You Know the Worst Is Coming.
"Oh, I wouldn't read that
if I were you," said the manager lightly, looking to see what Harry was
staring at. "You'll start seeing death omens everywhere. It's enough to
frighten anyone to death."
But Harry continued to stare at
the front cover of the book; it showed a black dog large as a bear, with
gleaming eyes. It looked oddly familiar...
The manager pressed Unfogging
the Future into Harry's hands.
"Anything else?" he
said.
"Yes," said Harry,
tearing his eyes away from the dog's and dazedly consulting his booklist.
"Er - I need Intermediate Transfiguration and The Standard Book
of Spells, Grade Three."
Harry emerged from Flourish and
Blotts ten minutes later with his new books under his arms and made his way
back to the Leaky Cauldron, hardly noticing where he was going and bumping into
several people.
He tramped up the stairs to his
room, went inside, and tipped his books onto his bed. Somebody had been in to
tidy; the windows were open and sun was pouring inside. Harry could hear the
buses rolling by in the unseen Muggle street behind him and the sound of the
invisible crowd below in Diagon Alley. He caught sight of himself in the mirror
over the basin.
"It can't have been a death
omen," he told his reflection defiantly. "I was panicking when I saw
that thing in Magnolia Crescent...It was probably just a stray dog..."
He raised his hand automatically
and tried to make his hair lie flat
"You're fighting a losing
battle there, dear," said his mirror in a wheezy voice.
As the days slipped by, Harry
started looking wherever he went for a sign of Ron or Hermione. Plenty of
Hogwarts students were arriving in Diagon Alley now, with the start of term so
near. Harry met Seamus Finnigan and Dean Thomas, his fellow Gryffindors, in
Quality Quidditch Supplies, where they too were ogling the Firebolt; he also
ran into the real Neville Longbottom, a round-faced, forgetful boy, outside
Flourish and Blotts. Harry didn't stop to chat; Neville appeared to have
mislaid his booklist and was being told off by his very formidable-looking
grandmother. Harry hoped she never found out that he'd pretended to be Neville
while on the run from the Ministry of Magic.
Harry woke on the last day of
the holidays, thinking that he would at least meet Ron and Hermione tomorrow,
on the Hogwarts Express. He got up, dressed, went for a last look at the
Firebolt, and was just wondering where he'd have lunch, when someone yelled his
name and he turned.
"Harry! HARRY!"
They were there, both of them,
sitting outside Florean Fortescue's Ice Cream Parlor - Ron looking incredibly
freckly, Hermione very brown, both waving frantically at him.
"Finally!" said Ron,
grinning at Harry as he sat down. "We went to the Leaky Cauldron, but they
said you'd left, and we went to Flourish and Blotts, and Madam Malkin's, and
-"
"I got all my school stuff
last week," Harry explained. "And how come you knew I'm staying at
the Leaky Cauldron?"
"Dad," said Ron
simply.
Mr. Weasley, who worked at the
Ministry of Magic, would of course have heard the whole story of what had
happened to Aunt Marge.
"Did you really blow up
your aunt, Harry?" said Hermione in a very serious voice. "I didn't mean
to," said Harry, while Ron roared with laughter. "I just - lost
control."
"It's not funny, Ron,"
said Hermione sharply. "Honestly, I'm amazed Harry wasn't expelled."
"So am I," admitted
Harry. "Forget expelled, I thought I was going to be arrested." He
looked at Ron. "Your dad doesn't know why Fudge let me off, does he?"
"Probably 'cause it's you,
isn't it?" shrugged Ron, still chuckling. "Famous Harry Potter and
all that. I'd hate to see what the Ministry'd do to me if I blew up an aunt.
Mind you, they'd have to dig me up first, because Mum would've killed me.
Anyway, you can ask Dad yourself this evening. We're staying at the Leaky
Cauldron tonight too! So you can come to King's Cross with us tomorrow!
Hermione's there as well!"
Hermione nodded, beaming.
"Mum and Dad dropped me off this morning with all my Hogwarts
things."
"Excellent!" said
Harry happily. "So, have you got all your new books and stuff?"
"Look at this," said
Ron, pulling a long thin box out of a bag and opening it. "Brand-new wand.
Fourteen inches, willow, containing one unicorn tail-hair. And we've got all
our books -" He pointed at a large bag under his chair. "What about
those Monster Books, eh? The assistant nearly cried when we said we wanted
two."
"What's all that,
Hermione?" Harry asked, pointing at not one but three bulging bags in the
chair next to her.
"Well, I'm taking more new
subjects than you, aren't I," said Hermione. "Those are my books for
Arithmancy, Care of Magical Creatures, Divination, the Study of Ancient Runes,
Muggle Studies -"
"What are you doing Muggle
Studies for?" said Ron, rolling his eyes at Harry. "You're
Muggle-born! Your mum and dad are Muggles! You already know all about
Muggles!"
"But it'll be fascinating
to study them from the wizarding point of view," said Hermione earnestly.
"Are you planning to eat or
sleep at all this year, Hermione?" asked Harry, while Ron sniggered.
Hermione ignored them.
"I've still got ten
Galleons," she said, checking her purse. "It's my birthday in September,
and Mum and Dad gave me some money to get myself an early birthday
present."
"How about a nice book?
said Ron innocently.
"No, I don't think
so," said Hermione composedly. "I really want an owl. I mean, Harry's
got Hedwig and you've got Errol -"
"I haven't," said Ron.
"Errol's a family owl. All I've got is Scabbers." He pulled his pet
rat out of his pocket. "And I want to get him checked over," he
added, placing Scabbers on the table in front of them. "I don't think Egypt
agreed with him."
Scabbers was looking thinner
than usual, and there was a definite droop to his whiskers.
"There's a magical creature
shop just over there," said Harry, who knew Diagon Alley very well by now.
"You could see if they've got anything for Scabbers, and Hermione can get
her owl."
So they paid for their ice cream
and crossed the street to the Magical Menagerie.
There wasn't much room inside.
Every inch of wall was hidden by cages. It was smelly and very noisy because
the occupants of these cages were all squeaking, squawking, jabbering, or
hissing. The witch behind the counter was already advising a wizard on the care
of double-ended newts, so Harry, Ron, and Hermione waited, examining the cages.
A pair of enormous purple toads
sat gulping wetly and feasting on dead blowflies. A gigantic tortoise with a
jewel-encrusted shell was glittering near the window. Poisonous orange snails
were oozing slowly up the side of their glass tank, and a fat white rabbit kept
changing into a silk top hat and back again with a loud popping noise. Then
there were cats of every color, a noisy cage of ravens, a basket of funny
custard-colored furballs that were humming loudly, and on the counter, a vast
cage of sleek black rats that were playing some sort of skipping game using
their long, bald tails.
The double-ended newt wizard
left, and Ron approached the counter.
"It's my rat," he told
the witch. "He's been a bit off-color ever since I brought him back from
Egypt."
"Bang him on the
counter," said the witch, pulling a pair of heavy black spectacles out of
her pocket.
Ron lifted Scabbers out of his
inside pocket and placed him next to the cage of his fellow rats, who stopped
their skipping tricks and scuffled to the wire for a better took.
Like nearly everything Ron
owned, Scabbers the rat was secondhand (he had once belonged to Ron's brother
Percy) and a bit battered. Next to the glossy rats in the cage, he looked
especially woebegone.
"Hm," said the witch,
picking up Scabbers. "How old is this rat?"
"Dunno," said Ron.
"Quite old. He used to belong to my brother."
"What powers does he
have?" said the witch, examining Scabbers closely.
"Er -" The truth was
that Scabbers had never shown the faintest trace of interesting powers. The
witch's eyes moved from Scabbers's tattered left ear to his front paw, which
had a toe missing, and tutted loudly.
"He's been through the
mill, this one," she said.
"He was like that when
Percy gave him to me," said Ron defensively.
"An ordinary common or
garden rat like this can't be expected to live longer than three years or
so," said the witch. "Now, if you were looking for something a bit
more hard-wearing, you might like one of these -"
She indicated the black rats,
who promptly started skipping again. Ron muttered, "Show-offs."
"Well, if you don't want a
replacement, you can try this rat tonic," said the witch, reaching under
the counter and bringing out a small red bottle.
"Okay," said Ron.
"How much - OUCH!"
Ron buckled as something huge
and orange came soaring from the top of the highest cage, landed on his head, and
then propelled itself, spitting madly, at Scabbers.
"NO, CROOKSHANKS, NO!"
cried the witch, but Scabbers shot from between her hands like a bar of soap,
landed splay-legged on the floor, and then scampered for the door.
"Scabbers!" Ron
shouted, racing out of the shop after him; Harry followed.
It took them nearly ten minutes
to catch Scabbers, who had taken refuge under a wastepaper bin outside Quality
Quidditch Supplies. Ron stuffed the trembling rat back into his pocket and
straightened up, massaging his head.
"What was
that?" "It was either a very
big cat or quite a small tiger," said Harry.
"Where's Hermione?"
"Probably getting her
owl."
They made their way back up the
crowded street to the Magical Menagerie. As they reached it, Hermione came out,
but she wasn't carrying an owl. Her arms were clamped tightly around the
enormous ginger cat.
"You bought that
monster?" said Ron, his mouth hanging open.
"He's gorgeous,
isn't he?" said Hermione, glowing. That was a matter of
opinion, thought Harry. The cat's ginger fur was thick and fluffy, but it was
definitely a bit bowlegged and its face looked grumpy and oddly squashed, as
though it had run headlong into a brick wall. Now that Scabbers was out of
sight, however, the cat was purring contentedly in Hermione's arms.
"Hermione, that thing
nearly scalped me!" said Ron.
"He didn't mean to, did
you, Crookshanks?" said Hermione.
"And what about
Scabbers?" said Ron, pointing at the lump in his chest pocket. "He
needs rest and relaxation! How's he going to get it with that thing
around?"
"That reminds me, you
forgot your rat tonic," said Hermione, slapping the small red bottle into
Ron's hand. "And stop worrying, Crookshanks will be sleeping in my
dormitory and Scabbers in yours, what's the problem? Poor Crookshanks, that
witch said he'd been in there for ages; no one wanted him."
"Wonder why," said Ron
sarcastically as they set off toward the Leaky Cauldron.
They found Mr. Weasley sitting
in the bar, reading the Daily Prophet. "Harry!" he said,
smiling as he looked up. "How are you?"
"Fine, thanks," said
Harry as he, Ron, and Hermione joined Mr. Weasley with their shopping.
Mr. Weasley put down his paper,
and Harry saw the now familiar picture of Sirius Black staring up at him.
"They still haven't caught
him, then?" he asked.
"No," said Mr.
Weasley, looking extremely grave. "They've pulled us all off our regular
jobs at the Ministry to try and find him, but no luck so far."
"Would we get a reward if
we caught him?" asked Ron. "It'd be good to get some more money
-"
"Don't be ridiculous,
Ron," said Mr. Weasley, who on closer inspection looked very strained.
"Black's not going to be caught by a thirteen-year-old wizard. It's the
Azkaban guards who'll get him back, You mark my words."
At that moment Mrs. Weasley
entered the bar, laden with shopping bags and followed by the twins, Fred and
George, who were about to start their fifth year at Hogwarts; the newly elected
Head Boy, Percy; and the Weasleys" youngest child and only girl, Ginny.
Ginny, who had always been very
taken with Harry, seemed even more heartily embarrassed than usual when she saw
him, perhaps because he had saved her life during their previous year at
Hogwarts. She went very red and muttered "hello" without looking at
him. Percy, however, held out his hand solemnly as though he and Harry had
never met and said, "Harry. How nice to see you."
"Hello, Percy," said
Harry, trying not to laugh.
"I hope you're well?"
said Percy pompously, shaking hands. It was rather like being introduced to the
mayor.
"Very well, thanks -"
"Harry!" said Fred,
elbowing Percy out of the way and bowing deeply. "Simply splendid
to see you, old boy -" "Marvelous," said
George, pushing Fred aside and seizing Harry's hand in turn. "Absolutely
spiffing."
Percy scowled.
"That's enough, now,"
said Mrs. Weasley.
"Mum!" said Fred, as
though he'd only just spotted her and seizing her hand, too. "How really
corking to see you -"
"I said, that's
enough," said Mrs. Weasley, depositing her shopping in an empty chair.
"Hello, Harry, dear. I suppose you've heard our exciting news?" She
pointed to the brand-new silver badge on Percy's chest. "Second Head Boy
in the family!" she said, swelling with pride.
"And last," Fred
muttered under his breath.
I don't doubt that," said
Mrs. Weasley, frowning suddenly. "I notice they haven't made you two
prefects."
"What do we want to be
prefects for?" said George, looking revolted at the very idea. "It'd
take all the fun out of life."
Ginny giggled.
"You want to set a better
example for your sister!" snapped Mrs. Weasley.
"Gunny's got other brothers
to set her an example, Mother," said Percy loftily. "I'm going up to
change for dinner..."
He disappeared and George heaved
a sigh.
"We tried to shut him in a
pyramid," he told Harry. "But Mum spotted us."
Dinner that night was a very
enjoyable affair. Tom the innkeeper put three tables together in the parlor,
and the seven Weasleys, Harry, and Hermione ate their way through five
delicious courses.
"How're we getting to
King's Cross tomorrow, Dad?" asked Fred as they dug into a sumptuous
chocolate pudding.
"The Ministry's providing a
couple of cars," said Mr. Weasley.
Everyone looked up at him.
"Why?" said Percy
curiously.
"It's because of you,
Perce," said George seriously. "And there'll be little flags on the
hoods, with HB on them-"
"- for Humongous
Bighead," said Fred.
Everyone except Percy and Mrs.
Weasley snorted into their pudding.
"Why are the Ministry
providing cars, Father?" Percy asked again, in a dignified voice.
"Well, as we haven't got
one anymore," said Mr. Weasley, "and as I work there, they're doing
me a favor..."
His voice was casual, but Harry
couldn't help noticing that Mr. Wesley's ears had gone red, just like Ron's did
when he was under pressure.
"Good thing, too,"
said Mrs. Weasley briskly. "Do you realize how much luggage you've all got
between you? A nice sight you'd be on the Muggle Underground...You are all
packed, aren't you?"
"Ron hasn't put all his new
things in his trunk yet," said Percy, in a long-suffering voice.
"He's dumped them on my bed."
"You'd better go and pack
properly, Ron, because we won't have much time in the morning," Mrs.
Weasley called down the table. Ron scowled at Percy.
After dinner everyone felt very
full and sleepy. One by one they made their way upstairs to their rooms to
check their things for the next day. Ron and Percy were next door to Harry. He
had just closed and locked his own trunk when he heard angry voices through the
wall, and went to see what was going on.
The door of number twelve was
ajar and Percy was shouting.
"It was here, on the
bedside table, I took it off for polishing -"
"I haven't touched it, all
right?" Ron roared back.
"What's up?" said
Harry.
"My Head Boy badge is
gone," said Percy, rounding on Harry.
"So's Scabbers's Rat
Tonic," said Ron, throwing things out of his trunk to look. "I think
I might've left it in the bar -"
"You're not going anywhere
till you've found my badge!" yelled Percy.
"I'll get Scabbers's stuff,
I'm packed," Harry said to Ron, and he went downstairs.
Harry was halfway along the
passage to the bar, which was now very dark, when he heard another pair of
angry voices coming from the parlor. A second later, he recognized them as Mr.
and Mrs. Weasleys". He hesitated, not wanting them to know he'd heard them
arguing, when the sound of his own name made him stop, then move closer to the
parlor door.
"...makes no sense not to
tell him," Mr. Weasley was saying heatedly. "Harry's got a right to
know. I've tried to tell Fudge, but he insists on treating Harry like a child.
He's thirteen years old and -"
"Arthur, the truth would
terrify him!" said Mrs. Weasley shrilly. "Do you really want to send
Harry back to school with that hanging over him? For heaven's sake, he's happy
not knowing!"
"I don't want to make him
miserable, I want to put him on his guard!" retorted Mr. Weasley.
"You know what Harry and Ron are like, wandering off by themselves -
they've ended up in the Forbidden Forest twice! But Harry mustn't do that this
year! When I think what could have happened to him that night he ran away from
home! If the Knight Bus hadn't picked him up, I'm prepared to bet he would have
been dead before the Ministry found him."
"But he's not dead,
he's fine, so what's the point -"
"Molly, they say Sirius
Black's mad, and maybe he is, but he was clever enough to escape from Azkaban,
and that's supposed to be impossible. It's been three weeks, and no one's seen
hide nor hair of him, and I don't care what Fudge keeps telling the Daily
Prophet, we're no nearer catching Black than inventing self-spelling wands.
The only thing we know for sure is what Black's after -"
"But Harry will be
perfectly safe at Hogwarts."
"We thought Azkaban was
perfectly safe. If Black can break out of Azkaban, he can break into
Hogwarts."
"But no one's really sure
that Black's after Harry -"
There was a thud on wood, and
Harry was sure Mr. Weasley had banged his fist on the table.
"Molly, how many times do I
have to tell you? They didn't report it in the press because Fudge wanted it
kept quiet, but Fudge went out to Azkaban the night Black escaped. The guards
told Fudge that Blacks been talking in his sleep for a while now. Always the
same words: "He's at Hogwarts...he's at Hogwarts." Black is deranged,
Molly, and he wants Harry dead. If you ask me, he thinks murdering Harry will bring
You-Know-Who back to power. Black lost everything the night Harry stopped
You-Know-Who, and he's had twelve years alone in Azkaban to brood on
that..."
There was a silence. Harry
leaned still closer to the door, desperate to hear more.
"Well, Arthur, you must do
what you think is right. But you're forgetting Albus Dumbledore. I don't think
anything could hurt Harry at Hogwarts while Dumbledore's Headmaster. I suppose
he knows about all this?"
"Of course he knows. We had
to ask him if he minds the Azkaban guards stationing themselves around the
entrances to the school grounds. He wasn't happy about it, but he agreed."
"Not happy? Why shouldn't
he be happy, if they're there to catch Black?"
"Dumbledore isn't fond of
the Azkaban guards," said Mr. Weasley heavily. "Nor am I, if it comes
to that...but when you're dealing with a wizard like Black, you sometimes have to
join forces with those you'd rather avoid."
"If they save Harry -"
"- then I will never say
another word against them, said Mr. Weasley wearily. "It's late, Molly,
we'd better go up..."
Harry heard chairs move. As
quietly as he could, he hurried down the passage to the bar and out of sight.
The parlor door opened, and a few seconds later footsteps told him that Mr. and
Mrs. Weasley were climbing the stairs.
The bottle of rat tonic was
lying under the table they had sat at earlier. Harry waited until he heard Mr.
and Mrs. Wesley's bedroom door close, then headed back upstairs with the
bottle.
Fred and George were crouching
in the shadows on the landing, heaving with laughter as they listened to Percy
dismantling his and Ron's room in search of his badge.
"We've got it," Fred
whispered to Harry. "We've been improving it."
The badge now read Bighead
Boy.
Harry forced a laugh, went to
give Ron the rat tonic, then shut himself in his room and lay down on his bed.
So Sirius Black was after him.
This explained everything. Fudge had been lenient with him because he was so
relieved to find him alive. He'd made Harry promise to stay in Diagon Alley
where there were plenty of wizards to keep an eye on him. And he was sending
two Ministry cars to take them all to the station tomorrow, so that the
Weasleys could look after Harry until he was on the train.
Harry lay listening to the
muffled shouting next door and wondered why he didn't feel more scared. Sirius
Black had murdered thirteen people with one curse; Mr. and Mrs., Weasley
obviously thought Harry would be panic-stricken if he knew the truth. But Harry
happened to agree wholeheartedly with Mrs. Weasley that the safest place on
earth was wherever Albus Dumbledore happened to be. Didn't people always say
that Dumbledore was the only person Lord Voldemort had ever been afraid of?
Surely Black, as Voldemort's right-hand man, would be just as frightened of
him? And then there were these
Azkaban guards everyone kept talking about. They seemed to scare most people
senseless, and if they were stationed all around the school, Black's chances of
getting inside seemed very remote.
No, all in all, the thing that
bothered Harry most was the fact that his chances of visiting Hogsmeade now
looked like zero. Nobody would want Harry to leave the safety of the castle
until Black was caught; in fact, Harry suspected his every move would be
carefully watched until the danger had passed.
He scowled at the dark ceiling.
Did they think he couldn't look after himself? He'd escaped Lord Voldemort
three times; he wasn't completely useless... Unbidden, the image of the
beast in the shadows of Magnolia Crescent crossed his mind. What to do when
you know the worst is coming...
"I'm not going to be
murdered," Harry said out loud. "That's the spirit,
dear," said his mirror sleepily. CHAPTER FIVE THE DEMENTORTom woke Harry the next
morning with his usual toothless grin and a cup of tea. Harry got dressed and
was just persuading a disgruntled Hedwig to get back into her cage when Ron
banged his way into the room, pulling a sweatshirt over his head and looking
irritable.
"The sooner we get on the
train, the better," he said. "At least I can get away from Percy at
Hogwarts. Now he's accusing me of dripping tea on his photo of Penelope
Clearwater. You know," Ron grimaced, "his girlfriend. She's hidden
her face under the frame because her nose has gone all blotchy..."
"I've got something to tell
you," Harry began, but they were interrupted by Fred and George, who had
looked in to congratulate Ron on infuriating Percy again.
They headed down to breakfast,
where Mr. Weasley was reading the front page of the Daily Prophet with a
furrowed brow and Mrs. Weasley was telling Hermione and Ginny about a love
potion she'd made as a young girl. All three of them were rather giggly.
"What were you
saying?" Ron asked Harry as they sat down.
"Later," Harry
muttered as Percy stormed in.
Harry had no chance to speak to
Ron or Hermione in the chaos of leaving; they were too busy heaving all their
trunks down the Leaky Cauldron's narrow staircase and piling them up near the
door, with Hedwig and Hermes, Percy's screech owl, perched on top in their
cages. A small wickerwork basket stood beside the heap of trunks, spitting
loudly.
"It's all right,
Crookshanks," Hermione cooed through the wickerwork. "I'll let you
out on the train."
"You won't," snapped
Ron. "What about poor Scabbers, eh?"
He pointed at his chest, where a
large lump indicated that Scabbers was curled up in his pocket.
Mr. Weasley, who had been
outside waiting for the Ministry cars, stuck his head inside.
"They're here, he said.
"Harry, come on."
Mr. Weasley marched Harry across
the short stretch of pavement toward the first of two old-fashioned dark green
cars, each of which was driven by a furtive-looking wizard wearing a suit of
emerald velvet.
"In you get, Harry,"
said Mr. Weasley, glancing up and down the crowded street.
Harry got into the back of the
car and was shortly joined by Hermione, Ron, and, to Ron's disgust, Percy.
The journey to King's Cross was
very uneventful compared with Harry's trip on the Knight Bus. The Ministry of
Magic cars seemed almost ordinary. though Harry noticed that they could slide
through gaps that Uncle Vernon's new company car certainly couldn't have
managed. They reached King's Cross with twenty minutes to spare; the Ministry
drivers found them trolleys, unloaded their trunks, touched their hats in
salute to Mr. Weasley, and drove away, somehow managing to jump to the head of
an unmoving line at the traffic lights.
Mr. Weasley kept close to
Harry's elbow all the way into the station.
"Right then," he said,
glancing around them. "Let's do this in pairs, as there are so many of us.
I'll go through first with Harry."
Mr. Weasley strolled toward the
barrier between platforms nine and ten, pushing Harry's trolley and apparently
very interested in the InterCity 125 that had just arrived at platform nine.
With a meaningful look at Harry, he leaned casually against the barrier. Harry
imitated him.
In a moment, they had fallen
sideways through the solid metal onto platform nine and three-quarters and
looked up to see the Hogwarts Express, a scarlet steam engine, puffing smoke
over a platform packed with witches and wizards seeing their children onto the
train.
Percy and Ginny suddenly
appeared behind Harry. They were panting and had apparently taken the barrier
at a run.
"Ah, there's
Penelope!" said Percy, smoothing his hair and going pink again. Ginny
caught Harry's eye, and they both turned away to hide their laughter as Percy
strode over to a girl with long, curly hair, walking with his chest thrown out
so that she couldn't miss his shiny badge.
Once the remaining Weasleys and
Hermione had joined them, Harry and Mr. Weasley led the way to the end of the
train, past packed compartments, to a carriage that looked quite empty. They
loaded the trunks onto it, stowed Hedwig and Crookshanks in the luggage rack,
then went back outside to say goodbye to Mr. and Mrs. Weasley.
Mrs. Weasley kissed all her
children, then Hermione, and finally Harry. He was embarrassed, but really
quite pleased, when she gave him an extra hug.
"Do take care, won't you
Harry?" she said as she straightened up, her eyes oddly bright. Then she opened
her enormous handbag and said, "I've made you all sandwiches. Here you
are, Ron...no, they're not corned beef... Fred? Where's Fred? Here you are
dear..."
"Harry," said Mr.
Weasley quietly, "come over here for a moment."
He jerked his head towards a
pillar, and Harry followed him behind it, leaving the others crowded around
Mrs. Weasley.
"There's something I've got
to tell you before you leave -" said Mr. Weasley in a tense voice.
"It's all right, Mr.
Weasley," said Harry, "I already know."
"You know? How could you
know?"
"I - er - I heard you and
Mrs. Wesley talking last night. I couldn't help hearing," Harry added
quickly. "Sorry -"
"That's not the way I'd
have chosen for you to find out," said Mr. Weasley looking anxious..
"No - honestly it's OK.
This way, you haven't broken your word to Fudge and I know what's going
on."
"Harry, you must be scared
- "
"I'm not," said Harry
sincerely. "Really," he added, because Mr. Weasley was looking
disbelieving. "I'm not trying to be a hero, but seriously, Sirius Black
can't be worse than Lord Voldemort, can he?"
Mr. Weasley flinched at the
sound of the name, but overlooked it.
"Harry, I knew you were,
well, made of stronger stuff than Fudge seems to think, and I'm obviously
pleased that you're not scared, but -"
"Arthur!" called Mrs.
Weasley, who was now shepherding the rest onto the train. "Arthur, what
are you doing? It's about to go!"
"He's coming Molly!"
said Mr. Weasley, but he turned back to Harry and kept talking in a lower and
more hurried voice, "Listen, I want you to give me your word -"
" - that I'll be a good boy
and stay in the castle?" said Harry gloomily.
"Not entirely," said
Mr. Weasley, who looked more serious than Harry had ever seen him. "Harry,
swear to me you won't go looking for Black."
Harry stared, "What!"
There was a loud whistle. Guards
were walking along the train, slamming all the doors shut.
"Promise me, Harry,"
said Mr. Weasley, talking more quickly still, "that whatever happens
-"
"Why would I go looking for
someone I know wants to kill me?" said Harry blankly.
"Swear to me that whatever
you might hear -" "Arthur, quickly!"
cried Mrs. Weasley.
Steam was billowing from the
train it had started to move. Harry ran to the compartment door and Ron threw
it open and stood back to let him on. They leaned out of the window and waved
at Mr. and Mrs. Weasley until the train turned a corner and blocked them from
view.
"I need to talk to you in
private," Harry muttered to Ron and Hermione as the train picked up speed.
"Go away, Ginny," said
Ron.
"Oh, that's nice,"
said Ginny huffily, and she stalked off.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione set off
down the corridor, looking for an empty compartment, but all were full except
for the one at the very end of the train.
This had only one occupant, a
man sitting fast asleep next to the window. Harry, Ron, and Hermione checked on
the threshold. The Hogwarts Express was usually reserved for students and they
had never seen an adult there before, except for the witch who pushed the food
cart.
The stranger was wearing an
extremely shabby set of wizard's robes that had been darned in several places.
He looked ill and exhausted. Though quite young, his light brown hair was
flecked with gray.
"Who d'you reckon he
is?" Ron hissed as they sat down and slid the door shut, taking the seats
farthest away from the window.
"Professor R. J.
Lupin." whispered Hermione at once.
"How'd you know that?"
"It's on his case,"
she replied, pointing at the luggage rack over the man's head, where there was
a small, battered case held together with a large quantity of neatly knotted
string. The name Professor R. J. Lupin was stamped across one corner in peeling
letters.
"Wonder what he
teaches?" said Ron, frowning at Professor Lupin's pallid profile.
"That's obvious,"
whispered Hermione. "There's only one vacancy, isn't there? Defense
Against the Dark Arts."
Harry, Ron, and Hermione had
already had two Defense Against the Dark Arts teachers, both of whom had lasted
only one year. There were rumors that the job was jinxed.
"Well, I hope he's up to
it," said Ron doubtfully. "He looks like on, good hex would finish
him off, doesn't he? Anyway..." he turned to Harry, "what were you
going to tell us?"
Harry explained all about Mr.
and Mrs. Wesley's argument and the warning Mr. Weasley had just given him. When
he'd finished, Ron looked thunderstruck, and Hermione had her hands over her
mouth. She finally lowered them to say, "Sirius Black escaped to come
after you? Oh, Harry...you'll have to be really, really careful. don't go
looking for trouble, Harry..."
"I don't go looking for
trouble," said Harry, nettled. "Trouble usually finds me." "How thick would Harry
have to be, to go looking for a nutter who wants to kill him?" said Ron
shakily.
They were taking the news worse
than Harry had expected. Both Ron and Hermione seemed to be much more
frightened of Black than he was.
"No one knows how he got
out of Azkaban," said Ron uncomfortably. "No one's ever done it
before. And he was a top-security prisoner too."
"But they'll catch him,
won't they?" said Hermione earnestly. "I mean, they've got all the
Muggles looking out for him too..."
"What's that noise?"
said Ron suddenly.
A faint, tinny sort of whistle
was coming from somewhere. They looked all around the compartment.
"It's coming from your
trunk, Harry," said Ron, standing up and reaching into the luggage rack. A
moment later he had pulled the Pocket Sneakoscope out from between Harry's
robes. It was spinning very fast in the palm of Ron's hand and glowing
brilliantly.
"Is that a Sneakoscope?"
said Hermione interestedly, standing up for a better look. "Yeah...mind you, it's a
very cheap one," Ron said. "It went haywire just as I was tying it to
Errol's leg to send it to Harry."
"Were you doing anything
untrustworthy at the time?" said Hermione shrewdly.
"No! Well...I wasn't supposed
to be using Errol. You know he's not really up to long journeys...but how else
was I supposed to get Harry's present to him?"
"Stick it back in the
trunk," Harry advised as the Sneakoscope whistled piercingly, "or
it'll wake him up."
He nodded toward Professor
Lupin. Ron stuffed the Sneakoscope into a particularly horrible pair of Uncle
Vernon's old socks, which deadened the sound, then closed the lid of the trunk
on it.
"We could get it checked in
Hogsmeade," said Ron, sitting back down. "They sell that sort of
thing in Dervish and Banges, magical instruments and stuff. Fred and George
told me."
"Do you know much about
Hogsmeade?" asked Hermione keenly. "I've read it's the only entirely
non-Muggle settlement in Britain -"
"Yeah, I think it is,"
said Ron in an offhand sort of way. "but that's not why I want to go. I
just want to get inside Honeydukes!"
"What's that?" said
Hermione.
"It's this sweetshop,"
said Ron, a dreamy look coming over his face, "where they've got everything...Pepper
Imps - they make you smoke at the mouth - and great fat Chocoballs full of
strawberry mousse and clotted cream, and really excellent sugar quills, which
you can suck in class and just look like you're thinking what to write
next-"
"But Hogsmeade's a very
interesting place, isn't it?" Hermione pressed on eagerly. "In Sites
of Historical Sorcery it says the inn was the headquarters for the 1612
goblin rebellion, and the Shrieking Shack's supposed to be the most severely
haunted building in Britain -"
"- and massive sherbet balls
that make you levitate a few inches off the ground while you're sucking
them," said Ron, who was plainly not listening to a word Hermione was
saying.
Hermione looked around at Harry.
"Won't it be nice to get
out of school for a bit and explore Hogsmeade?"
"'Spect it will," said
Harry heavily. "You'll have to tell me when you've found out."
"What d'you mean?"
said Ron.
"I can't go. The Dursleys
didn't sign my permission form, and Fudge wouldn't either."
Ron looked horrified.
"You're not allowed to
come? But - no way - McGonagall or someone will give you permission -"
Harry gave a hollow laugh.
Professor McGonagall, head of Gryffindor house, was very strict.
"- or we can ask Fred and
George, they know every secret passage out of the castle -"
"Ron!" said Hermione
sharply. "I don't think Harry should be sneaking out of the school with
Black on the loose -"
"Yeah, I expect that's what
McGonagall will say when I ask of permission," said Harry bitterly.
"But if we're with
him," said Ron spiritedly to Hermione. "Black wouldn't dare -"
"Oh, Ron, don't talk
rubbish," snapped Hermione. "Black's already murdered a whole bunch
of people in the middle of a crowded street, do you really think he's going to
worry about attacking Harry just because we're there?"
She was fumbling with the straps
of Crookshanks's basket as she spoke.
"Don't let that thing
out!" Ron said, but too late; Crookshanks leapt lightly from the basket,
stretched, yawned, and sprang onto Ron's knees; the lump in Ron's pocket
trembled and he shoved Crookshanks angrily away.
"Get out of it!"
"Ron, don't!" said
Hermione angrily.
Ron was about to answer back
when Professor Lupin stirred. They watched him apprehensively, but he simply
turned his head the other way, mouth slightly open, and slept on.
The Hogwarts Express moved
steadily north and the scenery outside the window became wilder and darker
while the clouds overhead thickened overhead. People were chasing backwards and
forwards past the door of their compartment. Crookshanks had now settled in an empty
seat, his squashed face turned towards Ron, his yellow eyes on Ron's top
pocket.
At one o'clock the plump witch
with the food cart arrived at the compartment door.
D'you think we should wake him
up?" Ron asked awkwardly, nodding towards Professor Lupin. "He looks
like he could do with some food."
Hermione approached Professor
Lupin cautiously.
"Er - Professor?" she
said. "Excuse me - Professor?"
He didn't move.
"Don't worry, dear,"
said the witch, as she handed a large stack of cauldron cakes. "If he's hungry
when he wakes, I'll be up front with the driver."
"I suppose he is
asleep?" said Ron quietly, as the witch slid the compartment door closed.
"I mean - he hasn't died, has he?"
"No, no, he's
breathing," whispered Hermione, taking the cauldron cake Harry passed her.
He might not be very good
company, but Professor Lupin's presence in their compartment had its uses.
Mid-afternoon, just as it had started to rain, blurring the rolling hills
outside the window, they heard footsteps outside in the corridor again, and
their three least favorite people appeared at the door: Draco Malfoy, flanked
by his cronies, Vincent Crabbe and Gregory Goyle.
Draco Malfoy and Harry had been
enemies ever since they had met on their very first journey to Hogwarts.
Malfoy, who had a pale, pointed, sneering face, was in Slytherin house; he
played Seeker on the Slytherin Quidditch team, the same position that Harry
played on the Gryffindor team. Crabbe and Goyle seemed to exist to do Malfoy's
bidding. They were both wide and muscly; Crabbe was taller, with a pudding-bowl
haircut and a very thick neck; Goyle had short, bristly hair and long, gorilla
arms.
"Well, look who it
is," said Malfoy in his usual lazy drawl, pulling open the compartment
door. "Potty and the Weasel."
Crabbe and Goyle chuckled
trollishly.
"I heard your father
finally got his hands on some gold this summer, Weasley," said Malfoy.
"Did your mother die of shock?"
Ron stood up so quickly he
knocked Crookshanks's basket to the floor. Professor Lupin gave a snort.
"Who's that?" said
Malfoy, taking an automatic step backward as he spotted Lupin.
"New teacher," said
Harry, who got to his feet, too, in case he needed to hold Ron back. "What
were you saying, Malfoy?"
Malfoy's pale eyes narrowed; he
wasn't fool enough to pick a fight right under a teacher's nose.
"C'mon," he muttered
resentfully to Crabbe and Goyle, and they disappeared.
Harry and Ron sat down again,
Ron massaging his knuckles.
"I'm not going to take any
crap from Malfoy this year," he said angrily. "I mean it. If he makes
one more crack about my family, I'm going to get hold of his head and -" Ron made a violent gesture
in midair.
"Ron," hissed
Hermione, pointing at Professor Lupin, "be careful..."
But Professor Lupin was still
fast asleep.
The rain thickened as the train
sped yet farther north; the windows were now a solid, shimmering gray, which
gradually darkened until lanterns flickered into life all along the corridors
and over the luggage racks. The train rattled, the rain hammered, the wind
roared, but still, Professor Lupin slept.
"We must be nearly
there," said Ron, leaning forward to look past Professor Lupin at the now
completely black window.
The words had hardly left him
when the train started to slow down.
"Great," said Ron,
getting up and walking carefully past Professor Lupin to try and see outside.
"I'm starving. I want to get to the feast..."
"We can't be there
yet," said Hermione, checking her watch.
"So why're we
stopping?"
The train was getting slower and
slower. As the noise of the pistons fell away, the wind and rain sounded louder
than ever against the windows.
Harry, who was nearest the door,
got up to look into the corridor. All along the carriage, heads were sticking
curiously out of their compartments.
The train came to a stop with a
jolt, and distant thuds and bangs told them that luggage had fallen out of the
racks. Then, without warning, all the lamps went out and they were plunged into
total darkness.
"What's going on?"
said Ron's voice from behind Harry.
"Ouch!" gasped
Hermione. "Ron, that was my foot!"
Harry felt his way back to his
seat.
"D'you think we've broken
down?"
"Dunno..."
There was a squeaking sound, and
Harry saw the dim black outline of Ron, wiping a patch clean on the window and
peering out.
"There's something moving
out there," Ron said. "I think people are coming aboard..."
The compartment door suddenly
opened and someone fell painfully over Harry's legs.
"Sorry! D'you know what's
going on? Ouch! Sorry -"
"Hullo, Neville," said
Harry, feeling around in the dark and pulling Neville up by his cloak.
"Harry? Is that you? What's
happening?"
"No idea! Sit down -"
There was a loud hissing and a
yelp of pain; Neville had tried to sit on Crookshanks.
"I'm going to go and ask
the driver what's going on," came Hermione's voice. Harry felt her pass
him, heard the door slide open again, and then a thud and two loud squeals of
pain.
"Who's that?"
"Who's that?"
"Ginny?"
"Hermione?"
"What are you doing?"
"I was looking for Ron
-"
"Come in and sit down
-"
"Not here!" said Harry
hurriedly. "I'm here!"
"Ouch!" said Neville.
"Quiet!" said a hoarse
voice suddenly.
Professor Lupin appeared to have
woken up at last. Harry could hear movements in his corner.
None of them spoke.
There was a soft, crackling
noise, and a shivering light filled the compartment. Professor Lupin appeared
to be holding a handful of flames. They illuminated his tired, gray face, but
his eyes looked alert and wary.
"Stay where you are."
he said in the same hoarse voice, and he got slowly to his feet with his
handful of fire held out in front of him.
But the door slid slowly open
before Lupin could reach it.
Standing in the doorway,
illuminated by the shivering flames in Lupin's hand, was a cloaked figure that
towered to the ceiling. Its face was completely hidden beneath its hood.
Harry's eyes darted downward, and what he saw made his stomach contract. There
was a hand protruding from the cloak and it was glistening, grayish,
slimy-looking, and scabbed, like something dead that had decayed in water...
But it was visible only for a
split second. As though the creature beneath the cloak sensed Harry's gaze, the
hand was suddenly withdrawn into the folds of its black cloak.
And then the thing beneath the
hood, whatever it was, drew a long, slow, rattling breath, as though it were trying
to suck something more than air from its surroundings.
An intense cold swept over them
all. Harry felt his own breath catch in his chest. The cold went deeper than
his skin. It was inside his chest, it was inside his very heart...
Harry's eyes rolled up into his
head. He couldn't see. He was drowning in cold. There was a rushing in his ears
as though of water. He was being dragged downward, the roaring growing louder...
And then, from far away, he
heard screaming, terrible, terrified, pleading screams. He wanted to help
whoever it was, he tried to move his arms, but couldn't...a thick white fog was
swirling around him, inside him -
"Harry! Harry! Are you all
right?"
Someone was slapping his face.
"W-what?"
Harry opened his eyes; there
were lanterns above him, and the floor was shaking - the Hogwarts Express was
moving again and the lights had come back on. He seemed to have slid out of his
seat onto the floor. Ron and Hermione were kneeling next to him, and above them
he could see Neville and Professor Lupin watching. Harry felt very sick; when
he put up his hand to push his glasses back on, he felt cold sweat on his face.
Ron and Hermione heaved him back
onto his seat.
"Are you okay?" Ron
asked nervously.
"Yeah," said Harry,
looking quickly toward the door. The hooded creature had vanished. "What
happened? Where's that - that thing? Who screamed?"
"No one screamed,"
said Ron, more nervously still.
Harry looked around the bright
compartment. Ginny and Neville looked back at him, both very pale.
"But I heard screaming
-"
A loud snap made them all jump.
Professor Lupin was breaking an enormous slab of chocolate into pieces.
"Here," he said to
Harry, handing him a particularly large piece. "Eat it. It'll help."
Harry took the chocolate but
didn't eat it.
"What was that thing?"
he asked Lupin.
"A Dementor," said
Lupin, who was now giving chocolate to everyone else. "One of the
Dementors of Azkaban."
Everyone stared at him.
Professor Lupin crumpled up the empty chocolate wrapper and put it in his
pocket.
"Eat," he repeated.
"It'll help. I need to speak to the driver, excuse me..."
He strolled past Harry and
disappeared into the corridor.
"Are you sure you're okay,
Harry?" said Hermione, watching Harry anxiously.
"I don't get it... what
happened?" said Harry, wiping more sweat off his face.
"Well - that thing - the
Dementor - stood there and looked around (I mean, I think it did, I couldn't
see its face) - and you - you -"
"I thought you were having
a fit or something," said Ron, who still looked scared. "You went
sort of rigid and fell out of your seat and started twitching -"
"And Professor Lupin
stepped over you, and walked toward the Dementor, and pulled out his
wand," said Hermione, "and he said, 'None of us is hiding Sirius
Black under our cloaks. Go.' But the Dementor didn't move, so Lupin muttered
something, and a silvery thing shot out of his wand at it, and it turned around
and sort of glided away..."
"It was horrible,"
said Neville, in a higher voice than usual. "Did you feel how cold it got
when it came in?"
"I felt weird," said
Ron, shifting his shoulders uncomfortably. "Like I'd never be cheerful
again..."
Ginny, who was huddled in her
corner looking nearly as bad as Harry felt, gave a small sob; Hermione went
over and put a comforting arm around her.
"But didn't any of you -
fall off your seats?" said Harry awkwardly.
"No," said Ron,
looking anxiously at Harry again. "Ginny was shaking like mad,
though..."
Harry didn't understand. He felt
weak and shivery, as though he were recovering from a bad bout of flu; he also
felt the beginnings of shame. Why had he gone to pieces like that, when no one
else had?
Professor Lupin had come back.
He paused as he entered, looked around, and said, with a small smile, "I
haven't poisoned that chocolate, you know..."
Harry took a bite and to his
great surprise felt warmth spread suddenly to the tips of his fingers and toes.
"We'll be at Hogwarts in
ten minutes," said Professor Lupin. "Are you all right, Harry?"
Harry didn't ask how Professor
Lupin knew his name.
"Fine," he muttered,
embarrassed.
They didn't talk much during the
remainder of the journey. At long last, the train stopped at Hogsmeade station,
and there was a great scramble to get outside; owls hooted, cats meowed, and
Neville's pet toad croaked loudly from under his hat. It was freezing on the
tiny platform; rain was driving down in icy sheets.
"Firs' years this
way!" called a familiar voice. Harry, Ron, and Hermione turned and saw the
gigantic outline of Hagrid at the other end of the platform, beckoning the
terrified-looking new students forward for their traditional journey across the
lake.
"All right, you
three?" Hagrid yelled over the heads of the crowd. They waved at him, but
had no chance to speak to him because the mass of people around them was
shunting them away along the platform. Harry, Ron, and Hermione followed the
rest of the school along the platform and out onto a rough mud track, where at
least a hundred stagecoaches awaited the remaining students, each pulled, Harry
could only assume, by an invisible horse, because when they climbed inside and
shut the door, the coach set off all by itself, bumping and swaying in
procession.
The coach smelled faintly of
mold and straw. Harry felt better since the chocolate, but still weak. Ron and
Hermione kept looking at him sideways, as though frightened he might collapse
again.
As the carriage trundled toward
a pair of magnificent wrought iron gates, flanked with stone columns topped
with winged boars, Harry saw two more towering, hooded Dementors, standing
guard on either side. A wave of cold sickness threatened to engulf him again;
he leaned back into the lumpy seat and closed his eyes until they had passed
the gates. The carriage picked up speed on the long, sloping drive up to the
castle; Hermione was leaning out of the tiny window, watching the many turrets
and towers draw nearer. At last, the carriage swayed to a halt, and Hermione
and Ron got out.
As Harry stepped down, a
drawling, delighted voice sounded in his ear.
"You fainted, Potter? Is
Longbottom telling the truth? You actually fainted?"
Malfoy elbowed past Hermione to
block Harry's way up the stone steps to the castle, his face gleeful and his
pale eyes glinting maliciously.
"Shove off, Malfoy,"
said Ron, whose jaw was clenched.
"Did you faint as well,
Weasley?" said Malfoy loudly. "Did the scary old Dementor frighten
you too, Weasley?"
"Is there a problem?"
said a mild voice. Professor Lupin had just gotten out of the next carriage.
Malfoy gave Professor Lupin an
insolent stare, which took in the patches on his robes and the dilapidated
suitcase. With a tiny hint of sarcasm in his voice, he said, "Oh, no - er
- Professor," then he smirked at Crabbe and Goyle and led them up
the steps into the castle.
Hermione prodded Ron in the back
to make him hurry, and the three of them joined the crowd swarming up the
steps, through the giant oak front doors, into the cavernous Entrance Hall,
which was lit with flaming torches, and housed a magnificent marble staircase
that led to the upper floors.
The door into the Great Hall
stood open at the right; Harry followed the crowd toward it, but had barely
glimpsed the enchanted ceiling, which was black and cloudy tonight, when a
voice called, "Potter! Granger! I want to see you both!"
Harry and Hermione turned
around, surprised. Professor McGonagall, Transfiguration teacher and head of
Gryffindor House, was calling over the heads of the crowd. She was a stern
looking witch who wore her hair in a tight bun; her sharp eyes were framed with
square spectacles. Harry fought his way over to her with a feeling of
foreboding: Professor McGonagall had a way of making him feel he must have done
something wrong.
"There's no need to look so
worried - I just want a word in my office," she told them. "Move
along there, Weasley."
Ron stared as Professor
McGonagall ushered Harry and Hermione away from the chattering crowd; they
accompanied her across the entrance hall, up the marble staircase, and along a
corridor.
Once they were in her office, a
small room with a large, welcoming fire, Professor McGonagall motioned Harry
and Hermione to sit down. She settled herself behind her desk and said
abruptly, "Professor Lupin sent an owl ahead to say that you were taken
ill on the train, Potter."
Before Harry could reply, there
was a soft knock on the door and Madam Pomfrey, the nurse, came bustling in.
Harry felt himself going red in
the face. It was bad enough that he'd passed out, or whatever he had done,
without everyone making all this fuss.
"I'm fine," he said,
"I don't need anything -"
"Oh, it's you, is it?"
said Madam Pomfrey, ignoring this and bending down to stare closely at him.
"I suppose you've been doing something dangerous again?"
"It was a Dementor,
Poppy," said Professor McGonagall.
They exchanged a dark look, and
Madam Pomfrey clucked disapprovingly.
"Setting Dementors around a
school, she muttered, pushing back Harry's hair and feeling his forehead.
"He won't be the last one who collapses. Yes, he's all clammy. Terrible
things, they are, and the effect they have on people who are already delicate -"
"I'm not delicate!"
said Harry crossly.
"Of course you're
not," said Madam Pomfrey absentmindedly, now taking his pulse.
"What does he need?"
said Professor McGonagall crisply. "Bed rest? Should he perhaps spend
tonight in the hospital wing?"
"I'm fine!"
said Harry, jumping up. The thought of what Draco Malfoy would say if he had to
go to the hospital wing was torture.
"Well, he should have some
chocolate, at the very least," said Madam Pomfrey, who was now trying to
peer into Harry's eyes.
"I've already had
some," said Harry. "Professor Lupin gave me some. He gave it to all
of us."
"Did he, now?" said
Madam Pomfrey approvingly. "So we've finally got a Defense Against the
Dark Arts teacher who knows his remedies?"
"Are you sure you feel all
right, Potter?" Professor McGonagall said sharply.
"Yes," said Harry.
"Very well. Kindly wait
outside while I have a quick word with Miss Granger about her course schedule,
then we can go down to the feast together."
Harry went back into the
corridor with Madam Pomfrey, who left for the hospital wing, muttering to
herself. He had to wait only a few minutes; then Hermione emerged looking very
happy about something, followed by Professor McGonagall, and the three of them
made their way back down the marble staircase to the Great Hall.
It was a sea of pointed black
hats; each of the long House tables was lined with students, their faces
glimmering by the light of thousands of candles, which were floating over the
tables in midair. Professor Flitwick, who was a tiny little wizard with a shock
of white hair, was carrying an ancient hat and a three-legged stool out of the
hall.
"Oh," said Hermione
softly, "we've missed the Sorting!"
New students at Hogwarts were
sorted into Houses by trying on the Sorting Hat, which shouted out the House
they were best suited to (Gryffindor, Ravenclaw, Hufflepuff, or Slytherin).
Professor McGonagall strode off toward her empty seat at the staff table, and
Harry and Hermione set off in the other direction, as quietly as possible,
toward the Gryffindor table. People looked around at them as they passed along
the back of the hall, and a few of them pointed at Harry. Had the story of his
collapsing in front of the Dementor traveled that fast?
He and Hermione sat down on
either side of Ron, who had saved them seats.
"What was all that
about?" he muttered to Harry.
Harry started to explain in a
whisper, but at that moment the headmaster stood up to speak, and he broke off.
Professor Dumbledore, though
very old, always gave an impression of great energy. He had several feet of
long silver hair and beard, half-moon spectacles, and an extremely crooked
nose. He was often described as the greatest wizard of the age, but that wasn't
why Harry respected him. You couldn't help trusting Albus Dumbledore, and as Harry
watched him beaming around at the students, he felt really calm for the first
time since the Dementor had entered the train compartment.
"Welcome!" said
Dumbledore, the candlelight shimmering on his beard. "Welcome to another
year at Hogwarts! I have a few things to say to you all, and as one of them is
very serious, I think it best to get it out of the way before you become
befuddled by our excellent feast..."
Dumbledore cleared his throat
and continued, "As you will all be aware after their search of the
Hogwarts Express, our school is presently playing host to some of the Dementors
of Azkaban, who are here on Ministry of Magic business."
He paused, and Harry remembered
what Mr. Weasley had said about Dumbledore not being happy with the Dementors
guarding the school.
"They are stationed at
every entrance to the grounds," Dumbledore continued, "and while they
are with us, I must make it plain that nobody is to leave school without
permission. Dementors are not to be fooled by tricks or disguises - or even Invisibility
Cloaks," he added blandly, and Harry and Ron glanced at each other.
"It is not in the nature of a Dementor to understand pleading or excuses.
I therefore warn each and every one of you to give them no reason to harm you.
I look to the prefects, and our new Head Boy and Girl, to make sure that no
student runs afoul of the Dementors," he said.
Percy, who was sitting a few
seats down from Harry, puffed out his chest again and stared around
impressively. Dumbledore paused again; he looked very seriously around the
hall, and nobody moved or made a sound.
"On a happier note,"
he continued, I am pleased to welcome two new teachers to our ranks this year.
"First, Professor Lupin,
who has kindly consented to fill the post of Defense Against the Dark Arts
teacher."
There was some scattered, rather
unenthusiastic applause. Only those who had been in the compartment on the
train with Professor Lupin clapped hard, Harry among them. Professor Lupin
looked particularly shabby next to all the other teachers in their best robes.
"Look at Snape!" Ron
hissed in Harry's ear.
Professor Snape, the Potions
master, was staring along the staff table at Professor Lupin. It was common
knowledge that Snape wanted the Defense Against the Dark Arts job, but even
Harry, who hated Snape, was startled at the expression twisting his thin,
sallow face. it was beyond anger: it was loathing. Harry knew that expression
only too well; it was the look Snape wore every time he set eyes on Harry.
"As to our second new
appointment," Dumbledore continued as the lukewarm applause for Professor
Lupin died away. "Well, I am sorry to tell you that Professor Kettleburn,
our Care of Magical Creatures teacher, retired at the end of last year in order
to enjoy more time with his remaining limbs. However, I am delighted to say
that his place will be filled by none other than Rubeus Hagrid, who has agreed
to take on this teaching job in addition to his gamekeeping duties."
Harry, Ron, and Hermione stared
at one another, stunned. Then they joined in with the applause, which was
tumultuous at the Gryffindor table in particular. Harry leaned forward to see
Hagrid, who was ruby red in the face and staring down at his enormous hands,
his wide grin hidden in the tangle of his black beard.
"We should've known!"
Ron roared, pounding the table. "Who else would have assigned us a biting
book?"
Harry, Ron, and Hermione were
the last to stop clapping, and as Professor Dumbledore started speaking again,
they saw that Hagrid was wiping his eyes on the tablecloth.
"Well, I think that's
everything of importance," said Dumbledore. "Let the feast
begin!"
The golden plates and goblets
before them filled suddenly with food and drink. Harry, suddenly ravenous,
helped himself to everything he could reach and began to eat.
It was a delicious feast; the
hall echoed with talk, laughter, and the clatter of knives and forks. Harry,
Ron, and Hermione, however, were eager for it to finish so that they could talk
to Hagrid. They knew how much being made a teacher would mean to him. Hagrid
wasn't a fully qualified wizard; he had been expelled from Hogwarts in his
third year for a crime he had not committed. It had been Harry, Ron, and
Hermione who had cleared Hagrid's name last year.
At long last, when the last
morsels of pumpkin tart had melted from the golden platters, Dumbledore gave
the word that it was time for them all to go to bed, and they got their chance.
"Congratulations,
Hagrid!" Hermione squealed as they reached the teachers' table.
"All down ter you
three," said Hagrid, wiping his shining face on his napkin as he looked up
at them. "Can' believe it...great man, Dumbledore...came straight down to me
hut after Professor Kettleburn said he'd had enough...It's what I always
wanted..."
Overcome with emotion, he buried
his face in his napkin, and Professor McGonagall shooed them away.
Harry, Ron, and Hermione joined
the Gryffindors streaming up the marble staircase and, very tired now, along
more corridors, up more and more stairs, to the hidden entrance to Gryffindor
Tower, where a large portrait of a fat lady in a pink dress asked them,
"Password?"
"Coming through, coming
through!" Percy called from behind the crowd. "The new password's Fortuna
Major!"
"Oh no," said Neville
Longbottom sadly. He always had trouble remembering the passwords.
Through the portrait hole and
across the common room, the girls and boys divided toward their separate
staircases. Harry climbed the spiral stair with no thought in his head except
how glad he was to be back. They reached their familiar, circular dormitory
with its five four-poster beds, and Harry, looking around, felt he was home at
last. CHAPTER SIX TALONS AND TEA LEAVES
When Harry, Ron, and Hermione
entered the Great Hall for breakfast the next day, the first thing they saw was
Draco Malfoy, who seemed to be entertaining a large group of Slytherins with a
very funny story. As they passed, Malfoy did a ridiculous impression of a
swooning fit and there was a roar of laughter.
"Ignore him," said
Hermione, who was right behind Harry. "Just ignore him, it's not worth
it..."
"Hey, Potter!"
shrieked Pansy Parkinson, a Slytherin girl with a face like a pug.
"Potter! The Dementors are coming, Potter! Woooooooooo!"
Harry dropped into a seat at the
Gryffindor table, next to George Weasley. "New third-year course
schedules," said George, passing then, over. "What's up with you,
Harry?"
"Malfoy," said Ron,
sitting down on George's other side and glaring over at the Slytherin table.
George looked up in time to see
Malfoy pretending to faint with terror again.
"That little git," he
said calmly. "He wasn't so cocky last night when the Dementors were down
at our end of the train. Came running into our compartment, didn't he,
Fred?"
"Nearly wet himself,"
said Fred, with a contemptuous glance at Malfoy.
"I wasn't too happy myself,"
said George. "They're horrible things, those Dementors..."
"Sort of freeze your
insides, don't they?" said Fred.
"You didn't pass out,
though, did you?" said Harry in a low voice.
"Forget it, Harry,"
said George bracingly. "Dad had to go out to Azkaban one time, remember,
Fred? And he said it was the worst place he'd ever been, he came back all weak
and shaking...They suck the happiness out of a place, Dementors. Most of the
prisoners go mad in there."
"Anyway, we'll see how
happy Malfoy looks after our first Quidditch match," said Fred.
"Gryffindor versus Slytherin, first game of the season, remember?"
The only time Harry and Malfoy
had faced each other in a Quidditch match, Malfoy had definitely come off
worse. Feeling slightly more cheerful, Harry helped himself to sausages and
fried tomatoes.
Hermione was examining her new
schedule.
"Ooh, good, we're starting
some new subjects today," she said happily.
"Hermione," said Ron,
frowning as he looked over her shoulder, "they've messed up your
timetable. Look - they've got you down for about ten subjects a day. There
isn't enough time."
"I'll manage. I've fixed it
all with Professor McGonagall."
"But look," said Ron,
laughing, "see this morning? Nine o'clock, Divination. And underneath,
nine o'clock, Muggle Studies. And -" Ron leaned closer to the timetable,
disbelieving, "look - underneath that, Arithmancy, nine o'clock.
I mean, I know you're good, Hermione, but no one's that good. How're you
supposed to be in three classes at once?"
"Don't be silly," said
Hermione shortly. "Of course I won't be in three classes at once."
"Well then -"
"Pass the marmalade,"
said Hermione.
"But -"
"Oh, Ron, what's it to you
if my timetable's a bit full?" Hermione snapped. "I told you, I've
fixed it all with Professor McGonagall."
Just then, Hagrid entered the
Great Hall. He was wearing his long moleskin overcoat and was absent-mindedly
swinging a dead polecat from one enormous hand.
"All righ'?" he said
eagerly, pausing on his way to the staff table. "Yer in my firs' ever
lesson! Right after lunch! Bin up since five getting' everthin' ready...hope it's
OK...me, a teacher...hones'ly..."
He grinned broadly at them and
headed off to the staff table, still swinging the polecat.
"Wonder what he's been
getting ready?" said Ron, a note of anxiety in his voice.
The Hall was starting to empty
as people headed off towards their first lesson. Ron checked his schedule.
"We'd better go, look,
Divination's at the top of North Tower. It'll take us ten minutes to get
there..."
They finished breakfast hastily,
said goodbye to Fred and George and walked back through the hall. As they
passed the Slytherin table, Malfoy did yet another impression of a fainting
fit. The shouts of laughter followed Harry into the Entrance Hall.
The journey through the castle
to North Tower was a long one. Two years at Hogwarts hadn't taught them
everything about the castle, and they had never been inside North Tower before.
"There's - got - to - be -
a - short - cut," Ron panted, as they climbed the seventh long staircase
and emerged on an unfamiliar landing, where there was nothing but a large
painting of a bare stretch of grass hanging on the stone wall.
"I think it's this
way," said Hermione, peering down the empty passage to the right.
"Can't be," said Ron.
"That's south. Look, you can see a bit of the lake outside the
window..."
Harry was watching the painting.
A fat, dappled-gray pony had just ambled onto the grass and was grazing
nonchalantly. Harry was used to the subjects of Hogwarts paintings moving
around and leaving their frames to visit each other, but he always enjoyed
watching them. A moment later, a short, squat knight in a suit of armor had
clanked into the picture after his pony. By the look of the grass stains on his
metal knees, he had just fallen off.
"Aha!" he yelled,
seeing Harry, Ron and Hermione. "What villains are these, that trespass
upon my private lands! Come to scorn at my fall, perchance? Draw, you knaves,
you dogs!"
They watched in astonishment as
the little knight tugged his sword out of its scabbard and began brandishing it
violently, hopping up and down in rage. But the sword was too long for him; a
particularly wild swing made him overbalance, and he landed facedown in the
grass.
"Are you all right?"
said Harry, moving closer to the picture.
"Get back, you scurvy
braggart! Back, you rogue!"
The knight seized his sword
again and used it to push himself back up, but the blade sank deeply into the
grass and, though he pulled with all his might, he couldn't get it out again.
Finally, he had to flop back down onto the grass and push up his visor to mop
his sweating face.
"Listen," said Harry,
taking advantage of the knight's exhaustion, "we're looking for the North
Tower. You don't know the way, do you?"
"A quest!" The
knight's rage seemed to vanish instantly. He clanked to his feet and shouted,
"Come follow me, dear friends, and we shall find our goal, or else shall
perish bravely in the charge!"
He gave the sword another
fruitless tug, tried and failed to mount the fat pony, gave up, and cried,
"On foot then, good sirs and gentle lady! On! On!"
And he ran, clanking loudly,
into the left side of the frame and out of sight.
They hurried after him along the
corridor, following the sound of his armor. Every now and then they spotted him
running through a picture ahead.
"Be of stout heart, the
worst is yet to come!" yelled the knight, and they saw him reappear in
front of an alarmed group of women in crinolines, whose picture hung on the
wall of a narrow spiral staircase.
Puffing loudly, Harry, Ron, and
Hermione climbed the tightly spiraling steps, getting dizzier and dizzier,
until at last they heard the murmur of voices above them and knew they had
reached the classroom.
"Farewell!" cried the
knight, popping his head into a painting of some sinister-looking monks.
"Farewell, my comrades-in-arms! If ever you have need of noble heart and
steely sinew, call upon Sir Cadogan!"
"Yeah, we'll call
you," muttered Ron as the knight disappeared, "if we ever need
someone mental."
They climbed the last few steps
and emerged onto a tiny landing, where most of the class was already assembled.
There were no doors off this landing, but Ron nudged Harry and pointed at the
ceiling, where there was a circular trapdoor with a brass plaque on it.
"'Sibyll Trelawney,
Divination teacher,'" Harry read. "How're we supposed to get up
there?"
As though in answer to his
question, the trapdoor suddenly opened, and a silvery ladder descended right at
Harry's feet. Everyone got quiet.
"After you," said Ron,
grinning, so Harry climbed the ladder first.
He emerged into the
strangest-looking classroom he had ever seen. In fact, it didn't look like a
classroom at all, more like a cross between someone's attic and an
old-fashioned tea shop. At least twenty small, circular tables were crammed
inside it, all surrounded by chintz armchairs and fat little poufs. Everything
was lit with a dim, crimson light; the curtains at the windows were all closed,
and the many lamps were draped with dark red scarves. It was stiflingly warm,
and the fire that was burning under the crowded mantelpiece was giving off a
heavy, sickly sort of perfume as it heated a large copper kettle. The shelves
running around the circular walls were crammed with dusty-looking feathers,
stubs of candles, many packs of tattered playing cards, countless silvery
crystal balls, and a huge array of teacups.
Ron appeared at Harry's shoulder
as the class assembled around them, all talking in whispers.
"Where is she?" Ron
said.
A voice came suddenly out of the
shadows, a soft, misty sort of voice.
"Welcome," it said.
"How nice to see you in the physical world at last."
Harry's immediate impression was
of a large, glittering insect. Professor Trelawney moved into the firelight,
and they saw that she was very thin; her large glasses magnified her eyes to several
times their natural size, and she was draped in a gauzy spangled shawl.
Innumerable chains and beads hung around her spindly neck, and her arms and
hands were encrusted with bangles and rings.
"Sit, my children,
sit," she said, and they all climbed awkwardly into armchairs or sank onto
poufs. Harry, Ron, and Hermione sat themselves around the same round table.
"Welcome to
Divination," said Professor Trelawney, who had seated herself in a winged
armchair in front of the fire. "My name is Professor Trelawney. You may
not have seen me before. I find that descending too often into the hustle and
bustle of the main school clouds my Inner Eye."
Nobody said anything to this
extraordinary pronouncement. Professor Trelawney delicately rearranged her
shawl and continued, "So you have chosen to study Divination, the most
difficult of all magical arts. I must warn you at the outset that if you do not
have the Sight, there is very little I will be able to teach you...Books can take
you only so far in this field..."
At these words, both Harry and
Ron glanced, grinning, at Hermione, who looked startled at the news that books
wouldn't be much help in this subject.
"Many witches and wizards,
talented though they are in the area of loud bangs and smells and sudden
disappearings, are yet unable to penetrate the veiled mysteries of the
future," Professor Trelawney went on, her enormous, gleaming eyes moving
from face to nervous face. "It is a Gift granted to few. You, boy,"
she said suddenly to Neville, who almost toppled off his pouf. "Is your
grandmother well?"
"I think so," said
Neville tremulously.
"I wouldn't be so sure if I
were you, dear," said Professor Trelawney, the firelight glinting on her
long emerald earrings. Neville gulped. Professor Trelawney continued placidly.
"We will be covering the basic methods of Divination this year. The first
term will be devoted to reading the tea leaves. Next term we shall progress to
palmistry. By the way, my dear," she shot suddenly at Parvati Patil,
"beware a red-haired man."
Parvati gave a startled look at
Ron, who was right behind her and edged her chair away from him.
"In the second term,"
Professor Trelawney went on, "we shall progress to the crystal ball - if
we have finished with fire omens, that is. Unfortunately, classes will be
disrupted in February by a nasty bout of flu. I myself will lose my voice. And
around Easter, one of our number will leave us for ever."
A very tense silence followed
this pronouncement, but Professor Trelawney seemed unaware of it.
"I wonder, dear," she
said to Lavender Brown, who was nearest and shrank back in her chair, "if
you could pass me the largest silver teapot?"
Lavender, looking relieved,
stood up, took an enormous teapot from the shelf, and put it down on the table
in front of Professor Trelawney.
"Thank you, my dear.
Incidentally, that thing you are dreading - it will happen on Friday the
sixteenth of October."
Lavender trembled.
"Now, I want you all to
divide into pairs. Collect a teacup from the shelf, come to me, and I will fill
it. Then sit down and drink, drink until only the dregs remain. Swill these
around the cup three times with the left hand, then turn the cup upside down on
its saucer, wait for the last of the tea to drain away, then give your cup to
your partner to read. You will interpret the patterns using pages five and six
of Unfogging the Future. I shall move among you, helping and
instructing. Oh, and dear," - she caught Neville by the arm as he made to
stand up, "after you've broken your first cup, would you be so kind as to
select one of the blue patterned ones? I'm rather attached to the pink."
Sure enough, Neville had no
sooner reached the shelf of teacups when there was a tinkle of breaking china.
Professor Trelawney swept over to him holding a dustpan and brush and said,
"One of the blue ones, then, dear, if you wouldn't mind...thank you..."
When Harry and Ron had had their
teacups filled, they went back to their table and tried to drink the scalding
tea quickly. They swilled the dregs around as Professor Trelawney had instructed,
then drained the cups and swapped over.
"Right," said Ron as
they both opened their books at pages five and six. "What can you see in
mine?"
"A load of soggy brown
stuff," said Harry. The heavily perfumed smoke in the room was making him
feel sleepy and stupid.
"Broaden your minds, my
dears, and allow your eyes to see past the mundane!" Professor Trelawney
cried through the gloom.
Harry tried to pull himself
together.
"Right, you've got a
crooked sort of cross..." He consulted Unfogging the Future.
"That means you're going to have 'trials and suffering' - sorry about that
- but there's a thing that could be the sun. Hang on...that means 'great
happiness'...so you're going to suffer but be very happy..."
"You need your Inner Eye
tested, if you ask me," said Ron, and they both had to stifle their laughs
as Professor Trelawney gazed in their direction.
"My turn..." Ron peered
into Harry's teacup, his forehead wrinkled with effort. "There's a blob a
bit like a bowler hat," he said. "Maybe you're going to work for the
Ministry of Magic..."
He turned the teacup the other
way up.
"But this way it looks more
like an acorn...what's that?" He scanned his copy of Unfogging the Future.
"'A windfall, unexpected gold.' Excellent, you can lend me some. And
there's a thing here," he turned the cup again, "that looks like an
animal...yeah, if that was its head...it looks like a hippo...no, a sheep..."
Professor Trelawney whirled
around as Harry let out a snort of laughter.
"Let me see that, my
dear," she said reprovingly to Ron, sweeping over and snatching Harry's
cup from him. Everyone went quiet to watch.
Professor Trelawney was staring
into the teacup, rotating it counterclockwise.
"The falcon...my dear, you
have a deadly enemy."
"But everyone knows that,"
said Hermione in a loud whisper. Professor Trelawney stared at her.
"Well, they do," said
Hermione. "Everybody knows about Harry and You-Know-Who."
Harry and Ron stared at her with
a mixture of amazement and admiration. They had never heard Hermione speak to a
teacher like that before. Professor Trelawney chose not to reply. She lowered
her huge eyes to Harry's cup again and continued to turn it.
"The club...an attack. Dear,
dear, this is not a happy cup..."
"I thought that was a
bowler hat," said Ron sheepishly.
"The skull...danger in your
path, my dear..."
Everyone was staring,
transfixed, at Professor Trelawney, who gave the cup a final turn, gasped, and
then screamed.
There was another tinkle of
breaking china; Neville had smashed his second cup. Professor Trelawney sank
into a vacant armchair, her glittering hand at her heart and her eyes closed.
"My dear boy - my poor dear
boy - no - it is kinder not to say - no - don't ask me..."
"What is it,
Professor?" said Dean Thomas at once. Everyone had got to their feet, and
slowly they crowded around Harry and Ron's table, pressing close to Professor
Trelawney's chair to get a good look at Harry's cup.
"My dear," Professor
Trelawney's huge eyes opened dramatically, "you have the Grim."
"The what?" said
Harry.
He could tell that he wasn't the
only one who didn't understand; Dean Thomas shrugged at him and Lavender Brown
looked puzzled, but nearly everybody else clapped their hands to their mouths
in horror.
"The Grim, my dear, the
Grim!" cried Professor Trelawney, who looked shocked that Harry hadn't
understood. "The giant, spectral dog that haunts churchyards! My dear boy,
it is an omen - the worst omen - of death!"
Harry's stomach lurched. That
dog on the cover of Death Omens in Flourish and Blotts - the dog in the
shadows of Magnolia Crescent...Lavender Brown clapped her hands to her mouth too.
Everyone was looking at Harry, everyone except Hermione, who had gotten up and
moved around to the back of Professor Trelawney's chair.
"I don't think it looks
like a Grim," she said flatly.
Professor Trelawney surveyed
Hermione with mounting dislike.
"You'll forgive me for
saying so, my dear, but I perceive very little aura around you. Very little
receptivity to the resonances of the future."
Seamus Finnigan was tilting his
head from side to side.
"It looks like a Grim if
you do this," he said, with his eyes almost shut, "but it looks more
like a donkey from here," he said, leaning to the left.
"When you've all finished
deciding whether I'm going to die or not!" said Harry, taking even himself
by surprise. Now nobody seemed to want to look at him.
"I think we will leave the
lesson here for today," said Professor Trelawney in her mistiest voice.
"Yes...please pack away your things..."
Silently the class took their
teacups back to Professor Trelawney, packed away their books, and closed their
bags. Even Ron was avoiding Harry's eyes.
"Until we meet again,"
said Professor Trelawney faintly, "fair fortune be yours. Oh, and
dear," - she pointed at Neville, "you'll be late next time, so mind
you work extra-hard to catch up."
Harry, Ron, and Hermione
descended Professor Trelawney's ladder and the winding stair in silence, then
set off for Professor McGonagall's Transfiguration lesson. It took them so long
to find her classroom that, early as they had left Divination, they were only just
in time.
Harry chose a seat right at the
back of the room, feeling as though he were sitting in a very bright spotlight;
the rest of the class kept shooting furtive glances at him, as though he were
about to drop dead at any moment. He hardly heard what Professor McGonagall was
telling them about Animagi (wizards who could transform at will into animals),
and wasn't even watching when she transformed herself in front of their eyes
into a tabby cat with spectacle markings around her eyes.
"Really, what has got into
you all today?" said Professor McGonagall, turning back into herself with
a faint pop, and staring around at them all. "Not that it matters,
but that's the first time my transformation's not got applause from a
class."
Everybody's heads turned toward
Harry again, but nobody spoke. Then Hermione raised her hand.
"Please, Professor, we've
just had our first Divination class, and we were reading the tea leaves, and
-"
"Ah, of course," said
Professor McGonagall, suddenly frowning. "There is no need to say any
more, Miss Granger. Tell me, which of you will be dying this year?"
Everyone stared at her. "Me," said Harry,
finally.
"I see," said
Professor McGonagall, fixing Harry with her beady eyes. "Then you should
know, Potter, that Sibyll Trelawney has predicted the death of one student a
year since she arrived at this school. None of them has died yet. Seeing death
omens is her favorite way of greeting a new class. If it were not for the fact
that I never speak ill of my colleagues -" Professor McGonagall broke off,
and they saw that her nostrils had gone white. She went on, more calmly,
"Divination is one of the most imprecise branches of magic. I shall not
conceal from you that I have very little patience with it. True Seers are very
rare, and Professor Trelawney..."
She stopped again, and then
said, in a very matter-of-fact tone, "You look in excellent health to me,
Potter, so you will excuse me if I don't let you off homework today. I assure
you that if you die, you need not hand it in."
Hermione laughed. Harry felt a
bit better. It was harder to feel scared of a lump of tea leaves away from the
dim red light and befuddling perfume of Professor Trelawney's classroom. Not
everyone was convinced, however. Ron still looked worried, and Lavender
whispered, "But what about Neville's cup?"
When the Transfiguration class
had finished, they joined the crowd thundering toward the Great Hall for lunch.
"Ron, cheer up," said
Hermione, pushing a dish of stew toward him. "You heard what Professor
McGonagall said."
Ron spooned stew onto his plate
and picked up his fork but didn't start.
"Harry," he said, in a
low, serious voice, "You haven't seen a great black dog anywhere,
have you?" "Yeah, I have,"
said Harry. "I saw one the night I left the Dursleys'."
Ron let his fork fall with a
clatter.
"Probably a stray,"
said Hermione calmly.
Ron looked at Hermione as though
she had gone mad.
"Hermione, if Harry's seen
a Grim, that's - that's bad," he said. "My - my uncle Bilius saw one
and - and he died twenty-four hours later!"
"Coincidence," said
Hermione airily, pouring herself some pumpkin juice.
"You don't know what you're
talking about!" said Ron, starting to get angry. "Grims scare the
living daylights out of most wizards!"
"There you are, then,"
said Hermione in a superior tone. "They see the Grim and die of fright.
The Grim's not an omen, it's the cause of death! And Harry's still with us
because he's not stupid enough to see one and think, right, well, I'd better
kick the bucket then!"
Ron mouthed wordlessly at
Hermione, who opened her bag, took out her new Arithmancy book, and propped it
open against the juice jug.
"I think Divination seems
very woolly," she said, searching for her page. "A lot of guesswork,
if you ask me."
"There was nothing woolly
about the Grim in that cup!" said Ron hotly.
"You didn't seem quite so
confident when you were telling Harry it was a sheep," said Hermione
coolly.
"Professor Trelawney said
you didn't have the right aura! You just don't like being bad at something for
a change!"
He had touched a nerve. Hermione
slammed her Arithmancy book down on the table so hard that bits of meat and
carrot flew everywhere.
"If being good at
Divination means I have to pretend to see death omens in a lump of tea leaves,
I'm not sure I'll be studying it much longer! That lesson was absolute rubbish
compared with my Arithmancy class!"
She snatched up her bag and
stalked away.
Ron frowned after her.
"What's she talking
about?" he said to Harry. "She hasn't been to an Arithmancy class
yet."
Harry was pleased to get out of
the castle after lunch. Yesterday's rain had cleared; the sky was a clear, pale
gray, and the grass was springy and damp underfoot as they set off for their
first ever Care of Magical Creatures class.
Ron and Hermione weren't
speaking to each other. Harry walked beside them in silence as they went down
the sloping lawns to Hagrid's hut on the edge of the Forbidden Forest. It was
only when he spotted three only-too-familiar backs ahead of them that he
realized they must be having these lessons with the Slytherins. Malfoy was
talking animatedly to Crabbe and Goyle, who were chortling. Harry was quite
sure he knew what they were talking about.
Hagrid was waiting for his class
at the door of his hut. He stood in his moleskin overcoat, with Fang the boarhound
at his heels, looking impatient to start.
"C'mon, now, get a move
on!" he called as the class approached. "Got a real treat for yeh
today! Great lesson comin' up! Everyone here? Right, follow me!"
For one nasty moment, Harry
thought that Hagrid was going to lead them into the forest; Harry had had
enough unpleasant experiences in there to last him a lifetime. However, Hagrid
strolled off around the edge of the trees, and five minutes later, they found
themselves outside a kind of paddock. There was nothing in there.
"Everyone gather 'round the
fence here!" he called. "That's it - make sure yeh can see - now,
firs' thing yeh'll want ter do is open yer books -"
"How?" said the cold,
drawling voice of Draco Malfoy.
"Eh?" said Hagrid.
"How do we open our books?"
Malfoy repeated. He took out his copy of The Monster Book of Monsters,
which he had bound shut with a length of rope. Other people took theirs out
too; some, like Harry, had belted their book shut; others had crammed them
inside tight bags or clamped them together with binder clips. "Hasn' - hasn' anyone
bin able ter open their books?" said Hagrid, looking crestfallen.
The class all shook their heads.
"Yeh've got ter stroke 'em,"
said Hagrid, as though this was the most obvious thing in the world. "Look
-" He took Hermione's copy and
ripped off the Spellotape that bound it. The book tried to bite, but Hagrid ran
a giant forefinger down its spine, and the book shivered, and then fell open
and lay quiet in his hand.
"Oh, how silly we've all
been!" Malfoy sneered. "We should have stroked them! Why didn't we
guess!"
"I - I thought they were
funny," Hagrid said uncertainly to Hermione.
"Oh, tremendously
funny!" said Malfoy. "Really witty, giving us books that try and rip
our hands off!"
"Shut up, Malfoy," said
Harry quietly. Hagrid was looking downcast and Harry wanted Hagrid's first
lesson to be a success.
"Righ' then," said
Hagrid, who seemed to have lost his thread, "so - so yeh've got yer books
an'...an'...now yeh need the Magical Creatures. Yeah. So I'll go an' get 'em. Hang
on..."
He strode away from them into
the forest and out of sight.
"God, this place is going
to the dogs," said Malfoy loudly. "That oaf teaching classes, my
father'll have a fit when I tell him -"
"Shut up, Malfoy,"
Harry repeated.
"Careful, Potter, there's a
Dementor behind you -"
"Oooooooh!" squealed
Lavender Brown, pointing toward the opposite side of the paddock.
Trotting toward them were a
dozen of the most bizarre creatures Harry had ever seen. They had the bodies,
hind legs, and tails of horses, but the front legs, wings, and heads of what
seemed to be giant eagles, with cruel, steel-colored beaks and large,
brilliantly, orange eyes. The talons on their front legs were half a foot long
and deadly looking. Each of the beasts had a thick leather collar around its
neck, which was attached to a long chain, and the ends of all of these were
held in the vast hands of Hagrid, who came jogging into the paddock behind the
creatures.
"Gee up, there!" he
roared, shaking the chains and urging the creatures toward the fence where the
class stood. Everyone drew back slightly as Hagrid reached them and tethered
the creatures to the fence.
"Hippogriffs!" Hagrid
roared happily, waving a hand at them. "Beau'iful, aren' they?"
Harry could sort of see what
Hagrid meant. Once you got over the first shock of seeing something that was
half horse, half bird, you started to appreciate the Hippogriffs' gleaming
coats, changing smoothly from feather to hair, each of them a different color:
stormy gray, bronze, pinkish roan, gleaming chestnut, and inky black.
"So," said Hagrid,
rubbing his hands together and beaming around, "if yeh wan' ter come a bit
nearer..."
No one seemed to want to. Harry,
Ron, and Hermione, however, approached the fence cautiously.
"Now, firs' thing yeh gotta
know abou' Hippogriffs is, they're proud," said Hagrid. "Easily
offended, Hippogriffs are. Don't never insult one, 'cause it might be the last
thing yeh do."
Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle
weren't listening; they were talking in an undertone and Harry had a nasty
feeling they were plotting how best to disrupt the lesson.
"Yeh always wait fer the
Hippogriff ter make the firs' move," Hagrid continued. "It's polite,
see? Yeh walk toward him, and yeh bow, an' yeh wait. If he bows back, yeh're
allowed ter touch him. If he doesn' bow, then get away from him sharpish,
'cause those talons hurt."
"Right - who wants ter go
first?"
Most of the class backed farther
away in answer. Even Harry, Ron, and Hermione had misgivings. The Hippogriffs
were tossing their fierce heads and flexing their powerful wings; they didn't
seem to like being tethered like this.
"No one?" said Hagrid,
with a pleading look.
"I'll do it," said
Harry.
There was an intake of breath
from behind him, and both Lavender and Parvati whispered, "Oooh, no,
Harry, remember your tea leaves!"
Harry ignored them. He climbed
over the paddock fence.
"Good man, Harry!"
roared Hagrid. "Right then - let's see how yeh get on with Buckbeak."
He untied one of the chains,
pulled the gray Hippogriff away from its fellows, and slipped off its leather
collar. The class on the other side of the paddock seemed to be holding its
breath. Malfoy's eyes were narrowed maliciously.
"Easy now, Harry,"
said Hagrid quietly. "Yeh've got eye contact, now try not ter blink...Hippogriffs
don' trust yeh if yeh blink too much..."
Harry's eyes immediately began
to water, but he didn't shut them. Buckbeak had turned his great, sharp head
and was staring at Harry with one fierce orange eye. "Tha's it," said
Hagrid. "Tha's it, Harry...now, bow."
Harry didn't feel much like
exposing the back of his neck to Buckbeak, but he did as he was told. He gave a
short bow and then looked up.
The Hippogriff was still staring
haughtily at him. It didn't move.
"Ah," said Hagrid,
sounding worried. "Right - back away, now, Harry, easy does it -"
But then, to Harry's enormous
surprise, the Hippogriff suddenly bent its scaly front knees and sank into what
was an unmistakable bow.
"Well done, Harry!"
said Hagrid, ecstatic. "Right - yeh can touch him! Pat his beak, go
on!"
Feeling that a better reward
would have been to back away, Harry moved slowly toward the Hippogriff and
reached out toward it. He patted the beak several times and the Hippogriff
closed its eyes lazily, as though enjoying it.
The class broke into applause,
all except for Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle, who were looking deeply disappointed.
"Righ' then, Harry,"
said Hagrid. "I reckon he migh' let yeh ride him!"
This was more than Harry had bargained for. He was
used to a broomstick; but he wasn't sure a Hippogriff would be quite the same. "Yeh climb up there,
jus' behind the wing joint," said Hagrid, "an' mind yeh don' pull any
of his feathers out, he won' like that..."
Harry put his foot on the top of
Buckbeak's wing and hoisted himself onto its back. Buckbeak stood up. Harry
wasn't sure where to hold on; everything in front of him was covered with
feathers.
"Go on, then!" roared
Hagrid, slapping the Hippogriffs hindquarters.
Without warning, twelve-foot
wings flapped open on either side of Harry, he just had time to seize the
Hippogriff around the neck before he was soaring upward. It was nothing like a
broomstick, and Harry knew which one he preferred; the Hippogriff's wings beat
uncomfortably on either side of him, catching him under his legs and making him
feel he was about to be thrown off; the glossy feathers slipped under his
fingers and he didn't dare get a stronger grip; instead of the smooth action of
his Nimbus Two Thousand, he now felt himself rocking backward and forward as
the hindquarters of the Hippogriff rose and fell with its wings.
Buckbeak flew him once around
the paddock and then headed back to the ground; this was the bit Harry had been
dreading; he leaned back as the smooth neck lowered, feeling he was going to
slip off over the beak, then felt a heavy thud as the four ill-assorted feet
hit the ground. He just managed to hold on and push himself straight again.
"Good work, Harry!"
roared Hagrid as everyone except Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle cheered. "Okay,
who else wants a go?"
Emboldened by Harry's success,
the rest of the class climbed cautiously into the paddock. Hagrid untied the
Hippogriffs one by one, and soon people were bowing nervously, all over the
paddock. Neville ran repeatedly backward from his, which didn't seem to want to
bend its knees. Ron and Hermione practiced on the chestnut, while Harry
watched.
Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle had
taken over Buckbeak. He had bowed to Malfoy, who was now patting his beak,
looking disdainful.
"This is very easy,"
Malfoy drawled, loud enough for Harry to, hear him. "I knew it must have
been, if Potter could do it...I bet you're not dangerous at all, are you?"
he said to the Hippogriff. "Are you, you great ugly brute?"
It happened in a flash of steely
talons; Malfoy let out a high pitched scream and next moment, Hagrid was
wrestling Buckbeak back into his collar as he strained to get at Malfoy, who
lay curled in the grass, blood blossoming over his robes.
"I'm dying!" Malfoy
yelled as the class panicked. "I'm dying, look at me! It's killed
me!"
"Yer not dyin'!" said
Hagrid, who had gone very white. "Someone help me - gotta get him outta
here -"
Hermione ran to hold open the
gate as Hagrid lifted Malfoy easily. As they passed, Harry saw that there was a
long, deep gash on Malfoy's arm; blood splattered the grass and Hagrid ran with
him, up the slope toward the castle.
Very shaken, the Care of Magical
Creatures class followed at a walk. The Slytherins were all shouting about
Hagrid.
"They should sack him
straight away!" said Pansy Parkinson, who was in tears.
"It was Malfoy's
fault!" snapped Dean Thomas. Crabbe and Goyle flexed their muscles
threateningly.
They all climbed the stone steps
into the deserted entrance hall.
"I'm going to see if he's
okay!" said Pansy, and they all watched her run up the marble staircase.
The Slytherins, still muttering about Hagrid, headed away in the direction of
their dungeon common room; Harry, Ron, and Hermione proceeded upstairs to
Gryffindor Tower.
"You think he'll be all
right?" said Hermione nervously.
"Course he will. Madam
Pomfrey can mend cuts in about a second," said Harry, who had had far
worse injuries mended magically by the nurse.
"That was a really bad
thing to happen in Hagrid's first class, though, wasn't it?" said Ron,
looking worried. "Trust Malfoy to mess things up for him..."
They were among the first to
reach the Great Hall at dinnertime, hoping to see Hagrid, but he wasn't there.
"They wouldn't fire him,
would they?" said Hermione anxiously, not touching her steak-and-kidney
pudding.
"They'd better not,"
said Ron, who wasn't eating either.
Harry was watching the Slytherin
table. A large group including Crabbe and Goyle was huddled together, deep in
conversation. Harry was sure they were cooking up their own version of how
Malfoy had been injured.
"Well, you can't say it
wasn't an interesting first day back," said Ron gloomily.
They went up to the crowded
Gryffindor common room after dinner and tried to do the homework Professor
McGonagall had given them, but all three of them kept breaking off and glancing
out of the tower window.
"There's a light on in
Hagrid's window," Harry said suddenly.
Ron looked at his watch.
"If we hurried, we could go
down and see him. It's still quite early..."
"I don't know,"
Hermione said slowly, and Harry saw her glance at him.
"I'm allowed to walk across
the grounds," he said pointedly. "Sirius Black hasn't got past
the Dementors yet, has he?"
So they put their things away
and headed out of the portrait hole, glad to meet nobody on their way to the
front doors, as they weren't entirely sure they were supposed to be out.
The grass was still wet and
looked almost black in the twilight. When they reached Hagrid's hut, they
knocked, and a voice growled, "C'min."
Hagrid was sitting in his
shirtsleeves at his scrubbed wooden table; his boarhound, Fang, had his head in
Hagrid's lap. One look told them that Hagrid had been drinking a lot; there was
a pewter tankard almost as big as a bucket in front of him, and he seemed to be
having difficulty getting them into focus.
"'Spect it's a record,"
he said thickly, when he recognized them. "Don' reckon they've ever had a
teacher who lasted on'y a day before."
"You haven't been fired,
Hagrid!" gasped Hermione.
"Not yet," said Hagrid
miserably, taking a huge gulp of whatever was in the tankard. "But's only
a matter o' time, I'n't, after Malfoy..."
"How is he?" said Ron
as they all sat down. "It wasn't serious, was it?"
"Madam Pomfrey fixed him
best she could," said Hagrid dully, "but he's sayin' it's still
agony...covered in bandages...moanin'..."
"He's faking it," said
Harry at once. "Madam Pomfrey can mend anything. She regrew half my bones
last year. Trust Malfoy to milk it for all it's worth."
"School gov'nors have bin
told, o' course," said Hagrid miserably. "They reckon I started too
big. Shoulda left Hippogriffs fer later...one flobberworms or summat...Jus' thought
it'd make a good firs' lesson's all my fault..."
"It's all Malfoy's
fault, Hagrid!" said Hermione earnestly. "We're witnesses,"
said Harry. "You said Hippogriffs attack if you insult them. It's Malfoy's
problem that he wasn't listening. We'll tell Dumbledore what really
happened."
"Yeah, don't worry, Hagrid,
we'll back you up," said Ron.
Tears leaked out of the crinkled
corners of Hagrid's beetle-black eyes. He grabbed both Harry and Ron and pulled
them into a bone-breaking hug.
"I think you've had enough
to drink, Hagrid," said Hermione firmly. She took the tankard from the
table and went outside to empty it.
"Ah, maybe she's
right," said Hagrid, letting go of Harry and Ron, who both staggered away,
rubbing their ribs. Hagrid heaved himself out of his chair and followed
Hermione unsteadily outside. They heard a loud splash.
"What's he done?" said
Harry nervously as Hermione came back in with the empty tankard.
"Stuck his head in the
water barrel," said Hermione, putting the tankard away.
Hagrid came back, his long hair
and beard sopping wet, wiping the water out of his eyes.
"That's better," he
said, shaking his head like a dog and drenching them all. "Listen, it was
good of yeh ter come an' see me, I really -"
Hagrid stopped dead, staring at
Harry as though he'd only just realized he was there.
"WHAT D'YEH THINK YOU'RE
DOIN', EH?" he roared, so suddenly that they jumped a foot in the air.
"YEH'RE NOT TO GO WANDERIN' AROUND AFTER DARK, HARRY! AN, YOU TWO! LETTIN'
HIM!"
Hagrid strode over to Harry,
grabbed his arm, and pulled him to the door.
"C'mon!" Hagrid said
angrily. "I'm takin' yer all back up ter school an' don' let me catch yeh
walkin' down ter see me after dark again. I'm not worth that!" CHAPTER SEVEN THE BOGGART IN THE WARDROBE
Malfoy didn't reappear in
classes until late on Thursday morning, when the Slytherins and Gryffindors
were halfway through double Potions. He swaggered into the dungeon, his right
arm covered in bandages and bound up in a sling, acting, in Harry's opinion, as
though he were the heroic survivor of some dreadful battle.
"How is it, Draco?"
simpered Pansy Parkinson. "Does it hurt much?" "Yeah," said
Malfoy, putting on a brave sort of grimace. But Harry saw him wink at Crabbe
and Goyle when Pansy had looked away.
"Settle down, settle
down," said Professor Snape idly.
Harry and Ron scowled at each
other; Snape wouldn't have said 'settle down' if they'd walked in late,
he'd have given them detention. But Malfoy had always been able to get away
with anything in Snape's classes; Snape was head of Slytherin House, and
generally favored his own students above all others.
They were making a new potion
today, a Shrinking Solution. Malfoy set up his cauldron right next to Harry and
Ron, so that they were preparing their ingredients on the same table.
"Sir," Malfoy called,
"sir, I'll need help cutting up these daisy roots, because of my arm
-" "Weasley, cut up
Malfoy's roots for him," said Snape without looking up.
Ron went brick red.
"There's nothing wrong with
your arm," he hissed at Malfoy.
Malfoy smirked across the table.
"Weasley, you heard
Professor Snape; cut up these roots."
Ron seized his knife, pulled
Malfoy's roots toward him, and began to chop them roughly, so that they were
all different sizes.
"Professor," drawled
Malfoy, "Weasley's mutilating my roots, sir."
Snape approached their table,
stared down his hooked nose at the roots, then gave Ron an unpleasant smile
from beneath his long, greasy black hair.
"Change roots with Malfoy,
Weasley."
"But, sir -!"
Ron had spent the last quarter
of an hour carefully shredding his own roots into exactly equal pieces.
"Now," said
Snape in his most dangerous voice. Ron shoved his own
beautifully cut roots across the table at Malfoy, then took up the knife again.
"And, sir, I'll need this
shrivelfig skinned," said Malfoy, his voice full of malicious laughter.
"Potter, you can skin
Malfoy's shrivelfig," said Snape, giving Harry the look of loathing he
always reserved just for him.
Harry took Malfoy's shrivelfig
as Ron began trying to repair the damage to the roots he now had to use. Harry
skinned the shrivelfig as fast as he could and flung it back across the table
at Malfoy without speaking. Malfoy was smirking more broadly than ever.
"Seen your pal Hagrid
lately?" he asked them quietly.
"None of your
business," said Ron jerkily, without looking up.
"I'm afraid he won't be a
teacher much longer," said Malfoy in a tone of mock sorrow. "Father's
not very happy about my injury -"
"Keep talking, Malfoy, and
I'll give you a real injury," snarled Ron.
"- he's complained to the
school governors. And to the Ministry of Magic. Father's got a lot of
influence, you know. And a lasting injury like this" - he gave a huge,
fake sigh - "who knows if my arm'll ever be the same again?"
"So that's why you're
putting it on," said Harry, accidentally beheading a dead caterpillar
because his hand was shaking in anger, "To try to get Hagrid fired."
"Well," said Malfoy,
lowering his voice to a whisper, "partly, Potter. But there are
other benefits too. Weasley, slice my caterpillars for me."
A few cauldrons away, Neville
was in trouble. Neville regularly went to pieces in Potions lessons; it was his
worst subject, and his great fear of Professor Snape made things ten times
worse. His potion, which was supposed to be a bright, acid green, had turned -
"Orange, Longbottom,"
said Snape, ladling some up and allowing to splash back into the cauldron, so
that everyone could see.
"Orange. Tell me, boy, does
anything penetrate that thick skull of yours? Didn't you hear me say, quite
clearly, that only one cat spleen was needed? Didn't I state plainly that a
dash of leech juice would suffice? What do I have to do to make you understand,
Longbottom?"
Neville was pink and trembling.
He looked as though he was on the verge of tears.
"Please, sir," said
Hermione, "please, I could help Neville put it right -"
"I don't remember asking
you to show off, Miss Granger," said Snape coldly, and Hermione went as
pink as Neville. "Longbottom, at the end of this lesson we will feed a few
drops of this potion to your toad and see what happens. Perhaps that will
encourage you to do it properly."
Snape moved away, leaving
Neville breathless with fear.
"Help me!" he moaned
to Hermione.
"Hey, Harry," said
Seamus Finnigan, leaning over to borrow Harry's brass scales, "have you
heard? Daily Prophet this morning - they reckon Sirius Black's been
sighted." "Where?" said
Harry and Ron quickly. On the other side of the table, Malfoy looked up,
listening closely.
"Not too far from
here," said Seamus, who looked excited. "It was a Muggle who saw him.
'Course, she didn't really understand. The Muggles think he's just an ordinary
criminal, don't they? So she phoned the telephone hot line. By the time the
Ministry of Magic got there, he was gone."
"Not too far from here
..." Ron repeated, looking significantly at Harry. He turned around and saw
Malfoy watching closely. "What, Malfoy? Need something else skinned?"
But Malfoy's eyes were shining
malevolently, and they were fixed Harry. He leaned across the table.
"Thinking of trying to
catch Black single-handed, Potter?"
"Yeah, that's right,"
said Harry offhandedly.
Malfoy's thin mouth was curving
in a mean smile.
"Of course, if it was
me," he said quietly, "I'd have done something before now. I wouldn't
be staying in school like a good boy, I'd be out there looking for him."
"What are you talking
about, Malfoy?" said Ron roughly.
"Don't you know,
Potter?" breathed Malfoy, his pale eyes narrowed. "Know what?"
Malfoy let out a low, sneering
laugh.
"Maybe you'd rather not
risk your neck," he said. "Want to leave it to the Dementors, do you?
But if it was me, I'd want revenge. I'd hunt him down myself."
"What are you talking
about?" said Harry angrily, but at that moment Snape called, "You
should have finished adding your ingredients by now; this potion needs to stew
before it can be drunk, so clear away while it simmers and then we'll test
Longbottom's..."
Crabbe and Goyle laughed openly,
watching Neville sweat as he stirred his potion feverishly. Hermione was
muttering instructions to him out of the corner of her mouth, so that Snape
wouldn't see. Harry and Ron packed away their unused ingredients and went to
wash their hands and ladles in the stone basin in the corner.
"What did Malfoy
mean?" Harry muttered to Ron as he stuck his hands under the icy jet that
poured from the gargoyle's mouth "Why would I want revenge on Black? He
hasn't done anything to me - yet."
"He's making it up,"
said Ron savagely. "He's trying to make you do something stupid..."
The end of the lesson in sight,
Snape strode over to Neville, who was cowering by his cauldron.
"Everyone gather
'round," said Snape, his black eyes glittering, "and watch what
happens to Longbottom's toad. If he has managed to produce a Shrinking
Solution, it will shrink to a tadpole. If, as I don't doubt, he has done it
wrong, his toad is likely to be poisoned."
The Gryffindors watched
fearfully. The Slytherins looked excited. Snape picked up Trevor the toad in
his left hand and dipped a small spoon into Neville's potion, which was now
green. He trickled a few drops down Trevor's throat.
There was a moment of hushed
silence, in which Trevor gulped; then there was a small pop, and Trevor
the tadpole was wriggling in Snape's palm.
The Gryffindors burst into
applause. Snape, looking sour, pulled a small bottle from the pocket of his
robe, poured a few drops on top of Trevor, and he reappeared suddenly, fully
grown.
"Five points from
Gryffindor," said Snape, which wiped the smiles from every face. "I
told you not to help him, Miss Granger. Class dismissed."
Harry, Ron, and Hermione climbed
the steps to the entrance hall. Harry was still thinking about what Malfoy had
said, while Ron was seething about Snape.
"Five points from Gryffindor
because the potion was all right! Why didn't you lie, Hermione? You should've
said Neville did it all by himself!"
Hermione didn't answer. Ron
looked around.
"Where is she?"
Harry turned too. They were at
the top of the steps now, watching the rest of the class pass them, heading for
the Great Hall and lunch.
"She was right behind
us," said Ron, frowning.
Malfoy passed them, walking
between Crabbe and Goyle. He smirked at Harry and disappeared.
"There she is," said
Harry.
Hermione was panting slightly,
hurrying up the stairs; one hand clutched her bag, the other seemed to be
tucking something down the front of her robes.
"How did you do that?"
said Ron.
"What?" said Hermione,
joining them.
"One minute you were right
behind us, the next moment, you were back at the bottom of the stairs
again."
"What?" Hermione
looked slightly confused. "Oh - I had to go back for something. Oh no
-"
A seam had split on Hermione's
bag. Harry wasn't surprised; he could see that it was crammed with at least a
dozen large and heavy books.
"Why are you carrying all
these around with you?" Ron asked her.
"You know how many subjects
I'm taking," said Hermione breathlessly. "Couldn't hold these for me,
could you?"
"But -" Ron was
turning over the books she had handed him, looking at the covers. "You
haven't got any of these subjects today. It's only Defense Against the Dark
Arts this afternoon."
"Oh yes," said
Hermione vaguely, but she packed all the books back into her bag just the same.
"I hope there's something good for lunch, I'm starving," she added,
and she marched off toward the Great Hall.
"D'you get the feeling
Hermione's not telling us something?" Ron asked Harry.
Professor Lupin wasn't there
when they arrived at his first Defense Against the Dark Arts lesson. They all
sat down, took out their books, quills, and parchment, and were talking when he
finally entered the room. Lupin smiled vaguely and placed his tatty old
briefcase on the teacher's desk. He was as shabby as ever but looked healthier
than he had on the train, as though he had had a few square meals.
"Good afternoon," he
said. "Would you please put all your books back in your bags. Today's will
be a practical lesson. You will need only your wands."
A few curious looks were
exchanged as the class put away their books. They had never had a practical
Defense Against the Dark Arts class before, unless you counted the memorable
class last year when their old teacher had brought a cageful of pixies to class
and set them loose.
"Right then," said
Professor Lupin, when everyone was ready. "If you'd follow me."
Puzzled but interested, the
class got to its feet and followed Professor Lupin out of the classroom. He led
them along the deserted corridor and around a corner, where the first thing
they saw was Peeves the Poltergeist, who was floating upside down in midair and
stuffing the nearest keyhole with chewing gum.
Peeves didn't look up until
Professor Lupin was two feet away; then he wiggled his curly-toed feet and
broke into song.
"Loony, loopy Lupin,"
Peeves sang. "Loony, loopy Lupin, loony, loopy Lupin -"
Rude and unmanageable as he
almost always was, Peeves usually showed some respect toward the teachers.
Everyone looked quickly at Professor Lupin to see how he would take this; to
their surprise, he was still smiling.
"I'd take that gum out of
the keyhole if I were you, Peeves," he said pleasantly. "Mr. Filch
won't be able to get in to his brooms."
Filch was the Hogwarts
caretaker, a bad-tempered, failed wizard who waged a constant war against the
students and, indeed, Peeves. However, Peeves paid no attention to Professor
Lupin's words, except to blow a loud wet raspberry.
Professor Lupin gave a small
sigh and took out his wand.
"This is a useful little
spell," he told the class over his shoulder. "Please watch
closely."
He raised the wand to shoulder
height, said, "Waddiwasi!" and pointed it at Peeves. With the force of a bullet,
the wad of chewing gum shot out of the keyhole and straight down Peeves's left
nostril; he whirled upright and zoomed away, cursing.
"Cool, sir!" said Dean
Thomas in amazement.
"Thank you, Dean,"
said Professor Lupin, putting his wand away again. "Shall we
proceed?"
They set off again, the class
looking at shabby Professor Lupin with increased respect. He led them down a
second corridor and stopped, right outside the staffroom door.
"Inside, please," said
Professor Lupin, opening it and standing back.
The staffroom, a long, paneled
room full of old, mismatched chairs, was empty except for one teacher.
Professor Snape was sitting in a low armchair, and he looked around as the
class filed in. His eyes were glittering and there was a nasty sneer playing
around his mouth. As Professor Lupin came in and made to close the door behind
him, Snape said, "Leave it open, Lupin. I'd rather not witness this."
He got to his feet and strode past the class, his black robes billowing behind
him. At the doorway he turned on his heel and said, "Possibly no one's
warned you, Lupin, but this class contains Neville Longbottom. I would advise
you not to entrust him with anything difficult. Not unless Miss Granger is
hissing instructions in his ear."
Neville went scarlet. Harry
glared at Snape; it was bad enough that he bullied Neville in his own classes,
let alone doing it in front of other teachers.
Professor Lupin had raised his
eyebrows.
"I was hoping that Neville
would assist me with the first stage of the operation," he said, "and
I am sure he will perform it admirably."
Neville's face went, if
possible, even redder. Snape's lip curled, but he left, shutting the door with a
snap.
"Now, then," said
Professor Lupin, beckoning the class toward the end of the room, where there
was nothing but an old wardrobe where the teachers kept their spare robes. As
Professor Lupin went to stand next to it, the wardrobe gave a sudden wobble,
banging off the wall.
"Nothing to worry
about," said Professor Lupin calmly because a few people had jumped
backward in alarm. "There's a Boggart in there."
Most people seemed to feel that
this was something to worry about. Neville gave Professor Lupin a look
of pure terror, and Seamus Finnigan eyed the now rattling doorknob
apprehensively.
"Boggarts like dark,
enclosed spaces," said Professor Lupin. "Wardrobes, the gap beneath
beds, the cupboards under sinks - I've even met one that had lodged itself in a
grandfather clock. This one moved in yesterday afternoon, and I asked
the headmaster if the staff would leave it to give my third years some
practice."
"So, the first question we
must ask ourselves is, what is a Boggart?"
Hermione put up her hand.
"It's a
shape-shifter," she said. "It can take the shape of whatever it
thinks will frighten us most."
"Couldn't have put it
better myself," said Professor Lupin, and Hermione glowed. "So the
Boggart sitting in the darkness within has not yet assumed a form. He does not
yet know what will frighten the person on the other side of the door. Nobody
knows what a Boggart looks like when he is alone, but when I let him out, he
will immediately become whatever each of us most fears.
"This means," said
Professor Lupin, choosing to ignore Neville's small sputter of terror,
"that we have a huge advantage over the Boggart before we begin. Have you
spotted it, Harry?"
Trying to answer a question with
Hermione next to him, bobbing up and down on the balls of her feet with her hand
in the air, was very off-putting, but Harry had a go.
"Er - because there are so
many of us, it won't know what shape it should be?"
"Precisely," said
Professor Lupin, and Hermione put her hand down, looking a little disappointed.
"It's always best to have company when you're dealing with a Boggart. He
becomes confused. Which should he become, a headless corpse or a flesh-eating
slug? I once saw a Boggart make that very mistake - tried to frighten two
people at once and turned himself into half a slug. Not remotely frightening.
'The charm that repels a Boggart
is simple, yet it requires force of mind. You see, the thing that really
finishes a Boggart is laughter. What you need to do is force it to
assume a shape that you find amusing. "We will practice the
charm without wands first. After me, please...riddikulus!" "Riddikulus!" said
the class together.
"Good," said Professor
Lupin. "Very good. But that was the easy part, I'm afraid. You see, the
word alone is not enough. And this is where you come in, Neville."
The wardrobe shook again, though
not as much as Neville, who walked forward as though he were heading for the
gallows.
"Right, Neville," said
Professor Lupin. "First things first: what would you say is the thing that
frightens you most in the world?"
Neville's lips moved, but no
noise came out.
"I didn't catch that,
Neville, sorry," said Professor Lupin cheerfully.
Neville looked around rather
wildly, as though begging someone to help him, then said, in barely more than a
whisper, "Professor Snape."
Nearly everyone laughed. Even
Neville grinned apologetically. Professor Lupin, however, looked thoughtful.
"Professor
Snape...hmmm...Neville, I believe you live with your grandmother?"
"Er - yes," said
Neville nervously. "But - I don't want the Boggart to turn into her
either."
"No, no, you misunderstand
me," said Professor Lupin, now smiling. "I wonder, could you tell us
what sort of clothes your grandmother usually wears?"
Neville looked startled, but
said, "Well...always the same hat. A tall one with a stuffed vulture on top.
And a long dress...green, normally...and sometimes a fox-fur scarf."
"And a handbag?"
prompted Professor Lupin.
"A big red one," said
Neville.
"Right then," said
Professor Lupin. "Can you picture those clothes very clearly, Neville? Can
you see them in your mind's eye?"
"Yes," said Neville
uncertainty, plainly wondering what was coming next.
"When the Boggart bursts
out of this wardrobe, Neville, and sees you, it will assume the form of
Professor Snape," said Lupin. "And you will raise your wand - thus -
and cry "Riddikulus" - and concentrate hard on your grandmother's
clothes. If all goes well, Professor Boggart Snape will be forced into that
vulture-topped hat, and that green dress, with that big red handbag."
There was a great shout of
laughter. The wardrobe wobbled more violently.
"If Neville is successful,
the Boggart is likely to shift his attention to each of us in turn," said
Professor Lupin. "I would like all of you to take a moment now to think of
the thing that scares you most, and imagine how you might force it to look
comical..."
The room went quiet. Harry
thought...What scared him most in the world?
His first thought was Lord
Voldemort - a Voldemort returned to full strength. But before he had even
started to plan a possible counterattack on a Boggart-Voldemort, a horrible
image came floating to the surface of his mind...
A rotting, glistening hand,
slithering back beneath a black cloak...a long, rattling breath from an unseen
mouth...then a cold so penetrating it felt like drowning...
Harry shivered, then looked
around, hoping no one had noticed. Many people had their eyes shut tight. Ron
was muttering to himself, "Take its legs off." Harry was sure he knew
what that was about. Ron's greatest fear was spiders.
"Everyone ready?" said
Professor Lupin.
Harry felt a lurch of fear. He
wasn't ready. How could you make a Dementor less frightening? But he didn't
want to ask for more time; everyone else was nodding and rolling up their
sleeves.
"Neville, we're going to
back away," said Professor Lupin. "Let you have a clear field, all
right? I'll call the next person forward...Everyone back, now, so Neville can get
a clear shot -"
They all retreated, backed
against the walls, leaving Neville alone beside the wardrobe. He looked pale
and frightened, but he had pushed up the sleeves of his robes and was holding
his wand ready.
"On the count of three,
Neville," said Professor Lupin, who was pointing his own wand at the
handle of the wardrobe. "One - two - three - now!" A jet of sparks shot from
the end of Professor Lupin's wand and hit the doorknob. The wardrobe burst
open. Hook-nosed and menacing, Professor Snape stepped out, his eyes flashing
at Neville.
Neville backed away, his wand
up, mouthing wordlessly. Snape was bearing down upon him, reaching inside his robes.
"R - r - riddikulus! "
squeaked Neville.
There was a noise like a whip
crack. Snape stumbled; he was wearing a long, lace-trimmed dress and a towering
hat topped with a moth-eaten vulture, and he was swinging a huge crimson
handbag.
There was a roar of laughter;
the Boggart paused, confused, and Professor Lupin shouted, "Parvati!
Forward!"
Parvati walked forward, her face
set. Snape rounded on her. There was another crack, and where he had stood was
a bloodstained, bandaged mummy; its sightless face was turned to Parvati and it
began to walk toward her very slowly, dragging its feet, its stiff arms rising
-
"Riddikulus!" cried
Parvati.
A bandage unraveled at the
mummy's feet; it became entangled, fell face forward, and its head rolled off.
"Seamus!" roared
Professor Lupin.
Seamus darted past Parvati.
Crack
! Where the mummy had been was a
woman with floorlength black hair and a skeletal, green-tinged face - a
banshee. She opened her mouth wide and an unearthly sound filled the room, a
long, wailing shriek that made the hair on Harry's head stand on end -
"Riddikulus!" shouted Seamus.
The banshee made a rasping noise
and clutched her throat; her voice was gone.
Crack
! The banshee turned into a rat,
which chased its tail in a circle, then - crack!- became a rattlesnake,
which slithered and writhed before - crack! - becoming a single, bloody
eyeball.
"It's confused!"
shouted Lupin. "We're getting there! Dean!"
Dean hurried forward.
Crack
! The eyeball became a severed
hand, which flipped over and began to creep along the floor like a crab. "Riddikulus!"
yelled Dean.
There was a snap, and the hand
was trapped in a mousetrap.
"Excellent! Ron, you
next!"
Ron leapt forward.
Crack
! Quite a few people screamed.
A giant spider, six feet tall and covered in hair, was advancing on Ron,
clicking its pincers menacingly. For a moment, Harry thought Ron had frozen.
Then -
"Riddikulus!" bellowed
Ron, and the spider's legs vanished; it rolled over and over; Lavender Brown
squealed and ran out of its way and it came to a halt at Harry's feet. He
raised his wand, ready, but -
"Here!" shouted
Professor Lupin suddenly, hurrying forward. Crack! The legless spider had
vanished. For a second, everyone looked wildly around to see where it was. Then
they saw a silvery-white orb hanging in the air in front of Lupin, who said,
"Riddikulus!" almost lazily.
Crack
! "Forward, Neville, and
finish him off!" said Lupin as the Boggart landed on the floor as a
cockroach. Crack! Snape was back. This time Neville charged forward
looking determined. "Riddikulus!" he
shouted, and they had a split second's view of Snape in his lacy dress before
Neville let out a great "Ha!" of laughter, and the Boggart exploded,
burst into a thousand tiny wisps of smoke, and was gone.
"Excellent!" cried
Professor Lupin as the class broke into applause. "Excellent, Neville.
Well done, everyone...Let me see...five points to Gryffindor for every person to
tackle the Boggart - ten for Neville because he did it twice...and five each to
Hermione and Harry."
"But I didn't do anything,"
said Harry.
"You and Hermione answered
my questions correctly at the start of the class, Harry," Lupin said
lightly. "Very well, everyone, an excellent lesson. Homework, kindly read
the chapter on Boggarts and summarize it for me...to be handed in on Monday. That
will be all."
Talking excitedly, the class
left the staffroom. Harry, however, wasn't feeling cheerful. Professor Lupin
had deliberately stopped him from tackling the Boggart. Why? Was it because
he'd seen Harry collapse on the train, and thought he wasn't up to much? Had he
thought Harry would pass out again?
But no one else seemed to have
noticed anything.
"Did you see me take that
banshee?" shouted Seamus.
"And the hand!" said
Dean, waving his own around.
"And Snape in that
hat!"
"And my mummy!"
"I wonder why Professor
Lupin's frightened of crystal balls?" said Lavender thoughtfully.
"That was the best Defense
Against the Dark Arts lesson we've ever had, wasn't it?" said Ron
excitedly as they made their way back to the classroom to get their bags.
"He seems like a very good
teacher," said Hermione approvingly. "But I wish I could have had a
turn with the Boggart -"
"What would it have been
for you?" said Ron, sniggering. "A piece of homework that only got
nine out of ten?" CHAPTER EIGHT FLIGHT OF THE FAT LADY
In no time at all, Defense
Against the Dark Arts had become most people's favorite class. Only Draco
Malfoy and his gang of Slytherins had anything bad to say about Professor
Lupin.
"Look at the state of his
robes," Malfoy would say in a loud whisper as Professor Lupin passed.
"He dresses like our old house elf." But no one else cared that
Professor Lupin's robes were patched and frayed. His next few lessons were just
as interesting as the first. After Boggarts, they studied Red Caps, nasty little
goblin-like creatures that lurked wherever there had been bloodshed: in the
dungeons of castles and the potholes of deserted battlefields, waiting to
bludgeon those who had gotten lost. From Red Caps they moved on to Kappas,
creepy. water-dwellers that looked like scaly monkeys, with webbed hands
itching to strangle unwitting waders in their ponds.
Harry only wished he was as
happy with some of his other classes. Worst of all was Potions. Snape was in a
particularly vindictive mood these days, and no one was in any doubt why. The
story of the Boggart assuming Snape's shape, and the way that Neville had
dressed it in his grandmother's clothes, had traveled through the school like
wildfire. Snape didn't seem to find it funny. His eyes flashed menacingly at
the very mention of Professor Lupin's name, and he was bullying Neville worse
than ever.
Harry was also growing to dread
the hours he spent in Professor Trelawney's stifling tower room, deciphering
lopsided shapes and symbols, trying to ignore the way Professor Trelawney's
enormous eyes filled with tears every time she looked at him. He couldn't like
Professor Trelawney, even though she was treated with respect bordering on
reverence by many of the class. Parvati Patil and Lavender Brown had taken to
haunting Professor Trelawney's tower room at lunch times, and always returned
with annoyingly superior looks on their faces, as though they knew things the
others didn't. They had also started using hushed voices whenever they spoke to
Harry, as though he were on his deathbed.
Nobody really liked Care of
Magical Creatures, which, after the action-packed first class, had become
extremely dull. Hagrid seemed to have lost his confidence. They were now
spending lesson after lesson learning how to look after flobberworms, which had
to be some of the most boring creatures in existence.
"Why would anyone bother
looking after them?" said Ron, after yet another hour of poking shredded
lettuce down the flobberworms' throats.
At the start of October,
however, Harry had something else to occupy him, something so enjoyable it more
than made up for his unsatisfactory classes. The Quidditch season was
approaching, and O1iver Wood, Captain of the Gryffindor team, called a meeting
on Thursday evening to discuss tactics for the new season.
There were seven people on a
Quidditch team: three Chasers, whose job it was to score goals by putting the
Quaffle (a red, soccer-sized ball) through one of the fifty-foot-high hoops at
each end of the field; two Beaters, who were equipped with heavy bats to repel
the Bludgers (two heavy black balls that zoomed around trying to attack the
players); a Keeper, who defended the goal posts, and the Seeker, who had the
hardest job of all, that of catching the Golden Snitch, a tiny, winged,
walnut-sized ball, whose capture ended the game and earned the Seeker's team an
extra one hundred and fifty points.
Oliver Wood was a burly
seventeen-year-old, now in his seventh and final year at Hogwarts. There was a
quiet sort of desperation in his voice as he addressed his six fellow team
members in the chilly locker rooms on the edge of the darkening Quidditch
field.
"This is our last chance - my
last chance - to win the Quidditch Cup," he told them, striding up and
down in front of them. "I'll be leaving at the end of this year. I'll
never get another shot at it."
"Gryffindor hasn't won for
seven years now. Okay, so we've had the worst luck in the world - injuries -
then the tournament getting called off last year." Wood swallowed, as
though the memory still brought a lump to his throat. "But we also know
we've got the best - ruddy - team - in - the - school," he said,
punching a fist into his other hand, the old manic glint back in his eye.
"We've got three superb Chasers." Wood pointed at Alicia
Spinner, Angelina Johnson, and Katie Bell.
"We've got two unbeatable
Beaters."
"Stop it, Oliver, you're
embarrassing us," said Fred and George Weasley together, pretending to
blush.
"And we've got a Seeker who
has never failed to win us a match!" Wood rumbled, glaring at Harry
with a kind of furious pride. "And me," he added as an afterthought.
"We think you're very good
too, Oliver," said George.
"Spanking good
Keeper," said Fred.
"The point is," Wood
went on, resuming his pacing, "the Quidditch Cup should have had our name
on it these last two years. Ever since Harry joined the team, I've thought the
thing was in the bag. But we haven't got it, and this year's the last chance
we'll get to finally see our name on the thing..."
Wood spoke so dejectedly that
even Fred and George looked sympathetic.
"Oliver, this year's our
year," said Fred.
"We'll do it, Oliver!"
said Angelina.
"Definitely," said
Harry.
Full of determination, the team
started training sessions, three evenings a week. The weather was getting
colder and wetter, the nights darker, but no amount of mud, wind, or rain could
tarnish Harry's wonderful vision of finally winning the huge, silver Quidditch
Cup.
Harry returned to the Gryffindor
common room one evening after training, cold and stiff but pleased with the way
practice had gone, to find the room buzzing excitedly.
"What's happened?", he
asked Ron and Hermione, who were sitting in two of the best chairs by the
fireside and completing some star charts for Astronomy.
"First Hogsmeade
weekend," said Ron, pointing at a notice that had appeared on the battered
old bulletin board. "End of October. Halloween."
"Excellent," said
Fred, who had followed Harry through the portrait hole. "I need to visit
Zonko's. I'm nearly out of Stink Pellets."
Harry threw himself into a chair
beside Ron, his high spirits ebbing away. Hermione seemed to read his mind.
"Harry, I'm sure you'll be
able to go next time," she said. "They're bound to catch Black soon.
He's been sighted once already."
"Black's not fool enough to
try anything in Hogsmeade," said Ron. "Ask McGonagall if you can go
this time, Harry. The next one might not be for ages -"
"Ron!" said
Hermione. "Harry's supposed to stay in school -"
"He can't be the only third
year left behind," said Ron. "Ask McGonagall, go on, Harry -"
"Yeah, I think I
will," said Harry, making up his mind.
Hermione opened her mouth to
argue, but at that moment Crookshanks leapt lightly onto her lap. A large, dead
spider was dangling from his mouth.
"Does he have to eat that
in front of us?" said Ron, scowling.
"Clever Crookshanks, did
you catch that all by yourself?" said Hermione.
Crookshanks; slowly chewed up
the spider, his yellow eyes fixed insolently on Ron.
"Just keep him over there,
that's all," said Ron irritably, turning back to his star chart. "I've
got Scabbers asleep in my bag."
Harry yawned. He really wanted
to go to bed, but he still had his own star chart to complete. He pulled his
bag toward him, took out parchment, ink, and quill, and started work.
"You can copy mine, if you
like," said Ron, labeling his last star with a flourish and shoving the
chart toward Harry.
Hermione, who disapproved of
copying, pursed her lips but didn't say anything. Crookshanks was still staring
unblinkingly at Ron, flicking the end of his bushy tail. Then, without warning,
he pounced.
"OY!" Ron roared,
seizing his bag as Crookshanks sank four sets of claws deep inside it and began
tearing ferociously. "GET OFF, YOU STUPID ANIMAL!"
Ron tried to pull the bag away
from Crookshanks, but Crookshanks clung on, spitting and slashing.
"Ron, don't hurt him!"
squealed Hermione; the whole common room was watching; Ron whirled the bag
around, Crookshanks still clinging to it, and Scabbers came flying out of the
top -
"CATCH THAT CAT!" Ron
yelled as Crookshanks freed himself from the remnants of the bag, sprang over
the table, and chased after the terrified Scabbers.
George Weasley made a lunge for
Crookshanks but missed; Scabbers streaked through twenty pairs of legs and shot
beneath an old chest of drawers. Crookshanks skidded to a halt, crouched low on
his bandy legs, and started making furious swipes beneath it with his front
paw.
Ron and Hermione hurried over;
Hermione grabbed Crookshanks around the middle and heaved him away; Ron threw
himself onto his stomach and, with great difficulty, pulled Scabbers out by the
tail.
"Look at him!" he said
furiously to Hermione, dangling Scabbers in front of her. "He's skin and
bone! You keep that cat away from him!"
"Crookshanks doesn't
understand it's wrong!" said Hermione, her voice shaking. "All cats
chase rats, Ron!"
"There's something funny
about that animal!" said Ron, who was trying to persuade a frantically
wiggling Scabbers back into his pocket. "It heard me say that Scabbers was
in my bag!"
"Oh, what rubbish,"
said Hermione impatiently. "Crookshanks could smell him, Ron, how
else d'you think -"
"That cat's got it in for
Scabbers!" said Ron, ignoring the people around him, who were starting to
giggle. "And Scabbers was here first, and he's ill!"
Ron marched through the common
room and out of sight up the stairs to the boys' dormitories.
Ron was still in a bad mood
with Hermione next day. He barely talked to her all through Herbology, even
though he, Harry, and Hermione were working together on the same Puffapod.
"How's Scabbers?" Hermione
asked timidly as they stripped fat pink pods from the plants and emptied the
shining beans into a wooden pail.
"He's hiding at the bottom
of my bed, shaking," said Ron angrily, missing the pail and scattering
beans over the greenhouse floor.
"Careful, Weasley,
careful!" cried Professor Sprout as the beans burst into bloom before
their very eyes.
They had Transfiguration next.
Harry, who had resolved to ask Professor McGonagall after the lesson whether he
could go into Hogsmeade with the rest, joined the line outside the class trying
to decide how he was going to argue his case. He was distracted, however, by a
disturbance at the front of the line.
Lavender Brown seemed to be
crying. Parvati had her arm around her and was explaining something to Seamus
Finnigan and Dean Thomas, who were looking very serious.
"What's the matter,
Lavender?" said Hermione anxiously as she, Harry, and Ron went to join the
group.
"She got a letter from home
this morning," Parvati whispered. "It's her rabbit, Binky. He's been
killed by a fox."
"Oh," said Hermione,
"I'm sorry, Lavender."
"I should have known!"
said Lavender tragically. "You know what day it is?"
"Er -"
"The sixteenth of October!
'That thing you're dreading, it will happen on the sixteenth of October!'
Remember? She was right, she was right!"
The whole class was gathered
around Lavender now. Seamus shook his head seriously. Hermione hesitated; then
she said, "You - you were dreading Binky being killed by a fox?"
"Well, not necessarily by a
fox," said Lavender, looking up at Hermione with streaming eyes,
"but I was obviously dreading him dying, wasn't I?" "Oh," said
Hermione. She paused again. Then - "Was Binky an old
rabbit?" "N - no!" sobbed
Lavender. "H - he was only a baby!"
Parvati tightened her arm around
Lavender's shoulders.
"But then, why would you
dread him dying?" said Hermione.
Parvati glared at her.
"Well, look at it
logically," said Hermione, turning to the rest of the group. "I mean,
Binky didn't even die today, did he? Lavender just got the news today -"
Lavender wailed loudly. "- and she can't have been dreading it,
because it's come as a real shock -"
"Don't mind Hermione,
Lavender," said Ron loudly, "she doesn't think other people's pets
matter very much."
Professor McGonagall opened the
classroom door at that moment, which was perhaps lucky; Hermione and Ron were
looking daggers at each other, and when they got into class, they seated
themselves on either side of Harry and didn't talk to each other for the whole
class.
Harry still hadn't decided what
he was going to say to Professor McGonagall when the bell rang at the end of
the lesson, but it was she who brought up the subject of Hogsmeade first.
"One moment, please!"
she called as the class made to leave. "As you're all in my House, you
should hand Hogsmeade permission forms to me before Halloween. No form, no
visiting the village, so don't forget!"
Neville put up his hand.
"Please, Professor, I - I
think I've lost -"
"Your grandmother sent
yours to me directly, Longbottom," said Professor McGonagall. "She
seemed to think it was safer. Well, that's all, you may leave."
"Ask her now," Ron
hissed at Harry.
"Oh. but -" Hermione
began.
"Go for it, Harry,"
said Ron stubbornly.
Harry waited for the rest of the
class to disappear, then headed nervously for Professor McGonagall's desk.
"Yes, Potter?" Harry
took a deep breath.
"Professor, my aunt and
uncle - er - forgot to sign my form," he said.
Professor McGonagall looked over
her square spectacles at him but didn't say anything.
"So - er - d'you think it
would be all right mean, will It be okay if I - if I go to Hogsmeade?"
Professor McGonagall looked down
and began shuffling papers on her desk.
"I'm afraid not,
Potter," she said. "You heard what I said. No form, no visiting the
village. That's the rule."
"But - Professor, my aunt
and uncle - you know, they're Muggles, they don't really understand about -
about Hogwarts forms and stuff," Harry said, while Ron egged him on with
vigorous nods. "If you said I could go -"
"But I don't say so,"
said Professor McGonagall, standing up and piling her papers neatly into a
drawer. "The form clearly states that the parent or guardian must give
permission." She turned to look at him, with an odd expression on her
face. Was it pity? "I'm sorry, Potter, but that's my final word. You had
better hurry, or you'll be late for your next lesson."
There was nothing to be done.
Ron called Professor McGonagall a lot of names that greatly annoyed Hermione;
Hermione assumed an 'all-for-the-best' expression that made Ron even angrier,
and Harry had to endure everyone in the class talking loudly and happily about
what they were going to do first, once they got into Hogsmeade.
"There's always the
feast," said Ron, in an effort to cheer Harry up. "You know, the
Halloween feast, in the evening."
"Yeah," said Harry
gloomily, "great."
The Halloween feast was always
good, but it would taste a lot better if he was coming to it after a day in
Hogsmeade with everyone else. Nothing anyone said made him feel any better
about being left behind. Dean Thomas, who was good with a quill, had offered to
forge Uncle Vernon's signature on the form, but as Harry had already told
Professor McGonagall he hadn't had it signed, that was no good. Ron
halfheartedly suggested the Invisibility Cloak, but Hermione stamped on that
one, reminding Ron what Dumbledore had told them about the Dementors being able
to see through them. Percy had what were possibly the least helpful words of
comfort.
"They make a fuss about
Hogsmeade, but I assure you, Harry, it's not all it's cracked up to be,"
he said seriously. "All right, the sweetshop's rather good, and Zonko's
Joke Shop's frankly dangerous, and yes, the Shrieking Shack's always worth a
visit, but really, Harry, apart from that, you're not missing anything."
On Halloween morning, Harry
awoke with the rest and went down to breakfast, feeling thoroughly depressed,
though doing his best to act normally.
"We'll bring you lots of
sweets back from Honeydukes," said Hermione, looking desperately sorry for
him.
"Yeah, loads," said
Ron. He and Hermione had finally forgotten their squabble about Crookshanks in
the face of Harry's difficulties.
"Don't worry about
me," said Harry, in what he hoped was at, offhand voice, "I'll see
you at the feast. Have a good time."
He accompanied them to the
entrance hall, where Filch, the caretaker, was standing inside the front doors,
checking off names against a long list, peering suspiciously into every face,
and making sure that no one was sneaking out who shouldn't be going.
"Staying here, Potter?"
shouted Malfoy, who was standing in line with Crabbe and Goyle. "Scared of
passing the Dementors?"
Harry ignored him and made his
solitary way up the marble staircase, through the deserted corridors, and back
to Gryffindor Tower.
"Password?" said the
Fat Lady, jerking out of a doze.
"Fortuna Major," said
Harry listlessly.
The portrait swung open and he
climbed through the hole into the common room. It was full of chattering
first-and second-years, and a few older students, who had obviously visited Hogsmeade
so often the novelty had worn off.
"Harry! Harry! Hi,
Harry!"
It was Colin Creevey, a second
year who was deeply in awe of Harry and never missed an opportunity to speak to
him.
"Aren't you going to
Hogsmeade, Harry? Why not? Hey -" Colin looked eagerly around at his
friends - "you can come and sit with us, if you like, Harry!"
"Er - no, thanks,
Colin," said Harry, who wasn't in the mood to have a lot of people staring
avidly at the scar on his forehead. "I - I've got to go to the library,
got to get some work done."
After that, he had no choice but
to turn right around and head back out of the portrait hole again.
"What was the point of
waking me up?" the Fat Lady called grumpily after him as he walked away.
Harry wandered dispiritedly
toward the library, but halfway there he changed his mind; he didn't feel like
working. He turned around and came face-to-face with Filch, who had obviously
just seen off the last of the Hogsmeade visitors.
"What are you doing?"
Filch snarled suspiciously.
"Nothing," said Harry
truthfully.
"Nothing!" spat Filch,
his jowls quivering unpleasantly. "A likely story! Sneaking around on your
own - why aren't you in Hogsmeade buying Stink Pellets and Belch Powder and
Whizzing Worms like the rest of your nasty little friends?"
Harry shrugged.
"Well, get back to your
common room where you belong!" snapped Filch, and he stood glaring until
Harry had passed out of sight.
But Harry didn't go back to the
common room; he climbed a staircase, thinking vaguely of visiting the Owlery to
see Hedwig, and was walking along another corridor when a voice from inside one
of the rooms said, "Harry?"
Harry doubled back to see who
had spoken and met Professor Lupin, looking around his office door.
"What are you doing?"
said Lupin, though in a very different voice from Filch. "Where are Ron
and Hermione?"
"Hogsmeade," said
Harry, in a would-be casual voice.
"Ah," said Lupin. He
considered Harry for a moment. "Why don't you come in? I've just taken
delivery of a Grindylow for our next lesson."
"A what?" said Harry.
He followed Lupin into his
office. In the corner stood a very large tank of water. A sickly green creature
with sharp little horns had its face pressed against the glass, pulling faces
and flexing its long, spindly fingers.
"Water demon," said
Lupin, surveying the Grindylow thoughtfully. "We shouldn't have much
difficulty with him, not after the Kappas. The trick is to break his grip. You
notice the abnormally long fingers? Strong, but very brittle."
The Grindylow bared its green
teeth and then buried itself in a tangle of weeds in a corner.
"Cup of tea?" Lupin
said, looking around for his kettle. "I was just thinking of making
one."
"All right," said
Harry awkwardly.
Lupin tapped the kettle with his
wand and a blast of steam issued suddenly from the spout.
"Sit down," said
Lupin, taking the lid off a dusty tin. "I've only got teabags, I'm afraid
- but I daresay you've had enough of tea leaves?"
Harry looked at him. Lupin's
eyes were twinkling.
"How did you know about
that?" Harry asked.
"Professor McGonagall told
me," said Lupin, passing Harry a chipped mug of tea. "You're not
worried, are you?"
"No," said Harry.
He thought for a moment of
telling Lupin about the dog he'd seen in Magnolia Crescent but decided not to.
He didn't want Lupin to think he was a coward, especially since Lupin already
seemed to think he couldn't cope with a Boggart.
Something of Harry's thoughts
seemed to have shown on his face, because Lupin said, "Anything worrying
you, Harry?"
"No," Harry lied. He
drank a bit of tea and watched the Grindylow brandishing a fist at him.
"Yes," he said suddenly, putting his tea down on Lupin's desk.
"You know that day we fought the Boggart?"
"Yes," said Lupin
slowly.
"Why didn't you let me
fight it?" said Harry abruptly.
Lupin raised his eyebrows.
"I would have thought that
was obvious, Harry," he said, sounding surprised.
Harry, who had expected Lupin to
deny that he'd done any such thing, was taken aback.
"Why?" he said again.
"Well," said Lupin,
frowning slightly, "I assumed that if the Boggart faced you, it would
assume the shape of Lord Voldemort."
Harry stared. Not only was this
the last answer he'd expected, but Lupin had said Voldemort's name. The only
person Harry had ever heard say the name aloud (apart from himself) was Professor
Dumbledore.
"Clearly, I was
wrong," said Lupin, still frowning at Harry. "But I didn't think it a
good idea for Lord Voldemort to materialize in the staffroom. I imagined that
people would panic."
"I didn't think of
Voldemort," said Harry honestly. "I - I remembered those
Dementors."
"I see," said Lupin
thoughtfully. "Well, well...I'm impressed." He smiled slightly at the
look of surprise on Harry's face. "That suggests that what you fear most
of all is - fear. Very wise, Harry."
Harry didn't know what to say to
that, so he drank some more tea.
"So you've been thinking
that I didn't believe you capable of fighting the Boggart?" said Lupin
shrewdly.
"Well...yeah," said
Harry. He was suddenly feeling a lot happier. "Professor Lupin, you know
the Dementors -"
He was interrupted by a knock on
the door.
"Come in," called
Lupin.
The door opened, and in came
Snape. He was carrying a goblet, which was smoking faintly, and stopped at the
sight of Harry, his black eyes narrowing.
"Ah, Severus," said
Lupin, smiling. "Thanks very much. Could you leave it here on the desk for
me?"
Snape set down the smoking
goblet, his eyes wandering between Harry and Lupin.
"I was just showing Harry
my Grindylow," said Lupin pleasantly, pointing at the tank.
"Fascinating," said
Snape, without looking at it. "You should drink that directly,
Lupin."
"Yes, Yes, I will,"
said Lupin.
"I made an entire
cauldronful," Snape continued. "If you need more."
"I should probably have
some again tomorrow. Thanks very much, Severus."
"Not at all," said Snape,
but there was a look in his eye Harry didn't like. He backed out of the room,
unsmiling and watchful.
Harry looked curiously at the
goblet. Lupin smiled.
"Professor Snape has very
kindly concocted a potion for me," he said. "I have never been much
of a potion-brewer and this one is particularly complex." He picked up the
goblet and sniffed it. "Pity sugar makes it useless," he added,
taking a sip and shuddering.
"Why -?" Harry began.
Lupin looked at him and answered the unfinished question.
"I've been feeling a bit
off-color," he said. "This potion is the only thing that helps. I am
very lucky to be working alongside Professor Snape; there aren't many wizards
who are up to making it."
Professor Lupin took another sip
and Harry had a crazy urge to knock the goblet out of his hands.
"Professor Snape's very
interested in the Dark Arts," he blurted out.
"Really?" said Lupin,
looking only mildly interested as he took another gulp of potion.
"Some people reckon -"
Harry hesitated, then plunged recklessly on, "some people reckon he'd do
anything to get the Defense Against the Dark Arts job."
Lupin drained the goblet and
pulled a face.
"Disgusting," he said.
"Well, Harry, I'd better get back to work. See you at the feast
later."
"Right," said Harry,
putting down his empty teacup.
The empty goblet was still
smoking.
"There you go," said
Ron. "We got as much as we could carry."
A shower of brilliantly colored
sweets fell into Harry's lap. It was dusk, and Ron and Hermione had just turned
up in the common room, pink-faced from the cold wind and looking as though
they'd had the time of their lives.
"Thanks," said Harry,
picking up a packet of tiny black Pepper Imps. "What's Hogsmeade like?
Where did you go?"
By the sound of it - everywhere.
Dervish and Banges, the wizarding equipment shop, Zonko's Joke Shop, into the
Three Broomsticks for foaming mugs of hot butterbeer, and many places besides.
"The post office, Harry!
About two hundred owls, all sitting on shelves, all color-coded depending on
how fast you want your letter to get there!"
"Honeydukes has got a new
kind of fudge; they were giving out free samples, there's a bit, look -"
"We think we saw an ogre,
honestly, they get all sorts at the Three Broomsticks -"
"Wish we could have brought
you some butterbeer, really warms you up -"
"What did you do?"
said Hermione, looking anxious. "Did you get any work done?"
"No," said Harry.
"Lupin made me a cup of tea in his office. And then Snape came in..."
He told them all about the
goblet. Ron's mouth fell open.
"Lupin drank it?"
he gasped. "Is he mad?" Hermione checked her watch.
"We'd better go down, you
know, the feast'll be starting in five minutes They hurried through the
portrait hole and into the crowd, still discussing Snape.
"But if he - you know
-" Hermione dropped her voice, glancing nervously around, "if he was
trying to - to poison Lupin - he wouldn't have done it in front of Harry."
"Yeah, maybe," said
Harry as they reached the entrance hall and crossed into the Great Hall. It had
been decorated with hundreds and hundreds of candle-filled pumpkins, a cloud of
fluttering live bats, and many flaming orange streamers, which were swimming
lazily across the stormy ceiling like brilliant watersnakes.
The food was delicious; even
Hermione and Ron, who were full to bursting with Honeydukes sweets, managed
second helpings of everything. Harry kept glancing at the staff table.
Professor Lupin looked cheerful and as well as he ever did; he was talking
animatedly to tiny little Professor Flitwick, the Charms teacher. Harry moved
his eyes along the table, to the place where Snape sat. Was he imagining it, or
were Snape's eyes flickering toward Lupin more often than was natural?
The feast finished with an
entertainment provided by the Hogwarts ghosts. They popped out of the walls and
tables to do a bit of formation gliding; Nearly Headless Nick, the Gryffindor
ghost, had a great success with a reenactment of his own botched beheading.
It had been such a pleasant
evening that Harry's good mood couldn't even be spoiled by Malfoy, who shouted
through the crowd as they all left the hall, "The Dementors send their
love, Potter!"
Harry, Ron, and Hermione
followed the rest of the Gryffindors along the usual path to Gryffindor Tower,
but when they reached the corridor that ended with the portrait of the Fat
Lady, they found it jammed with students.
"Why isn't anyone going
in?" said Ron curiously.
Harry peered over the heads in
front of him. The portrait seemed to be closed.
"Let me through,
please," came Percy's voice, and he came bustling importantly through the
crowd. "What's the holdup here? You can't all have forgotten the password
- excuse me, I'm Head Boy -"
And then a silence fell over the
crowd, from the front first, so that a chill seemed to spread down the
corridor. They heard Percy say, in a suddenly sharp voice, "Somebody get
Professor Dumbledore. Quick."
People's heads turned; those at
the back were standing on tiptoe.
"What's going on?"
said Ginny, who had just arrived.
A moment later, Professor
Dumbledore was there, sweeping toward the portrait; the Gryffindors squeezed
together to let him through, and Harry, Ron, and Hermione moved closer to see
what the trouble was.
"Oh, my -" Hermione
grabbed Harry's arm.
The Fat Lady had vanished from
her portrait, which had been slashed so viciously that strips of canvas
littered the floor; great chunks of it had been torn away completely.
Dumbledore took one quick look at the ruined painting and turned, his eyes
somber, to see Professors McGonagall, Lupin, and Snape hurrying toward him.
"We need to find her,"
said Dumbledore. "Professor McGonagall, please go to Mr. Filch at once and
tell him to search every painting in the castle for the Fat Lady."
"You'll be lucky!"
said a cackling voice.
It was Peeves the Poltergeist,
bobbing over the crowd and looking delighted, as he always did, at the sight of
wreckage or worry.
"What do you mean,
Peeves?" said Dumbledore calmly, and Peeves's grin faded a little. He
didn't dare taunt Dumbledore. Instead he adopted an oily voice that was no
better than his cackle. "Ashamed, Your Headship, sir. Doesn't want to be
seen. She's a horrible mess. Saw her running through the landscape up on the
fourth floor, sir, dodging between the trees. Crying something dreadful,"
he said happily. "Poor thing." he added unconvincingly.
"Did she say who did
it?" said Dumbledore quietly.
"Oh yes,
Professorhead," said Peeves, with the air of one cradling a large
bombshell in his arms. "He got very angry when she wouldn't let him in,
you see." Peeves flipped over and grinned at Dumbledore from between his
own legs. "Nasty temper he's got, that Sirius Black." CHAPTER NINE GRIM DEFEAT
Professor Dumbledore sent all
the Gryffindors back to the Great Hall, where they were joined ten minutes
later by the students from Hufflepuff, Ravenclaw, and Slytherin, who all looked
extremely confused.
"The teachers and I need to
conduct a thorough search of the castle," Professor Dumbledore told them
as Professors McGonagall and Flitwick closed all doors into the hall. "I'm
afraid that, for your own safety, you will have to spend the night here. I want
the prefects to stand guard over the entrances to the hall and I am leaving the
Head Boy and Girl in charge. Any disturbance should be reported to me
immediately," he added to Percy, who was looking immensely proud and
important. "Send word with one of the ghosts."
Professor Dumbledore paused,
about to leave the hall, and said, "Oh, yes, you'll be needing..."
One casual wave of his wand and
the long tables flew to the edges of the hall and stood themselves against the
walls; another wave, and the floor was covered with hundreds of squashy purple
sleeping bags.
"Sleep well," said
Professor Dumbledore, closing the door behind him.
The hall immediately began to
buzz excitedly; the Gryffindors were telling the rest of the school what had
just happened.
"Everyone into their
sleeping bags!" shouted Percy. "Come on, now, no more talking! Lights
out in ten minutes!"
"C'mon," Ron said to
Harry and Hermione; they seized three sleeping bags and dragged them into a
corner.
"Do you think Black's still
in the castle?" Hermione whispered anxiously.
"Dumbledore obviously
thinks he might be," said Ron.
"It's very lucky he picked
tonight, you know," said Hermione as they climbed fully dressed into their
sleeping bags and propped themselves on their elbows to talk. "The one
night we weren't in the tower..."
"I reckon he's lost track
of time, being on the run," said Ron. "Didn't realize it was
Halloween. Otherwise he'd have come bursting in here."
Hermione shuddered.
All around them, people were
asking one another the same question: "How did he get in?" "Maybe he knows how to
Apparate," said a Ravenclaw a few feet away, "Just appear out of thin
air, you know."
"Disguised himself,
probably," said a Hufflepuff fifth year.
"He could've flown
in," suggested Dean Thomas.
"Honestly, am I the only
person who's ever bothered to read Hogwarts, A History?" said
Hermione crossly to Harry and Ron.
"Probably," said Ron.
"Why?"
"Because the castle's
protected by more than walls, you know," said Hermione. "There are
all sorts of enchantments on it, to stop people entering by stealth. You can't
just Apparate in here. And I'd like to see the disguise that could fool those
Dementors. They're guarding every single entrance to the grounds. They'd have
seen him fly in too. And Filch knows all the secret passages, they'll have them
covered..."
"The lights are going out
now!" Percy shouted. "I want everyone in their sleeping bags and no
more talking!"
The candles all went out at
once. The only light now came from the silvery ghosts, who were drifting about
talking seriously to the prefects, and the enchanted ceiling, which, like the
sky outside, was scattered with stars. What with that, and the whispering that
still filled the hall, Harry felt as though he were sleeping outdoors in a
light wind.
Once every hour, a teacher would
reappear in the Hall to check that everything was quiet. Around three in the
morning, when many students had finally fallen asleep, Professor Dumbledore
came in. Harry watched him looking around for Percy, who had been prowling
between the sleeping bags, telling people off for talking. Percy was only a
short way away from Harry, Ron, and Hermione, who quickly pretended to be
asleep as Dumbledore's footsteps drew nearer.
"Any sign of him, Professor?"
asked Percy in a whisper.
"No. All well here?"
"Everything under control,
sir."
"Good. There's no point
moving them all now. I've found a temporary guardian for the Gryffindor
portrait hole. You'll be able to move them back in tomorrow."
"And the Fat Lady,
sir?"
"Hiding in a map of
Argyllshire on the second floor. Apparently she refused to let Black in without
the password, so he attacked. She's still very distressed, but once she's
calmed down, I'll have Mr Filch restore her."
Harry heard the door of the hall
creak open again, and more footsteps.
"Headmaster?" It was
Snape. Harry kept quite still, listening hard. "The whole of the third
floor has been searched. He's not there. And Filch has done the dungeons;
nothing there either."
"What about the Astronomy
tower? Professor Trelawney's room? The Owlery?"
"All searched..."
"Very well, Severus. I
didn't really expect Black to linger."
"Have you any theory as to
how he got in, Professor?" asked Snape.
Harry raised his head very
slightly off his arms to free his other ear.
"Many, Severus, each of
them as unlikely as the next."
Harry opened his eyes a fraction
and squinted up to where they stood; Dumbledore's back was to him, but he could
see Percy's face, rapt with attention, and Snape's profile, which looked angry.
"You remember the
conversation we had, Headmaster, just before - ah - the start of term?"
said Snape, who was barely opening his lips, as though trying to block Percy
out of the conversation.
"I do, Severus," said
Dumbledore, and there was something like warning in his voice.
"It seems - almost
impossible - that Black could have entered the school without inside help. I
did express my concerns when you appointed -"
"I do not believe a single
person inside this castle would have helped Black enter it," said
Dumbledore, and his tone made it so clear that the subject was closed that
Snape didn't reply. "I must go down to the Dementors," said
Dumbledore. "I said I would inform them when our search was
complete."
"Didn't they want to help,
sir?" said Percy.
"Oh yes," said
Dumbledore coldly. "But I'm afraid no Dementor will cross the threshold of
this castle while I am Headmaster."
Percy looked slightly abashed.
Dumbledore left the hall, walking quickly and quietly. Snape stood for a
moment, watching the headmaster with an expression of deep resentment on his
face; then he too left.
Harry glanced sideways at Ron
and Hermione. Both of them had their eyes open too, reflecting the starry
ceiling.
"What was all that
about?" Ron mouthed.
The school talked of nothing but
Sirius Black for the next few days. The theories about how he had entered the
castle became wilder and wilder; Hannah Abbott, from Hufflepuff, spent much of
their next Herbology class telling anyone who'd listen that Black could turn
into a flowering shrub.
The Fat Lady's ripped canvas had
been taken off the wall and replaced with the portrait of Sir Cadogan and his
fat gray pony. Nobody was very happy about this. Sir Cadogan spent half his
time challenging people to duels, and the rest thinking up ridiculously
complicated passwords, which he changed at least twice a day.
"He's a complete
lunatic," said Seamus Finnigan angrily to Percy. "Can't we get anyone
else?"
"None of the other pictures
wanted the job," said Percy. "Frightened of what happened to the Fat
Lady. Sir Cadogan was the only one brave enough to volunteer."
Sir Cadogan, however, was the
least of Harry's worries. He was now being closely watched. Teachers found
excuses to walk along corridors with him, and Percy Weasley (acting, Harry
suspected, on his mother's orders) was tailing him everywhere like an extremely
pompous guard dog. To cap it all, Professor McGonagall summoned Harry into her
office, with such a somber expression on her face Harry thought someone must
have died.
"There's no point hiding it
from you any longer, Potter," she said in a very serious voice. "I
know this will come as a shock to you, but Sirius Black -"
"I know he's after
me," said Harry wearily. "I heard Ron's dad telling his mum. Mr.
Weasley works for the Ministry of Magic."
Professor McGonagall seemed very
taken aback. She stared at Harry for a moment or two, then said, "I see!
Well, in that case, Potter, you'll understand why I don't think it's a good
idea for you to be practicing Quidditch in the evenings. Out on the field with
only your team members, it's very exposed, Potter -"
"We've got our first match
on Saturday!" said Harry, outraged. "I've got to train,
Professor!"
Professor McGonagall considered
him intently. Harry knew she was deeply interested in the Gryffindor team's
prospects; it had been she, after all, who'd suggested him as Seeker in the
first Place. He waited, holding his breath.
"Hmm..."Professor
McGonagall stood up and stared out of the window at the Quidditch field, just
visible through the rain. "Well...goodness knows, I'd like to see us win the
Cup at last...but all the same, Potter...I'd be happier if a teacher were present.
I'll ask Madam Hooch to oversee your training sessions."
The weather worsened steadily as
the first Quidditch match drew nearer. Undaunted, the Gryffindor team was
training harder than ever under the eye of Madam Hooch. Then, at their final
training session before Saturday's match, Oliver Wood gave his team some
unwelcome news.
"We're not playing
Slytherin!" he told them, looking very angry. "Flint's just been to
see me. We're playing Hufflepuff instead."
"Why?" chorused the
rest of the team.
"Flint's excuse is that
their Seeker's arm's still injured," said Wood, grinding his teeth
furiously. "But it's obvious why they're doing it. Don't want to play in
this weather. Think it'll damage their chances..."
There had been strong winds and
heavy rain all day, and as Wood spoke, they heard a distant rumble of thunder.
"There's nothing wrong with
Malfoy's arm!" said Harry furiously. "He's faking it!"
"I know that, but we can't
prove it," said Wood bitterly, "And we've been practicing all those
moves assuming we're playing Slytherin, and instead it's Hufflepuff, and their
style's quite different. They've got a new Captain and Seeker, Cedric Diggory
-"
Angelina, Alicia, and Katie
suddenly giggled.
"What?" said Wood,
frowning at this lighthearted behavior.
"He's that tall,
good-looking one, isn't he?" said Angelina.
"Strong and silent,"
said Katie, and they started to giggle again.
"He's only silent because
he's too thick to string two words together," said Fred impatiently.
"I don't know why you're worried, Oliver, Hufflepuff is a pushover. Last
time we played them, Harry caught the Snitch in about five minutes,
remember?"
"We were playing in
completely different conditions!" Wood shouted, his eyes bulging slightly.
"Diggory's put a very strong side together! He's an excellent Seeker! I
was afraid you'd take it like this! We mustn't relax! We must keep our focus!
Slytherin is trying to wrong-foot us! We must win!"
"Oliver, calm down!"
said Fred, looking slightly alarmed. "We're taking Hufflepuff very
seriously. Seriously."
The day before the match, the
winds reached howling point and the rain fell harder than ever. It was so dark
inside the corridors and classrooms that extra torches and lanterns were lit.
The Slytherin team was looking very smug indeed, and none more so than Malfoy.
"Ah, if only my arm was
feeling a bit better!" he sighed as the gale outside pounded the windows.
Harry had no room in his head to
worry about anything except the match tomorrow. Oliver Wood kept hurrying up to
him between classes and giving him tips. The third time this happened, Wood
talked for so long that Harry suddenly realized he was ten minutes late for Defense
Against the Dark Arts, and set off at a run with Wood shouting after him,
"Diggory's got a very fast swerve, Harry, so you might want to try looping
him -"
Harry skidded to a halt outside
the Defense Against the Dark Arts classroom, pulled the door open, and dashed
inside.
"Sorry I'm late, Professor
Lupin. I -"
But it wasn't Professor Lupin
who looked up at him from the teacher's desk; it was Snape.
"This lesson began ten
minutes ago, Potter, so I think we'll make it ten points from Gryffindor. Sit
down."
But Harry didn't move.
"Where's Professor
Lupin?" he said.
"He says he is feeling too
ill to teach today," said Snape with a twisted smile. "I believe I
told you to sit down?"
But Harry stayed where he was.
"What's wrong with
him?"
Snape's black eyes glittered.
"Nothing
life-threatening," he said, looking as though he wished it were.
"Five more points from Gryffindor, and if I have to ask you to sit down
again, it will be fifty."
Harry walked slowly to his seat
and sat down. Snape looked around at the class.
"As I was saying before
Potter interrupted, Professor Lupin has not left any record of the topics you
have covered so far -"
"Please, sir, we've done
Boggarts, Red Caps, Kappas, and Grindylows," said Hermione quickly,
"and we're just about to start -"
"Be quiet," said Snape
coldly. "I did not ask for information. I was merely commenting on
Professor Lupin's lack of organization."
"He's the best Defense
Against the Dark Arts teacher we've ever had," said Dean Thomas boldly,
and there was a murmur of agreement from the rest of the class. Snape looked
more menacing than ever.
"You are easily satisfied.
Lupin is hardly overtaxing you - I would expect first years to be able to deal
with Red Caps and Grindylows. Today we shall discuss -"
Harry watched him flick through
the textbook, to the very back chapter, which he must know they hadn't covered.
"- werewolves," said
Snape.
"But, sir," said
Hermione, seemingly unable to restrain herself, "we're not supposed to do
werewolves yet, we're due to start Hinkypunks -"
"Miss Granger," said
Snape in a voice of deadly calm, "I was under the impression that I am
teaching this lesson, not you. And I am telling you all to turn to page
394." He glanced around again. "All of you! Now!" With many bitter sidelong
looks and some sullen muttering, the class opened their books.
"Which of you can tell me
how we distinguish between the werewolf and the true wolf?" said Snape.
Everyone sat in motionless
silence; everyone except Hermione, whose hand, as it so often did, had shot
straight into the air.
"Anyone?" Snape said, ignoring Hermione. His
twisted smile was back. "Are you telling me that Professor Lupin hasn't
even taught you the basic distinction between -"
"We told you," said
Parvati suddenly, "we haven't got as far as werewolves yet, we're still on
-"
"Silence!"
snarled Snape. "Well, well, well, I never thought I'd meet a third-year
class who wouldn't even recognize a werewolf when they saw one. I shall make a
point of informing Professor Dumbledore how very behind you all are..."
"Please, sir," said
Hermione, whose hand was still in the air, "the werewolf differs from the
true wolf in several small ways. The snout of the werewolf -"
"That is the second time
you have spoken out of turn, Miss Granger," said Snape coolly. "Five
more points from Gryffindor for being an insufferable know-it-all."
Hermione went very red, put down
her hand, and stared at the floor with her eyes full of tears. It was a mark of
how much the class loathed Snape that they were all glaring at him, because every
one of them had called Hermione a know-it-all at least once, and Ron, who told
Hermione she was a know-it-all at least twice a week, said loudly, "You
asked us a question and she knows the answer! Why ask if you don't want to be
told?"
The class knew instantly he'd
gone too far. Snape advanced on Ron slowly, and the room held its breath.
"Detention, Weasley,"
Snape said silkily, his face very close to Ron's. "And if I ever hear you
criticize the way I teach a class again, you will be very sorry indeed."
No one made a sound throughout
the rest of the lesson. They sat and made notes on werewolves from the
textbook, while Snape prowled up and down the rows of desks, examining the work
they had been doing with Professor Lupin.
"Very poorly explained...That
is incorrect, the Kappa is more commonly found in Mongolia...Professor Lupin gave
this eight out of ten? I wouldn't have given it three..."
When the bell rang at last,
Snape held them back.
"You will each write an
essay, to be handed in to me, on the ways you recognize and kill werewolves. I
want two rolls of parchment on the subject, and I want them by Monday morning.
It is time somebody took this class in hand. Weasley, stay behind, we need to
arrange your detention."
Harry and Hermione left the room
with the rest of the class, who waited until they were well out of earshot,
then burst into a furious tirade about Snape.
"Snape's never been like
this with any of our other Defense Against the Dark Arts teachers, even if he
did want the job," Harry said to Hermione. "Why's he got it in for
Lupin? D'you think this is all because of the Boggart?"
"I don't know," said
Hermione pensively. "But I really hope Professor Lupin gets better
soon..."
Ron caught up with them five
minutes later, in a towering rage.
"D'you know what that
-" (he called Snape something that made Hermione say "Ron!")
"- is making me do? I've got to scrub out the bedpans in the hospital
wing. Without magic!" He was breathing deeply, his fists clenched.
"Why couldn't Black have hidden in Snape's office, eh? He could have
finished him off for us!"
Harry woke extremely early the
next morning; so early that it was still dark. For a moment he thought the
roaring of the wind had woken him. Then he felt a cold breeze on the back of
his neck and sat bolt upright - Peeves the Poltergeist had been floating next
to him, blowing hard in his ear.
"What did you do that
for?" said Harry furiously. Peeves puffed out his cheeks, blew hard, and
zoomed backward out of the room, cackling.
Harry fumbled for his alarm
clock and looked at it. It was half past four. Cursing Peeves, he rolled over
and tried to get back to sleep, but it was very difficult, now that he was
awake, to ignore the sounds of the thunder rumbling overhead, the pounding of
the wind against the castle walls, and the distant creaking of the trees in the
Forbidden Forest. In a few hours he would be out on the Quidditch field,
battling through that gale. Finally, he gave up any thought of more sleep, got
up, dressed, picked up his Nimbus Two Thousand, and walked quietly out of the
dormitory.
As Harry opened the door,
something brushed against his leg. He bent down just in time to grab
Crookshanks by the end of his bushy tail and drag him outside.
"You know, I reckon Ron was
right about you," Harry told Crookshanks suspiciously. "There are
plenty of mice around this place - go and chase them. Go on," he added,
nudging Crookshanks down the spiral staircase with his foot. "Leave
Scabbers alone."
The noise of the storm was even
louder in the common room. Harry knew better than to think the match would be
canceled; Quidditch matches weren't called off for trifles like thunderstorms.
Nevertheless, he was starting to feel very apprehensive. Wood had pointed out
Cedric Diggory to him in the corridor; Diggory was a fifth year and a lot
bigger than Harry. Seekers were usually light and speedy, but Diggory's weight
would be an advantage in this weather because he was less likely to be blown
off course.
Harry whiled away the hours
until dawn in front of the fire, getting up every now and then to stop
Crookshanks from sneaking up the boys' staircase again. At long last Harry
thought it must be time for breakfast, so he headed through the portrait hole
alone.
"Stand and fight, you mangy
cur!" yelled Sir Cadogan.
"Oh, shut up," Harry
yawned.
He revived a bit over a large
bowl of porridge, and by the time he'd started on toast, the rest of the team
had turned up.
"It's going to be a tough
one," said Wood, who wasn't eating anything.
"Stop worrying,
Oliver," said Alicia soothingly, "we don't mind a bit of rain."
But it was considerably more
than a bit of rain. Such was the popularity of Quidditch that the whole school
turned out to watch the match as usual, but they ran down the lawns toward the
Quidditch field, heads bowed against the ferocious wind, umbrellas being
whipped out of their hands as they went. just before he entered the locker
room, Harry saw Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle, laughing and pointing at him from
under an enormous umbrella on their way to the stadium.
The team changed into their
scarlet robes and waited for Wood's usual pre-match pep talk, but it didn't
come. He tried to speak several times, made an odd gulping noise, then shook
his head hopelessly and beckoned them to follow him.
The wind was so strong that they
staggered sideways as they walked out onto the field. If the crowd was
cheering, they couldn't hear it over the fresh rolls of thunder. Rain was
splattering over Harry's glasses. How on earth was he going to see the Snitch
in this?
The Hufflepuffs were approaching
from the opposite side of the field, wearing canary-yellow robes. The Captains
walked up to each other and shook hands; Diggory smiled at Wood but Wood now
looked as though he had lockjaw and merely nodded. Harry saw Madam Hooch's
mouth form the words, "Mount Your brooms." He pulled his right foot
out of the mud with a squelch and swung it over his Nimbus Two Thousand. Madam
Hooch put her whistle to her lips and gave it a blast that sounded shrill and
distant - they were off.
Harry rose fast, but his Nimbus
was swerving slightly with the wind. He held it as steady as he could and
turned, squinting into the rain.
Within five minutes Harry was
soaked to his skin and frozen, hardly able to see his teammates, let alone the
tiny Snitch. He flew backward and forward across the field past blurred red and
yellow shapes, with no idea of what was happening in the rest of the game. He
couldn't hear the commentary over the wind. The crowd was hidden beneath a sea
of cloaks and battered umbrellas. Twice Harry came very close to being unseated
by a Bludger; his vision was so clouded by the rain on his glasses he hadn't
seen them coming.
He lost track of time. It was
getting harder and harder to hold his broom straight. The sky was getting
darker, as though night had decided to come early. Twice Harry nearly hit
another player, without knowing whether it was a teammate or opponent; everyone
was now so wet, and the rain so thick, he could hardly tell them apart...
With the first flash of
lightning came the sound of Madam Hooch's whistle; Harry could just see the
outline of Wood through the thick rain, gesturing him to the ground. The whole
team splashed down into the mud.
"I called for
time-out!" Wood roared at his team. "Come on, under here -"
They huddled at the edge of the
field under a large umbrella; Harry took off his glasses and wiped them
hurriedly on his robes.
"What's the score?"
"We're fifty points
up," said Wood, "but unless we get the Snitch soon, we'll be playing
into the night."
"I've got no chance with
these on," Harry said exasperatedly, waving his glasses.
At that very moment, Hermione
appeared at his shoulder; she was holding her cloak over her head and was,
inexplicably, beaming.
"I've had an idea, Harry!
Give me your glasses, quick!"
He handed them to her, and as
the team watched in amazement, Hermione tapped them with her wand and said,
"Impervius!" "There!" she said,
handing them back to Harry. "They'll repel water!"
Wood looked as though he could
have kissed her.
"Brilliant!" he called
hoarsely after her as she disappeared into the crowd. "Okay, team, let's
go for it!"
Hermione's spell had done the
trick. Harry was still numb with cold, still wetter than he'd ever been in his
life, but he could see. Full of fresh determination, he urged his broom through
the turbulent air, staring in every direction for the Snitch, avoiding a
Bludger, ducking beneath Diggory, who was streaking in the opposite direction...
There was another clap of
thunder, followed immediately by forked lightning. This was getting more and more
dangerous. Harry needed to get the Snitch quickly -
He turned, intending to head
back toward the middle of the field, but at that moment, another flash of
lightning illuminated the stands, and Harry saw something that distracted him
completely, the silhouette of an enormous shaggy black dog, clearly imprinted
against the sky, motionless in the topmost, empty row of seats.
Harry's numb hands slipped on
the broom handle and his Nimbus dropped a few feet. Shaking his sodden bangs
out of his eyes, he squinted back into the stands. The dog had vanished.
"Harry!" came Wood's
anguished yell from the Gryffindor goal posts. "Harry, behind you!"
Harry looked wildly around.
Cedric Diggory was pelting up the field, and a tiny speck of gold was
shimmering in the rain-filled air between them...
With a jolt of panic, Harry
threw himself flat to the broom handle and zoomed toward the Snitch.
"Come on!" he growled
at his Nimbus as the rain whipped his face. "Faster!" But something odd was
happening. An eerie silence was falling across the stadium. The wind, though as
strong as ever, was forgetting to roar. It was as though someone had turned off
the sound, as though Harry had gone suddenly deaf - what was going on?
And then a horribly familiar
wave of cold swept over him, inside him, just as he became aware of something
moving on the field below...
Before he'd had time to think,
Harry had taken his eyes off the Snitch and looked down.
At least a hundred Dementors,
their hidden faces pointing up at him, were standing beneath him. It was as
though freezing water were rising in his chest, cutting at his insides. And
then he heard it again...Someone was screaming, screaming inside his head...a
woman...
"Not Harry, not Harry,
please not Harry!"
"Stand aside, you silly
girl...stand aside, now..."
"Not Harry, please no, take
me, kill me instead -"
Numbing, swirling white mist was
filling Harry's brain...What was he doing? Why was he flying? He needed to help
her...She was going to die...She was going to be murdered...
He was falling, falling through
the icy mist.
"Not Harry! Please...have
mercy...have mercy..." A shrill voice was laughing,
the woman was screaming, and Harry knew no more.
"Lucky the ground was so
soft."
"I thought he was dead for
sure."
"But he didn't even break
his glasses."
Harry could hear the voices
whispering, but they made no sense whatsoever. He didn't have a clue where he
was, or how he'd got there, or what he'd been doing before he got there. All he
knew was that every inch of him was aching as though it had been beaten.
"That was the scariest
thing I've ever seen in my life."
Scariest...the scariest
thing...hooded black figures...cold...screaming...
Harry's eyes snapped open. He
was lying in the hospital wing. The Gryffindor Quidditch team, spattered with
mud from head to foot, was gathered around his bed. Ron and Hermione were also
there, looking as though they'd just climbed out of a swimming pool.
"Harry!" said Fred,
who looked extremely white underneath, the mud. "How're you feeling?"
It was as though Harry's memory
was on fast forward. The lightning...the Grim...the Snitch...and the Dementors...
"What happened?" he
said, sitting up so suddenly they all gasped.
"You fell off," said
Fred. "Must've been - what - fifty feet?"
"We thought you'd
died," said Alicia, who was shaking.
Hermione made a small, squeaky
noise. Her eyes were extremely bloodshot.
"But the match," said
Harry. "What happened? Are we doing a replay?"
No one said anything. The
horrible truth sank into Harry like a stone.
"We didn't - lose?" "Diggory got the
Snitch," said George. "Just after you fell. He didn't realize what
had happened. When he looked back and saw you on the ground, he tried to call
it off. Wanted a rematch. But they won fair and square...even Wood admits
it."
"Where is Wood?" said
Harry, suddenly realizing he wasn't there.
"Still in the
showers," said Fred. "We think he's trying to drown himself."
Harry put his face to his knees,
his hands gripping his hair. Fred grabbed his shoulder and shook it roughly.
"C'mon, Harry, you've never
missed the Snitch before."
"There had to be one time
you didn't get it," said George.
"It's not over yet,"
said Fred. "We lost by a hundred points."
"Right? So if Hufflepuff
loses to Ravenclaw and we beat Ravenclaw and Slytherin..."
"Hufflepuff'll have to lose
by at least two hundred points," said George.
"But if they beat
Ravenclaw..."
"No way, Ravenclaw is too
good. But if Slytherin loses against Hufflepuff..."
"It all depends on the
points - a margin of a hundred either way -"
Harry lay there, not saying a
word. They had lost...for the first time ever, he had lost a Quidditch match.
After ten minutes or so, Madam
Pomfrey came over to tell the team to leave him in peace.
"We'll come and see you
later," Fred told him. "Don't beat yourself up. Harry, you're still
the best Seeker we've ever had."
The team trooped out, trailing
mud behind them. Madam Pomfrey shut the door behind them, looking disapproving.
Ron and Hermione moved nearer to Harry's bed.
"Dumbledore was really
angry," Hermione said in a quaking voice. "I've never seen him like
that before. He ran onto the field as you fell, waved his wand, and you sort of
slowed down before you hit the ground. Then he whirled his wand at the
Dementors. Shot silver stuff at them. They left the stadium right away...He was
furious they'd come onto the grounds. We heard him -"
"Then he magicked you onto
a stretcher," said Ron. "And walked up to school with you floating on
it. Everyone thought you were..."
His voice faded, but Harry
hardly noticed. He was thinking about what the Dementors had done to him...about
the screaming voice. He looked up and saw Ron and Hermione looking at him so
anxiously that he quickly cast around for something matter-of-fact to say.
"Did someone get my
Nimbus?"
Ron and Hermione looked quickly
at each other.
"Er -"
"What?" said Harry,
looking from one to the other.
"Well...when you fell off, it
got blown away," said Hermione hesitantly.
"And?"
"And it hit - it hit - oh,
Harry - it hit the Whomping Willow."
Harry's insides lurched. The
Whomping Willow was a very violent tree that stood alone in the middle of the
grounds.
"And?" he said,
dreading the answer.
"Well, you know the
Whomping Willow," said Ron. "It - it doesn't like being hit."
"Professor Flitwick brought
it back just before you came around," said Hermione in a very small voice.
Slowly, she reached down for a
bag at her feet, turned it upside down, and tipped a dozen bits of splintered
wood and twig onto the bed, the only remains of Harry's faithful, finally
beaten broomstick. CHAPTER TEN THE MARAUDER'S MAP
Madam Pomfrey insisted on
keeping Harry in the hospital wing for the rest of the weekend. He didn't argue
or complain, but he wouldn't let her throw away the shattered remnants of his
Nimbus Two Thousand. He knew he was being stupid, knew that the Nimbus was
beyond repair, but Harry couldn't help it; he felt as though he'd lost one of
his best friends. He had a stream of visitors,
all intent on cheering him up. Hagrid sent him a bunch of earwiggy flowers that
looked like yellow cabbages, and Ginny Weasley, blushing furiously, turned up
with a get-well card she had made herself, which sang shrilly unless Harry kept
it shut under his bowl of fruit. The Gryffindor team visited again on Sunday
morning, this time accompanied by Wood, who told Harry (in a hollow, dead sort
of voice) that he didn't blame him in the slightest. Ron and Hermione left
Harry's bedside only at night. But nothing anyone said or did could make Harry
feel any better, because they knew only half of what was troubling him.
He hadn't told anyone about the
Grim, not even Ron and Hermione, because he knew Ron would panic and Hermione
would scoff. The fact remained, however, that it had now appeared twice, and
both appearances had been followed by near-fatal accidents; the first time, he
had nearly been run over by the Knight Bus; the second, fallen fifty feet from
his broomstick. Was the Grim going to haunt him until he actually died? Was he
going to spend the rest of his life looking over his shoulder for the beast?
And then there were the
Dementors. Harry felt sick and humiliated every time he thought of them.
Everyone said the Dementors were horrible, but no one else collapsed every time
they went near one. No one else heard echoes in their head of their dying
parents.
Because Harry knew who that
screaming voice belonged to now. He had heard her words, heard them over and
over again during the night hours in the hospital wing while he lay awake,
staring at the strips of moonlight on the ceiling. When the Dementors
approached him, he heard the last moments of his mother's life, her attempts to
protect him, Harry, from Lord Voldemort, and Voldemort's laughter before he
murdered her...Harry dozed fitfully, sinking into dreams full of clammy, rotted
hands and petrified pleading, jerking awake to dwell again on his mother's
voice.
*
It was a relief to return to the
noise and bustle of the main school on Monday, where he was forced to think
about other things, even if he had to endure Draco Malfoy's taunting. Malfoy
was almost beside himself with glee at Gryffindor's defeat. He had finally taken
off his bandages, and celebrated having the full use of both arms again by
doing spirited imitations of Harry falling off his broom. Malfoy spent much of
their next Potions class doing Dementor imitations across the dungeon; Ron
finally cracked and flung a large, slippery crocodile heart at Malfoy, which
hit him in the face and caused Snape to take fifty points from Gryffindor.
"If Snape's teaching
Defense Against the Dark Arts again, I'm skiving off," said Ron as they
headed toward Lupin's classroom after lunch. "Check who's in there,
Hermione."
Hermione peered around the
classroom door.
"It's okay!"
Professor Lupin was back at
work. It certainly looked as though he had been ill. His old robes were hanging
more loosely on him and there were dark shadows beneath his eyes; nevertheless,
he smiled at the class as they took their seats, and they burst at once into an
explosion of complaints about Snape's behavior while Lupin had been ill.
"It's not fair, he was only
filling in, why should he give us homework?"
"We don't know anything
about werewolves -"
"- two rolls of
parchment!"
"Did you tell Professor
Snape we haven't covered them yet?" Lupin asked, frowning slightly.
The babble broke out again.
"Yes, but he said we were
really behind -"
"- he wouldn't listen
-"
"- two rolls of
parchment!" Professor Lupin smiled at
the look of indignation on every face.
"Don't worry. I'll speak to
Professor Snape. You don't have to do the essay."
"Oh no," said
Hermione, looking very disappointed. "I've already finished it!" They had a very enjoyable
lesson. Professor Lupin had brought along a glass box containing a Hinkypunk, a
little one-legged creature who looked as though he were made of wisps of smoke,
rather frail and harmless looking.
"Lures travelers into
bogs," said Professor Lupin as they took notes. "You notice the
lantern dangling from his hand? Hops ahead - people follow the light - then
-"
The Hinkypunk made a horrible
squelching noise against the glass.
When the bell rang, everyone
gathered up their things and headed for the door, Harry among them, but -
"Wait a moment,
Harry," Lupin called. "I'd like a word."
Harry doubled back and watched
Professor Lupin covering the Hinkypunk's box with a cloth.
"I heard about the
match," said Lupin, turning back to his desk and starting to pile books
into his briefcase, "and I'm sorry about your broomstick. Is there any
chance of fixing it?"
"No," said Harry.
"The tree smashed it to bits."
Lupin sighed.
"They planted the Whomping
Willow the same year that I arrived at Hogwarts. People used to play a game,
trying to get near enough to touch the trunk. In the end, a boy called Davey
Gudgeon nearly lost an eye, and we were forbidden to go near it. No broomstick
would have a chance."
"Did you hear about the
Dementors too?" said Harry with difficulty.
Lupin looked at him quickly.
"Yes, I did. I don't think
any of us have seen Professor Dumbledore that angry. They have been growing
restless for some time...furious at his refusal to let them inside the grounds...I
suppose they were the reason you fell?"
"Yes," said Harry. He
hesitated, and then the question he had to ask burst from him before he could
stop himself. "Why? Why do they affect me like that? Am I just
-?"
"It has nothing to do with
weakness," said Professor Lupin sharply, as though he had read Harry's
mind. "The Dementors affect you worse than the others because there are
horrors in your past that the others don't have."
A ray of wintry sunlight fell
across the classroom, illuminating Lupin's gray hairs and the lines on his
young face.
"Dementors are among the
foulest creatures that walk this earth. They infest the darkest, filthiest
places, they glory in decay and despair, they drain peace, hope, and happiness
out of the air around them. Even Muggles feel their presence, though they can't
see them. Get too near a Dementor and every good feeling, every happy memory
will be sucked out of you. If it can, the Dementor will feed on you long enough
to reduce you to something like itself - soul-less and evil. You'll be left
with nothing but the worst experiences of your life. And the worst that
happened to you, Harry, is enough to make anyone fall off their broom. You have
nothing to feel ashamed of."
"When they get near me
-" Harry stared at Lupin's desk, his throat tight. "I can hear Voldemort
murdering my mum."
Lupin made a sudden motion with
his arm as though to grip Harry's shoulder, but thought better of it. There was
a moment's silence, then -
"Why did they have to come
to the match?" said Harry bitterly.
"They're getting
hungry," said Lupin coolly, shutting his briefcase with a snap.
"Dumbledore won't let them into the school, so their supply of human prey
has dried up...I don't think they could resist the large crowd around the
Quidditch field. All that excitement...emotions running high...it was their idea of
a feast."
"Azkaban must be
terrible," Harry muttered. Lupin nodded grimly.
"The fortress is set on a
tiny island, way out to sea, but they don't need walls and water to keep the
prisoners in, not when they're all trapped inside their own heads, incapable of
a single cheery thought. Most of them go mad within weeks."
"But Sirius Black escaped
from them," Harry said slowly. "He got away..."
Lupin's briefcase slipped from
the desk; he had to stoop quickly to catch it.
"Yes," he said, straightening
up, "Black must have found a way to fight them. I wouldn't have believed
it possible...Dementors are supposed to drain a wizard of his powers if he is
left with them too long..."
"You made that
Dementor on the train back off," said Harry suddenly. "There are - certain
defenses one can use," said Lupin. "But there was only one Dementor
on the train. The more there are, the more difficult it becomes to
resist."
"What defenses?" said
Harry at once. "Can you teach me?"
"I don't pretend to be an
expert at fighting Dementors, Harry - quite the contrary..."
"But if the Dementors come
to another Quidditch match, I need to be able to fight them -"
Lupin looked into Harry's
determined face, hesitated, then said, "Well...all right. I'll try and help.
But it'll have to wait until next term, I'm afraid. I have a lot to do before
the holidays. I chose a very inconvenient time to fall ill."
*
What with the promise of
anti-Dementor lessons from Lupin, the thought that he might never have to hear
his mother's death again, and the fact that Ravenclaw flattened Hufflepuff in
their Quidditch match at the end of November, Harry's mood took a definite
upturn. Gryffindor were not out of the running after all, although they could
not afford to lose another match. Wood became repossessed of his manic energy,
and worked his team as hard as ever in the chilly haze of rain that persisted
into December. Harry saw no hint of a Dementor within the grounds. Dumbledore's
anger seemed to be keeping them at their stations at the entrances.
Two weeks before the end of the
term, the sky lightened suddenly to a dazzling, opaline white and the muddy
grounds were revealed one morning covered in glittering frost. Inside the
castle, there was a buzz of Christmas in the air. Professor Flitwick, the Charms
teacher, had already decorated his classroom with shimmering lights that turned
out to be real, fluttering fairies. The students were all happily discussing
their plans for the holidays. Both Ron and Hermione had decided to remain at
Hogwarts, and though Ron said it was because he couldn't stand two weeks with
Percy, and Hermione insisted she needed to use the library, Harry wasn't
fooled; they were doing it to keep him company, and he was very grateful.
To everyone's delight except
Harry's, there was to be another Hogsmeade trip on the very last weekend of the
term.
"We can do all our
Christmas shopping there!" said Hermione. "Mum and Dad would really
love those Toothflossing Stringmints from Honeydukes!"
Resigned to the fact that he
would be the only third year staying behind again, Harry borrowed a copy of Which
Broomstick from Wood, and decided to spend the day reading up on the
different makes. He had been riding one of the school brooms at team practice,
an ancient Shooting Star, which was very slow and jerky; he definitely needed a
new broom of his own.
On the Saturday morning of the
Hogsmeade trip, Harry bid good-bye to Ron and Hermione, who were wrapped in
cloaks and scarves, then turned up the marble staircase alone, and headed back
toward Gryffindor Tower. Snow had started to fall outside the windows, and the
castle was very still and quiet.
"Psst - Harry!"
He turned, halfway along the
third-floor corridor, to see Fred and George peering out at him from behind a
statue of a humpbacked, one-eyed witch.
"What are you doing?"
said Harry curiously. "How come you're not going to Hogsmeade?"
"We've come to give you a
bit of festive cheer before we go," said Fred, with a mysterious wink.
"Come in here..."
He nodded toward an empty
classroom to the left of the one-eyed statue. Harry followed Fred and George
inside. George closed the door quietly and then turned, beaming, to look at
Harry.
"Early Christmas present
for you, Harry," he said.
Fred pulled something from
inside his cloak with a flourish and laid it on one of the desks. It was a
large, square, very worn piece of parchment with nothing written on it. Harry,
suspecting one of Fred and George's jokes, stared at it.
"What's that supposed to
be?"
"This, Harry, is the secret
of our success," said George, patting the parchment fondly.
"It's a wrench, giving it
to you," said Fred, "but we decided last night, your need's greater
than ours."
"Anyway, we know it by
heart," said George. "We bequeath it to you. We don't really need it
anymore."
"And what do I need with a
bit of old parchment?" said Harry.
"A bit of old
parchment!" said Fred, closing his eyes with a grimace as though Harry had
mortally offended him. "Explain, George."
"Well...when we were in our
first year, Harry - young, carefree, and innocent -"
Harry snorted. He doubted
whether Fred and George had ever been innocent.
"- well, more innocent than
we are now - we got into a spot of bother with Filch."
"We let off a Dungbomb in
the corridor and it upset him for some reason -"
"So he hauled us off to his
office and started threatening us with the usual -"
"- detention -"
"- disembowelment -"
"- and we couldn't help
noticing a drawer in one of his filing cabinets marked Confiscated and
Highly Dangerous." "Don't tell me -"
said Harry, starting to grin.
"Well, what would you've
done?" said Fred. "George caused a diversion by dropping another
Dungbomb, I whipped the drawer open, and grabbed - this." "It's not as bad as it
sounds, you know," said George. "We don't reckon Filch ever found out
how to work it. He probably suspected what it was, though, or he wouldn't have
confiscated it."
"And you know how to work
it?"
"Oh yes," said Fred,
smirking. "This little beauty's taught us more than all the teachers in
this school."
"You're winding me
up," said Harry, looking at the ragged old bit of parchment.
"Oh, are we?" said
George.
He took out his wand, touched
the parchment lightly, and said, "I solemnly swear that I am up to no
good." And at once, thin ink lines
began to spread like a spider's web from the point that George's wand had
touched. They joined each other, they crisscrossed, they fanned into every
corner of the parchment; then words began to blossom across the top, great,
curly green words, that proclaimed: Messrs. Moony, Wormtail, Padfoot, and Prongs Purveyors of Aids to Magical Mischief-Makers are proud to present THE MARAUDER'S MAP
It was a map showing every
detail of the Hogwarts castle and grounds. But the truly remarkable thing were
the tiny ink dots moving around it, each labeled with a name in minuscule
writing. Astounded, Harry bent over it. A labeled dot in the top left corner
showed that Professor Dumbledore was pacing his study; the caretaker's cat,
Mrs. Norris, was prowling the second floor; and Peeves the Poltergeist was
currently bouncing around the trophy room. And as Harry's eyes traveled up and
down the familiar corridors, he noticed something else.
This map showed a set of
passages he had never entered. And many of them seemed to lead -
"Right into
Hogsmeade," said Fred, tracing one of them with his finger. "There
are seven in all. Now, Filch knows about these four" - he pointed them out
- "but we're sure we're the only ones who know about these. Don't
bother with the one behind the mirror on the fourth floor. We used it until
last winter, but it's caved in - completely blocked. And we don't reckon
anyone's ever used this one, because the Whomping Willow's planted right over
the entrance. But this one here, this one leads right into the cellar of
Honeydukes. We've used it loads of times. And as you might've noticed, the
entrance is right outside this room, through that one-eyed old crone's
hump."
"Moony, Wormtail, Padfoot,
and Prongs," sighed George, patting the heading of the map. "We owe
them so much."
"Noble men, working
tirelessly to help a new generation of lawbreakers," said Fred solemnly.
"Right," said George
briskly. "Don't forget to wipe it after you've used it -"
"- or anyone can read
it," Fred said warningly.
"Just tap it again and say,
"Mischief managed!" And it'll go blank."
"So, young Harry,"
said Fred, in an uncanny impersonation of Percy, "mind you behave
yourself."
"See you in
Honeydukes," said George, winking.
They left the room, both
smirking in a satisfied sort of way.
Harry stood there, gazing at the
miraculous map. He watched the tiny ink Mrs. Norris turn left and pause to
sniff at something on the floor. If Filch really didn't know...he wouldn't have
to pass the Dementors at all...
But even as he stood there,
flooded with excitement, something Harry had once heard Mr. Weasley say came
floating out of his memory.
Never trust anything that can
think for itself, if you can't see where it keeps its brain.
This map was one of those
dangerous magical objects Mr. Weasley had been warning against...Aids for
Magical Mischief Makers...but then, Harry reasoned, he only wanted to use it
to get into Hogsmeade, it wasn't as though he wanted to steal anything or
attack anyone...and Fred and George had been using it for years without anything
horrible happening...
Harry traced the secret passage
to Honeydukes with his finger.
Then, quite suddenly, as though
following orders, he rolled up the map, stuffed it inside his robes, and
hurried to the door of the classroom. He opened it a couple of inches. There
was no one outside. Very carefully, he edged out of the room and behind the
statue of the one-eyed witch.
What did he have to do? He
pulled out the map again and saw to his astonishment, that a new ink figure had
appeared upon it, labeled 'Harry Potter'. This figure was standing exactly
where the real Harry was standing, about halfway down the third-floor corridor.
Harry watched carefully. His little Ink self appeared to be tapping the witch
with his minute wand. Harry quickly took out his real wand and tapped the
statue. Nothing happened. He looked back at the map. The tiniest speech bubble
had appeared next to his figure. The word inside said, 'Dissendium.'
"Dissendium!" Harry
whispered, tapping the stone witch again. At once, the statue's hump
opened wide enough to admit a fairly thin person. Harry glanced quickly up and
down the corridor, then tucked the map away again, hoisted himself into the
hole headfirst, and pushed himself forward.
He slid a considerable way down
what felt like a stone slide, then landed on cold, damp earth. He stood up,
looking around. It was pitch dark. He held up his wand, muttered, "Lumos!"
and saw that he was in a very narrow, low, earthy passageway. He raised the
map, tapped it with the tip of his wand, and muttered, "Mischief
managed!" The map went blank at once. He folded it carefully, tucked it
inside his robes, then, heart beating fast, both excited and apprehensive, he
set off.
The passage twisted and turned,
more like the burrow of a giant rabbit than anything else. Harry hurried along
it, stumbling now and then on the uneven floor, holding his wand out in front
of him.
It took ages, but Harry had the
thought of Honeydukes to sustain him. After what felt like an hour, the passage
began to rise. Panting, Harry sped up, his face hot, his feet very cold.
Ten minutes later, he came to
the foot of some worn stone steps, which rose out of sight above him. Careful
not to make any noise, Harry began to climb. A hundred steps, two hundred
steps, he lost count as he climbed, watching his feet...then, without warning,
his head hit something hard.
It seemed to be a trapdoor.
Harry stood there, massaging the top of his head, listening. He couldn't hear
any sounds above him. Very slowly, he pushed the trapdoor open and peered over
the edge.
He was in a cellar, which was
full of wooden crates and boxes. Harry climbed out of the trapdoor and replaced
it - it blended so perfectly with the dusty floor that it was impossible to
tell it was there. Harry crept slowly toward the wooden staircase that led
upstairs. Now he could definitely hear voices, not to mention the tinkle of a
bell and the opening and shutting of a door.
Wondering what he ought to do,
he suddenly heard a door open much closer at hand; somebody was about to come
downstairs.
"And get another box of
Jelly Slugs, dear, they've nearly cleaned us out -" said a woman's voice.
A pair of feet was coming down
the staircase. Harry leapt behind an enormous crate and waited for the
footsteps to pass. He heard the man shifting boxes against the opposite wall.
He might not get another chance -
Quickly and silently, Harry
dodged out from his hiding place and climbed the stairs; looking back, he saw
an enormous backside and shiny bald head, buried in a box. Harry reached the
door at the top of the stairs, slipped through it, and found himself behind the
counter of Honeydukes - he ducked, crept sideways, and then straightened up.
Honeydukes was so crowded with
Hogwarts students that no one looked twice at Harry. He edged among them,
looking around, and suppressed a laugh as he imagined the look that would
spread over Dudley's piggy face if he could see where Harry was now.
There were shelves upon shelves
of the most succulent-looking sweets imaginable. Creamy chunks of nougat,
shimmering pink squares of coconut ice, fat, honey-colored toffees; hundreds of
different kinds of chocolate in neat rows; there was a large barrel of Every
Flavor Beans, and another of Fizzing Whizbees, the levitating sherbet balls
that Ron had mentioned; along yet another wall were 'Special Effects' - sweets:
Droobles Best Blowing Gum (which filled a room with bluebell-colored bubbles
that refused to pop for days), the strange, splintery Toothflossing
Stringmints, tiny black Pepper Imps ('breathe fire for your friends!'), Ice
Mice ('hear your teeth chatter and squeak!'), peppermint creams shaped like
toads ('hop realistically in the stomach!'), fragile sugar-spun quills, and
exploding bonbons.
Harry squeezed himself through a
crowd of sixth years and saw a sign hanging in the farthest corner of the shop
(UNUSUAL TASTES). Ron and Hermione were standing underneath it, examining a
tray of blood-flavored lollipops. Harry sneaked up behind them.
"Ugh, no, Harry won't want
one of those, they're for vampires, I expect," Hermione was saying.
"How about these?"
said Ron, shoving a jar of Cockroach Clusters under Hermione's nose.
"Definitely not," said
Harry.
Ron nearly dropped the jar.
"Harry!"
squealed Hermione. "What are you doing here? How - how did you -?" "Wow!" said Ron,
looking very impressed, "you've learned to Apparate!"
"'Course I haven't,"
said Harry. He dropped his voice so that none of the sixth years could hear him
and told them all about the Marauder's Map.
"How come Fred and George
never gave it to me!" said Ron, outraged. "I'm their
brother!" "But Harry isn't going
to keep it!" said Hermione, as though the idea were ludicrous. "He's
going to hand it in to Professor McGonagall, aren't you, Harry?"
"No, I'm not!" said
Harry.
"Are you mad?" said
Ron, goggling at Hermione. "Hand in something that good?"
"If I hand it in, I'll have
to say where I got it! Filch would know Fred and George had nicked it!"
"But what about Sirius
Black?" Hermione hissed. "He could be using one of the passages on
that map to get into the castle! The teachers have got to know!"
"He can't be getting in
through a passage," said Harry quickly. "There are seven secret
tunnels on the map, right? Fred and George reckon Filch already knows about
four of them. And of the other three - one of them's caved in, so no one can
get through it. One of them's got the Whomping Willow planted over the
entrance, so you can't get out of it. And the one I just came through - well -
it's really hard to see the entrance to it down in the cellar - so unless he
knew it was there -"
Harry hesitated. What if Black
did know the passage was there? Ron, however, cleared his throat significantly,
and pointed to a notice pasted on the inside of the sweetshop door.
BY ORDER OF THE MINISTRY OF
MAGIC
Customers are reminded that
until further notice, Dementors will be patrolling the streets of Hogsmeade
every night after sundown. This measure has been put in place for the safety of
Hogsmeade residents and will be lifted upon the recapture of Sirius Black. It
is therefore advisable that you complete your shopping well before nightfall.
Merry Christmas!
"See?" said Ron
quietly. "I'd like to see Black try and break into Honeydukes with
Dementors swarming all over the village. Anyway, Hermione, the Honeydukes
owners would hear a break-in, wouldn't they? They live over the shop!"
"Yes, but - but -"
Heroine seemed to be struggling to find another problem. "Look, Harry
still shouldn't be coming into Hogsmeade. He hasn't got a signed form! If
anyone finds out, he'll be in so much trouble! And it's not nightfall yet -
what if Sirius Black turns up today? Now?"
"He'd have a job spotting
Harry in this," said Ron, nodding through the mullioned windows at the
thick, swirling snow. "Come on, Hermione, it's Christmas. Harry deserves a
break."
Hermione bit her lip, looking
extremely worried.
"Are you going to report
me?" Harry asked her, grinning.
"Oh - of course not - but
honestly, Harry -"
"Seen the Fizzing Whizbees,
Harry?" said Ron, grabbing him and leading him over to their barrel.
"And the Jelly Slugs? And the Acid Pops? Fred gave me one of those when I
was seven - it burnt a hole right through my tongue. I remember Mum walloping
him with her broomstick." Ron stared broodingly into the Acid Pop box.
"Reckon Fred'd take a bite of Cockroach Cluster if I told him they were
peanuts?"
When Ron and Hermione had paid
for all their sweets, the three of them left Honeydukes for the blizzard
outside.
Hogsmeade looked like a
Christmas card; the little thatched cottages and shops were all covered in a
layer of crisp snow; there were holly wreaths on the doors and strings of
enchanted candles hanging in the trees.
Harry shivered; unlike the other
two, he didn't have his cloak. They headed up the street, heads bowed against
the wind, Ron and Hermione shouting through their scarves.
"That's the post office
-"
"Zonko's is up there
-"
"We could go up to the
Shrieking Shack -"
"Tell you what," said
Ron, his teeth chattering, "shall we go for a butterbeer in the Three
Broomsticks?"
Harry was more than willing; the
wind was fierce and his hands were freezing, so they crossed the road, and in a
few minutes were entering the tiny inn.
It was extremely crowded, noisy,
warm, and smoky. A curvy sort of woman with a pretty face was serving a bunch
of rowdy warlocks up at the bar.
"That's Madam
Rosmerta," said Ron. "I'll get the drinks, shall I?" he added,
going slightly red.
Harry and Hermione made their
way to the back of the room, where there was a small, vacant table between the
window and a handsome Christmas tree, which stood next to the fireplace. Ron
came back five minutes later, carrying three foaming tankards of hot
butterbeer.
"Merry Christmas!" he
said happily, raising his tankard.
Harry drank deeply. It was the
most delicious thing he'd ever tasted and seemed to heat every bit of him from
the inside.
A sudden breeze ruffled his
hair. The door of the Three Broomsticks had opened again. Harry looked over the
rim of his tankard and choked.
Professors McGonagall and
Flitwick had just entered the pub with a flurry of snowflakes, shortly followed
by Hagrid, who was deep in conversation with a portly man in a lime-green
bowler hat and a pinstriped cloak - Cornelius Fudge, Minister of Magic.
In an instant, Ron and Hermione
had both placed hands on the top of Harry's head and forced him off his stool
and under the table. Dripping with butterbeer and crouching out of sight, Harry
clutched his empty tankard and watched the teachers' and Fudge's feet move
toward the bar, pause, then turn and walk right toward him.
Somewhere above him, Hermione
whispered, "Mobiliarbus!" The Christmas tree beside
their table rose a few inches off the ground, drifted sideways, and landed with
a soft thump right in front of their table, hiding them from view. Staring
through the dense lower branches, Harry saw four sets of chair legs move back
from the table right beside theirs, then heard the grunts and sighs of the
teachers and minister as they sat down.
Next he saw another pair of
feet, wearing sparkly turquoise high heels, and heard a woman's voice.
"A small gillywater -"
"Mine," said Professor
McGonagall's voice.
"Four pints of mulled mead
-"
"Ta, Rosmerta," said
Hagrid.
"A cherry syrup and soda
with ice and umbrella -"
"Mmm!" said Professor
Flitwick, smacking his lips.
"So you'll be the red
currant rum, Minister."
"Thank you, Rosmerta,
m'dear," said Fudge's voice. "Lovely to see you again, I must say.
Have one yourself, won't you? Come and join us..."
"Well, thank you very much,
Minister."
Harry watched the glittering
heels march away and back again. His heart was pounding uncomfortably in his
throat. Why hadn't it occurred to him that this was the last weekend of term
for the teachers too? And how long were they going to sit there? He needed time
to sneak back into Honeydukes if he wanted to return to school tonight...
Hermione's leg gave a nervous twitch next to him.
"So, what brings you to
this neck of the woods, Minister?" came Madam Rosmerta's voice.
Harry saw the lower part of
Fudge's thick body twist in his chair as though he were checking for
eavesdroppers. Then he said in a quiet voice, "What else, m'dear, but
Sirius Black? I daresay you heard what happened up at the school at
Halloween?"
"I did hear a rumor,"
admitted Madam Rosmerta.
"Did you tell the whole
pub, Hagrid?" said Professor McGonagall exasperatedly.
"Do you think Black's still
in the area, Minister?" whispered Madam Rosmerta.
"I'm sure of it," said
Fudge shortly.
"You know that the
Dementors have searched the whole village twice?" said Madam Rosmerta, a
slight edge to her voice. "Scared all my customers away...It's very bad for
business, Minister."
"Rosmerta, dear, I don't
like them any more than you do," said Fudge uncomfortably. "Necessary
precaution... unfortunate, but there you are...I've just met some of them. They're
in a fury against Dumbledore - he won't let them inside the castle grounds."
"I should think not,"
said Professor McGonagall sharply. "How are we supposed to teach with
those horrors floating around?"
"Hear, hear!" squeaked
tiny Professor Flitwick, whose feet were dangling a foot from the ground.
"All the same,"
demurred Fudge, "they are here to protect you all from something much
worse...We all know what Black's capable of..."
"Do you know, I still have
trouble believing it," said Madam Rosmerta thoughtfully. "Of all the
people to go over to the Dark Side, Sirius Black was the last I'd have
thought...I mean, I remember him when he was a boy at Hogwarts. If you'd told me
then what he was going to become, I'd have said you'd had too much mead."
"You don't know the half of
it, Rosmerta," said Fudge gruffly. "The worst he did isn't widely known."
"The worst?" said
Madam Rosmerta, her voice alive with curiosity. "Worse than murdering all
those poor people, you mean?"
"I certainly do," said
Fudge.
"I can't believe that. What
could possibly be worse?"
"You say you remember him
at Hogwarts, Rosmerta," murmured Professor McGonagall. "Do you
remember who his best friend was?"
"Naturally," said
Madam Rosmerta, with a small laugh. "Never saw one without the other, did
you? The number of times I had them in here - ooh, they used to make me laugh.
Quite the double act, Sirius Black and James Potter!"
Harry dropped his tankard with a
loud clunk. Ron kicked him.
"Precisely," said
Professor McGonagall. "Black and Potter. Ringleaders of their little gang.
Both very bright, of course - exceptionally bright, in fact - but I don't think
we've ever had such a pair of troublemakers -"
"I dunno," chuckled
Hagrid. "Fred and George Weasley could give 'em a run fer their
money."
"You'd have thought Black
and Potter were brothers!" chimed in Professor Flitwick. "Inseparable!"
"Of course they were,"
said Fudge. "Potter trusted Black beyond all his other friends. Nothing
changed when they left school. Black was best man when James married Lily. Then
they named him godfather to Harry. Harry has no idea, of course. You can
imagine how the idea would torment him."
"Because Black turned out
to be in league with You-Know-Who?" whispered Madam Rosmerta.
"Worse even than that,
m'dear..." Fudge dropped his voice and proceeded in a sort of low rumble.
"Not many people are aware that the Potters knew You-Know-Who was after
them. Dumbledore, who was of course working tirelessly against You-Know-Who,
had a number of useful spies. One of them tipped him off, and he alerted James
and Lily at once. He advised them to go into hiding. Well, of course,
You-Know-Who wasn't an easy person to hide from. Dumbledore told them that
their best chance was the Fidelius Charm."
"How does that work?"
said Madam Rosmerta, breathless with interest. Professor Flitwick cleared his
throat.
"An immensely complex
spell," he said squeakily, "involving the magical concealment of a
secret inside a single, living soul. The information is hidden inside the
chosen person, or Secret-Keeper, and is henceforth impossible to find - unless,
of course, the Secret-Keeper chooses to divulge it. As long as the
Secret-Keeper refused to speak, You-Know-Who could search the village where
Lily and James were staying for years and never find them, not even if he had
his nose pressed against their sitting room window!"
"So Black was the Potters'
Secret-Keeper?" whispered Madam Rosmerta.
"Naturally," said
Professor McGonagall. "James Potter told Dumbledore that Black would die
rather than tell where they were, that Black was planning to go into hiding
himself...and yet, Dumbledore remained worried. I remember him offering to be the
Potters' Secret-Keeper himself."
"He suspected Black?"
gasped Madam Rosmerta.
"He was sure that somebody
close to the Potters had been keeping You-Know-Who informed of their
movements," said Professor McGonagall darkly. "Indeed, he had
suspected for some time that someone on our side had turned traitor and was
passing a lot of information to You-Know-Who."
"But James Potter insisted
on using Black?"
"He did," said Fudge
heavily. "And then, barely a week after the Fidelius Charm had been
performed -"
"Black betrayed them?"
breathed Madam Rosmerta.
"He did indeed. Black was
tired of his double-agent role, he was ready to declare his support openly for
You-Know-Who, and he seems to have planned this for the moment of the Potters'
death. But, as we all know, You-Know-Who met his downfall in little Harry
Potter. Powers gone, horribly weakened, he fled. And this left Black in a very
nasty position indeed. His master had fallen at the very moment when he, Black,
had shown his true colors as a traitor. He had no choice but to run for it
-"
"Filthy, stinkin'
turncoat!" Hagrid said, so loudly that half the bar went quiet.
"Shh!" said Professor
McGonagall.
"I met him!" growled
Hagrid. "I musta bin the last ter see him before he killed all them
people! It was me what rescued Harry from Lily an' James's house after they was
killed! Jus' got him outta the ruins, poor little thing, with a great slash
across his forehead, an' his parents dead...an' Sirius Black turns up, on that flyin'
motorbike he used ter ride. Never occurred ter me what he was doin' there. I
didn' know he'd bin Lily an' James's Secret-Keeper. Thought he'd jus' heard the
news o' You-Know-Who's attack an' come ter see what he could do. White an'
shakin', he was. An' yeh know what I did? I COMFORTED THE MURDERIN'
TRAITOR!" Hagrid roared.
"Hagrid, please!" said
Professor McGonagall. "Keep your voice down!"
"How was I ter know he
wasn' upset abou' Lily an' James? It was You-Know-Who he cared abou'! An' then
he says, "Give Harry ter me, Hagrid, I'm his godfather, I'll look after
him -" Ha! But I'd had me orders from Dumbledore, an' I told Black no,
Dumbledore said Harry was ter go ter his aunt an' uncle's. Black argued, but in
the end he gave in. Told me ter take his motorbike ter get Harry there. "I
won't need it anymore," he says.
"I shoulda known there was
somethin' fishy goin' on then. He loved that motorbike, what was he givin' it
ter me for? Why wouldn' he need it anymore? Fact was, it was too easy ter
trace. Dumbledore knew he'd bin the Potters' Secret-Keeper. Black knew he was
goin' ter have ter run fer it that night, knew it was a matter o' hours before
the Ministry was after him.
"But what if I'd given
Harry to him, eh? I bet he'd've pitched him off the bike halfway out ter sea. His bes'
friends' son! But when a wizard goes over ter the Dark Side, there's nothin'
and no one that matters to em anymore..."
A long silence followed Hagrid's
story. Then Madam Rosmerta said with some satisfaction, "But he didn't
manage to disappear, did he? The Ministry of Magic caught up with him next
day!"
"Alas, if only we
had," said Fudge bitterly. "It was not we who found him. It was
little Peter Pettigrew - another of the Potters' friends. Maddened by grief, no
doubt, and knowing that Black had been the Potters' Secret-Keeper, he went
after Black himself."
"Pettigrew...that fat little
boy who was always tagging around after them at Hogwarts?" said Madam
Rosmerta.
"Hero-worshipped Black and
Potter," said Professor McGonagall. "Never quite in their league,
talent-wise. I was often rather sharp with him. You can imagine how I - how I
regret that now..." She sounded as though she had a sudden head cold.
"There, now, Minerva,"
said Fudge kindly, "Pettigrew died a hero's death. Eyewitnesses - Muggles,
of course, we wiped their memories later - told us how Pettigrew cornered
Black. They say he was sobbing, 'Lily and James, Sirius! How could you?' And
then he went for his wand. Well, of course, Black was quicker. Blew Pettigrew
to smithereens..."
Professor McGonagall blew her
nose and said thickly, "Stupid boy...foolish boy...he was always hopeless at
dueling...should have left it to the Ministry..."
"I tell yeh, if I'd got ter
Black before little Pettigrew did, I wouldn't've messed around with wands - I'd
've ripped him limb - from - limb," Hagrid growled.
"You don't know what you're
talking about, Hagrid," said Fudge sharply. "Nobody but trained Hit
Wizards from the Magical Law Enforcement Squad would have stood a chance
against Black once he was cornered. I was Junior Minister in the Department of
Magical Catastrophes at the time, and I was one of the first on the scene after
Black murdered all those people. I - I will never forget it. I still dream
about it sometimes. A crater in the middle of the street, so deep it had
cracked the sewer below. Bodies everywhere. Muggles screaming. And Black
standing there laughing, with what was left of Pettigrew in front of him...a heap
of bloodstained robes and a few - a few fragments -"
Fudge's voice stopped abruptly.
There was the sound of five noses being blown.
"Well, there you have it,
Rosmerta," said Fudge thickly. "Black was taken away by twenty
members of the Magical Law Enforcement Squad and Pettigrew received the Order
of Merlin, First Class, which I think was some comfort to his poor mother.
Black's been in Azkaban ever since."
Madam Rosmerta let out a long
sigh.
"Is it true he's mad,
Minister?"
"I wish I could say that he
was," said Fudge slowly. "I certainly believe his master's defeat
unhinged him for a while. The murder of Pettigrew and all those Muggles was the
action of a cornered and desperate man - cruel... pointless. Yet I met Black on
my last inspection of Azkaban. You know, most of the prisoners in there sit
muttering to themselves in the dark; there's no sense in them...but I was shocked
at how normal Black seemed. He spoke quite rationally to me. It was
unnerving. You'd have thought he was merely bored - asked if I'd finished with
my newspaper, cool as you please, said he missed doing the crossword. Yes, I was
astounded at how little effect the Dementors seemed to be having on him - and
he was one of the most heavily guarded in the place, you know. Dementors
outside his door day and night."
"But what do you think he's
broken out to do?" said Madam Rosmerta. "Good gracious, Minister, he
isn't trying to rejoin You-Know-Who, is he?"
"I daresay that is his - er
- eventual plan," said Fudge evasively. "But we hope to catch Black
long before that. I must say, You-Know-Who alone and friendless is one
thing...but give him back his most devoted servant, and I shudder to think how
quickly he'll rise again..."
There was a small chink of glass
on wood. Someone had set down their glass.
"You know, Cornelius, if
you're dining with the headmaster, we'd better head back up to the
castle," said Professor McGonagall.
One by one, the pairs of feet in
front of Harry took the weight of their owners once more; hems of cloaks swung
into sight, and Madam Rosmerta's glittering heels disappeared behind the bar.
The door of the Three Broomsticks opened again, there was another flurry of
snow, and the teachers had disappeared.
"Harry?"
Ron's and Hermione's faces
appeared under the table. They were both staring at him, lost for words.
CHAPTER ELEVEN THE FIREBOLT
Harry didn't have a very clear idea
of how he had managed to get back into the Honeydukes cellar, through the
tunnel, and into the castle once more. All he knew was that the return trip
seemed to take no time at all, and that he hardly noticed what he was doing,
because his head was still pounding with the conversation he had just heard. Why had nobody ever told
him? Dumbledore, Hagrid, Mr. Weasley, Cornelius Fudge...why hadn't anyone ever
mentioned the fact that Harry's parents had died because their best friend had
betrayed them?
Ron and Hermione watched Harry
nervously all through dinner, not daring to talk about what they'd overheard,
because Percy was sitting close by them. When they went upstairs to the crowded
common room, it was to find Fred and George had set off half a dozen Dungbombs
in a fit of end-of-term high spirits. Harry, who didn't want Fred and George
asking him whether he'd reached Hogsmeade or not, sneaked quietly up to the
empty dormitory and headed straight for his bedside cabinet. He pushed his
books aside and quickly found what he was looking for - the leather-bound photo
album Hagrid had given him two years ago, which was full of wizard pictures of
his mother and father. He sat down on his bed, drew the hangings around him,
and started turning the pages, searching, until...
He stopped on a picture of his
parents' wedding day. There was his father waving up at him, beaming, the
untidy black hair Harry had inherited standing up in all directions. There was
his mother, alight with happiness, arm in arm with his dad. And there...that must
be him. Their best man...Harry had never given him a thought before.
If he hadn't known it was the
same person, he would never have guessed it was Black in this old photograph.
His face wasn't sunken and waxy, but handsome, full of laughter. Had he already
been working for Voldemort when this picture had been taken? Was he already
planning the deaths of the two people next to him? Did he realize he was facing
twelve years in Azkaban, twelve years that would make him unrecognizable?
But the Dementors don't affect
him, Harry thought, staring into the handsome, laughing face. He doesn't have
to hear my Mum screaming if they get too close -
Harry slammed the album shut,
reached over and stuffed it back into his cabinet, took off his robe and
glasses and got into bed, making sure the hangings were hiding him from view.
The dormitory door opened.
"Harry?" said Ron's
voice uncertainly.
But Harry lay still, pretending
to be asleep. He heard Ron leave again, and rolled over on his back, his eyes
wide open.
A hatred such as he had never
known before was coursing through Harry like poison. He could see Black
laughing at him through the darkness, as though somebody had pasted the picture
from the album over his eyes. He watched, as though somebody was playing him a
piece of film, Sirius Black blasting Peter Pettigrew (who resembled Neville
Longbottom) into a thousand pieces. He could hear (though having no idea what
Black's voice might sound like) a low, excited mutter. "It has happened,
My Lord...the Potters have made me their Secret-Keeper" and then came
another voice, laughing shrilly, the same laugh that Harry heard inside his
head whenever the Dementors drew near...
"Harry, you - you look
terrible."
Harry hadn't gotten to sleep
until daybreak. He had awoken to find the dormitory deserted, dressed, and gone
down the spiral staircase to a common room that was completely empty except for
Ron, who was eating a Peppermint Toad and massaging his stomach, and Hermione,
who had spread her homework over three tables.
"Where is everyone?"
said Harry.
"Gone! It's the first day
of the holidays, remember?" said Ron, watching Harry closely. "It's
nearly lunchtime; I was going to come and wake you up in a minute."
Harry slumped into a chair next
to the fire. Snow was still falling outside the windows. Crookshanks was spread
out in front of the fire like a large, ginger rug.
"You really don't look
well, you know," Hermione said, peering anxiously into his face.
"I'm fine," said
Harry.
"Harry, listen," said
Hermione, exchanging a look with Ron, "you must be really upset about what
we heard yesterday. But the thing is, you mustn't go doing anything
stupid."
"Like what?" said
Harry.
"Like trying to go after
Black," said Ron sharply.
Harry could tell they had
rehearsed this conversation while he had been asleep. He didn't say anything.
"You won't, will you,
Harry?" said Hermione.
"Because Black's not worth
dying for," said Ron.
Harry looked at them. They
didn't seem to understand at all.
"D'you know what I see and
hear every time a Dementor gets too near me?" Ron and Hermione shook their
heads, looking apprehensive. "I can hear my mum screaming and pleading
with Voldemort. And if you'd heard your mum screaming like that, just about to
be killed, you wouldn't forget it in a hurry. And if you found out someone who
was supposed to be a friend of hers betrayed her and sent Voldemort after her
-"
"There's nothing you can
do!" said Hermione, looking stricken. "The Dementors will catch Black
and he'll go back to Azkaban and - and serve him right!"
"You heard what Fudge said.
Black isn't affected by Azkaban like normal people are. It's not a punishment
for him like it is for the others."
"So what are you
saying?" said Ron, looking very tense. "You want to - to kill Black
or something?"
"Don't be silly," said
Hermione in a panicky voice. "Harry doesn't want to kill anyone, do you,
Harry?"
Again, Harry didn't answer. He
didn't know what he wanted to do. All he knew was that the idea of doing
nothing, while Black was at liberty, was almost more than he could stand.
"
Malfoy knows," he said abruptly. "Remember
what he said to me in Potions? 'If it was me, I'd hunt him down myself...I'd want
revenge.'"
"You're going to take
Malfoy's advice instead of ours?" said Ron furiously. "Listen...you
know what Pettigrew's mother got back after Black had finished with him? Dad
told me - the Order of Merlin, First Class, and Pettigrew's finger in a box.
That was the biggest bit of him they could find. Black's a madman, Harry, and
he's dangerous -"
"Malfoy's dad must have
told him," said Harry, ignoring Ron. "He was right in Voldemort's
inner circle -"
"Say You-Know-Who, will
you?" interjected Ron angrily.
"- so obviously, the
Malfoys knew Black was working for Voldemort -"
"- and Malfoy'd love to see
you blown into about a million pieces, like Pettigrew! Get a grip. Malfoy's
just hoping you'll get yourself killed before he has to play you at
Quidditch." "Harry, please,"
said Hermione, her eyes now shining with tears, "Please be
sensible. Black did a terrible, terrible thing, but d-don't put yourself in
danger, it's what Black wants...Oh, Harry, you'd be playing right into Black's
hands if you went looking for him. Your mum and dad wouldn't want you to get
hurt, would they? They'd never want you to go looking for Black!"
"I'll never know what
they'd have wanted, because thanks to Black, I've never spoken to them,"
said Harry shortly.
There was a silence in which
Crookshanks stretched luxuriously flexing his claws. Ron's pocket quivered.
"Look," said Ron,
obviously casting around for a change of subject, "it's the holidays! It's
nearly Christmas! Let's - let's go down and see Hagrid. We haven't visited him
for ages!"
"No!" said Hermione
quickly. "Harry isn't supposed to leave the castle, Ron -"
"Yeah, let's go," said
Harry, sitting up, "and I can ask him how come he never mentioned Black
when he told me all about my parents!"
Further discussion of Sirius
Black plainly wasn't what Ron had had in mind.
"Or we could have a game of
chess," he said hastily, "or Gobstones. Percy left a set -"
"No, let's visit
Hagrid," said Harry firmly. So they got their cloaks
from their dormitories and set off through the portrait hole ("Stand and
fight, you yellow-bellied mongrels!"), down through the empty castle and
out through the oak front doors.
They made their way slowly down
the lawn, making a shallow trench in the glittering, powdery snow, their socks
and the hems of their cloaks soaked and freezing. The Forbidden Forest looked
as though it had been enchanted, each tree smattered with silver, and Hagrid's
cabin looked like an iced cake.
Ron knocked, but there was no
answer.
"He's not out, is he?"
said Hermione, who was shivering under her cloak.
Ron had his ear to the door.
"There's a weird
noise," he said. "Listen - is that Fang?"
Harry and Hermione put their
ears to the door too. From inside the cabin came a series of low, throbbing
moans.
"Think we'd better go and
get someone?" said Ron nervously.
"Hagrid!" called
Harry, thumping the door. "Hagrid, are you in there?"
There was a sound of heavy
footsteps, then the door creaked open. Hagrid stood there with his eyes red and
swollen, tears splashing down the front of his leather vest. "You've heard?" he
bellowed, and he flung himself onto Harry's neck.
Hagrid being at least twice the
size of a normal man, this was no laughing matter. Harry, about to collapse
under Hagrid's weight, was rescued by Ron and Hermione, who each seized Hagrid
under an arm and heaved him back into the cabin. Hagrid allowed himself to be
steered into a chair and slumped over the table, sobbing uncontrollably, his
face glazed with tears that dripped down into his tangled beard.
"Hagrid, what is it?"
said Hermione, aghast.
Harry spotted an
official-looking letter lying open on the table.
"What's this, Hagrid?"
Hagrid's sobs redoubled, but he
shoved the letter toward Harry, who picked it up and read aloud:
Dear Mr. Hagrid,
Further to our inquiry into the attack by a Hippogriff on a student in your class, we
have accepted the assurances of Professor Dumbledore that you bear no
responsibility for the regrettable incident.
"Well, that's okay
then, Hagrid!" said Ron, clapping Hagrid on the shoulder. But Hagrid
continued to sob, and waved one of his gigantic hands, inviting Harry to read
on.
However, we must register our concern about the Hippogriff in question. We have decided
to uphold the official complaint of Mr. Lucius Malfoy, and this matter will
therefore be taken to the Committee for the Disposal of Dangerous Creatures.
The hearing will take place on April 20th, and we ask you to present yourself
and your Hippogriff at the Committee's offices in London on that date. In the
meantime, the Hippogriff should be kept tethered and isolated.
Yours in fellowship...
There followed a list of the
school governors.
"Oh," said Ron.
"But you said Buckbeak isn't a bad Hippogriff, Hagrid. I bet he'll get
off."
"Yeh don' know them
gargoyles at the Committee fer the Disposal o' Dangerous Creatures!"
choked Hagrid, wiping his eyes on his sleeve. "They've got it in fer
interestin' creatures!"
A sudden sound from the corner
of Hagrid's cabin made Harry, Ron, and Hermione whip around. Buckbeak the
Hippogriff was lying in the corner, chomping on something that was oozing blood
all over the floor.
"I couldn' leave him tied
up out there in the snow!" choked Hagrid. "All on his own! At
Christmas."
Harry, Ron, and Hermione looked
at one another. They had never seen eye to eye with Hagrid about what he called
'interesting creatures' and other people called 'terrifying monsters.' On the
other hand, there didn't seem to be any particular harm in Buckbeak. In fact,
by Hagrid's usual standards, he was positively cute.
"You'll have to put up a
good strong defense, Hagrid," said Hermione, sitting down and laying a
hand on Hagrid's massive forearm. "I'm sure you can prove Buckbeak is
safe."
"Won' make no
diff'rence!" sobbed Hagrid. "Them Disposal devils, they're all in
Lucius Malfoy's pocket! Scared o' him! Ad if I lose the case, Buckbeak -"
Hagrid drew his finger swiftly
across his throat, then gave a great wail and lurched forward, his face in his
arms.
"What about Dumbledore,
Hagrid?" said Harry.
"He's done more'n enough
fer me already," groaned Hagrid. "Got enough on his plate what with
keepin' them Dementors outta the castle, an' Sirius Black lurkin' around."
Ron and Hermione looked quickly
at Harry, as though expecting him to start berating Hagrid for not telling him
the truth about Black. But Harry couldn't bring himself to do it, not now that
he saw Hagrid so miserable and scared.
"Listen, Hagrid," he
said, "you can't give up. Hermione's right, You just need a good defense.
You can call us as witnesses -"
"I'm sure I've read about a
case of Hippogriff-baiting," said Hermione thoughtfully, "where the
Hippogriff got off. I'll look it up for you, Hagrid, and see exactly what
happened."
Hagrid howled still more loudly.
Harry and Hermione looked at Ron to help them.
"Er - shall I make a cup of
tea?" said Ron.
Harry stared at him.
"It's what my mum does
whenever someone's upset," Ron muttered, shrugging.
At last, after many more
assurances of help, with a steaming mug of tea in front of him, Hagrid blew his
nose on a handkerchief the size of a tablecloth and said, "Yer right. I
can' afford to go ter pieces. Gotta pull meself together..."
Fang the boarhound came timidly
out from under the table and laid his head on Hagrid's knee. "I've not bin meself lately," said Hagrid,
stroking Fang with one hand and mopping his face with the other. "Worried
abou' Buckbeak, an' no one likin' me classes -" "We do like them!" lied Hermione at once. "Yeah, they're great!" said Ron, crossing his
fingers under the table. "Er - how are the flobberworms?" "Dead," said Hagrid gloomily. "Too much
lettuce." "Oh no!" said Ron, his lip twitching. "An' them Dementors make me feel ruddy terrible an'
all," said Hagrid, with a sudden shudder. "Gotta walk past 'em ev'ry
time I want a drink in the Three Broomsticks. 'S like bein' back in Azkaban
-" He fell silent, gulping his tea. Harry, Ron, and
Hermione watched him breathlessly. They had never heard Hagrid talk about his
brief spell in Azkaban before. After a pause, Hermione said timidly, "Is
it awful in there, Hagrid?" "Yeh've no idea," said Hagrid quietly.
"Never bin anywhere like it. Thought I was goin' mad. Kep' goin' over
horrible stuff in me mind...the day I got expelled from Hogwarts...day me dad
died...day I had ter let Norbert go..." His eyes filled with tears. Norbert was the baby dragon
Hagrid had once won in a game of cards. "Yeh can' really remember who yeh are after a
while. An' yeh can' really see the point o' livin' at all. I used ter hope I'd
jus' die in me sleep. When they let me out, it was like bein' born again,
ev'rythin' came floodin' back, it was the bes' feelin' in the world. Mind, the
Dementors weren't keen on lettin' me go."
"But you were innocent!" said Hermione.
Hagrid snorted.
"Think that matters to them? They don' care. Long
as they've got a couple o' hundred humans stuck there with 'em, so they can
leech all the happiness out of 'em, they don' give a damn who's guilty an' who's
not."
Hagrid went quiet for a moment, staring into his tea.
Then he said quietly, "Thought o' jus' letting Buckbeak go...tryin' ter
make him fly away...but how d'yeh explain ter a Hippogriff it's gotta go inter
hidin'? An' - an' I'm scared o' breakin' the law..." He looked up at them,
tears leaking down his face again. "I don' ever want ter go back ter
Azkaban."
*
The trip to Hagrid's, though far from fun, had
nevertheless had the effect Ron and Hermione had hoped. Though Harry had by no
means forgotten about Black, he couldn't brood constantly on revenge if he
wanted to help Hagrid win his case against the Committee for the Disposal of
Dangerous Creatures. He, Ron, and Hermione went to the library the next day and
returned to the empty common room laden with books that might help prepare a
defense for Buckbeak. The three of them sat in front of the roaring fire,
slowly turning the pages of dusty volumes about famous cases of marauding
beasts, speaking occasionally when they ran across something relevant.
"Here's something...there was a case in 1722...but the
Hippogriff was convicted - ugh, look what they did to it, that's disgusting
-"
"This might help, look - a Manticore savaged
someone in 1296, and they let the Manticore off - oh - no, that was only
because everyone was too scared to go near it..."
Meanwhile, in the rest of the castle, the usual
magnificent Christmas decorations had been put up, despite the fact that hardly
any of the students remained to enjoy them. Thick streamers of holly and
mistletoe were strung along the corridors, mysterious lights shone from inside
every suit of armor, and the Great Hall was filled with its usual twelve
Christmas trees, glittering with golden stars. A powerful and delicious smell
of cooking pervaded the corridors, and by Christmas Eve, it had grown so strong
that even Scabbers poked his nose out of the shelter of Ron's pocket to sniff
hopefully at the air. On Christmas
morning, Harry was woken by Ron throwing his pillow at him.
"Oy! Presents!"
Harry reached for his glasses and put them on, squinting
through the semi-darkness to the foot of his bed, where a small heap of parcels
had appeared. Ron was already ripping the paper off his own presents.
"Another sweater from Mum...maroon again...see
if you've got one."
Harry had. Mrs. Weasley had sent him a scarlet sweater
with the Gryffindor lion knitted on the front, also a dozen home-baked mince
pies, some Christmas cake, and a box of nut brittle. As he moved all these
things aside, he saw a long, thin package lying underneath.
"What's that?" said Ron, looking over, a
freshly unwrapped pair of maroon socks in his hand.
"Dunno..."
Harry ripped the parcel open and gasped as a
magnificent, gleaming broomstick rolled out onto his bedspread. Ron dropped his
socks and jumped off his bed for a closer look.
"I don't believe it," he said hoarsely.
It was a Firebolt, identical to the dream broom Harry
had gone to see every day in Diagon Alley. Its handle glittered
as he picked it up. He could feel it vibrating and let
go; it hung in midair, unsupported, at exactly the right height for him to
mount it. His eyes moved from the golden registration number at the top of the
handle, right down to the perfectly smooth, streamlined birch twigs that made
up the tail. "Who
sent it to you?" said Ron in a hushed voice. "Look
and see if there's a card," said Harry. Ron
ripped apart the Firebolt's wrappings. "Nothing!
Blimey, who'd spend that much on you?" "Well,"
said Harry, feeling stunned, "I'm betting it wasn't the Dursleys." "I
bet it was Dumbledore," said Ron, now walking around and around the
Firebolt, taking in every glorious inch. "He sent you the Invisibility
Cloak anonymously..." "That
was my dad's, though," said Harry. "Dumbledore was just passing it on
to me. He wouldn't spend hundreds of Galleons on me. He can't go giving
students stuff like this -" "That's
why he wouldn't say it was from him!" said Ron. "In case some git
like Malfoy said it was favoritism. Hey, Harry -" Ron gave a great whoop
of laughter - "Malfoy! Wait 'til he sees you on this! He'll be sick
as a pig! This is an international standard broom, this is!" "I
can't believe this," Harry muttered, running a hand along the Firebolt,
while Ron sank onto Harry's bed, laughing his head off at the thought of
Malfoy. "Who-?" "I
know," said Ron, controlling himself, "I know who it could've been -
Lupin!" "What?"
said Harry, now starting to laugh himself "Lupin? Listen, if he had
this much gold, he'd be able to buy himself some new robes." "Yeah,
but he likes you," said Ron. "And he was away when your Nimbus got
smashed, and he might've heard about it and decided to visit Diagon Alley and
get this for you -" "What
d'you mean, he was away?" said Harry. "He was ill when I was playing
in that match." "Well,
he wasn't in the hospital wing," said Ron. "I was there, cleaning out
the bedpans on that detention from Snape, remember?" Harry
frowned at Ron. "I
can't see Lupin affording something like this." "What're
you two laughing about?" Hermione
had just come in, wearing her dressing gown and carrying Crookshanks, who was
looking very grumpy, with a string of tinsel tied around his neck. "Don't
bring him in here!" said Ron, hurriedly snatching Scabbers from the depths
of his bed and stowing him in his pajama pocket. But
Hermione wasn't listening. She dropped Crookshanks onto Seamus's empty bed and
stared, open-mouthed, at the Firebolt. "Oh,
Harry! Who sent you that?" "No
idea," said Harry. "There wasn't a card or anything with it." To
his great surprise, Hermione did not appear either excited or intrigued by the
news. On the contrary, her face fell, and she bit her lip. "What's
the matter with you?" said Ron. "I
don't know," said Hermione slowly, "but it's a bit odd, isn't it? I
mean, this is supposed to be quite a good broom, isn't it?" Ron
sighed exasperatedly. "It's
the best broom there is, Hermione," he said. "So
it must've been really expensive..." "Probably
cost more than all the Slytherins' brooms put together," said Ron happily. "Well...who'd
send Harry something as expensive as that, and not even tell him they'd sent
it?" said Hermione. "Who
cares?" said Ron impatiently. "Listen, Harry, can I have a go on it?
Can I?" "I
don't think anyone should ride that broom just yet!" said Hermione
shrilly. Harry
and Ron looked at her. "What
d'you think Harry's going to do with it - sweep the floor?" said Ron. But
before Hermione could answer, Crookshanks sprang from Seamus's bed, right at
Ron's chest. "GET
- HIM - OUT - OF - HERE!" Ron bellowed as Crookshanks's claws ripped his
pajamas and Scabbers attempted a wild escape over his shoulder. Ron seized
Scabbers by the tail and aimed a misjudged kick at Crookshanks that hit the
trunk at the end of Harry's bed, knocking it over and causing Ron to hop up and
down, howling with pain. Crookshanks's
fur suddenly stood on end. A shrill, tinny, whistling was filling the room. The
Pocket Sneakoscope had become dislodged from Uncle Vernon's old socks and was
whirling and gleaming on the floor. "I
forgot about that!" Harry said, bending down and picking up the
Sneakoscope. "I never wear those socks if I can help it..." The
Sneakoscope whirled and whistled in his palm. Crookshanks was hissing and
spitting at it. "You'd
better take that cat out of here, Hermione," said Ron furiously, sitting
on Harry's bed nursing his toe. "Can't you shut that thing up?" he
added to Harry as Hermione strode out of the room, Crookshanks's yellow eyes
still fixed maliciously on Ron. Harry
stuffed the Sneakoscope back inside the socks and threw it back into his trunk.
All that could be heard now were Ron's stifled moans of pain and rage. Scabbers
was huddled in Ron's hands. It had been a while since Harry had seen him out of
Ron's pocket, and he was unpleasantly surprised to see that Scabbers, once so
fat, was now very skinny; patches of fur seemed to have fallen out too. "He's
not looking too good, is he?" Harry said. "It's
stress!" said Ron. "He'd be fine if that big stupid furball left him
alone!" But
Harry, remembering what the woman at the Magical Menagerie had said about rats
living only three years, couldn't help feeling that unless Scabbers had powers
he had never revealed, he was reaching the end of his life. And despite Ron's
frequent complaints that Scabbers was both boring and useless, he was sure Ron
would be very miserable if Scabbers died. Christmas
spirit was definitely thin on the ground in the Gryffindor common room that
morning. Hermione had shut Crookshanks in her dormitory, but was furious with
Ron for trying to kick him; Ron was still fuming about Crookshanks's fresh
attempt to eat Scabbers. Harry gave up trying to make them talk to each other
and devoted himself to examining the Firebolt, which he had brought down to the
common room with him. For some reason this seemed to annoy Hermione as well;
she didn't say anything, but she kept looking darkly at the broom as though it
too had been criticizing her cat. At
lunchtime they went down to the Great Hall, to find that the House tables had
been moved against the walls again, and that a single table, set for twelve,
stood in the middle of the room. Professors Dumbledore, McGonagall, Snape,
Sprout, and Flitwick were there, along with Filch, the caretaker, who had taken
off his usual brown coat and was wearing a very old and rather moldy-looking
tailcoat. There were only three other students, two extremely nervous-looking
first years and a sullen-faced Slytherin fifth year. "Merry
Christmas!" said Dumbledore as Harry, Ron, and Hermione approached the
table. "As there are so few of us, it seemed foolish to use the House
tables...Sit down, sit down!" Harry,
Ron, and Hermione sat down side by side at the end of the table. "Crackers!"
said Dumbledore enthusiastically, offering the end of a large silver noisemaker
to Snape, who took it reluctantly and tugged. With a bang like a gunshot, the
cracker flew apart to reveal a large, pointed witches hat topped with a stuffed
vulture. Harry,
remembering the Boggart, caught Ron's eye and they both grinned; Snape's mouth
thinned and he pushed the hat toward Dumbledore, who swapped it for his
wizard's hat at once. "Dig
in!" he advised the table, beaming around. As
Harry was helping himself to roast potatoes, the doors of the Great Hall opened
again. It was Professor Trelawney, gliding toward them as though on wheels. She
had put on a green sequined dress in honor of the occasion, making her look
more than ever like a glittering, oversized dragonfly. "Sibyll,
this is a pleasant surprise!" said Dumbledore, standing up. "I
have been crystal gazing, Headmaster," said Professor Trelawney in her
mistiest, most faraway voice, "and to my astonishment, I saw myself
abandoning my solitary luncheon and coming to join you. Who am I to refuse the
promptings of fate? I at once hastened from my tower, and I do beg you to
forgive my lateness..." "Certainly,
certainly," said Dumbledore, his eyes twinkling. "Let me draw you up
a chair -" And
he did indeed draw a chair in midair with his wand, which revolved for a few
seconds before falling with a thud between Professors Snape and McGonagall.
Professor Trelawney, however, did not sit down; her enormous eyes had been
roving around the table, and she suddenly uttered a kind of soft scream. "I
dare not, Headmaster! If I join the table, we shall be thirteen! Nothing could
be more unlucky! Never forget that when thirteen dine together, the first to
rise will be the first to die!" "We'll
risk it, Sibyll," said Professor McGonagall impatiently. "Do sit
down, the turkey's getting stone cold." Professor
Trelawney hesitated, then lowered herself into the empty chair, eyes shut and
mouth clenched tight, as though expecting a thunderbolt to hit the table.
Professor McGonagall poked a large spoon into the nearest tureen. "Tripe,
Sibyll?" Professor
Trelawney ignored her. Eyes open again, she looked around once more and said,
"But where is dear Professor Lupin?" "I'm
afraid the poor fellow is ill again," said Dumbledore, indicating that
everybody should start serving themselves. "Most unfortunate that it
should happen on Christmas Day." "But
surely you already knew that, Sibyll?" said Professor McGonagall, her eyebrows
raised. Professor
Trelawney gave Professor McGonagall a very cold look. "Certainly
I knew, Minerva," she said quietly. "But one does not parade the fact
that one is All-Knowing. I frequently act as though I am not possessed of the
Inner Eye, so as not to make others nervous." "That
explains a great deal," said Professor McGonagall tartly. Professor
Trelawney's voice suddenly became a good deal less misty. "If
you must know, Minerva, I have seen that poor Professor Lupin will not be with
us for very long. He seems aware, himself, that his time is short. He
positively fled when I offered to crystal gaze for him -" "Imagine
that," said Professor McGonagall dryly. "I
doubt," said Dumbledore, in a cheerful but slightly raised voice, which
put an end to Professor McGonagall and Professor Trelawney's conversation,
"that Professor Lupin is in any immediate danger. Severus, you've made the
potion for him again?" "Yes,
Headmaster," said Snape. "Good,"
said Dumbledore. "Then he should be up and about in no time...Derek, have
you had any of the chipolatas? They're excellent." The
first-year boy went furiously red on being addressed directly by Dumbledore,
and took the platter of sausages with trembling hands. Professor
Trelawney behaved almost normally until the very end of Christmas dinner, two
hours later. Full to bursting with Christmas dinner and still wearing their
cracker hats, Harry and Ron got up first from the table and she shrieked
loudly. "My
dears! Which of you left his seat first? Which?" "Dunno,"
said Ron, looking uneasily at Harry. "I
doubt it will make much difference," said Professor McGonagall coldly,
"unless a mad axe-man is waiting outside the doors to slaughter the first
into the Entrance Hall." Even
Ron laughed. Professor Trelawney looked highly affronted. "Coming?"
Harry said to Hermione. "No,"
Hermione muttered. "I want a quick word with Professor McGonagall." "Probably
trying to see if she can take any more classes," yawned Ron as they make
their way into the Entrance Hall, which was completely devoid of mad axe-men. When
they reached the portrait hole they found Sir Cadogan enjoying a Christmas part
with a couple of monks, several previous headmasters of Hogwarts and his fat
pony. He pushed up his visor toasted them with a flagon of mead. "Merry
- hic - Christmas! Password?" "Scurvy
cur," said Ron. "And
the same to you, sir! roared Sir Cadogan, as the painting swung forward to
admit them. Harry
went straight up to the dormitory, collected his Firebolt and the Broomstick
Servicing Kit Hermione had given him for his birthday, brought them downstairs
and tried to find something to do with the Firebolt; however, there where no
bent twigs to clip, and the handle was so shiny already it seemed pointless to
polish it. He and Ron simply sat admiring it from every angle, until the
portrait hole opened, and Hermione came in, accompanied by Professor
McGonagall. Though
Professor McGonagall was Head of Gryffindor House, Harry had only seen her in
the common room once before, and that had been to make a very grave
announcement. He and Ron stared at her, both holding the Firebolt. Hermione
walked around them, sat down, picked up the nearest book and hid her face
behind it. "So
that's it, is it?" said Professor McGonagall beadily, walking over to the
fireside and staring at the Firebolt. "Miss Granger has just informed me
that you have been sent a broomstick, Potter." Harry
and Ron looked around at Hermione. They could see her forehead reddening over
the top of her book, which was upside-down. "May
I?" said Professor McGonagall, but she didn't wait for an answer before
pulling the Firebolt out of their hands. She examined it carefully from handle
to twig-ends. "Hmm. And there was no note at all, Potter? No card? No
message of any kind?" "No,"
said Harry blankly. "I
see..." said Professor McGonagall. "Well, I'm afraid I will have to
take this, Potter." "W
- what?" said Harry, scrambling to his feet. "Why?" "It
will need to be checked for jinxes," said Professor McGonagall. "Of
course, I'm no expert, but I daresay Madam Hooch and Professor Flitwick will
strip it down -" "Strip
it down?" repeated Ron, as though Professor McGonagall was mad. "It
shouldn't take more than a few weeks," said Professor McGonagall.
"You will have it back if we are sure it is jinx-free." "There's
nothing wrong with it!" said Harry, his voice shaking slightly.
"Honestly, Professor -" "You
can't know that, Potter," said Professor McGonagall, quite kindly,
"not until you've flown it, at any rate, and I'm afraid that is out of the
question until we are certain that it has not been tampered with. I shall keep
you informed." Professor
McGonagall turned on her heel and carried the Firebolt out of the portrait
hole, which closed behind her. Harry stood staring after her, the tin of
High-Finish Polish still clutched in his hands. Ron, however, rounded on
Hermione. "What
did you go running to McGonagall for?" Hermione
threw her book aside. She was still pink in the face, but stood up and faced
Ron defiantly. "Because
I thought - and Professor McGonagall agrees with me - that that broom was
probably sent to Harry by Sirius Black!" CHAPTER TWELVE THE PATRONUSHarry
knew that Hermione had meant well, but that didn't stop him from being angry
with her. He had been the owner of the best broom in the world for a few short
hours, and now, because of her interference, he didn't know whether he would
ever see it again. He was positive that there was nothing wrong with the
Firebolt now, but what sort of state would it be in once it had been subjected
to all sorts of anti-jinx tests? Ron
was furious with Hermione too. As far as he was concerned, the stripping-down
of a brand-new Firebolt was nothing less than criminal damage. Hermione, who
remained convinced that she had acted for the best, started avoiding the common
room. Harry and Ron supposed she had taken refuge in the library and didn't try
to persuade her to come back. All in all, they were glad when the rest of the
school returned shortly after New Year, and Gryffindor Tower became crowded and
noisy again. Wood sought Harry out on the night before term started. "Had
a good Christmas?" he said, and then, without waiting for an answer, he
sat down, lowered his voice, and said, "I've been, doing some thinking
over Christmas, Harry. After last match, you know. If the Dementors come to the
next one...I mean...we can't afford you to - well -" Wood
broke off, looking awkward. "I'm
working on it," said Harry quickly. "Professor Lupin said he'd train
me to ward off the Dementors. We should be starting this week. He said he'd
have time after Christmas." "Ah,"
said Wood, his expression clearing. "Well, in that case - I really didn't
want to lose you as Seeker, Harry. And have you ordered a new broom yet?" "No,"
said Harry. "What!
You'd better get a move on, you know - you can't ride that Shooting Star
against Ravenclaw!" "He
got a Firebolt for Christmas," said Ron. "A
Firebolt? No! Seriously? A - a real Firebolt?" "Don't
get excited, Oliver," said Harry gloomily. "I haven't got it anymore.
It was confiscated." And he explained all about how the Firebolt was now
being checked for jinxes. "Jinxed?
How could it be jinxed?" "Sirius
Black," Harry said wearily. "He's supposed to be after me. So
McGonagall reckons he might have sent it." Waving
aside the information that a famous murderer was after his Seeker, Wood said,
"But Black couldn't have bought a Firebolt! He's on the run! The whole
country's on the lookout for him! How could he just walk into Quality Quidditch
Supplies and buy a broomstick?" "I
know," said Harry, "but McGonagall still wants to strip it down
-" Wood
went pale. "I'll
go and talk to her, Harry," he promised. "I'll make her see reason...A
Firebolt...a real Firebolt, on our team...She wants Gryffindor to win as much as
we do...I'll make her see sense. A Firebolt..." * Classes
started again the next day. The last thing anyone felt like doing was spending
two hours on the grounds on a raw January morning, but Hagrid had provided a
bonfire full of salamanders for their enjoyment, and they spent an unusually
good lesson collecting dry wood and leaves to keep the fire blazing while the
flame-loving lizards scampered up and down the crumbling, white-hot logs. The
first Divination lesson of the new term was much less fun; Professor Trelawney
was now teaching them palmistry, and she lost no time in informing Harry that
he had the shortest life line she had ever seen. It
was Defense Against the Dark Arts that Harry was keen to get to; after his
conversation with Wood, he wanted to get started on his anti-Dementor lessons
as soon as possible. "Ah
yes," said Lupin, when Harry reminded him of his promise at the end of
class. "Let me see...how about eight o'clock on Thursday evening? The
History of Magic classroom should be large enough...I'll have to think carefully
about how we're going to do this...We can't bring a real Dementor into the castle
to practice on..." "Still
looks ill, doesn't he?" said Ron as they walked down the corridor, heading
to dinner. "What d'you reckon's the matter with him?" There
was a loud and impatient "tuh" from behind them. It was Hermione, who
had been sitting at the feet of a suit of armor, repacking her bag, which was
so full of books it wouldn't close. "And
what are you tutting at us for?" said Ron irritably. "Nothing,"
said Hermione in a lofty voice, heaving her bag back over her shoulder. "Yes,
you were," said Ron. "I said I wonder what's wrong with Lupin, and
you -" "Well,
isn't it obvious?" said Hermione, with a look of maddening
superiority. "If you
don't want to tell us, don't," snapped Ron. "Fine,"
said Hermione haughtily, and she marched off. "She
doesn't know," said Ron, staring resentfully after Hermione. "She's
just trying to get us to talk to her again." * At
eight o'clock on Thursday evening, Harry left Gryffindor Tower for the History
of Magic classroom. It was dark and empty when he arrived, but he lit the lamps
with his wand and had waited only five minutes when Professor Lupin turned up,
carrying a large packing case, which he heaved onto Professor Binn's desk. "What's
that?" said Harry. "Another
Boggart," said Lupin, stripping off his cloak. "I've been combing the
castle ever since Tuesday, and very luckily, I found this one lurking inside
Mr. Filch's filing cabinet. It's the nearest we'll get to a real Dementor. The
Boggart will turn into a Dementor when he sees you, so we'll be able to
practice on him. I can store him in my office when we're not using him; there's
a cupboard under my desk he'll like." "Okay,"
said Harry, trying to sound as though he wasn't apprehensive at all and merely
glad that Lupin had found such a good substitute for a real Dementor. "So..."
Professor Lupin had taken out his own wand, and indicated that Harry should do
the same. "The spell I am going to try and teach you is highly advanced
magic, Harry - well beyond Ordinary Wizarding Level. It is called the Patronus
Charm." "How
does it work?" said Harry nervously. "Well,
when it works correctly, It conjures up a Patronus," said Lupin,
"which is a kind of anti-Dementor - a guardian that acts as a shield
between you and the Dementor." Harry
had a sudden vision of himself crouching behind a Hagrid-sized figure holding a
large club. Professor Lupin continued, "The Patronus is a kind of positive
force, a projection of the very things that the Dementor feeds upon - hope,
happiness, the desire to survive - but it cannot feel despair, as real humans
can, so the Dementors can't hurt it. But I must warn you, Harry, that the charm
might be too advanced for you. Many qualified wizards have difficulty with
it." "What
does a Patronus look like?" said Harry curiously. "Each
one is unique to the wizard who conjures it." "And
how do you conjure it?" "With
an incantation, which will work only if you are concentrating, with all your
might, on a single, very happy memory." Harry
cast his mind about for a happy memory. Certainly, nothing that had happened to
him at the Dursleys' was going to do. Finally, he settled on the moment when he
had first ridden a broomstick. "Right,"
he said, trying to recall as exactly as possible the wonderful, soaring
sensation of his stomach. "The
incantation is this -" Lupin cleared his throat. "Expecto patronum!" "Expecto
patronum," Harry repeated under his breath, "expecto patronum." "Concentrating
hard on your happy memory?" "Oh
- yeah -" said Harry, quickly forcing his thoughts back to that first
broom ride. "Expecto patrono - no, patronum - sorry - expecto patronum,
expecto patronum" Something
whooshed suddenly out of the end of his wand; it looked like a wisp of silvery
gas. "Did
you see that?" said Harry excitedly. "Something happened!" "Very
good," said Lupin, smiling. "Right, then - ready to try it on a
Dementor?" "Yes,"
Harry said, gripping his wand very tightly, and moving into the middle of the
deserted classroom. He tried to keep his mind on flying, but something else
kept intruding...Any second now, he might hear his mother again...but he shouldn't
think that, or he would hear her again, and he didn't want to...or did he? Lupin
grasped the lid of the packing case and pulled. A
Dementor rose slowly from the box, its hooded face turned toward Harry, one
glistening, scabbed hand gripping its cloak. The lamps around the classroom
flickered and went out. The Dementor stepped from the box and started to sweep
silently toward Harry, drawing a deep, rattling breath. A wave of piercing cold
broke over him - "Expecto
patronum!" Harry yelled. "Expecto patronum! Expecto
-" But
the classroom and the Dementor were dissolving...Harry was falling again through
thick white fog, and his mother's voice was louder than ever, echoing inside
his head - "Not Harry! Not Harry! Please - I'll do anything -" "
Stand aside - stand aside, girl -" "Harry!" Harry
jerked back to life. He was lying flat on his back on the floor. The classroom
lamps were alight again. He didn't have to ask what had happened. "Sorry,"
he muttered, sitting up and feeling cold sweat trickling down behind his
glasses. "Are
you all right?" said Lupin. "Yes..."
Harry pulled himself up on one of the desks and leaned against it. "Here
-" Lupin handed him a Chocolate Frog. "Eat this before we try again.
I didn't expect you to do it your first time; in fact, I would have been
astounded if you had." "It's
getting worse," Harry muttered, biting off the Frog's head. "I could
hear her louder that time - and him - Voldemort -" Lupin
looked paler than usual. "Harry,
if you don't want to continue, I will more than understand -" "I
do!" said Harry fiercely, stuffing the rest of the Chocolate Frog into his
mouth. "I've got to! What if the Dementors turn up at our match against
Ravenclaw? I can't afford to fall off again. If we lose this game we've lost
the Quidditch Cup!" "All
right then..." said Lupin. "You might want to select another memory, a
happy memory, I mean, to concentrate on...That one doesn't seem to have been
strong enough..." Harry
thought hard and decided his feelings when Gryffindor had won the House
Championship last year had definitely qualified as very happy. He gripped his
wand tightly again and took up his position in the middle of the classroom. "Ready?"
said Lupin, gripping the box lid. "Ready,"
said Harry; trying hard to fill his head with happy thoughts about Gryffindor
winning, and not dark thoughts about what was going to happen when the box
opened. "Go!"
said Lupin, pulling off the lid. The room went icily cold and dark once more.
The Dementor glided forward, drawing its breath; one rotting hand was extending
toward Harry - "Expecto
patronum!" Harry yelled. "Expecto patronum! Expecto Pat -" White
fog obscured his senses...big, blurred shapes were moving around him...then came a
new voice, a man's voice, shouting, panicking - "Lily,
take Harry and go! It's him! Go! Run! I'll hold him off -" The sounds of someone stumbling from a room - a
door bursting open - a cackle of high- pitched laughter - "Harry!
Harry...wake up..." Lupin
was tapping Harry hard on the face. This time it was a minute before Harry
understood why he was lying on a dusty classroom floor. "I
heard my dad," Harry mumbled. "That's the first time I've ever heard
him - he tried to take on Voldemort himself, to give my mum time to run for it..." Harry
suddenly realized that there were tears on his face mingling with the sweat. He
bent his face as low as possible, wiping them off on his robes, pretending to
do up his shoelace, so that Lupin wouldn't see. "You
heard James?" said Lupin in a strange voice. "Yeah..."
Face dry, Harry looked up. "Why - you didn't know my dad, did you?" "I
- I did, as a matter of fact," said Lupin. "We were friends at
Hogwarts. Listen, Harry - perhaps we should leave it here for tonight. This
charm is ridiculously advanced...I shouldn't have suggested putting you through
this..." "No!"
said Harry. He got up again. "I'll have one more go! I'm not thinking of
happy enough things, that's what it is...hang on..." He
racked his brains. A really, really happy memory...one that he could turn into a
good, strong Patronus... The
moment when he'd first found out he was a wizard, and would be leaving the
Dursleys for Hogwarts! If that wasn't a happy memory, he didn't know what
was...Concentrating very hard on how he had felt when he'd realized he'd be
leaving Privet Drive, Harry got to his feet and faced the packing case once
more. "Ready?"
said Lupin, who looked as though he were doing this against his better
judgment. "Concentrating hard? All right - go!" He
pulled off the lid of the case for the third time, and the Dementor rose out of
it; the room fell cold and dark - "EXPECTO
PATRONUM!" Harry bellowed. "EXPECTO PATRONUM! EXPECTO PATRONUM!" The
screaming inside Harry's head had started again - except this time, it sounded
as though it were coming from a badly tuned radio - softer and louder and
softer again...and he could still see the Dementor...it had halted...and then a huge,
silver shadow came bursting out of the end of Harry's wand, to hover between
him and the Dementor, and though Harry's legs felt like water, he was still on
his feet - though for how much longer, he wasn't sure... "Riddikulus!"
roared Lupin, springing forward. There
was a loud crack, and Harry's cloudy Patronus vanished along with the Dementor;
he sank into a chair, feeling as exhausted as if he'd just run a mile, and felt
his legs shaking. Out of the corner of his eye, he saw Professor Lupin forcing
the Boggart back into the packing case with his wand; it had turned into a
silvery orb again. "Excellent!"
Lupin said, striding over to where Harry sat. "Excellent, Harry! That was
definitely a start!" "Can
we have another go? Just one more go?" "Not
now," said Lupin firmly. "You've had enough for one night. Here
-" He
handed Harry a large bar of Honeydukes' best chocolate. "Eat
the lot, or Madam Pomfrey will be after my blood. Same time next week?" "Okay,"
said Harry. He took a bite of the chocolate and watched Lupin extinguishing the
lamps that had rekindled with the disappearance of the Dementor. A thought had
just occurred to him. "Professor
Lupin?" he said. "If you knew my dad, you must've known Sirius Black
as well." Lupin
turned very quickly. "What
gives you that idea?" he said sharply. "Nothing
- I mean, I just knew they were friends at Hogwarts too..." Lupin's
face relaxed. "Yes,
I knew him," he said shortly. "Or I thought I did. You'd better be
off, Harry, it's getting late." Harry
left the classroom, walking along the corridor and around a corner, then took a
detour behind a suit of armor and sank down on its plinth to finish his chocolate,
wishing he hadn't mentioned Black, as Lupin was obviously not keen on the
subject. Then Harry's thoughts wandered back to his mother and father... He
felt drained and strangely empty, even though he was so full of chocolate.
Terrible though it was to hear his parents' last moments replayed inside his
head, these were the only times Harry had heard their voices since he was a
very small child. But he'd never be able to produce a proper Patronus if he
half wanted to hear his parents again... "They're
dead," he told himself sternly. "They're dead and listening to echoes
of them won't bring them back. You'd better get a grip on yourself if you want
that Quidditch Cup." He
stood up, crammed the last bit of chocolate into his mouth, and headed back to
Gryffindor Tower. * Ravenclaw
played Slytherin a week after the start of term. Slytherin won, though
narrowly. According to Wood, this was good news for Gryffindor, who would take
second place if they beat Ravenclaw too. He therefore increased the number of team
practices to five a week. This meant that with Lupin's anti-Dementor classes,
which in themselves were more draining than six Quidditch practices, Harry had
just one night a week to do all his homework. Even so, he was not showing the
strain nearly as much as Hermione, whose immense workload finally seemed to be
getting to her. Every night, without fail, Hermione was to be seen in a corner
of the common room, several tables spread with books, Arithmancy charts, rune
dictionaries, diagrams of Muggles lifting heavy objects, and file upon file of
extensive notes; she barely spoke to anybody and snapped when she was
interrupted. "How's
she doing it?" Ron muttered to Harry one evening as Harry sat finishing a
nasty essay on Undetectable Poisons for Snape. Harry looked up. Hermione was
barely visible behind a tottering pile of books. "Doing
what?" "Getting
to all her classes!" Ron said. "I heard her talking to Professor
Vector, that Arithmancy witch, this morning. They were going on about
yesterday's lesson, but Hermione can't've been there, because she was with us
in Care of Magical Creatures! And Ernie McMillan told me she's never missed a
Muggle Studies class, but half of them are at the same time as Divination, and
she's never missed one of them either!" Harry
didn't have time to fathom the mystery of Hermione's impossible schedule at the
moment; he really needed to get on with Snape's essay. Two seconds later,
however, he was interrupted again, this time by Wood. "Bad
news, Harry. I've just been to see Professor McGonagall about the Firebolt. She
- er - got a bit shirty with me. Told me I'd got my priorities wrong. Seemed to
think I cared more about winning the Cup than I do about you staying alive.
Just because I told her I didn't care if it threw you off, as long as you
caught the Snitch first." Wood shook his head in disbelief.
"Honestly, the way she was yelling at me...you'd think I'd said something
terrible. Then I asked her how much longer she was going to keep it..." He
screwed up his face and imitated Professor McGonagall's severe voice. "As
long as necessary, Wood"...I reckon it's time you ordered a new broom,
Harry. There's an order form at the back of Which Broomstick...you could
get a Nimbus Two Thousand and One, like Malfoy's got." "I'm
not buying anything Malfoy thinks is good," said Harry flatly. * January
faded imperceptibly into February, with no change in the bitterly cold weather.
The match against Ravenclaw was drawing nearer and nearer, but Harry still
hadn't ordered a new broom. He was now asking Professor McGonagall for news of
the Firebolt after every Transfiguration lesson, Ron standing hopefully at his
shoulder, Hermione rushing past with her face averted. "No,
Potter, you can't have it back yet," Professor McGonagall told him the
twelfth time this happened, before he'd even opened his mouth. "We've
checked for most of the usual curses, but Professor Flitwick believes the broom
might be carrying a Hurling Hex. I shall tell you once we've finished
checking it. Now, please stop badgering me." To make
matters even worse, Harry's anti-Dementor lessons were not going nearly as well
as he had hoped. Several sessions on, he was able to produce an indistinct,
silvery shadow every time the Boggart-Dementor approached him, but his Patronus
was too feeble to drive the Dementor away. All it did was hover, like a
semitransparent cloud, draining Harry of energy as he fought to keep it there.
Harry felt angry with himself, guilty about his secret desire to hear his
parents' voices again. "You're
expecting too much of yourself," said Professor Lupin, sternly in their
fourth week of practice. "For a thirteen-year-old wizard, even an
indistinct Patronus is a huge achievement. You aren't passing out anymore, are
you?" "I
thought a Patronus would - charge the Dementors down or something," said
Harry dispiritedly. "Make them disappear -" "The
true Patronus does do that," said Lupin. "But you've achieved a great
deal in a very short space of time. If the Dementors put in an appearance at
your next Quidditch match, You will be able to keep them at bay long enough to
get back to the ground." "You
said it's harder if there are loads of them," said Harry. "I
have complete confidence in you," said Lupin, smiling. "Here - you've
earned a drink. Something from the Three Broomsticks. You won't have tried it
before -" He
pulled two bottles out of his briefcase. "Butterbeer!"
said Harry, without thinking. "Yeah, I like that stuff!" Lupin
raised an eyebrow. "Oh
- Ron and Hermione brought me some back from Hogsmeade," Harry lied quickly. "I
see," said Lupin, though he still looked slightly suspicious. "Well -
let's drink to a Gryffindor victory against Ravenclaw! Not that I'm supposed to
take sides, as a teacher..." he added hastily. They
drank the butterbeer in silence, until Harry voiced something he'd been
wondering for a while. "What's
under a Dementor's hood?" Professor
Lupin lowered his bottle thoughtfully. "Hmmm
... well, the only people who really know are in no condition to tell us. You
see, the Dementor lowers its hood only to use its last and worst weapon." "What's
that?" "They
call it the Dementor's Kiss," said Lupin, with a slightly twisted smile.
"It's what Dementors do to those they wish to destroy utterly. I suppose
there must be some kind of mouth under there, because they clamp their jaws
upon the mouth of the victim and - and suck out his soul." Harry
accidentally spat out a bit of butterbeer. "What
- they kill -?" "Oh
no," said Lupin. "Much worse than that. You can exist without your
soul, you know, as long as your brain and heart are still working. But you'll
have no sense of self anymore, no memory, no...anything. There's no chance at all
of recovery. You'll just exist. As an empty shell. And your soul is gone
forever...lost." Lupin
drank a little more butterbeer, then said, "It's the fate that awaits
Sirius Black. It was in the Daily Prophet this morning. The Ministry
have given the Dementors permission to perform it if they find him." Harry
sat stunned for a moment at the idea of someone having their soul sucked out
through their mouth. But then he thought of Black. "He
deserves it," he said suddenly. "You
think so?" said Lupin lightly. "Do you really think anyone deserves
that?" "Yes,"
said Harry defiantly. "For...for some things..." He
would have liked to have told Lupin about the conversation he'd overheard about
Black in the Three Broomsticks, about Black betraying his mother and father,
but it would have involved revealing that he'd gone to Hogsmeade without
permission, and he knew Lupin wouldn't be very impressed by that. So he
finished his butterbeer, thanked Lupin, and left the History of Magic
classroom. Harry
half wished that he hadn't asked what was under a Dementor's hood, the answer
had been so horrible, and he was so lost in unpleasant thoughts of what it
would feel like to have your soul sucked out of you that he walked headlong
into Professor McGonagall halfway up the stairs. "Do
watch where you're going, Potter!" "Sorry,
Professor -" "I've
just been looking for you in the Gryffindor common room, Well, here it is, we've
done everything we could think of, and there doesn't seem to be anything wrong
with it at all - you've got a very good friend somewhere, Potter..." Harry's
jaw dropped. She was holding out his Firebolt, and it looked as magnificent as
ever. "I
can have it back?" Harry said weakly. "Seriously?" "Seriously,"
said Professor McGonagall, and she was actually smiling. "I daresay you'll
need to get the feel of it before Saturday's match, won't you? And Potter - do
try and win, won't you? Or we'll be out of the running for the eighth year in a
row, as Professor Snape was kind enough to remind me only last night..." Speechless,
Harry carried the Firebolt back upstairs toward Gryffindor Tower. As he turned
a corner, he saw Ron dashing toward him, grinning from ear to ear. "She
gave it to you? Excellent! Listen, can I still have a go on it? Tomorrow?" "Yeah...anything..."
said Harry, his heart lighter than it had been in a month. "You know what
- we should make up with Hermione...She was only trying to help..." "Yeah,
all right," said Ron. "She's in the common room now working - for a
change." They
turned into the corridor to Gryffindor Tower and saw Neville Longbottom,
pleading with Sir Cadogan, who seemed to be refusing him entrance. "I
wrote them down!" Neville was saying tearfully. "But I must've
dropped them somewhere!" "A
likely tale!" roared Sir Cadogan. Then, spotting Harry and Ron: "Good
even, my fine young yeomen! Come clap this loon in irons. He is trying to force
entry to the chambers within!" "Oh,
shut up," said Ron as he and Harry drew level with Neville. "I've
lost the passwords!" Neville told them miserably. "I made him tell me
what passwords he was going to use this week, because he keeps changing them,
and now I don't know what I've done with them!" "Oddsbodkins,"
said Harry to Sir Cadogan, who looked extremely disappointed and reluctantly
swung forward to let them into the common room. There was a sudden, excited
murmur as every head turned and the next moment, Harry was surrounded by people
exclaiming over his Firebolt. "Where'd
you get it, Harry?" "Will
you let me have a go?" "Have
you ridden it yet, Harry?" "Ravenclaw'll
have no chance, they're all on Cleansweep Sevens!" "Can
I just hold it, Harry?" After ten
minutes or so, during which the Firebolt was Passed around and admired from
every angle, the crowd dispersed and Harry and Ron had a clear view of
Hermione, the only person who hadn't rushed over to them, bent over her work
and carefully avoiding their eyes. Harry and Ron approached her table and at
last, she looked up. "I
got it back," said Harry, grinning at her and holding up the Firebolt. "See,
Hermione? There wasn't anything wrong with it!" said Ron. "Well
- there might have been!" said Hermione. "I mean, at least you
know now that it's safe!" "Yeah,
I suppose so," said Harry. "I'd better put it upstairs." "I'll
take it!" said Ron eagerly. "I've got to give Scabbers his rat
tonic." He
took the Firebolt and, holding it as if it were made of glass, carried it away
up the boys' staircase. "Can
I sit down, then?" Harry asked Hermione. "I
suppose so," said Hermione, moving a great stack of parchment off a chair. Harry
looked around at the cluttered table, at the long Arithmancy essay on which the
ink was still glistening, at the even longer Muggle Studies essay ('Explain Why
Muggles Need Electricity') and at the rune translation Hermione was now poring
over. "How
are you getting through all this stuff?" Harry asked her. "Oh,
well - you know - working hard," said Hermione. Close-up, Harry saw that
she looked almost as tired as Lupin. "Why
don't you just drop a couple of subjects?" Harry asked, watching her
lifting books as she searched for her rune dictionary. "I
couldn't do that!" said Hermione, looking scandalized. "Arithmancy
looks terrible," said Harry, picking up a very complicated-looking number
chart. "Oh
no, it's wonderful!" said Hermione earnestly. "It's my favorite
subject! It's -" But
exactly what was wonderful about Arithmancy, Harry never found out. At that
precise moment, a strangled yell echoed down the boys' staircase. The whole
common room fell silent, staring, petrified, at the entrance. Then came hurried
footsteps, growing louder and louder - and then Ron came leaping into view,
dragging with him a bedsheet. "LOOK!"
he bellowed, striding over to Hermione's table. "LOOK!" he yelled,
shaking the sheets in her face. "Ron,
what -?" "SCABBERS!
LOOK! SCABBERS!" Hermione
was leaning away from Ron, looking utterly bewildered. Harry looked down at the
sheet Ron was holding. There was something red on it. Something that looked
horribly like - "BLOOD!"
Ron yelled into the stunned silence. "HE'S GONE! AND YOU KNOW WHAT WAS ON
THE FLOOR?" "N
- no," said Hermione in a trembling voice. Ron
threw something down onto Hermione's rune translation. Hermione and Harry leaned
forward. Lying on top of the weird, spiky shapes were several long, ginger cat
hairs. CHAPTER THIRTEEN GRYFFINDOR VERSUS RAVENCLAWIt
looked like the end of Ron and Hermione's friendship. Each was so angry with
the other that Harry couldn't see how they'd ever make up. Ron
was enraged that Hermione had never taken Crookshanks's attempts to eat
Scabbers seriously, hadn't bothered to keep a close enough watch on him, and
was still trying to pretend that Crookshanks was innocent by suggesting that
Ron look for Scabbers under all the boys' beds. Hermione, meanwhile, maintained
fiercely that Ron had no proof that Crookshanks had eaten Scabbers, that the
ginger hairs might have been there since Christmas, and that Ron had been
prejudiced against her cat ever since Crookshanks had landed on Ron's head in
the Magical Menagerie. Personally,
Harry was sure that Crookshanks had eaten Scabbers, and when he tried to point
out to Hermione that the evidence all pointed that way, she lost her temper
with Harry too. "Okay,
side with Ron, I knew you would!" she said shrilly. "First the
Firebolt, now Scabbers, everything's my fault, isn't it! Just leave me alone,
Harry, I've got a lot of work to do!" Ron
had taken the loss of his rat very hard indeed. "Come
on, Ron, you were always saying how boring Scabbers was," said Fred
bracingly. "And he's been off-color for ages, he was wasting away. It was
probably better for him to snuff it quickly - one swallow - he probably didn't
feel a thing." "Fred!"
said Ginny indignantly. "All he
did was eat and sleep, Ron, you said it yourself," said George. "He
bit Goyle for us once!" Ron said miserably. "Remember, Harry?" "Yeah,
that's true," said Harry. "His
finest hour," said Fred, unable to keep a straight face. "Let the
scar on Goyle's finger stand as a lasting tribute to his memory. Oh, come on,
Ron, get yourself down to Hogsmeade and buy a new rat, what's the point of
moaning?" In a
last-ditch attempt to cheer Ron up, Harry persuaded him to come along to the
Gryffindor team's final practice before the Ravenclaw match, so that he could
have a ride on the Firebolt after they'd finished. This did seem to take Ron's
mind off Scabbers for a moment ("Great! Can I try and shoot a few goals on
it?") so they set off for the Quidditch field together. Madam
Hooch, who was still overseeing Gryffindor practices to keep an eye on Harry,
was just as impressed with the Firebolt as everyone else had been. She took it
in her hands before takeoff and gave them the benefit of her professional
opinion. "Look
at the balance on it! If the Nimbus series has a fault, it's a slight list to
the tail end - you often find they develop a drag after a few years. They've
updated the handle too, a bit slimmer than the Cleansweeps, reminds me of the
old Silver Arrows - a pity they've stopped making them. I learned to fly on
one, and a very fine old broom it was too..." She
continued in this vein for some time, until Wood said, "Er - Madam Hooch?
Is it okay if Harry has the Firebolt back? We need to practice..." "Oh
- right - here you are, then, Potter," said Madam Hooch. "I'll sit
over here with Weasley..." She
and Ron left the field to sit in the stadium, and the Gryffindor team gathered
around Wood for his final instructions for tomorrow's match. "Harry,
I've just found out who Ravenclaw is playing as Seeker. It's Cho Chang. She's a
fourth year, and she's pretty good...I really hoped she wouldn't be fit, she's
had some problems with injuries..." Wood scowled his displeasure that Cho
Chang had made a full recovery, then said, "On the other hand, she rides a
Comet Two Sixty, which is going to look like a joke next to the Firebolt."
He gave Harry's broom a look of fervent admiration, then said, "Okay,
everyone, let's go -" And
at long last, Harry mounted his Firebolt, and kicked off from the ground. It
was better than he'd ever dreamed. The Firebolt turned with the lightest touch;
it seemed to obey his thoughts rather than his grip; it sped across the field
at such speed that the stadium turned into a green-and-gray blur; Harry turned
it so sharply that Alicia Spinnet screamed, then he went into a perfectly
controlled dive, brushing the grassy field with his toes before rising thirty,
forty, fifty feet into the air again - "Harry,
I'm letting the Snitch out!" Wood called. Harry
turned and raced a Bludger toward the goal posts; he outstripped it easily, saw
the Snitch dart out from behind Wood, and within ten seconds had caught it
tightly in his hand. The
team cheered madly. Harry let the Snitch go again, gave it a minute's head
start, then tore after it, weaving in and out of the others; he spotted it
lurking near Katie Bell's knee, looped her easily, and caught it again. It
was the best practice ever; the team, inspired by the presence of the Firebolt
in their midst, performed their best moves faultlessly, and by the time they
hit the ground again, Wood didn't have a single criticism to make, which, as
George Weasley pointed out, was a first. "I
can't see what's going to stop us tomorrow!" said Wood. "Not unless -
Harry, you've sorted out your Dementor problem, haven't you?" "Yeah,"
said Harry, thinking of his feeble Patronus and wishing it were stronger. "The
Dementors won't turn up again, Oliver. Dumbledore'd go ballistic," said
Fred confidently. "Well,
let's hope not," said Wood. "Anyway - good work, everyone. Let's get
back to the tower...turn in early..." "I'm
staying out for a bit; Ron wants a go on the Firebolt," Harry told Wood,
and while the rest of the team headed off to the locker rooms, Harry strode
over to Ron, who vaulted the barrier to the stands and came to meet him. Madam
Hooch had fallen asleep in her seat. "Here
you go," said Harry, handing Ron the Firebolt. Ron,
an expression of ecstasy on his face, mounted the broom and zoomed off into the
gathering darkness while Harry walked around the edge of the field, watching
him. Night had fallen before Madam Hooch awoke with a start, told Harry and Ron
off for not waking her, and insisted that they go back to the castle. Harry
shouldered the Firebolt and he and Ron walked out of the shadowy stadium,
discussing the Firebolt's superbly smooth action, its phenomenal acceleration,
and its pinpoint turning. They were halfway toward the castle when Harry,
glancing to his left, saw something that made his heart turn over - a pair of
eyes, gleaming out of the darkness. Harry
stopped dead, his heart banging against his ribs. "What's
the matter?" said Ron. Harry
pointed. Ron pulled out his wand and muttered, "Lumos!" A beam of
light fell across the grass, hit the bottom of a tree, and illuminated its
branches; there, crouching among the budding leaves, was Crookshanks. "Get
out of here!" Ron roared, and he stooped down and seized a stone lying on
the grass, but before he could do anything else, Crookshanks had vanished with
one swish of his long ginger tail. "See?"
Ron said furiously, chucking the stone down again. "She's still letting
him wander about wherever he wants - probably washing down Scabbers with a
couple of birds now..." Harry
didn't say anything. He took a deep breath as relief seeped through him; he had
been sure for a moment that those eyes had belonged to the Grim. They set off
for the castle once more. slightly ashamed of his moment of panic, Harry didn't
say anything to Ron - nor did he look left or right until they had reached the
well lit entrance hall. * Harry
went down to breakfast the next morning with the rest of the boys in his
dormitory, all of whom seemed to think the Firebolt deserved a sort of guard of
honor. As Harry entered the Great Hall, heads turned in the direction of the
Firebolt, and there was a good deal of excited muttering. Harry saw, with
enormous satisfaction, that the Slytherin team were all looking thunderstruck. "Did
you see his face?" said Ron gleefully, looking back at Malfoy. "He
can't believe it! This is brilliant!" Wood,
too, was basking in the reflected glory of the Firebolt. "Put
it here, Harry," he said, laying the broom in the middle of the table and
carefully turning it so that its name faced upward. People from the Ravenclaw
and Hufflepuff tables were soon coming over to look. Cedric Diggory came over
to congratulate Harry on having acquired such a superb replacement for his
Nimbus, and Percy's Ravenclaw girlfriend, Penelope Clearwater, asked if she
could actually hold the Firebolt. "Now,
now, Penny, no sabotage!" said Percy heartily as she examined the Firebolt
closely. "Penelope and I have got a bet on," he told the team.
"Ten Galleons on the outcome of the match!" Penelope
put the Firebolt down again, thanked Harry, and went back to her table. "Harry
- make sure you win," said Percy, in an urgent whisper. "I haven't
got ten Galleons. Yes, I'm coming, Penny!" And he bustled off to join
her in a piece of toast. "Sure
you can manage that broom, Potter?" said a cold, drawling voice. Draco
Malfoy had arrived for a closer look, Crabbe and Goyle right behind him. "Yeah,
reckon so," said Harry casually. "Got
plenty of special features, hasn't it?" said Malfoy, eyes glittering
maliciously. "Shame it doesn't come with a parachute - in case you get too
near a Dementor." Crabbe
and Goyle sniggered. "Pity
you can't attach an extra arm to yours, Malfoy," said Harry. "Then it
could catch the Snitch for you." The
Gryffindor team laughed loudly. Malfoy's pale eyes narrowed, and he stalked
away. They watched him rejoin the rest of the Slytherin team, who put their
heads together, no doubt asking Malfoy whether Harry's broom really was a
Firebolt. At a
quarter to eleven, the Gryffindor team set off for the locker rooms. The
weather couldn't have been more different from their match against Hufflepuff.
It was a clear, cool day with a very light breeze; there would be no visibility
problems this time, and Harry, though nervous, was starting to feel the
excitement only a Quidditch match could bring. They could hear the rest of the
school moving into the stadium beyond. Harry took off his black school robes,
removed his wand from his pocket, and stuck it inside the T-shirt he was going
to wear under his Quidditch robes. He only hoped he wouldn't need it. He
wondered suddenly whether Professor Lupin was in the crowd, watching. "You
know what we've got to do," said Wood as they prepared to leave the locker
rooms. "If we lose this match, we're out of the running. just - just fly
like you did in practice yesterday, and we'll be okay!" They
walked out onto the field to tumultuous applause. The Ravenclaw team, dressed
in blue, were already standing in the middle of the field. Their Seeker, Cho
Chang, was the only girl on their team. She was shorter than Harry by about a
head, and Harry couldn't help noticing, nervous as he was, that she was
extremely pretty. She smiled at Harry as the teams faced each other behind
their captains, and he felt a slight lurch in the region of his stomach that he
didn't think had anything to do with nerves. "Wood,
Davies, shake hands," Madam Hooch said briskly, and Wood shook hands with
the Ravenclaw Captain. "Mount
your brooms... on my whistle... three - two - one -" Harry
kicked off into the air and the Firebolt zoomed higher and faster than any
other broom; he soared around the stadium and began squinting around for the
Snitch, listening all the while to the commentary, which was being provided by
the Weasley twins' friend Lee Jordan. "They're
off, and the big excitement this match is the Firebolt that Harry Potter is
flying for Gryffindor. According to Which Broomstick, the Firebolt's
going to be the broom of choice for the national teams at this year's World
Championship -" "Jordan,
would you mind telling us what's going on in the match?" interrupted Professor
McGonagall's voice. "Right
you are, Professor - just giving a bit of background information - the
Firebolt, incidentally, has a built-in auto-brake and -" "Jordan!" "Okay,
okay, Gryffindor in possession, Katie Bell of Gryffindor, heading for
goal..." Harry
streaked past Katie in the opposite direction, gazing around for a glint of
gold and noticing that Cho Chang was tailing him closely. She was undoubtedly a
very good flier - she kept cutting across him, forcing him to change direction. "Show
her your acceleration, Harry!" Fred yelled as he whooshed past in pursuit
of a Bludger that was aiming for Alicia. Harry
urged the Firebolt forward as they rounded the Ravenclaw goal posts and Cho
fell behind. Just as Katie succeeded in scoring the first goal of the match,
and the Gryffindor end of the field went wild, he saw it - the Snitch was close
to the ground, flitting near one of the barriers. Harry
dived; Cho saw what he was doing and tore after him - Harry was speeding up,
excitement flooding him; dives were his specialty, he was ten feet away - Then
a Bludger, hit by one of the Ravenclaw Beaters, came pelting out of nowhere;
Harry veered off course, avoiding it by an inch, and in those few, crucial
seconds, the Snitch had vanished. There
was a great "Ooooooh" of disappointment from the Gryffindor
supporters, but much applause for their Beater from the Ravenclaw end. George
Weasley vented his feelings by hitting the second Bludger directly at the
offending Beater, who was forced to roll right over in midair to avoid it. "Gryffindor
leads by eighty points to zero, and look at that Firebolt go! Potter's really
putting it through its paces now, see it turn - Chang's Comet is just no match
for it, the Firebolt's precision - balance is really noticeable in these long
-" "JORDAN!
ARE YOU BEING PAID TO ADVERTISE FIREBOLTS? GET ON WITH THE COMMENTARY!" Ravenclaw
was pulling back; they had now scored three goals, which put Gryffindor only
fifty points ahead - if Cho got the Snitch before him, Ravenclaw would win.
Harry dropped lower, narrowly avoiding a Ravenclaw Chaser, scanning the field
frantically - a glint of gold, a flutter of tiny wings - the Snitch was
circling the Gryffindor goal post... Harry
accelerated, eyes fixed on the speck of gold ahead - but just then, Cho appeared
out of thin air, blocking him - "HARRY,
THIS IS NO TIME TO BE A GENTLEMAN!" Wood roared as Harry swerved to avoid
a collision. "KNOCK HER OFF HER BROOM IF YOU HAVE TO!" Harry
turned and caught sight of Cho; she was grinning. The Snitch had vanished
again. Harry turned his Firebolt upward and was soon twenty feet above the
game. Out of the corner of his eye, he saw Cho following him...She'd decided to
mark him rather than search for the Snitch herself...All right, then...if she
wanted to tail him, she'd have to take the consequences... He
dived again, and Cho, thinking he'd seen the Snitch, tried to follow; Harry
pulled out of the dive very sharply; she hurtled downward; he rose fast as a
bullet once more, and then saw it, for the third time - the Snitch was
glittering way above the field at the Ravenclaw end. He
accelerated; so, many feet below, did Cho. He was winning, gaining on the
Snitch with every second - then - "Oh!"
screamed Cho, pointing. Distracted,
Harry looked down. Three
Dementors, three tall, black, hooded Dementors, were looking up at him. He
didn't stop to think. Plunging a hand down the neck of his robes, he whipped
out his wand and roared, "Expecto patronum!" Something
silver-white, something enormous, erupted from the end of his wand. He knew it
had shot directly at the Dementors but didn't pause to watch; his mind still
miraculously clear, he looked ahead - he was nearly there. He stretched out the
hand still grasping his wand and just managed to close his fingers over the
small, struggling Snitch. Madam
Hooch's whistle sounded. Harry turned around in midair and saw six scarlet
blurs bearing down on him; next moment, the whole team was hugging him so hard
he was nearly pulled off his broom. Down below he could hear the roars of the
Gryffindors in the crowd. "That's
my boy!" Wood kept yelling. Alicia, Angelina, and Katie had all kissed
Harry; Fred had him in a grip so tight Harry felt as though his head would come
off In complete disarray, the team managed to make its way back to the ground. Harry
got off his broom and looked up to see a gaggle of Gryffindor supporters
sprinting onto the field, Ron in the lead. Before he knew it, he had been
engulfed by the cheering crowd. "Yes!"
Ron yelled, yanking Harry's arm into the air. "Yes! Yes!" "Well
done, Harry!" said Percy, looking delighted. "Ten Galleons to
me! Must find Penelope, excuse me -" "Good
for you, Harry!" roared Seamus Finnigan. "Ruddy
brilliant!" boomed Hagrid over the heads of the milling Gryffindors. "That
was quite some Patronus," said a voice in Harry's ear. Harry
turned around to see Professor Lupin, who looked both shaken and pleased. "The
Dementors didn't affect me at all!" Harry said excitedly. "I didn't
feel a thing!" "That
would be because they - er - weren't Dementors," said Professor Lupin.
"Come and see - " He
led Harry out of the crowd until they were able to see the edge of the field. "You
gave Mr. Malfoy quite a fright," said Lupin. Harry
stared. Lying in a crumpled heap on the ground were Malfoy, Crabbe, Goyle, and
Marcus Flint, the Slytherin team Captain, all struggling to remove themselves
from long, black, hooded robes. It looked as though Malfoy had been standing on
Goyle's shoulders. Standing over them, with an expression of the utmost fury on
her face, was Professor McGonagall. "An
unworthy trick!" she was shouting. "A low and cowardly attempt to
sabotage the Gryffindor Seeker! Detention for all of you, and fifty points from
Slytherin! I shall be speaking to Professor Dumbledore about this, make no
mistake! Ah, here he comes now!" If
anything could have set the seal on Gryffindor's victory, it was this. Ron, who
had fought his way through to Harry's side, doubled up with laughter as they
watched Malfoy fighting to extricate himself from the robe, Goyle's head still
stuck inside it. "Come
on, Harry!" said George, fighting his way over. "Party! Gryffindor
common room, now!" "Right,"
said Harry, and feeling happier than he had in ages, he and the rest of the
team led the way, still in their scarlet robes, out of the stadium and back up
to the castle. * It
felt as though they had already won the Quidditch Cup; the party went on all
day and well into the night. Fred and George Weasley disappeared for a couple
of hours and returned with armfuls of bottles of butterbeer, pumpkin fizz, and
several bags full of Honeydukes sweets. "How
did you do that?" squealed Angelina Johnson as George started throwing
Peppermint Toads into the crowd. "With
a little help from Moony, Wormtail, Padfoot, and Prongs," Fred muttered in
Harry's ear. Only
one person wasn't joining in the festivities. Hermione, incredibly, was sitting
in a corner, attempting to read an enormous book entitled Home Life and
Social Habits of British Muggles. Harry broke away from the table where
Fred and George had started juggling butterbeer bottles and went over to her. "Did
you even come to the match?" he asked her. "Of
course I did," said Hermione in a strangely high-pitched voice, not
looking up. "And I'm very glad we won, and I think you did really well,
but I need to read this by Monday." "Come
on, Hermione, come and have some food," Harry said, looking over at Ron
and wondering whether he was in a good enough mood to bury the hatchet. "I
can't, Harry. I've still got four hundred and twenty-two pages to read!"
said Hermione, now sounding slightly hysterical. "Anyway..." She
glanced over at Ron too. "He doesn't want me to join in." There
was no arguing with this, as Ron chose that moment to say loudly, "If
Scabbers hadn't just been eaten, he could have had some of those Fudge
Flies. He used to really like them -" Hermione
burst into tears. Before Harry could say or do anything, she tucked the
enormous book under her arm, and, still sobbing, ran toward the staircase to
the girls' dormitories and out of sight. "Can't
you give her a break?" Harry asked Ron quietly. "No,"
said Ron flatly. "If she just acted like she was sorry - but she'll never
admit she's wrong, Hermione. She's still acting like Scabbers has gone on
vacation or something." The
Gryffindor party ended only when Professor McGonagall turned up in her tartan
dressing gown and hair net at one in the morning, to insist that they all go to
bed. Harry and Ron climbed the stairs to their dormitory, still discussing the
match. At last, exhausted, Harry climbed into bed, twitched the hangings of his
four-poster shut to block out a ray of moonlight, lay back, and felt himself
almost instantly drifting off to sleep... He had a
very strange dream. He was walking through a forest, his Firebolt over his
shoulder, following something silvery-white. It was winding its way through the
trees ahead, and he could only catch glimpses of it between the leaves. Anxious
to catch up with it, he sped up, but as he moved faster, so did his quarry.
Harry broke into a run, and ahead he heard hooves gathering speed. Now he was
running flat out, and ahead he could hear galloping. Then he turned a corner
into a clearing and - "AAAAAAAAAAAAAARRRRRRRRRRRRGGGHHHHHHH!
NOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOO!" Harry woke as suddenly as
though he'd been hit in the face. Disoriented in the total darkness, he fumbled
with his hangings, he could hear movements around him, and Seamus Finnigan's
voice from the other side of the room. "What's
going on?" Harry
thought he heard the dormitory door slam. At last finding the divide in his
curtains, he ripped them back, and at the same moment, Dean Thomas lit his
lamp. Ron
was sitting up in bed, the hangings torn from one side, a look of utmost terror
on his face. "Black!
Sirius Black! With a knife!" "What?" "Here! Just now!
Slashed the curtains! Woke me up!" "You
sure you weren't dreaming, Ron?" said Dean. "Look
at the curtains! I tell you, he was here!" They
all scrambled out of bed; Harry reached the dormitory door first, and they
sprinted back down the staircase. Doors opened behind them, and sleepy voices
called after them. "Who
shouted?" "What're
you doing?" The
common room was lit with the glow of the dying fire, still littered with the
debris from the party. It was deserted. "Are
you sure you weren't dreaming, Ron?" "I'm
telling you, I saw him!" "What's
all the noise?" "Professor
McGonagall told us to go to bed!" A few
of the girls had come down their staircase, pulling on dressing gowns and
yawning. Boys, too, were reappearing. "Excellent,
are we carrying on?" said Fred Weasley brightly. "Everyone
back upstairs!" said Percy, hurrying into the common room and pinning his
Head Boy badge to his pajamas as he spoke. "Perce
- Sirius Black!" said Ron faintly. "In our dormitory! With a knife!
Woke me up!" The
common room went very still. "Nonsense!"
said Percy, looking startled. "You had too much to eat, Ron - had a
nightmare -" "I'm
telling you -" "Now,
really, enough's enough!" Professor
McGonagall was back. She slammed the portrait behind her as she entered the
common room and stared furiously around. "I
am delighted that Gryffindor won the match, but this is getting ridiculous!
Percy, I expected better of you!" "I
certainly didn't authorize this, Professor!" said Percy, puffing himself
up indignantly. "I was just telling them all to get back to bed! My
brother Ron here had a nightmare -" "IT
WASN'T A NIGHTMARE!" Ron yelled. "PROFESSOR, I WOKE UP, AND SIRIUS
BLACK WAS STANDING OVER ME, HOLDING A KNIFE!" Professor
McGonagall stared at him. "Don't
be ridiculous, Weasley, how could he possibly have gotten through the portrait
hole?" "Ask
him!" said Ron, pointing a shaking finger at the back of Sir Cadogan's
picture. "Ask him if he saw -" Glaring
suspiciously at Ron, Professor McGonagall pushed the portrait back open and
went outside. The whole common room listened with bated breath. "Sir
Cadogan, did you just let a man enter Gryffindor Tower?" "Certainly,
good lady!" cried Sir Cadogan. There
was a stunned silence, both inside and outside the common room. "You
- you did?" said Professor McGonagall. "But - but the
password!" "He had
'em!" said Sir Cadogan proudly. "Had the whole week's, my lady! Read
'em off a little piece of paper!" Professor
McGonagall pulled herself back through the portrait hole to face the stunned
crowd. She was white as chalk. "Which
person," she said, her voice shaking, "which abysmally foolish person
wrote down this week's passwords and left them lying around?" There
was utter silence, broken by the smallest of terrified squeaks. Neville
Longbottom, trembling from head to fluffy slippered toes, raised his hand
slowly into the air. CHAPTER FOURTEEN SNAPE'S GRUDGENo
one in Gryffindor Tower slept that night. They knew that the castle was being
searched again, and the whole House stayed awake in the common room, waiting to
hear whether Black had been caught. Professor McGonagall came back at dawn, to
tell them that he had again escaped. Throughout
the day, everywhere they went they saw signs of tighter security; Professor
Flitwick could be seen teaching the front doors to recognize a large picture of
Sirius Black; Filch was suddenly bustling up and down the corridors, boarding
up everything from tiny cracks in the walls to mouse holes. Sir Cadogan had
been fired. His portrait had been taken back to its lonely landing on the seventh
floor, and the Fat Lady was back. She had been expertly restored, but was still
extremely nervous, and had agreed to return to her job only on condition that
she was given extra protection. A bunch of surly security trolls had been hired
to guard her. They paced the corridor in a menacing group, talking in grunts
and comparing the size of their clubs. Harry
couldn't help noticing that the statue of the one-eyed witch on the third floor
remained unguarded and unblocked. It seemed that Fred and George had been right
in thinking that they - and now Harry, Ron, and Hermione - were the only ones
who knew about the hidden passageway within it. "D'you
reckon we should tell someone?" Harry asked Ron. "We
know he's not coming in through Honeyduke's," said Ron dismissively.
"We'd've heard if the shop had been broken into." Harry
was glad Ron took this view. If the one-eyed witch was boarded up too, he would
never be able to go into Hogsmeade again. Ron
had become an instant celebrity. For the first time in his life, people were
paying more attention to him than to Harry, and it was clear that Ron was
rather enjoying the experience. Though still severely shaken by the night's
events, he was happy to tell anyone who asked what had happened, with a wealth
of detail. "...
I was asleep, and I heard this ripping noise, and I thought it was in my dream,
you know? But then there was this draft...I woke up and one side of the hangings
on my bed had been pulled down...I rolled over...and I saw him standing over
me...like a skeleton, with loads of filthy hair...holding this great long knife,
must've been twelve inches...and he looked at me, and I looked at him, and then I
yelled, and he scampered. "Why,
though?" Ron added to Harry as the group of second year girls who had been
listening to his chilling tale departed. "Why did he run?" Harry
had been wondering the same thing. Why had Black, having got the wrong bed, not
silenced Ron and proceeded to Harry? Black had proved twelve years ago that he
didn't mind murdering innocent people, and this time he had been facing five
unarmed boys, four of whom were asleep. "He
must've known he'd have a job getting back out of the castle once you'd yelled
and woken people up," said Harry thoughtfully. "He'd've had to kill
the whole house to get back through the portrait hole...then he would've met the
teachers..." Neville
was in total disgrace. Professor McGonagall was so furious with him she had
banned him from all future Hogsmeade visits, given him a detention, and
forbidden anyone to give him the password into the tower. Poor Neville was
forced to wait. outside the common room every night for somebody to let him in,
while the security trolls leered unpleasantly at him. None of these
punishments, however, came close to matching the one his grandmother had in
store for him. Two days after Black's break-in, she sent Neville the very worst
thing a Hogwarts student could receive over breakfast - a Howler. The
school owls swooped into the Great Hall carrying the mail as usual, and Neville
choked as a huge barn owl landed in front of him, a scarlet envelope clutched
in its beak. Harry and Ron, who were sitting opposite him, recognized the
letter as a Howler at once - Ron had got one from his mother the year before. "Run
for it, Neville," Ron advised. Neville
didn't need telling twice. He seized the envelope, and holding it before him
like a bomb, sprinted out of the hall, while the Slytherin table exploded with
laughter at the sight of him. They heard the Howler go off in the entrance hall
- Neville's grandmother's voice, magically magnified to a hundred times its
usual volume, shrieking about how he had brought shame on the whole family. Harry
was too busy feeling sorry for Neville to notice immediately that he had a
letter too. Hedwig got his attention by nipping him sharply on the wrist. "Ouch!
Oh - thanks, Hedwig."
Harry tore open the envelope while Hedwig helped
herself to some of Neville's cornflakes. The note inside said:
Dear Harry and Ron,
How about having tea with me this afternoon 'round six? I'll come collect you from
the castle. WAIT FOR ME IN THE ENTRANCE HALL; YOU'RE NOT ALLOWED OUT ON YOUR
OWN.
Cheers,
Hagrid
"He
probably wants to hear all about Black!" said Ron. So at six
o'clock that afternoon, Harry and Ron left Gryffindor Tower, passed the security
trolls at a run, and headed down to the entrance hall. Hagrid
was already waiting for them. "All
right, Hagrid!" said Ron. "S'pose you want to hear about Saturday
night, do you?" "I've
already heard all abou' it," said Hagrid, opening the front doors and
leading them outside. "Oh,"
said Ron, looking slightly put out. The
first thing they saw on entering Hagrid's cabin was Buckbeak, who was stretched
out on top of Hagrid's patchwork quilt, his enormous wings folded tight to his
body, enjoying a large plate of dead ferrets. Averting his eyes from this
unpleasant sight, Harry saw a gigantic, hairy brown suit and a very horrible
yellow-and-orange tie hanging from the top of Hagrid's wardrobe door. "What
are they for, Hagrid?" said Harry. "Buckbeak's
case against the Committee fer the Disposal o' Dangerous Creatures," said
Hagrid. "This Friday. Him an' me'll be goin' down ter London together.
I've booked two beds on the Knight Bus..." Harry felt a
nasty pang of guilt. He had completely forgotten that Buckbeak's trial was so
near, and judging by the uneasy look on Ron's face, he had too. They had also
forgotten their promise about helping him prepare Buckbeak's defense; the
arrival of the Firebolt had driven it clean out of their minds. Hagrid
poured them tea and offered them a plate of Bath buns but they knew better than
to accept; they had had too much experience with Hagrid's cooking. "I
got somethin' ter discuss with you two," said Hagrid, sitting himself
between them and looking uncharacteristically serious. "What?"
said Harry. "Hermione,"
said Hagrid. "What
about her?" said Ron. "She's
in a righ' state, that's what. She's bin comin' down ter visit me a lot since
Chris'mas. Bin feelin' lonely. Firs' yeh weren' talking to her because o' the
Firebolt, now yer not talkin' to her because her cat -" "-
ate Scabbers!" Ron interjected angrily. "Because
her cat acted like all cats do," Hagrid continued doggedly. "She's
cried a fair few times, yeh know. Goin' through a rough time at the moment.
Bitten off more'n she can chew, if yeh ask me, all the work she's tryin' ter
do. Still found time ter help me with Buckbeak's case, mind...She's found some
really good stuff fer me...reckon he'll stand a good chance now..." "Hagrid,
we should've helped as well - sorry -" Harry began awkwardly. "I'm
not blamin' yeh!" said Hagrid, waving Harry's apology aside. "Gawd
knows yeh've had enough ter be getting' on with. I've seen yeh practicin'
Quidditch ev'ry hour o' the day an' night - but I gotta tell yeh, I thought you
two'd value yer friend more'n broomsticks or rats. Tha's all." Harry
and Ron exchanged uncomfortable looks. "Really
upset, she was, when Black nearly stabbed yeh, Ron. She's got her heart in the
right place, Hermione has, an' you two not talkin' to her -" "If
she'd just get rid of that cat, I'd speak to her again!" Ron said angrily.
"But she's still sticking up for it! It's a maniac, and she won't hear a
word against it!" "Ah,
well, people can be a bit stupid abou' their pets," said Hagrid wisely.
Behind him, Buckbeak spat a few ferret bones onto Hagrid's pillow. They
spent the rest of their visit discussing Gryffindor's improved chances for the
Quidditch Cup. At nine o'clock, Hagrid walked them back up to the castle. A
large group of people was bunched around the bulletin board when they returned
to the common room. "Hogsmeade,
next weekend!" said Ron, craning over the heads to read the new notice.
"What d'you reckon?" he added quietly to Harry as they went to sit
down. "Well,
Filch hasn't done anything about the passage into Honeydukes..." Harry said,
even more quietly. "Harry!"
said a voice in his right ear. Harry started and looked around at Hermione, who
was sitting at the table right behind them and clearing a space in the wall of
books that had been hiding her. "Harry,
if you go into Hogsmeade again...I'll tell Professor McGonagall about that
map!" said Hermione. "Can
you hear someone talking, Harry?" growled Ron, not looking at Hermione. "Ron,
how can you let him go with you? After what Sirius Black nearly did to you!
I mean it, I'll tell -" "So now
you're trying to get Harry expelled!" said Ron furiously. "Haven't
you done enough damage this year?" Hermione
opened her mouth to respond, but with a soft hiss, Crookshanks leapt onto her
lap. Hermione took one frightened look at the expression on Ron's face,
gathered up Crookshanks, and hurried away toward the girls' dormitories. "So
how about it?" Ron said to Harry as though there had been no interruption.
"Come on, last time we went you didn't see anything. You haven't even been
inside Zonko's yet!" Harry
looked around to check that Hermione was well out of earshot. "Okay,"
he said. "But I'm taking the Invisibility Cloak this time." * On Saturday
morning, Harry packed his Invisibility Cloak in his bag, slipped the Marauder's
Map into his pocket, and went down to breakfast with everyone else. Hermione
kept shooting suspicious looks down the table at him, but he avoided her eye
and was careful to let her see him walking back up the marble staircase in the
entrance hall as everybody else proceeded to the front doors. "Bye!"
Harry called to Ron. "See you when you get back!" Ron
grinned and winked. Harry
hurried up to the third floor, slipping the Marauder's Map out of his pocket as
he went. Crouching behind the one-eyed witch, he smoothed it out. A tiny dot
was moving in his direction. Harry squinted at it. The minuscule writing next
to it read Neville Longbottom. Harry
quickly pulled out his wand, muttered, "Dissendium!" and shoved his
bag into the statue, but before he could climb in himself, Neville came around
the corner. "Harry!
I forgot you weren't going to Hogsmeade either!" "Hi,
Neville," said Harry, moving swiftly away from the statue and pushing the
map back into his pocket. "What are you up to?" "Nothing,"
shrugged Neville. "Want a game of Exploding Snap?" "Er
- not now - I was going to go to the library and do that vampire essay for
Lupin -" "I'll
come with you!" said Neville brightly. "I haven't done it
either!" "Er
- hang on - yeah, I forgot, I finished it last night!" "Great,
you can help me!" said Neville, his round face anxious. "I don't
understand that thing about the garlic at all - do they have to eat it, or
-" He
broke off with a small gasp, looking over Harry's shoulder. It
was Snape. Neville took a quick step behind Harry. "And
what are you two doing here?" said Snape, coming to a halt and looking
from one to the other. "An odd place to meet -" To
Harry's immense disquiet, Snape's black eyes flicked to the doorways on either
side of them, and then to the one-eyed witch. "We're
not - meeting here," said Harry. "We just - met here." "Indeed?"
said Snape. "You have a habit of turning up in unexpected places, Potter,
and you are very rarely there for no good reason...I suggest the pair of you
return to Gryffindor Tower, where you belong." Harry
and Neville set off without another word. As they turned the corner, Harry
looked back. Snape was running one of his hands over the one-eyed witch's head,
examining it closely. Harry
managed to shake Neville off at the Fat Lady by telling him the password, then
pretending he'd left his vampire essay in the library and doubling back. Once
out of sight of the security trolls, he pulled out the map again and held it
close to his nose. The
third floor corridor seemed to be deserted. Harry scanned the map carefully and
saw, with a leap of relief, that the tiny dot labeled Severus Snape was now
back in its office. He
sprinted back to the one-eyed witch, opened her hump, heaved himself inside,
and slid down to meet his bag at the bottom of the stone chute. He wiped the
Marauder's Map blank again, then set off at a run. * Harry,
completely hidden beneath the Invisibility Cloak, emerged into the sunlight
outside Honeydukes and prodded Ron in the back. "It's
me," he muttered. "What
kept you?" Ron hissed. "Snape
was hanging around." They
set off up the High Street. "Where
are you?" Ron kept muttering out of the corner of his mouth. "Are you
still there? This feels weird..." They
went to the post office; Ron pretended to be checking the price of an owl to
Bill in Egypt so that Harry could have a good look around. The owls sat hooting
softly down at him, at least three hundred of them; from Great Grays right down
to tiny little Scops owls ("Local Deliveries Only"), which were so
small they could have sat in the palm of Harry's hand. Then
they visited Zonko's, which was so packed with students Harry had to exercise
great care not to tread on anyone and cause a panic. There were jokes and
tricks to fulfill even Fred's and George's wildest dreams; Harry gave Ron
whispered orders and passed him some gold from under the cloak. They left
Zonko's with their money bags considerably lighter than they had been on
entering, but their pockets bulging with Dungbombs, Hiccup Sweets, Frog Spawn
Soap, and a Nose-Biting Teacup apiece. The
day was fine and breezy, and neither of them felt like staying indoors, so they
walked past the Three Broomsticks and climbed a slope to visit the Shrieking
Shack, the most haunted dwelling in Britain. It stood a little way above the
rest of the village, and even in daylight was slightly creepy, with its boarded
windows and dank overgrown garden. "Even
the Hogwarts ghosts avoid it," said Ron as they leaned on the fence,
looking up at it. "I asked Nearly Headless Nick...he says he's heard a very
rough crowd lives here. No one can get in. Fred and George tried, obviously,
but all the entrances are sealed shut..." Harry,
feeling hot from their climb, was just considering taking off the cloak for a
few minutes when they heard voices nearby. Someone was climbing toward the
house from the other side of the hill; moments later, Malfoy had appeared,
followed closely by Crabbe and Goyle. Malfoy was speaking. "...should
have an owl from Father any time now. He had to go to the hearing to tell them
about my arm...about how I couldn't use it for three months..." Crabbe
and Goyle sniggered. "I
really wish I could hear that great hairy moron trying to defend
himself...'There's no 'arm in 'im, 'onest -'...That Hippogriff's as good as dead
-" Malfoy
suddenly caught sight of Ron. His pale face split in a malevolent grin. "What
are you doing, Weasley?" Malfoy
looked up at the crumbling house behind Ron. "Suppose
you'd love to live here, wouldn't you, Weasley? Dreaming about having your own
bedroom? I heard your family all sleep in one room - is that true?" Harry
seized the back of Ron's robes to stop him from leaping on Malfoy. "Leave
him to me," he hissed in Ron's ear. The
opportunity was too perfect to miss. Harry crept silently around behind Malfoy,
Crabbe, and Goyle, bent down, and scooped a large handful of mud out of the
path. "We
were just discussing your friend Hagrid," Malfoy said to Ron. "Just
trying to imagine what he's saying to the Committee for the Disposal of
Dangerous Creatures. D'you think he'll cry when they cut off his Hippogriff's
-" SPLAT! Malfoy's
head jerked forward as the mud hit him; his silverblond hair was suddenly
dripping in muck. "What
the -?" Ron
had to hold onto the fence to keep himself standing, he was laughing so hard.
Malfoy, Crabbe, and Goyle spun stupidly on the spot, staring wildly around,
Malfoy trying to wipe his hair clean. "What
was that? Who did that?" "Very
haunted up here, isn't it?" said Ron, with the air of one commenting on
the weather. Crabbe
and Goyle were looking scared. Their bulging muscles were no use against
ghosts. Malfoy was staring madly around at the deserted landscape. Harry
sneaked along the path, where a particularly sloppy puddle yielded some
foul-smelling, green sludge. SPLATTER! Crabbe
and Goyle caught some this time. Goyle hopped furiously on the spot, trying to
rub it out of his small, dull eyes. "It
came from over there!" said Malfoy, wiping his face, and staring at a spot
some six feet to the left of Harry. Crabbe
blundered forward, his long arms outstretched like a zombie. Harry dodged
around him, picked up a stick, and lobbed it at Crabbe's back. Harry doubled up
with silent laughter as Crabbe did a kind of pirouette in midair, trying to see
who had thrown it. As Ron was the only person Crabbe could see, it was Ron he
started toward, but Harry stuck out his leg. Crabbe stumbled - and his huge,
flat foot caught the hem of Harry's cloak. Harry felt a great tug, then the
cloak slid off his face. For a
split second, Malfoy stared at him. "AAARGH!"
he yelled, pointing at Harry's head. Then he turned tail and ran, at breakneck
speed, back down the hill, Crabbe and Goyle behind him. Harry
tugged the cloak up again, but the damage was done. "Harry!"
Ron said, stumbling forward and staring hopelessly at the point where Harry had
disappeared, "you'd better run for it! If Malfoy tells anyone - you'd
better get back to the castle, quick -" "See
you later," said Harry, and without another word, he tore back down the
path toward Hogsmeade. Would
Malfoy believe what he had seen? Would anyone believe Malfoy? Nobody knew about
the Invisibility Cloak - nobody except Dumbledore. Harry's stomach turned over
- Dumbledore would know exactly what had happened, if Malfoy said anything - Back
into Honeydukes, back down the cellar steps, across the stone floor, through
the trapdoor - Harry pulled off the cloak, tucked it under his arm, and ran,
flat out, along the passage...Malfoy would get back first... how long would it take
him to find a teacher? Panting, a sharp pain in his side, Harry didn't slow
down until he reached the stone slide. He would have to leave the cloak where
it was, it was too much of a giveaway in case Malfoy had tipped off a teacher -
he hid it in a shadowy corner, then started to climb, fast as he could, his
sweaty hands slipping on the sides of the chute. He reached the inside of the
witch's hump, tapped it with his wand, stuck his head through, and hoisted
himself out; the hump closed, and just as Harry jumped out from behind the
statue, he heard quick footsteps approaching. It
was Snape. He approached Harry at a swift walk, his black robes swishing, then
stopped in front of him. "So,"
he said. There
was a look of suppressed triumph about him. Harry tried to look innocent, all
too aware of his sweaty face and his muddy hands, which he quickly hid in his
pockets. "Come
with me, Potter," said Snape. Harry
followed him downstairs, trying to wipe his hands clean on the inside of his
robes without Snape noticing. They walked down the stairs to the dungeons and
then into Snape's office. Harry
had been in here only once before, and he had been in very serious trouble then
too. Snape had acquired a few more slimy horrible things in jars since last
time, all standing on shelves behind his desk, glinting in the firelight and
adding to the threatening atmosphere. "Sit,"
said Snape. Harry
sat. Snape, however, remained, standing. "Mr.
Malfoy has just been to see me with a strange story, Potter," said Snape. Harry
didn't say anything. "He
tells me that he was up by the Shrieking Shack when he ran into Weasley -
apparently alone." Still,
Harry didn't speak. "Mr.
Malfoy states that he was standing talking to Weasley, when a large amount of
mud hit him in the back of the head. How do you think that could have
happened?" Harry
tried to look mildly surprised. "I
don't know, Professor." Snape's
eyes were boring into Harry's. It was exactly like trying to stare down a
Hippogriff. Harry tried hard not to blink. "Mr.
Malfoy then saw an extraordinary apparition. Can you imagine what it might have
been, Potter?" "No,"
said Harry, now trying to sound innocently curious. "It
was your head, Potter. Floating in midair." There
was a long silence. "Maybe
he'd better go to Madam Pomfrey," said Harry. "If he's seeing things
like -" "What
would your head have been doing in Hogsmeade, Potter?" said Snape softly.
"Your head is not allowed in Hogsmeade. No part of your body has
permission to be in Hogsmeade." "I
know that," said Harry, striving to keep his face free of guilt or fear.
"It sounds like Malfoy's having hallucin -" "Malfoy
is not having hallucinations," snarled Snape, and he bent down, a hand on
each arm of Harry's chair, so that their faces were a foot apart. "If your
head was in Hogsmeade, so was the rest of you." "I've
been up in Gryffindor Tower," said Harry. "Like you told -" "Can
anyone confirm that?" Harry
didn't say anything. Snape's thin mouth curled into a horrible smile. "So,"
he said, straightening up again. "Everyone from the Minister of Magic
downward has been trying to keep famous Harry Potter safe from Sirius Black.
But famous Harry Potter is a law unto himself. Let the ordinary people worry
about his safety! Famous Harry Potter goes where he wants to, with no thought
for the consequences." Harry
stayed silent. Snape was trying to provoke him into telling the truth. He
wasn't going to do it. Snape had no proof - yet. "How
extraordinarily like your father you are, Potter," Snape said suddenly,
his eyes glinting. "He too was exceedingly arrogant. A small amount of
talent on the Quidditch field made him think he was a cut above the rest of us
too. Strutting around the place with his friends and admirers...The resemblance
between you is uncanny." "My
dad didn't strut," said Harry, before he could stop himself. "And
neither do I." "Your
father didn't set much store by rules either," Snape went on, pressing his
advantage, his thin face full of malice. "Rules were for lesser mortals,
not Quidditch Cup-winners. His head was so swollen -" "SHUT
UP!" Harry
was suddenly on his feet. Rage such as he had not felt since his last night in
Privet Drive was coursing through him. He didn't care that Snape's face had
gone rigid, the black eyes flashing dangerously. "What
did you say to me, Potter?" "I told
you to shut up about my dad!" Harry yelled. "I know the truth, all
right? He saved your life! Dumbledore told me! You wouldn't even be here if it
wasn't for my dad!" Snape's
sallow skin had gone the color of sour milk. "And
did the headmaster tell you the circumstances in which your father saved my
life?" he whispered. "Or did he consider the details too unpleasant
for precious Potter's delicate ears?" Harry
bit his lip. He didn't know what had happened and didn't want to admit it - but
Snape seemed to have guessed the truth. "I
would hate for you to run away with a false idea of your father, Potter,"
he said, a terrible grin twisting his face. "Have you been imagining some
act of glorious heroism? Then let me correct you - your saintly father and his
friends played a highly amusing joke on me that would have resulted in my death
if your father hadn't got cold feet at the last moment. There was nothing brave
about what he did. He was saving his own skin as much as mine. Had their joke
succeeded, he would have been expelled from Hogwarts." Snape's
uneven, yellowish teeth were bared. "Turn
out your pockets, Potter!" he spat suddenly. Harry
didn't move. There was a pounding in his ears. "Turn
out your pockets, or we go straight to the headmaster! Pull them out,
Potter!" Cold
with dread, Harry slowly pulled out the bag of Zonko's tricks and the
Marauder's Map. Snap
picked up the Zonko's bag. "Ron
gave them to me," said Harry, praying he'd get a chance to tip Ron off
before Snape saw him. "He brought them back from Hogsmeade last time
-" "Indeed?
And you've been carrying them around ever since? How very touching...and what is
this?" Snape
had picked up the map. Harry tried with all his might to keep his face
impassive. "Spare
bit of parchment," he said with a shrug. Snape
turned it over, his eyes on Harry. "Surely
you don't need such a very old piece of parchment?" he said.
"Why don't I just - throw this away?" His hand
moved toward the fire. "No!"
Harry said quickly. "So!"
said Snape, his long nostrils quivering. "Is this another treasured gift
from Mr. Weasley? Or is it - something else? A letter, perhaps, written in
invisible ink? Or - instructions to get into Hogsmeade without passing the
Dementors?" Harry
blinked. Snape's eyes gleamed. "Let me
see, let me see..." he muttered, taking out his wand and smoothing the map
out on his desk. "Reveal your secret!" he said, touching the wand to
the parchment. Nothing
happened. Harry clenched his hands to stop them from shaking. "Show
yourself!" Snape said, tapping the map sharply. It
stayed blank. Harry was taking deep, calming breaths. "Professor
Severus Snape, master of this school, commands you to yield the information you
conceal!" Snape said, hitting the map with his wand. As
though an invisible hand were writing upon it, words appeared on the smooth
surface of the map. "Mooney
presents his compliments to Professor Snape, and begs him to keep his
abnormally large nose out of other people's business." Snape
froze. Harry stared, dumbstruck, at the message. But the map didn't stop there.
More writing was appearing beneath the first. "Mr.
Prongs agrees with Mr. Mooney and would like to add that Professor Snape is an
ugly git." It would
have been very funny if the situation hadn't been so serious. And there was
more... "Mr.
Padfoot would like to register his astonishment that an idiot like that ever
became a professor." Harry
closed his eyes in horror. When he'd opened them, the map had had its last
word. "Mr.
Wormtail bids Professor Snape good day, and advises him to wash his hair, the
slimeball." Harry
waited for the blow to fall. "So
..." said Snape softly. "We'll see about this..." He
strode across to his fire, seized a fistful of glittering powder from a jar on
the fireplace, and threw it into the flames. "Lupin!"
Snape called into the fire. "I want a word!" Utterly
bewildered, Harry stared at the fire. A large shape had appeared in it,
revolving very fast. Seconds later, Professor Lupin was clambering out of the
fireplace, brushing ash off his shabby robes. "You
called, Severus?" said Lupin mildly. "I
certainly did," said Snape, his face contorted with fury as he strode back
to his desk. "I have just asked Potter to empty his pockets. He was
carrying this." Snape
pointed at the parchment, on which the words of Messrs. Moony, Wormtail,
Padfoot, and Prongs were still shining. An odd, closed expression appeared on
Lupin's face. "Well?"
said Snape. Lupin
continued to stare at the map. Harry had the impression that Lupin was doing
some very quick thinking. "Well?"
said Snape again. "This parchment is plainly full of Dark Magic. This is
supposed to be your area of expertise, Lupin. Where do you imagine Potter got
such a thing?" Lupin
looked up and, by the merest half-glance in Harry's direction, warned him not
to interrupt. "Full
of Dark Magic?" he repeated mildly. "Do you really think so, Severus?
It looks to me as though it is merely a piece of parchment that insults anybody
who reads it. Childish, but surely not dangerous? I imagine Harry got it from a
joke shop -" "Indeed?"
said Snape. His jaw had gone rigid with anger. "You think a joke shop
could supply him with such a thing? You don't think it more likely that he got
it directly from the manufacturers?" Harry didn't
understand what Snape was talking about. Nor, apparently, did Lupin. "You
mean, by Mr. Wormtail or one of these people?" he said. "Harry, do
you know any of these men?" "No,"
said Harry quickly. "You
see, Severus?" said Lupin, turning back to Snape. "It looks like a
Zonko product to me -" Right
on cue, Ron came bursting into the office. He was completely out of breath, and
stopped just short of Snape's desk, clutching the stitch in his chest and
trying to speak. "I
- gave - Harry - that - stuff," he choked. "Bought - it...in Zonko's...
ages - ago..." "Well!"
said Lupin, clapping his hands together and looking around cheerfully.
"That seems to clear that up! Severus, I'll take this back, shall I?"
He folded the map and tucked it inside his robes. "Harry, Ron, come with
me, I need a word about my vampire essay - excuse us, Severus -" Harry
didn't dare look at Snape as they left his office. He. Ron, and Lupin walked
all the way back into the entrance hall before speaking. Then Harry turned to
Lupin. "Professor,
I -" "I
don't want to hear explanations," said Lupin shortly. He glanced around
the empty entrance hall and lowered his voice. "I happen to know that this
map was confiscated by Mr. Filch many years ago. Yes, I know it's a map,"
he said as Harry and Ron looked amazed. "I don't want to know how it fell
into your possession. I am, however, astounded that you didn't hand it
in. Particularly after what happened the last time a student left information
about the castle lying around. And I can't let you have it back, Harry." Harry
had expected that, and was too keen for explanations to protest. "Why
did Snape think I'd got it from the manufacturers?" "Because..."
Lupin hesitated, "because these mapmakers would have wanted to lure you
out of school. They'd think it extremely entertaining." "Do
you know them?" said Harry, impressed. "We've
met," he said shortly. He was looking at Harry more seriously than ever
before. "Don't
expect me to cover up for you again, Harry. I cannot make you take Sirius Black
seriously. But I would have thought that what you have heard when the Dementors
draw near you would have had more of an effect on you. Your parents gave their
lives to keep you alive, Harry. A poor way to repay them - gambling their
sacrifice for a bag of magic tricks." He
walked away, leaving Harry feeling worse by far than he had at any point in
Snape's office. Slowly, he and Ron mounted the marble staircase. As Harry
passed the one-eyed witch, he remembered the Invisibility Cloak - it was still
down there, but he didn't dare go and get it. "It's
my fault," said Ron abruptly. "I persuaded you to go. Lupin's right,
it was stupid, we shouldn't've done it -" He
broke off; they reached the corridor where the security trolls were pacing, and
Hermione was walking toward them. One look at her face convinced Harry that she
had heard what had happened. His heart plummeted - had she told Professor
McGonagall? "Come
to have a good gloat?" said Ron savagely as she stopped in front of them.
"Or have you just been to tell on us?" "No,"
said Hermione. She was holding a letter in her hands and her lip was trembling.
"I just thought you ought to know...Hagrid lost his case. Buckbeak is going
to be executed." CHAPTER FIFTEEN THE QUIDDITCH FINAL"He
sent me this," Hermione said, holding out the letter. Harry
took it. The parchment was damp, and enormous teardrops had smudged the ink so
badly in places that it was very difficult to read. Dear Hermione, We lost. I'm
allowed to bring him back to Hogwarts. Execution date to be fixed. Beaky
has enjoyed London. I
won't forget all the help you gave us. Hagrid
"They
can't do this," said Harry. "They can't. Buckbeak isn't dangerous." "Malfoy's
dad's frightened the Committee into it," said Hermione, wiping her eyes.
"You know what he's like. They're a bunch of doddery old fools, and they
were scared. There'll be an appeal, though, there always is. Only I can't see
any hope...Nothing will have changed." "Yeah,
it will," said Ron fiercely. "You won't have to do all the work alone
this time, Hermione. I'll help." "Oh,
Ron!" Hermione
flung her arms around Ron's neck and broke down completely. Ron, looking quite
terrified, patted her very awkwardly on the top of the head. Finally, Hermione
drew away. "Ron,
I'm really, really sorry about Scabbers..." she sobbed. "Oh
- well - he was old," said Ron, looking thoroughly relieved that she had
let go of him. "And he was a bit useless. You never know, Mum and Dad
might get me an owl now." The
safety measures imposed on the students since Black's second break-in made it
impossible for Harry, Ron, and Hermione to go and visit Hagrid in the evenings.
Their only chance of talking to him was during Care of Magical Creatures
lessons. He
seemed numb with shock at the verdict. "S'all
my fault. Got all tongue-tied. They was all sittin' there in black robes an' I
kep' droppin' me notes and forgettin' all them dates yeh looked up fer me,
Hermione. An' then Lucius Malfoy stood up an' said his bit, and the Committee
jus' did exac'ly what he told 'em..." "There's
still the appeal!" said Ron fiercely. "Don't give up yet, we're
working on it!" They
were walking back up to the castle with the rest of the class. Ahead they could
see Malfoy, who was walking with Crabbe and Goyle, and kept looking back,
laughing derisively. "S'no
good, Ron," said Hagrid sadly as they reached the castle steps. "That
Committee's in Lucius Malfoy's pocket. I'm jus' gonna make sure the rest o' Beaky's
time is the happiest he's ever had. I owe him that..." Hagrid
turned around and hurried back toward his cabin, his face buried in his
handkerchief. "Look
at him blubber!" Malfoy,
Crabbe, and Goyle had been standing just inside the castle doors, listening. "Have
you ever seen anything quite as pathetic?" said Malfoy. "And he's
supposed to be our teacher!" Harry
and Ron both made furious moves toward Malfoy, but Hermione got there first -
SMACK! She
had slapped Malfoy across the face with all the strength she could muster.
Malfoy staggered. Harry, Ron, Crabbe, and Goyle stood flabbergasted as Hermione
raised her hand again. "Don't
you dare call Hagrid pathetic, you foul - you evil -" "Hermione!"
said Ron weakly, and he tried to grab her hand as she swung it back. "Get
off, Ron!" Hermione
pulled out her wand. Malfoy stepped backward. Crabbe and Goyle looked at him
for instructions, thoroughly bewildered. "C'mon."
Malfoy muttered, and in a moment, all three of them had disappeared into the
passageway to the dungeons. "Hermione!"
Ron said again, sounding both stunned and impressed. "Harry,
you'd better beat him in the Quidditch final!" Hermione said shrilly.
"You just better had, because I can't stand it if Slytherin wins!" "We're
due in Charms," said Ron, still goggling at Hermione. "We'd better
go." They
hurried up the marble staircase toward Professor Flitwick's classroom. "You're
late, boys!" said Professor Flitwick reprovingly as Harry opened the
classroom door. "Come along, quickly, wands out, we're experimenting with
Cheering Charms today, we've already divided into pairs -" Harry
and Ron hurried to a desk at the back and opened their bags. Ron looked behind
him. "Where's
Hermione gone?" Harry
looked around too. Hermione hadn't entered the classroom, yet Harry knew she
had been right next to him when he had opened the door. "That's
weird," said Harry, staring at Ron. "Maybe - maybe she went to the
bathroom or something?" But
Hermione didn't turn up all lesson. "She
could've done with a Cheering Charm on her too," said Ron as the class
left for lunch, all grinning broadly - the Cheering Charms had left them with a
feeling of great contentment. Hermione
wasn't at lunch either. By the time they had finished their apple pie, the
after-effects of the Cheering Charms were wearing off, and Harry and Ron had
started to get slightly worried. "You
don't think Malfoy did something to her?" Ron said anxiously as they
hurried upstairs toward Gryffindor Tower. They
passed the security trolls, gave the Fat Lady the password
("Flibbertigibbet"), and scrambled through the portrait hole into the
common room. Hermione
was sitting at a table, fast asleep, her head resting on an open Arithmancy
book. They went to sit down on either side of her. Harry prodded her awake. "Wh
- what?" said Hermione, waking with a start and staring wildly around.
"Is it time to go? W - which lesson have we got now?" "Divination,
but it's not for another twenty minutes," said Harry. "Hermione, why
didn't you come to Charms?" "What?
Oh no!" Hermione squeaked. "I forgot to go to Charms!" "But
how could you forget?" said Harry. "You were with us till we were
right outside the classroom!" "I
don't believe it!" Hermione wailed. "Was Professor Flitwick angry?
Oh, it was Malfoy, I was thinking about him and I lost track of things!" "You
know what, Hermione?" said Ron, looking down at the enormous Arithmancy
book Hermione had been using as a pillow. "I reckon you're cracking up.
You're trying to do too much." "No,
I'm not!" said Hermione, brushing her hair out of her eyes and staring
hopelessly around for her bag. "I just made a mistake, that's all! I'd
better go and see Professor Flitwick and say sorry... I'll see you in
Divination!" Hermione
joined them at the foot of the ladder to Professor Trelawney's classroom twenty
minutes later, looking extremely harassed. "I
can't believe I missed Cheering Charms! And I bet they come up in our exams;
Professor Flitwick hinted they might!" Together
they climbed the ladder into the dim, stifling tower room. Glowing on every little
table was a crystal ball full of pearly white mist. Harry, Ron, and Hermione
sat down together at the same rickety table. "I
thought we weren't starting crystal balls until next term," Ron muttered,
casting a wary eye around for Professor Trelawney, in case she was lurking
nearby. "Don't
complain, this means we've finished palmistry," Harry muttered back.
"I was getting sick of her flinching every time she looked at my
hands." "Good
day to you!" said the familiar, misty voice, and Professor Trelawney made
her usual dramatic entrance out of the shadows. Parvati and Lavender quivered
with excitement, their faces lit by the milky glow of their crystal ball. "I
have decided to introduce the crystal ball a little earlier than I had
planned," said Professor Trelawney, sitting with her back to the fire and
gazing around. "The fates have informed me that your examination in June
will concern the Orb, and I am anxious to give you sufficient practice." Hermione
snorted. "Well,
honestly...'the fates have informed her'. Who sets the exam? She does! What an
amazing prediction!" she said, not troubling to keep her voice low. Harry
and Ron choked back laughs. It
was hard to tell whether Professor Trelawney had heard them as her face was
hidden in shadow. She continued, however, as though she had not. "Crystal
gazing is a particularly refined art," she said dreamily. "I do not
expect any of you to See when first you peer into the Orb's infinite depths. We
shall start by practicing relaxing the conscious mind and external eyes -"
Ron began to snigger uncontrollably and had to stuff his fist in his mouth to
stifle the noise - "so as to clear the Inner Eye and the superconscious.
Perhaps, if we are lucky, some of you will see before the end of the
class." And
so they began. Harry, at least, felt extremely foolish, staring blankly at the
crystal ball, trying to keep his mind empty when thoughts such as "this is
stupid" kept drifting across it. It didn't help that Ron kept breaking
into silent giggles and Hermione kept tutting. "Seen
anything yet?" Harry asked them after a quarter of an hour's quiet crystal
gazing. "Yeah,
there's a burn on this table," said Ron, pointing. "Someone's spilled
their candle." "This
is such a waste of time," Hermione hissed. "I could be practicing something
useful. I could be catching up on Cheering Charms -" Professor
Trelawney rustled past. "Would
anyone like me to help them interpret the shadowy portents within their
Orb?" she murmured over the clinking of her bangles. "I
don't need help," Ron whispered. "It's obvious what this means.
There's going to be loads of fog tonight." Both
Harry and Hermione burst out laughing. "Now,
really!" said Professor Trelawney as everyone's heads turned in their
direction. Parvati and Lavender were looking scandalized. "You are
disturbing the clairvoyant vibrations!" She approached their table and
peered into their crystal ball. Harry felt his heart sinking. He was sure he
knew what was coming - "There
is something here!" Professor Trelawney whispered, lowering her face to
the ball, so that it was reflected twice in her huge glasses. "Something
moving... but what is it?" Harry
was prepared to bet everything he owned, Including his Firebolt, that it wasn't
good news, whatever it was. And sure enough - "My
dear," Professor Trelawney breathed, gazing up at Harry. "It is here,
plainer than ever before... my dear, stalking toward you, growing ever closer...
the Gr -" "Oh,
for goodness' sake!" said Hermione loudly. "Not that ridiculous Grim
again!" Professor
Trelawney raised her enormous eyes to Hermione's face. Parvati whispered
something to Lavender, and they both glared at Hermione too. Professor
Trelawney stood up, surveying Hermione with unmistakable anger. "I
am sorry to say that from the moment you have arrived in this class my dear, it
has been apparent that you do not have what the noble art of Divination
requires. Indeed, I don't remember ever meeting a student whose mind was so
hopelessly mundane." There
was a moment's silence. Then - "Fine!"
said Hermione suddenly, getting up and cramming Unfogging the Future
back into her bag. "Fine!" she repeated, swinging the bag over her
shoulder and almost knocking Ron off his chair. "I give up! I'm
leaving!" And
to the whole class's amazement, Hermione strode over to the trapdoor, kicked it
open, and climbed down the ladder out of sight. It
took a few minutes for the class to settle down again. Professor Trelawney
seemed to have forgotten all about the Grim. She turned abruptly from Harry and
Ron's table, breathing rather heavily as she tugged her gauzy shawl more
closely to her. "Ooooo!"
said Lavender suddenly, making everyone start. "Ooooo, Professor
Trelawney, I've just remembered! You saw her leaving, didn't you? Didn't you,
Professor? 'Around Easter, one of our number will leave us forever!' You said
it ages ago, Professor!" Professor
Trelawney gave her a dewy smile. "Yes,
my dear, I did indeed know that Miss Granger would be leaving us. One hopes,
however, that one might have mistaken the Signs...The Inner Eye can be a burden,
you know..." Lavender
and Parvati looked deeply impressed, and moved over so that Professor Trelawney
could join their table instead. "Some
day Hermione's having, eh?" Ron muttered to Harry, looking awed. "Yeah..." Harry
glanced into the crystal ball but saw nothing but swirling white mist. Had
Professor Trelawney really seen the Grim again? Would he? The last thing he
needed was another near-fatal accident, with the Quidditch final drawing ever
nearer. The
Easter holidays were not exactly relaxing. The third years had never had so
much homework. Neville Longbottom seemed close to a nervous collapse, and he
wasn't the only one. "Call
this a holiday!" Seamus Finnigan roared at the common room one afternoon.
"The exams are ages away, what're they playing at?" But
nobody had as much to do as Hermione. Even without Divination, she was taking
more subjects than anybody else. She was usually last to leave the common room
at night, first to arrive at the library the next morning; she had shadows like
Lupin's under her eyes, and seemed constantly close to tears. Ron
had taken over responsibility for Buckbeak's appeal. When he wasn't doing his
own work, he was poring over enormously thick volumes with names like The
Handbook of Hippogriff Psychology and Fowl or Foul? A Study of Hippogriff
Brutality. He was so absorbed, he even forgot to be horrible to
Crookshanks. Harry,
meanwhile, had to fit in his homework around Quidditch practice every day, not
to mention endless discussions of tactics with Wood. The Gryffindor-Slytherin
match would take place on the first Saturday after the Easter holidays.
Slytherin was leading the tournament by exactly two hundred points. This meant
(as Wood constantly reminded his team) that they needed to win the match by
more than that amount to win the Cup. It also meant that the burden of winning
fell largely on Harry, because capturing the Snitch was worth one hundred and
fifty points. "So
you must catch it only if we're more than fifty points up," Wood told
Harry constantly. "Only if we're more than fifty points up, Harry, or we
win the match but lose the Cup. You've got that, Haven't you? You must catch
the Snitch only if we're -" "I
KNOW, OLIVER!" Harry yelled. The
whole of Gryffindor House was obsessed with the coming match. Gryffindor hadn't
won the Quidditch Cup since the legendary Charlie Weasley (Ron's second oldest
brother) had been Seeker. But Harry doubted whether any of them, even Wood,
wanted to win as much as he did. The enmity between Harry and Malfoy was at its
highest point ever. Malfoy was still smarting about the mud-throwing incident
in Hogsmeade and was even more furious that Harry had somehow wormed his way
out of punishment. Harry hadn't forgotten Malfoy's attempt to sabotage him in
the match against Ravenclaw, but it was the matter of Buckbeak that made him
most determined to beat Malfoy in front of the entire school. Never,
in anyone's memory, had a match approached in such a highly charged atmosphere.
By the time the holidays were over, tension between the two teams and their
Houses was at the breaking point. A number of small scuffles broke out in the
corridors, culminating in a nasty incident in which a Gryffindor fourth year
and a Slytherin sixth year ended up in the hospital wing with leeks sprouting
out of their ears. Harry
was having a particularly bad time of it. He couldn't walk to class without
Slytherins sticking out their legs and trying to trip him up; Crabbe and Goyle
kept popping up wherever he went, and slouching away looking disappointed when
they saw him surrounded by people. Wood had given instructions that Harry
should be accompanied everywhere he went, in case the Slytherins tried to put
him out of action. The whole of Gryffindor House took up the challenge
enthusiastically, so that it was impossible for Harry to get to classes on time
because he was surrounded by a vast, chattering crowd. Harry was more concerned
for his Firebolt's safety than his own. When he wasn't flying it, he locked it
securely in his trunk and frequently dashed back up to Gryffindor Tower at
break times to check that it was still there. All
usual pursuits were abandoned in the Gryffindor common room the night before
the match. Even Hermione had put down her books. "I
can't work, I can't concentrate," she said nervously. There
was a great deal of noise. Fred and George Weasley were dealing with the
pressure by being louder and more exuberant than ever. Oliver Wood was crouched
over a model of a Quidditch field in the corner, prodding little figures across
it with his wand and muttering to himself Angelina, Alicia, and Katie were
laughing at Fred's and George's jokes. Harry was sitting with Ron and Hermione,
removed from the center of things, trying not to think about the next day,
because every time he did, he had the horrible sensation that something very
large was fighting to get out of his stomach. "You're
going to be fine," Hermione told him, though she looked positively
terrified. "You've
got a Firebolt!" said Ron. "Yeah
..." said Harry, his stomach writhing. It
came as a relief when Wood suddenly stood up and yelled, "Team! Bed!" Harry
slept badly. First he dreamed that he had overslept, and that Wood was yelling,
"Where were you? We had to use Neville instead!" Then he dreamed that
Malfoy and the rest of the Slytherin team arrived for the match riding dragons.
He was flying at breakneck speed, trying to avoid a spurt of flames from
Malfoy's steed's mouth, when he realized he had forgotten his Firebolt. He fell
through the air and woke with a start. It
was a few seconds before Harry remembered that the match hadn't taken place
yet, that he was safe in bed, and that the Slytherin team definitely wouldn't
be allowed to play on dragons. He was feeling very thirsty. Quietly as he
could, he got out of his four-poster and went to pour himself some water from
the silver jug beneath the window. The
grounds were still and quiet. No breath of wind disturbed the treetops in the
Forbidden Forest; the Whomping Willow was motionless and innocent-looking. It
looked as though the conditions for the match would be perfect. Harry
set down his goblet and was about to turn back to his bed when something caught
his eye. An animal of some kind was prowling across the silvery lawn. Harry
dashed to his bedside table, snatched up his glasses, and put them on, then
hurried back to the window. It couldn't be the Grim - not now - not right
before the match - He
peered out at the grounds again and, after a minute's frantic searching,
spotted it. It was skirting the edge of the forest now...It wasn't the Grim at
all... it was a cat... Harry clutched the window ledge in relief as he recognized
the bottlebrush tail. It was only Crookshanks... Or
was it only Crookshanks? Harry squinted, pressing his nose flat against the
glass. Crookshanks seemed to have come to a halt. Harry was sure he could see
something else moving in the shadow of the trees too. And
just then, it emerged - a gigantic, shaggy black dog, moving stealthily across
the lawn, Crookshanks trotting at its side. Harry stared. What did this mean?
If Crookshanks could see the dog as well, how could it be an omen of Harry's
death? "Ron!"
Harry hissed. "Ron! Wake up!" "Huh?" "I
need you to tell me if you can see something!" "S'all
dark, Harry," Ron muttered thickly. "What're you on about?" "Down
here -" Harry
looked quickly back out of the window. Crookshanks
and the dog had vanished. Harry climbed onto the windowsill to look right down
into the shadows of the castle, but they weren't there. Where had they gone? A
loud snore told him Ron had fallen asleep again. Harry
and the rest of the Gryffindor team entered the Great Hall the next day to
enormous applause. Harry couldn't help grinning broadly as he saw that both the
Ravenclaw and Hufflepuff tables were applauding them too. The Slytherin table
hissed loudly as they passed. Harry noticed that Malfoy looked even paler than
usual. Wood
spent the whole of breakfast urging his team to eat, while touching nothing
himself. Then he hurried them off to the field before anyone else had finished,
so they could get an idea of the conditions. As they left the Great Hall,
everyone applauded again. "Good
luck, Harry!" called Cho. Harry felt himself blushing. "Okay
- no wind to speak of - sun's a bit bright, that could impair your vision,
watch out for it - ground's fairly hard, good, that'll give us a fast kickoff
-" Wood
paced the field, staring around with the team behind him. Finally, they saw the
front doors of the castle open in the distance and the rest of the school
spilling onto the lawn. "Locker
rooms," said Wood tersely. None
of them spoke as they changed into their scarlet robes. Harry wondered if they
were feeling like he was: as though he'd eaten something extremely wriggly for
breakfast. In what seemed like no time at all, Wood was saying, "Okay,
it's time, let's go -" They
walked out onto the field to a tidal wave of noise. Three quarters of the crowd
was wearing scarlet rosettes, waving scarlet flags with the Gryffindor lion
upon them, or brandishing banners with slogans like "GO GRYFFINDOR!"
and "LIONS FOR THE CUP" Behind the Slytherin goal posts, however, two
hundred people were wearing green; the silver serpent of Slytherin glittered on
their flags, and Professor Snape sat in the very front row, wearing green like
everyone else, and a very grim smile. "And
here are the Gryffindors!" yelled Lee Jordan, who was acting as
commentator as usual. "Potter, Bell, Johnson, Spinnet, Weasley, Weasley,
and Wood. Widely acknowledged as the best team Hogwarts has seen in a good few
years -" Lee's
comments were drowned by a tide of 'boos' from the Slytherin end. "And
here come the Slytherin team, led by Captain Flint. He's made some changes in
the lineup and seems to be going for size rather than skill -" More
boos from the Slytherin crowd. Harry, however, thought Lee had a point. Malfoy
was easily the smallest person On the Slytherin team; the rest of them were
enormous. "Captains,
shake hands!" said Madam Hooch. Flint
and Wood approached each other and grasped each other's hand very tightly; it
looked as though each was trying to break the other's fingers. "Mount
your brooms!" said Madam Hooch. "Three...two...one..." The
sound of her whistle was lost in the roar from the crowd as fourteen brooms
rose into the air. Harry felt his hair fly back off his forehead; his nerves
left him in the thrill of the flight; he glanced around, saw Malfoy on his
tail, and sped off in search of the Snitch. "And
it's Gryffindor in possession, Alicia Spinner of Gryffindor with the Quaffle,
heading straight for the Slytherin goal posts, looking good, Alicia! Argh, no -
Quaffle intercepted by Warrington, Warrington of Slytherin tearing UP the field
- WHAM! - nice Bludger work there by George Weasley, Warrington drops the
Quaffle, it's caught by - Johnson, Gryffindor back in possession, come on,
Angelina - nice swerve around Montague - duck, Angelina, that's a Bludger!- SHE
SCORES! TEN-ZERO TO GRYFFINDOR!" Angelina
punched the air as she soared around the end of the field; the sea of scarlet
below was screaming its delight "OUCH!" Angelina
was nearly thrown from her broom as Marcus Flint went smashing into her. "Sorry!"
said Flint as the crowd below booed. "Sorry, didn't see her!" A
moment later, Fred Weasley chucked his Beater's club at the back of Flint's
head. Flint's nose smashed into the handle of his broom and began to bleed. "That
will do!" shrieked Madam Hooch, zooming between then. "Penalty shot
to Gryffindor for an unprovoked attack on their Chaser! Penalty shot to
Slytherin for deliberate damage to their Chaser!" "Come
off it, Miss!" howled Fred, but Madam Hooch blew her whistle and Alicia
flew forward to take the penalty. "Come
on, Alicia!" yelled Lee into the silence that had descended on the crowd.
"YES! SHE'S BEATEN THE KEEPER! TWENTY-ZERO TO GRYFFINDOR!" Harry
turned the Firebolt sharply to watch Flint, still bleeding freely, fly forward
to take the Slytherin penalty. Wood was hovering in front of the Gryffindor
goal posts, his jaw clenched. "'Course,
Wood's a superb Keeper!" Lee Jordan told the crowd as Flint waited for
Madam Hooch's whistle. "Superb! Very difficult to pass - very difficult
indeed - YES! I DON'T BELIEVE IT! HE'S SAVED IT!" Relieved,
Harry zoomed away, gazing around for the Snitch, but still making sure he
caught every word of Lee's commentary. It was essential that he hold Malfoy off
the Snitch until Gryffindor was more than fifty points up - "Gryffindor
in possession, no, Slytherin in possession - no! Gryffindor back in possession
and it's Katie Bell, Katie Bell for Gryffindor with the Quaffle, she's
streaking up the field - THAT WAS DELIBERATE!" Montague,
a Slytherin Chaser, had swerved in front of Katie, and instead of seizing the
Quaffle had grabbed her head. Katie cart-wheeled in the air, managed to stay on
her broom, but dropped the Quaffle. Madam
Hooch's whistle rang out again as she soared over to Montague and began
shouting at him. A minute later, Katie had put another penalty past the
Slytherin Seeker. "THIRTY-ZERO!
TAKE THAT, YOU DIRTY, CHEATING -" "Jordan,
if you can't commentate in an unbiased way -" "I'm
telling it like it is, Professor!" Harry
felt a huge jolt of excitement. He had seen the Snitch - it was shimmering at
the foot of one of the Gryffindor goal posts - but he mustn't catch it yet -
and if Malfoy saw it - Faking
a look of sudden concentration, Harry pulled his Firebolt around and sped off
toward the Slytherin end - it worked. Malfoy went haring after him, clearly
thinking Harry had seen the Snitch there... WHOOSH. One
of the Bludgers came streaking past Harry's right ear, hit by the gigantic
Slytherin Beater, Derrick. Then again... WHOOSH. The
second Bludger grazed Harry's elbow. The other Beater, Bole, was closing in. Harry
had a fleeting glimpse of Bole and Derrick zooming toward him, clubs raised -
He turned the Firebolt upward at the last second, and Bole and Derrick collided
with a sickening crunch. "Ha
haaa!" yelled Lee Jordan as the Slytherin Beaters lurched away from each
other, clutching their heads. "Too bad, boys! You'll need to get up
earlier than that to beat a Firebolt! And it's Gryffindor in possession again,
as Johnson takes the Quaffle - Flint alongside her - poke him in the eye,
Angelina! - it was a joke, Professor, it was a joke - oh no - Flint in
possession, Flint flying toward the Gryffindor goal posts, come on now, Wood,
save -!" But
Flint had scored; there was an eruption of cheers from the Slytherin end, and
Lee swore so badly that Professor McGonagall tried to tug the magical megaphone
away from him. "Sorry,
Professor, sorry! Won't happen again! So, Gryffindor in the lead, thirty points
to ten, and Gryffindor in possession -" It
was turning into the dirtiest game Harry had ever played in. Enraged that
Gryffindor had taken such an early lead, the Slytherins were rapidly resorting
to any means to take the Quaffle. Bole hit Alicia with his club and tried to
say he'd thought she was a Bludger. George Weasley elbowed Bole in the face in
retaliation. Madam Hooch awarded both teams penalties, and Wood pulled off
another spectacular save, making the score forty-ten to Gryffindor. The
Snitch had disappeared again. Malfoy was still keeping close to Harry as he
soared over the match, looking around for it once Gryffindor was fifty points
ahead - Katie
scored. Fifty-ten. Fred and George Weasley were swooping around her, clubs
raised, in case any of the Slytherins were thinking of revenge. Bole and
Derrick took advantage of Fred's and George's absence to aim both Bludgers at
Wood; they caught him in the stomach, one after the other, and he rolled over
in the air, clutching his broom, completely winded. Madam
Hooch was beside herself - "YOU
DO NOT ATTACK THE KEEPER UNLESS THE QUAFFLE IS WITHIN THE SCORING AREA!"
she shrieked at Bole and Derrick. "Gryffindor penalty!" And
Angelina scored. Sixty-ten. Moments later, Fred Weasley pelted a Bludger at
Warrington, knocking the Quaffle out of his hands; Alicia seized it and put it
through the Slytherin goal - seventy-ten. The
Gryffindor crowd below was screaming itself hoarse - Gryffindor was sixty
points in the lead, and if Harry caught the Snitch now, the Cup was theirs.
Harry could almost feel hundreds of eyes following him as he soared around the
field, high above the rest of the game, with Malfoy speeding along behind him. And
then he saw it. The Snitch was sparkling twenty feet above him. Harry
put on a huge burst of speed; the wind was roaring in his ears; he stretched
out his hand, but suddenly, the Firebolt was slowing down - Horrified,
he looked around. Malfoy had thrown himself forward, grabbed hold of the
Firebolt's tail, and was pulling it back. "You
-" Harry
was angry enough to hit Malfoy, but couldn't reach - Malfoy was panting with
the effort of holding onto the Firebolt, but his eyes were sparkling
maliciously. He had achieved what he'd wanted to do - the Snitch had
disappeared again. "Penalty!
Penalty to Gryffindor! I've never seen such tactics." Madam Hooch
screeched, shooting up to where Malfoy was sliding back onto his Nimbus Two
Thousand and One. "YOU
CHEATING SCUM!" Lee Jordan was howling into the megaphone, dancing out of
Professor McGonagall's reach. "YOU FILTHY, CHEATING B -" Professor
McGonagall didn't even bother to tell him off She was actually shaking her
finger in Malfoy's direction, her hat had fallen off, and she too was shouting
furiously. Alicia
took Gryffindor's penalty, but she was so angry she missed by several feet. The
Gryffindor team was losing concentration and the Slytherins, delighted by
Malfoy's foul on Harry, were being spurred on to greater heights. "Slytherin
in possession, Slytherin heading for goal - Montague scores -" Lee
groaned. "Seventy-twenty to Gryffindor..." Harry
was now marking Malfoy so closely their knees kept hitting each other. Harry
wasn't going to let Malfoy anywhere near the Snitch... "Get
out of it, Potter!" Malfoy yelled in frustration as he tried to turn and
found Harry blocking him. "Angelina
Johnson gets the Quaffle for Gryffindor, come on, Angelina, COME ON!" Harry
looked around. Every single Slytherin player apart from Malfoy was streaking up
the pitch toward Angelina, including the Slytherin Keeper - they were all going
to block her - Harry wheeled the Firebolt around, bent so low he was lying flat
along the handle, and kicked it forward. Like a bullet, he shot toward the
Slytherins. "AAAAAAARRRGH!" They
scattered as the Firebolt zoomed toward them; Angelina's way was clear. "SHE
SCORES! SHE SCORES! Gryffindor leads by eighty Points to twenty!" Harry,
who had almost pelted headlong into the stands, skidded to a halt in midair,
reversed, and zoomed back into the middle of the field. And
then he saw something to make his heart stand still. Malfoy was diving, a look
of triumph on his face - there, a few feet above the grass below, was a tiny,
golden glimmer - Harry
urged the Firebolt downward, but Malfoy was miles ahead - "Go!
Go! Go!" Harry urged his broom. He was gaining on Malfoy - Harry flattened
himself to the broom handle as Bole sent a Bludger at him - he was at Malfoy's
ankles - he was level - Harry
threw himself forward, took both hands off his broom. He knocked Malfoy's arm
out of the way and - "YES!" He
pulled out of his dive, his hand in the air, and the stadium exploded. Harry
soared above the crowd, an odd ringing in his ears. The tiny golden ball was
held tight in his fist, beating its wings hopelessly against his fingers. Then
Wood was speeding toward him, half-blinded by tears; he seized Harry around the
neck and sobbed unrestrainedly into his shoulder. Harry felt two large thumps
as Fred and George hit them; then Angelina's, Alicia's, and Katie's voices,
"We've won the Cup! We've won the Cup!" Tangled together in a many-armed
hug, the Gryffindor team sank, yelling hoarsely, back to earth. Wave
upon wave of crimson supporters was pouring over the barriers onto the field.
Hands were raining down on their backs. Harry had a confused impression of
noise and bodies pressing in on him. Then he, and the rest of the team, were
hoisted onto the shoulders of the crowd. Thrust into the light, he saw Hagrid,
Plastered with crimson rosettes - "Yeh beat 'em, Harry, yeh beat 'em! Wait
till I tell Buckbeak!" There
was Percy, jumping up and down like a maniac, all dignity forgotten. Professor
McGonagall was sobbing harder even than Wood, wiping her eyes with an enormous
Gryffindor flag; and there, fighting their way toward Harry, were Ron and
Hermione. Words failed them. They simply beamed as Harry was borne toward the
stands, where Dumbledore stood waiting with the enormous Quidditch Cup. If
only there had been a Dementor around...As a sobbing Wood passed Harry the Cup,
as he lifted it into the air, Harry felt he could have produced the world's
best Patronus. CHAPTER SIXTEEN PROFESSOR TRELAWNEY'S PREDICTIONHarry's
euphoria at finally winning the Quidditch Cup lasted at least a week. Even the
weather seemed to be celebrating; as June approached, the days became cloudless
and sultry, and all anybody felt like doing was strolling onto the grounds and
flopping down on the grass with several pints of iced pumpkin juice, perhaps
playing a casual game of Gobstones or watching the giant squid propel itself
dreamily across the surface of the lake. But
they couldn't. Exams were nearly upon them, and instead of lazing around
outside, the students were forced to remain inside the castle, trying to bully
their brains into concentrating while enticing wafts of summer air drifted in
through the windows. Even Fred and George Weasley had been spotted working;
they were about to take their O.W.L.s (Ordinary Wizarding Levels). Percy was
getting ready to take his N.E.W.T.s (Nastily Exhausting Wizarding Tests), the
highest qualification Hogwarts offered. As Percy hoped to enter the Ministry of
Magic, he needed top grades. He was becoming increasingly edgy, and gave very
severe punishments to anybody who disturbed the quiet of the common room in the
evenings. In fact, the only person who seemed more anxious than Percy was
Hermione. Harry
and Ron had given up asking her how she was managing to attend several classes
at once, but they couldn't restrain themselves when they saw the exam schedule
she had drawn up for herself. The first column read: Monday 9
o'clock, Arithmancy 9
o'clock, Transfiguration Lunch 1
o'clock, Charms 1
o'clock, Ancient Runes "Hermione?"
Ron said cautiously, because she was liable to explode when interrupted these
days. "Er - are you sure you've copied down these times right?" "What?"
snapped Hermione, picking up the exam schedule and examining it. "Yes, of
course I have." "Is
there any point asking how you're going to sit for two exams at once?"
said Harry. "No,"
said Hermione shortly. "Have either of you seen my copy of Numerology
and Gramatica?" "Oh,
yeah, I borrowed it for a bit of bedtime reading," said Ron, but very
quietly. Hermione started shifting heaps of parchment. Harry, Ron, and Hermione
had plenty of opportunity to speak to Hagrid. "Beaky's
gettin' a bit depressed," Hagrid told them, bending low on the pretense of
checking that Harry's flobberworm was still alive. "Bin cooped up too
long. But still...we'll know day after tomorrow - one way or the other -" They
had Potions that afternoon, which was an unqualified disaster. Try as Harry
might, he couldn't get his Confusing Concoction to thicken, and Snape, standing
watch with an air of vindictive pleasure, scribbled something that looked
suspiciously like a zero onto his notes before moving away. Then
came Astronomy at midnight, up on the tallest tower; History of Magic on
Wednesday morning, in which Harry scribbled everything Florean Fortescue had
ever told him about medieval witch-hunts, while wishing he could have had one
of Fortescue's choco-nut sundaes with him in the stifling classroom. Wednesday
afternoon meant Herbology, in the greenhouses under a baking-hot sun; then back
to the common room once more, with sunburnt necks, thinking longingly of this
time next day, when it would all be over. Their
second to last exam, on Thursday morning, was Defense Against the Dark Arts.
Professor Lupin had compiled the most unusual exam any of them had ever taken;
a sort of obstacle course outside in the sun, where they had to wade across a
deep paddling pool containing a Grindylow, cross a series of potholes full of
Red Caps, squish their way across a patch of marsh while ignoring misleading
directions from a Hinkypunk, then climb into an old trunk and battle with a new
Boggart. "Excellent,
Harry," Lupin muttered as Harry climbed out of the trunk, grinning.
"Full marks." Flushed
with his success, Harry hung around to watch Ron and Hermione. Ron did very
well until he reached the Hinkypunk, which successfully confused him into
sinking waist-high into the quagmire. Hermione did everything perfectly until
she reached the trunk with the Boggart in it. After about a minute inside it,
she burst out again, screaming. "Hermione!"
said Lupin, startled. "What's the matter?" "P-P-Professor
McGonagall!" Hermione gasped, pointing into the trunk. "Sh-she said I'd
failed everything!" It
took a little while to calm Hermione down. When at last she had regained a grip
on herself, she, Harry, and Ron went back to the castle. Ron was still slightly
inclined to laugh at Hermione's Boggart, but an argument was averted by the
sight that met them on the top of the steps. Cornelius
Fudge, sweating slightly in his pinstriped cloak, was standing there staring
out at the grounds. He started at the sight of Harry. "Hello
there, Harry!" he said. "Just had an exam, I expect? Nearly
finished?" "Yes,"
said Harry. Hermione and Ron, not being on speaking terms with the Minister of
Magic, hovered awkwardly in the background. "Lovely
day," said Fudge, casting an eye over the lake. "Pity...pity..." He
sighed deeply and looked down at Harry. "I'm
here on an unpleasant mission, Harry. The Committee for the Disposal of
Dangerous Creatures required a witness to the execution of a mad Hippogriff. As
I needed to visit Hogwarts to check on the Black situation, I was asked to step
in." "Does
that mean the appeal's already happened?" Ron interrupted, stepping
forward. "No,
no, it's scheduled for this afternoon," said Fudge, looking curiously at
Ron. "Then
you might not have to witness an execution at all!" said Ron stoutly.
"The Hippogriff might get off!" Before
Fudge could answer, two wizards came through the castle doors behind him. One
was so ancient he appeared to be withering before their very eyes; the other
was tall and strapping, with a thin back mustache. Harry gathered that they
were representatives of the Committee for the Disposal of Dangerous Creatures,
because the very old wizard squinted toward Hagrid's cabin and said in a feeble
voice, "Dear, dear, I'm getting too old for this...Two o'clock, isn't it,
Fudge?" The
black-mustached man was fingering something in his belt; Harry looked and saw
that he was running one broad thumb along the blade of a shining axe. Ron
opened his mouth to say something, but Hermione nudged him hard in the ribs and
jerked her head toward the entrance hall. "Why'd
you stop me?" said Ron angrily as they entered the Great Hall for lunch.
"Did you see them? They've even got the axe ready! This isn't
justice!" "Ron,
your dad works for the Ministry, you can't go saying things like that to his
boss!" said Hermione, but she too looked very upset. "As long as
Hagrid keeps his head this time, and argues his case properly, they can't
possibly execute Buckbeak..." But
Harry could tell Hermione didn't really believe what she was saying. All around
them, people were talking excitedly as they ate their lunch, happily
anticipating the end of the exams that afternoon, but Harry, Ron, and Hermione,
lost in worry about Hagrid and Buckbeak, didn't join in. Harry's
and Ron's last exam was Divination; Hermione's, Muggle Studies. They walked up
the marble staircase together; Hermione left them on the first floor and Harry
and Ron proceeded all the way up to the seventh, where many of their class were
sitting on the spiral staircase to Professor Trelawney's classroom, trying to
cram in a bit of last-minute studying. "She's
seeing us all separately," Neville informed them as they went to sit down
next to him. He had his copy of Unfogging the Future open on his lap at
the pages devoted to crystal gazing. "Have either of you ever seen
anything in a crystal ball?" he asked them unhappily. "Nope,"
said Ron in an offhand voice. He kept checking his watch; Harry. knew that he
was counting down the time until Buckbeak's appeal started. The
line of people outside the classroom shortened very slowly. As each person
climbed back down the silver ladder, the rest of the class hissed, "What
did she ask? Was it okay?" But
they all refused to say. "She
says the crystal ball's told her that if I tell you, I'll have a horrible
accident!" squeaked Neville as he clambered back down the ladder toward
Harry and Ron, who had now reached the landing. "That's
convenient," snorted Ron. "You know, I'm starting to think Hermione
was right about her" - he jabbed his thumb toward the trapdoor overhead -
"she's a right old fraud." "Yeah,"
said Harry, looking at his own watch. It was now two o'clock. "Wish she'd
hurry up..." Parvati
came back down the ladder glowing with pride. "She
says I've got all the makings of a true Seer," she informed Harry and Ron.
"I saw loads of stuff...Well, good luck!" She
hurried off down the spiral staircase toward Lavender. "Ronald
Weasley," said the familiar, misty voice from over their heads. Ron
grimaced at Harry and climbed the silver ladder out of sight. Harry was now the
only person left to be tested. He settled himself on the floor with his back
against the wall, listening to a fly buzzing in the sunny window, his mind
across the grounds with Hagrid. Finally,
after about twenty minutes, Ron's large feet reappeared on the ladder. "How'd
it go?" Harry asked him, standing up. "Rubbish,"
said Ron. "Couldn't see a thing, so I made some stuff up. Don't think she
was convinced, though..." "Meet
you in the common room," Harry muttered as Professor Trelawney's voice
called, "Harry Potter!" The
tower room was hotter than ever before; the curtains were closed, the fire was
alight, and the usual sickly scent made Harry cough as he stumbled through the
clutter of chairs and table to where Professor Trelawney sat waiting for him
before a large crystal ball. "Good
day, my dear," she said softly. "If you would kindly gaze into the
Orb...Take your time, now...then tell me what you see within it..." Harry
bent over the crystal ball and stared, stared as hard as he could, willing it
to show him something other than swirling white fog, but nothing happened. "Well?"
Professor Trelawney prompted delicately. "What do you see?" The
heat was overpowering and his nostrils were stinging with the perfumed smoke
wafting from the fire beside them. He thought of what Ron had just said, and
decided to pretend. "Er
-" said Harry, "a dark shape...um..." "What
does it resemble?" whispered Professor Trelawney. "Think, now..." Harry
cast his mind around and it landed on Buckbeak. "A
Hippogriff," he said firmly. "Indeed!"
whispered Professor Trelawney, scribbling keenly on the parchment perched upon
her knees. "My boy, you may well be seeing the outcome of poor Hagrid's
trouble with the Ministry of Magic! Look closer...Does the Hippogriff appear
to...have its head?" "Yes,"
said Harry firmly. "Are
you sure?" Professor Trelawney urged him. "Are you quite sure, dear?
You don't see it writhing on the ground, perhaps, and a shadowy figure raising
an axe behind it?" "No!"
said Harry, starting to feel slightly sick. "No
blood? No weeping Hagrid?" "No!"
said Harry again, wanting more than ever to leave the room and the heat.
"It looks fine, it's - flying away..." Professor
Trelawney sighed. "Well,
dear, I think we'll leave it there...A little disappointing...but I'm sure you did
your best." Relieved,
Harry got up, picked up his bag and turned to go, but then a loud, harsh voice
spoke behind him. "IT
WILL HAPPEN TONIGHT." Harry
wheeled around. Professor Trelawney had gone rigid in her armchair; her eyes
were unfocused and her mouth sagging. "S
- sorry?" said Harry. But
Professor Trelawney didn't seem to hear him. Her eyes started to roll. Harry
sat there in a panic. She looked as though she was about to have some sort of
seizure. He hesitated, thinking of running to the hospital wing - and then
Professor Trelawney spoke again, in the same harsh voice, quite unlike her own: "THE
DARK LORD LIES ALONE AND FRIENDLESS, ABANDONED BY HIS FOLLOWERS. HIS SERVANT
HAS BEEN CHAINED THESE TWELVE YEARS. TONIGHT, BEFORE MIDNIGHT...THE SERVANT WILL
BREAK FREE AND SET OUT TO REJOIN HIS MASTER. THE DARK LORD WILL RISE AGAIN WITH
HIS SERVANT'S AID, GREATER AND MORE TERRIBLE THAN EVER HE WAS. TONIGHT...BEFORE
MIDNIGHT...THE SERVANT...WILL SET OUT...TO REJOIN...HIS MASTER..." Professor
Trelawney's head fell forward onto her chest. She made a grunting sort of noise.
Harry sat there, staring at her. Then, quite suddenly, Professor Trelawney's
head snapped up again. "I'm
so sorry, dear boy," she said dreamily, "the heat of the day, you
know...I drifted off for a moment..." Harry
sat there, staring at her. "Is
there anything wrong, my dear?" "You
- you just told me that the - the Dark Lord's going to rise again...that his
servant's going to go back to him." Professor
Trelawney looked thoroughly startled. "The
Dark Lord? He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named? My dear boy, that's hardly something to
joke about...Rise again, indeed -" "But
you just said it! You said the Dark Lord -" "I
think you must have dozed off too, dear!" said Professor Trelawney.
"I would certainly not presume to predict anything quite as far-fetched as
that!" Harry
climbed back down the ladder and the spiral staircase, wondering...had he just
heard Professor Trelawney make a real prediction? Or had that been her idea of
an impressive end to the test? Five
minutes later he was dashing past the security trolls outside the entrance to
Gryffindor Tower, Professor Trelawney's words still resounding in his head.
People were striding past him in the opposite direction, laughing and joking,
heading for the grounds and a bit of long-awaited freedom; by the time he had
reached the portrait hole and entered the common room, it was almost deserted.
Over in the corner, however, sat Ron and Hermione. "Professor
Trelawney," Harry panted, "just told me -" But
he stopped abruptly at the sight of their faces. "Buckbeak
lost," said Ron weakly. "Hagrid's just sent this." Hagrid's
note was dry this time, no tears had splattered it, yet his hand seemed to have
shaken so much as he wrote that it was hardly legible.
Lost appeal. They're going to execute at sunset.
Nothing you can do. Don't come down. I don't want you to see it.
Hagrid "We've
got to go," said Harry at once. "He can't just sit there on his own,
waiting for the executioner!" "Sunset,
though," said Ron, who was staring out the window ill a glazed sort of
way. "We'd never be allowed...'specially you, Harry..." Harry
sank his head into his hands, thinking. "If
we only had the Invisibility Cloak..." "Where
is it?" said Hermione. Harry
told her about leaving it in the passageway under the one-eyed witch. "...
if Snape sees me anywhere near there again, I'm in serious trouble," he
finished. "That's
true," said Hermione, getting to her feet. "If he sees you...How do you
open the witch's hump again?" "You
- you tap it and say, 'Dissendium,'" said Harry. "But -" Hermione
didn't wait for the rest of his sentence; she strode across the room, pushed
open the Fat Lady's portrait and vanished from sight. "She
hasn't gone to get it?" Ron said, staring after her. She
had. Hermione returned a quarter of an hour later with the silvery cloak folded
carefully under her robes. "Hermione,
I don't know what's gotten, into you lately!" said Ron, astounded.
"First you hit Malfoy, then you walk out on Professor Trelawney -" Hermione
looked rather flattered. They
went down to dinner with everybody else, but did not return to Gryffindor Tower
afterward. Harry had the cloak hidden down the front of his robes; he had to
keep his arms folded to hide the lump. They skulked in an empty chamber off the
entrance hall, listening, until they were sure it was deserted. They heard a
last pair of people hurrying across the hall and a door slamming. Hermione
poked her head around the door. "Okay,"
she whispered, "no one there - cloak on -" Walking
very close together so that nobody would see them, they crossed the hall on
tiptoe beneath the cloak, then walked down the stone front steps into the
grounds. The sun was already sinking behind the Forbidden Forest, gilding the
top branches of the trees. They
reached Hagrid's cabin and knocked. He was a minute in answering, and when he
did, he looked all around for his visitor, pale-faced and trembling. "It's
us," Harry hissed. "We're wearing the Invisibility Cloak. Let us in
and we can take it off." "Yeh
shouldn've come!" Hagrid whispered, but he stood back, and they stepped
inside. Hagrid shut the door quickly and Harry pulled off the cloak. Hagrid
was not crying, nor did he throw himself upon their necks. He looked like a man
who did not know where he was or what to do. This helplessness was worse to
watch than tears. "Wan'
some tea?" he said. His great hands were shaking as he reached for the
kettle. "Where's
Buckbeak, Hagrid?" said Hermione hesitantly. "I
- I took him outside," said Hagrid, spilling milk all over the table as he
filled up the jug. "He's tethered in me pumpkin patch. Thought he oughta
see the trees an' - an' smell fresh air - before -" Hagrid's
hand trembled so violently that the milk jug slipped from his grasp and
shattered all over the floor. "I'll
do it, Hagrid," said Hermione quickly, hurrying over and starting to clean
up the mess. "There's
another one in the cupboard," Hagrid said, sitting down and wiping his
forehead on his sleeve. Harry glanced at Ron, who looked back hopelessly. "Isn't
there anything anyone can do, Hagrid?" Harry asked fiercely, sitting down
next to him. "Dumbledore -" "He's
tried," said Hagrid. "He's got no power ter overrule the Committee.
He told 'em Buckbeak's all right, but they're scared...Yeh know what Lucius
Malfoy's like...threatened 'em, I expect...an' the executioner, Macnair, he's an
old pal o' Malfoy's...but it'll be quick an' clean...an' I'll be beside him..." Hagrid
swallowed. His eyes were darting all over the cabin as though looking for some
shred of hope or comfort. "Dumbledore's
gonna come down while it - while it happens. Wrote me this mornin'. Said he
wants ter - ter be with me. Great man, Dumbledore..." Hermione,
who had been rummaging in Hagrid's cupboard for another milk jug, let out a
small, quickly stifled sob. She straightened up with the new jug in her hands,
fighting back tears. "We'll
stay with you too, Hagrid," she began, but Hagrid shook his shaggy head. "Yeh're
ter go back up ter the castle. I told yeh, I don' wan' yeh watchin'. An' yeh
shouldn' be down here anyway...If Fudge an' Dumbledore catch yeh out without
permission, Harry, yeh'll be in big trouble." Silent
tears were now streaming down Hermione's face, but she hid them from Hagrid,
bustling around making tea. Then, as she picked up the milk bottle to pour some
into the jug, she let out a shriek. "Ron,
I don't believe it - it's Scabbers!" Ron
gaped at her. "What
are you talking about?" Hermione
carried the milk jug over to the table and turned it upside down. With a
frantic squeak, and much scrambling to get back inside, Scabbers the rat came
sliding out onto the table. "Scabbers!"
said Ron blankly. "Scabbers, what are you doing here?" He
grabbed the struggling rat and held him up to the light. Scabbers looked
dreadful. He was thinner than ever, large tufts of hair had fallen out leaving
wide bald patches, and he writhed in Ron's hands as though desperate to free
himself "It's
okay, Scabbers!" said Ron. "No cats! There's nothing here to hurt
you!" Hagrid
suddenly stood up, his eyes fixed on the window. His normally ruddy face had
gone the color of parchment. "They're
comin'..." Harry,
Ron, and Hermione whipped around. A group of men was walking down the distant
castle steps. In front was Albus Dumbledore, his silver beard gleaming in the
dying sun. Next to him trotted Cornelius Fudge. Behind them came the feeble old
Committee member and the executioner, Macnair. "Yeh
gotta go," said Hagrid. Every inch of him was trembling. "They mustn'
find yeh here...Go now..." Ron
stuffed Scabbers into his pocket and Hermione picked up the cloak. "I'll
let yeh out the back way," said Hagrid. They
followed him to the door into his back garden. Harry felt strangely unreal, and
even more so when he saw Buckbeak a few yards away, tethered to a tree behind
Hagrid's pumpkin patch. Buckbeak seemed to know something was happening. He
turned his sharp head from side to side and pawed the ground nervously. "It's
okay, Beaky," said Hagrid softly. "It's okay..." He turned to
Harry, Ron, and Hermione. "Go on," he said. "Get goin'." But
they didn't move. "Hagrid,
we can't -" "We'll
tell them what really happened -" "They
can't kill him -" "Go!"
said Hagrid fiercely. "It's bad enough without you lot in trouble an'
all!" They
had no choice. As Hermione threw the cloak over Harry and Ron, they heard
voices at the front of the cabin. Hagrid looked at the place where they had just
vanished from sight. "Go
quick," he said hoarsely. "Don' listen..." And
he strode back into his cabin as someone knocked at the front door. Slowly,
in a kind of horrified trance, Harry, Ron, and Hermione set off silently around
Hagrid's house. As they reached the other side, the front door closed with a
sharp snap. "Please,
let's hurry," Hermione whispered. "I can't stand it, I can't bear
it..." They
started up the sloping lawn toward the castle. The sun was sinking fast now;
the sky had turned to a clear, purple-tinged gray, but to the west there was a
ruby-red glow. Ron
stopped dead. "Oh,
please, Ron," Hermione began. "It's
Scabbers - he won't - stay put -" Ron
was bent over, trying to keep Scabbers in his pocket, but the rat was going
berserk; squeaking madly, twisting and flailing, trying to sink his teeth into
Ron's hand. "Scabbers,
it's me, you idiot, it's Ron," Ron hissed. They
heard a door open behind them and men's voices. "Oh,
Ron, please let's move, they're going to do it!" Hermione breathed. "Okay
- Scabbers, stay put -" They
walked forward; Harry, like Hermione, was trying not to listen to the rumble of
voices behind them. Ron stopped again. "I
can't hold him - Scabbers, shut up, everyone'll hear us -" The
rat was squealing wildly, but not loudly enough to cover up the sounds drifting
from Hagrid's garden. There was a jumble of indistinct male voices, a silence,
and then, without warning, the unmistakable swish and thud of an axe. Hermione
swayed on the spot. "They
did it!" she whispered to Harry. "I'd - don't believe it - they did
it!" CHAPTER SEVENTEEN CAT, RAT, AND DOGHarry's
mind had gone blank with shock. The three of them stood transfixed with horror
under the Invisibility Cloak. The very last rays of the setting sun were
casting a bloody light over the long-shadowed grounds. Then, behind them, they
heard a wild howling. "Hagrid,"
Harry muttered. Without thinking about what he was doing, he made to turn back,
but both Ron and Hermione seized his arms. "We
can't," said Ron, who was paper-white. "He'll be in worse trouble if
they know we've been to see him..." Hermione's
breathing was shallow and uneven. "How
- could - they?" she choked. "How could they?" "Come
on," said Ron, whose teeth seemed to be chattering. They
set off back toward the castle, walking slowly to keep themselves hidden under
the cloak. The light was fading fast now. By
the time they reached open ground, darkness was settling like a spell around
them. "Scabbers,
keep still," Ron hissed, clamping his hand over his chest. The rat was
wriggling madly. Ron came to a sudden halt, trying to force Scabbers deeper
into his pocket. "What's the matter with you, You stupid rat? Stay still -
OUCH! He bit me!" "Ron,
be quiet!" Hermione whispered urgently. "Fudge'll be out here in a
minute -" "He
won't - stay - put -" Scabbers
was plainly terrified. He was writhing with all his might, trying to break free
of Ron's grip. "What's
the matter with him?" But
Harry had just seen - stinking toward them, his body low to the ground, wide
yellow eyes glinting eerily in the darkness - Crookshanks. Whether he could see
them or was following the sound of Scabbers's squeaks, Harry couldn't tell. "Crookshanks!"
Hermione moaned. "No, go away, Crookshanks! Go away!" But
the cat was getting nearer - "Scabbers
- NO!" Too
late - the rat had slipped between Ron's clutching fingers, hit the ground, and
scampered away. In one bound, Crookshanks sprang after him, and before Harry or
Hermione could stop him, Ron had thrown the Invisibility Cloak off himself and
pelted away into the darkness. "Ron!"
Hermione moaned. She
and Harry looked at each other, then followed at a sprint; it was impossible to
run full out under the cloak; they pulled it off and it streamed behind them
like a banner as they hurtled after Ron; they could hear his feet thundering
along ahead and his shouts at Crookshanks. "Get
away from him - get away - Scabbers, come here -" There
was a loud thud. "Gotcha!
Get off, you stinking cat -" Harry
and Hermione almost fell over Ron; they skidded to a stop right in front of
him. He was sprawled on the ground, but Scabbers was back in his pocket; he had
both hands held tight over the quivering lump. "Ron
- come on back under the cloak -" Hermione panted. "Dumbledore - the
Minister - they'll be coming back out in a minute -" But
before they could cover themselves again, before they could even catch their
breath, they heard the soft pounding of gigantic paws... Something was bounding
toward them, quiet as a shadow - an enormous, pale-eyed, jet-black dog. Harry
reached for his wand, but too late - the dog had made an enormous leap and the
front paws hit him on the chest; he keeled over backward in a whirl of hair; he
felt its hot breath, saw inch-long teeth - But
the force of its leap had carried it too far; it rolled off him. Dazed, feeling
as though his ribs were broken, Harry tried to stand up; he could hear it
growling as it skidded around for a new attack. Ron
was on his feet. As the dog sprang back toward them he pushed Harry aside; the
dog's jaws fastened instead around Ron's outstretched arm. Harry lunged
forward, he seized a handful of the brute's hair, but it was dragging Ron away
as easily as though he were a rag doll - Then,
out of nowhere, something hit Harry so hard across the face he was knocked off
his feet again. He heard Hermione shriek with pain and fall too. Harry
groped for his wand, blinking blood out of his eyes "Lumos!"
he whispered. The
wandlight showed him the trunk of a thick tree; they had chased Scabbers into
the shadow of the Whomping Willow and its branches were creaking as though in a
high wind, whipping backward and forward to stop them going nearer. And
there, at the base of the trunk, was the dog, dragging Ron backward into a
large gap in the roots - Ron was fighting furiously, but his head and torso
were slipping out of sight - "Ron!"
Harry shouted, trying to follow, but a heavy branch whipped lethally through
the air and he was forced backward again. All
they could see now was one of Ron's legs, which he had hooked around a root in
an effort to stop the dog from pulling him farther underground - but a horrible
crack cut the air like a gunshot; Ron's leg had broken, and a moment later, his
foot vanished from sight. "Harry
- we've got to go for help -" Hermione gasped; she was bleeding too; the
Willow had cut her across the shoulder. "No!
That thing's big enough to eat him; we haven't got time -" "Harry
- we're never going to get through without help -" Another
branch whipped down at them, twigs clenched like knuckles. "If
that dog can get in, we can," Harry panted, darting here and there, trying
to find a way through the vicious, swishing branches, but he couldn't get an
inch nearer to the tree roots without being in range of the tree's blows. "Oh,
help, help," Hermione whispered frantically, dancing uncertainly on the
spot, "Please..." Crookshanks
darted forward. He slithered between the battering branches like a snake and
placed his front paws upon a knot on the trunk. Abruptly,
as though the tree had been turned to marble, it stopped moving. Not a leaf
twitched or shook. "Crookshanks!"
Hermione whispered uncertainly. She now grasped Harry's arm painfully hard.
"How did he know -?" "He's
friends with that dog," said Harry grimly. "I've seen them together.
Come on - and keep your wand out -" They
covered the distance to the trunk in seconds, but before they had reached the
gap in the roots, Crookshanks had slid into it with a flick of his bottlebrush
tail. Harry went next; he crawled forward, headfirst, and slid down an earthy
slope to the bottom of a very low tunnel. Crookshanks was a little way along,
his eyes flashing in the light from Harry's wand. Seconds later, Hermione
slithered down beside him. "Where's
Ron?" she whispered in a terrified voice. "This
way," said Harry, setting off, bent-backed, after Crookshanks. "Where
does this tunnel come out?" Hermione asked breathlessly from behind him. "I
don't know...It's marked on the Marauder's Map but Fred and George said no one's
ever gotten into it...It goes off the edge of the map, but it looked like it was
heading for Hogsmeade..." They
moved as fast as they could, bent almost double; ahead of them, Crookshanks's
tail bobbed in and out of view. On and on went the passage; it felt at least as
long as the one to Honeydukes... All Harry could think of was Ron and what the
enormous dog might be doing to him...He was drawing breath in sharp, painful
gasps, running at a crouch... And
then the tunnel began to rise; moments later it twisted, and Crookshanks had
gone. Ahead Harry could see a patch of dim light through a small opening. He
and Hermione paused, gasping for breath, edging forward. Both raised their
wands to see what lay beyond. It
was a room, a very disordered, dusty room. Paper was peeling from the walls;
there were stains all over the floor; every piece of furniture was broken as
though somebody had smashed it. The windows were all boarded up. Harry
glanced at Hermione, who looked very frightened but nodded. Harry
pulled himself out of the hole, staring around. The room was deserted, but a
door to their right stood open, leading to a shadowy hallway. Hermione suddenly
grabbed Harry's arm again. Her wide eyes were traveling around the boarded
windows. "Harry,"
she whispered, "I think we're in the Shrieking Shack." Harry
looked around. His eyes fell on a wooden chair near them. Large chunks had been
torn out of it; one of the legs had been ripped off entirely. "Ghosts
didn't do that," he said slowly. At
that moment, there was a creak overhead. Something had moved upstairs. Both of
them looked up at the ceiling. Hermione's grip on Harry's arm was so tight he
was losing feeling in his fingers. He raised his eyebrows at her; she nodded
again and let go. Quietly
as they could, they crept out into the hall and up the crumbling staircase.
Everything was covered in a thick layer of dust except the floor, where a wide
shiny stripe had been made by something being dragged upstairs. They
reached the dark landing. "Nox,"
they whispered together, and the lights at the end of their wands went out.
Only one door was open. As they crept toward it, they heard movement from
behind it; a low moan, and then a deep, loud purring. They exchanged a last
look, a last nod. Wand
held tightly before him, Harry kicked the door wide open. On a
magnificent four-poster bed with dusty hangings lay Crookshanks, purring loudly
at the sight of them. On the floor beside him, clutching his leg, which stuck
out at a strange angle, was Ron. Harry
and Hermione dashed across to him. "Ron
- are you okay?" "Where's
the dog?" "Not
a dog," Ron moaned. His teeth were gritted with pain. "Harry, it's a
trap -" "What
-" "He's
the dog...he's an Animagus." Ron
was staring over Harry's shoulder. Harry wheeled around. With a snap, the man
in the shadows closed the door behind them. A
mass of filthy, matted hair hung to his elbows. If eyes hadn't been shining out
of the deep, dark sockets, he might have been a corpse. The waxy skin was
stretched so tightly over the bones of his face, it looked like a skull. His
yellow teeth were bared in a grin. It was Sirius Black. "Expelliarmus!"
he croaked, pointing Ron's wand at them. Harry's
and Hermione's wands shot out of their hands, high in the air, and Black caught
them. Then he took a step closer. His eyes were fixed on Harry. "I
thought you'd come and help your friend," he said hoarsely. His
voice sounded as though he had long since lost the habit of using it.
"Your father would have done the same for me. Brave of you not to run for
a teacher. I'm grateful...it will make everything much easier..." The
taunt about his father rang in Harry's ears as though Black had bellowed it. A
boiling hate erupted in Harry's chest, leaving no place for fear. For the first
time in his life, he wanted his wand back in his hand, not to defend himself,
but to attack...to kill. Without knowing what he was doing, he started forward,
but there was a sudden movement on either side of him and two pairs of hands
grabbed him and held him back... "No, Harry!" Hermione gasped in a
petrified whisper; Ron, however, spoke to Black. "If
you want to kill Harry, you'll have to kill us too!" he said fiercely,
though the effort of standing upright was draining him of still more color, and
he swayed slightly as he spoke. Something
flickered in Black's shadowed eyes. "Lie
down," he said quietly to Ron. "You will damage that leg even
more." "Did
you hear me?" Ron said weakly, though he was clinging painfully to Harry
to stay upright. "You'll have to kill all three of us!" "There'll
be only one murder here tonight," said Black, and his grin widened. "Why's
that?" Harry spat, trying to wrench himself free of Ron, and Hermione.
"Didn't care last time, did you? Didn't mind slaughtering all those
Muggles to get at Pettigrew...What's the matter, gone soft in Azkaban?" "Harry!"
Hermione whimpered. "Be quiet!" "HE
KILLED MY MUM AND DAD!" Harry roared, and with a huge effort he broke free
of Hermione's and Ron's restraint and lunged forward - He
had forgotten about magic - he had forgotten that he was short and skinny and
thirteen, whereas Black was a tall, full-grown man - all Harry knew was that he
wanted to hurt Black as badly as he could and that he didn't care how much he
got hurt in return - Perhaps
it was the shock of Harry doing something so stupid, but Black didn't raise the
wands in time - one of Harry's hands fastened over his wasted wrist, forcing
the wand tips away; the knuckles of Harry's other hand collided with the side
of Black's head and they fell, backward, into the wall - Hermione
was screaming; Ron was yelling; there was a blinding flash as the wands in
Black's hand sent a jet of sparks into the air that missed Harry's face by
inches; Harry felt the shrunken arm under his fingers twisting madly, but he
clung on, his other hand punching every part of Black it could find. But
Black's free hand had found Harry's throat "No,"
he hissed, "I've waited too long -" The
fingers tightened, Harry choked, his glasses askew. Then
he saw Hermione's foot swing out of nowhere. Black let go of Harry with a grunt
of pain; Ron had thrown himself on Black's wand hand and Harry heard a faint
clatter - He
fought free of the tangle of bodies and saw his own wand rolling across the
floor; he threw himself toward it but "Argh!"
Crookshanks
had joined the fray; both sets of front claws had sunk themselves deep into
Harry's arm; Harry threw him off, but Crookshanks now darted toward Harry's
wand - "NO
YOU DON'T!" roared Harry, and he aimed a kick at Crookshanks that made the
cat leap aside, spitting; Harry snatched up his wand and turned - "Get
out of the way!" he shouted at Ron and Hermione. They
didn't need telling twice. Hermione, gasping for breath, her lip bleeding,
scrambled aside, snatching up her and Ron's wands. Ron crawled to the
four-poster and collapsed onto it, panting, his white face now tinged with
green, both hands clutching his broken leg. Black
was sprawled at the bottom of the wall. His thin chest rose and fell rapidly as
he watched Harry walking slowly nearer, his wand pointing straight at Black's
heart. "Going
to kill me, Harry?" he whispered. Harry
stopped right above him, his wand still pointing at Black's chest, looking down
at him. A livid bruise was rising around Black's left eye and his nose was
bleeding. "You
killed my parents," said Harry, his voice shaking slightly, but his wand
hand quite steady. Black
stared up at him out of those sunken eyes. "I
don't deny it," he said very quietly. "But if you knew the whole
story." "The
whole story?" Harry repeated, a furious pounding in his ears. "You
sold them to Voldemort. That's all I need to know." "You've
got to listen to me," Black said, and there was a note of urgency in his
voice now. "You'll regret it if you don't...You don't understand..." "I
understand a lot better than you think," said Harry, and his voice shook
more than ever. "You never heard her, did you? My mum...trying to stop
Voldemort killing me...and you did that...you did it..." Before
either of them could say another word, something ginger streaked past Harry;
Crookshanks leapt onto Black's chest and settled himself there, right over
Black's heart. Black blinked and looked down at the cat. "Get
off," he murmured, trying to push Crookshanks off him. But
Crookshanks sank his claws into Black's robes and wouldn't shift. He turned his
ugly, squashed face to Harry and looked up at him with those great yellow eyes.
To his right, Hermione gave a dry sob. Harry
stared down at Black and Crookshanks, his grip tightening on the wand. So what
if he had to kill the cat too? It was in league with Black...If it was prepared
to die, trying to protect Black, that wasn't Harry's business... If Black wanted
to save it, that only proved he cared more for Crookshanks than for Harry's
parents... Harry
raised the wand. Now was the moment to do it. Now was the moment to avenge his
mother and father. He was going to kill Black. He had to kill Black. This was
his chance... The
seconds lengthened. And still Harry stood frozen there, wand poised, Black
staring up at him, Crookshanks on his chest. Ron's ragged breathing came from
near the bed; Hermione was quite silent. And
then came a new sound - Muffled
footsteps were echoing up through the floor - someone was moving downstairs. "WE'RE
UP HERE!" Hermione screamed suddenly. "WE'RE UP HERE - SIRIUS BLACK -
QUICK!" Black
made a startled movement that almost dislodged Crookshanks; Harry gripped his
wand convulsively - Do it now! said a voice in his head - but the footsteps
were thundering up the stairs and Harry still hadn't done it. The
door of the room burst open in a shower of red sparks and Harry wheeled around
as Professor Lupin came hurtling into the room, his face bloodless, his wand
raised and ready. His eyes flickered over Ron, lying on the floor, over
Hermione, cowering next to the door, to Harry, standing there with his wand
covering Black, and then to Black himself, crumpled and bleeding at Harry's feet. "Expelliarmus!"
Lupin shouted. Harry's wand
flew once more out of his hand; so did the two Hermione was holding. Lupin
caught them all deftly, then moved into the room, staring at Black, who still
had Crookshanks lying protectively across his chest. Harry
stood there, feeling suddenly empty. He hadn't done it. His nerve had failed
him. Black was going to be handed back to the Dementors. Then
Lupin spoke, in a very tense voice. "Where
is he, Sirius?" Harry
looked quickly at Lupin. He didn't understand what Lupin meant. Who was Lupin
talking about? He turned to look at Black again. Black's
face was quite expressionless. For a few seconds, he didn't move at all. Then,
very slowly, he raised his empty hand and pointed straight at Ron. Mystified,
Harry glanced around at Ron, who looked bewildered. "But
then..." Lupin muttered, staring at Black so intently it seemed he was
trying to read his mind, "...why hasn't he shown himself before now?
Unless" - Lupin's eyes suddenly widened, as though he was seeing something
beyond Black, something none of the rest could see, "- unless he was the
one...unless you switched... without telling me?" Very
slowly, his sunken gaze never leaving Lupin's face, Black nodded. "Professor,"
Harry interrupted loudly, "what's going on -?" But
he never finished the question, because what he saw made his voice die in his
throat. Lupin was lowering his wand, gazing fixed at Black. The Professor
walked to Black's side, seized his hand, pulled him to his feet so that
Crookshanks fell to the floor, and embraced Black like a brother. Harry
felt as though the bottom had dropped out of his stomach. "I
DON'T BELIEVE IT!" Hermione screamed. Lupin
let go of Black and turned to her. She had raised herself off the floor and was
pointing at Lupin, wild-eyed. "You - you -" "Hermione
-" "-
you and him!" "Hermione,
calm down -" "I
didn't tell anyone!" Hermione shrieked. "I've been covering up for
you -" "Hermione,
listen to me, please" Lupin shouted. "I can explain -" Harry
could feel himself shaking, not with fear, but with a fresh wave of fury. "I
trusted you," he shouted at Lupin, his voice wavering, out of control,
"and all the time you've been his friend!" "You're
wrong," said Lupin. "I haven't been Sirius's friend, but I am now -
Let me explain..." "NO!"
Hermione screamed. "Harry, don't trust him, he's been helping Black get
into the castle, he wants you dead too - he's a werewolf!" There
was a ringing silence. Everyone's eyes were now on Lupin, who looked remarkably
calm, though rather pale. "Not
at all up to your usual standard, Hermione," he said. "Only one out
of three, I'm afraid. I have not been helping Sirius get into the castle and I
certainly don't want Harry dead. An odd shiver passed over his face. "But
I won't deny that I am a werewolf." Ron
made a valiant effort to get up again but fell back with a whimper of pain.
Lupin made toward him, looking concerned, but Ron gasped, "Get away from
me, werewolf!" Lupin
stopped dead. Then, with an obvious effort, he turned to Hermione and said,
"How long have you known?" "Ages,"
Hermione whispered. "Since I did Professor Snape's essay..." "He'll
be delighted," said Lupin coolly. "He assigned that essay hoping
someone would realize what my symptoms meant... Did you check the lunar chart and
realize that I was always ill at the full moon? Or did you realize that the
Boggart changed into the moon when it saw me?" "Both,"
Hermione said quietly. Lupin
forced a laugh. "You're
the cleverest witch of your age I've ever met, Hermione." "I'm
not," Hermione whispered. "If I'd been a bit cleverer, I'd have told
everyone what you are!" "But
they already know," said Lupin. "At least, the staff do." "Dumbledore
hired you when he knew you were a werewolf," Ron gasped. "Is he
mad?" "Some
of the staff thought so," said Lupin. "He had to work very hard to
convince certain teachers that I'm trustworthy -" "AND
HE WAS WRONG!" Harry yelled. "YOU'VE BEEN HELPING HIM ALL THE
TIME!" He was pointing at Black, who suddenly crossed to the four-poster
bed and sank onto it, his face hidden in one shaking hand. Crookshanks leapt up
beside him and stepped onto his lap, purring. Ron edged away from both of them,
dragging his leg. "I
have not been helping Sirius," said Lupin. "If you'll give me a
chance, I'll explain. Look -" He
separated Harry's, Ron's and Hermione's wands and threw each back to its owner;
Harry caught his, stunned. "There,"
said Lupin, sticking his own wand back into his belt "You're armed, we're
not. Now will you listen?" Harry
didn't know what to think. Was it a trick? "If
you haven't been helping him," he said, with a furious glance at Black,
"how did you know he was here?" "The
map," said Lupin. "The Marauder's Map. I was in my office examining
it -" "You
know how to work it?" Harry said suspiciously. "Of
course I know how to work it," said Lupin, waving his hand impatiently.
"I helped write it. I'm Moony - that was my friends' nickname for me at
school." "You
wrote -?" "The
important thing is, I was watching it carefully this evening, because I had an
idea that you, Ron, and Hermione might try and sneak out of the castle to visit
Hagrid before his Hippogriff was executed. And I was right, wasn't I?" He
had started to pace up and down, looking at them. Little patches of dust rose
at his feet. "You
might have been wearing your father's old cloak, Harry-" "How
d'you know about the cloak?" "The
number of times I saw James disappearing under it..." said Lupin, waving an
impatient hand again. "The point is, even if you're wearing an
Invisibility Cloak, you still show up on the Marauder's Map. I watched you
cross the grounds and enter Hagrid's hut. Twenty minutes later, you left
Hagrid, and set off back toward the castle. But you were now accompanied by
somebody else." "What?"
said Harry. "No, we weren't!" I
couldn't believe my eyes,' said Lupin, still pacing, and ignoring Harry's
interruption. "I thought the map must be malfunctioning. How could he be
with you?" "No
one was with us!" said Harry. "And
then I saw another dot, moving fast toward you, labeled Sirius Black...I saw him
collide with you; I watched as he pulled two of you into the Whomping Willow
-" "One
of us!" Ron said angrily. "No,
Ron," said Lupin. "Two of you." He
had stopped his pacing, his eyes moving over Ron. "Do
you think I could have a look at the rat?" he said evenly. "What?"
said Ron. "What's Scabbers got to do with it?" "Everything,"
said Lupin. "Could I see him, please?" Ron
hesitated, then put a hand inside his robes. Scabbers emerged, thrashing
desperately; Ron had to seize his long bald tail to stop him escaping.
Crookshanks stood up on Black's leg and made a soft hissing noise. Lupin
moved closer to Ron. He seemed to be holding his breath as he gazed intently at
Scabbers. "What?"
Ron said again, holding Scabbers close to him, looking scared. "What's my
rat got to do with anything?" "That's
not a rat," croaked Sirius Black suddenly. "What
d'you mean - of course he's a rat -" "No,
he's not," said Lupin quietly. "He's a wizard." "An
Animagus," said Black, "by the name of Peter Pettigrew." CHAPTER EIGHTEEN MOONY, WORMTAIL, PADFOOT, and PRONGSIt
took a few seconds for the absurdity of this statement to sink in. Then Ron
voiced what Harry was thinking. "You're
both mental." "Ridiculous!"
said Hermione faintly. "Peter
Pettigrew's dead!" said Harry. "He killed him twelve years ago!"
He pointed at Black, whose face twitched convulsively. "I
meant to," he growled, his yellow teeth bared, "but little Peter got
the better of me...not this time, though!" And
Crookshanks was thrown to the floor as Black lunged at Scabbers; Ron yelled
with pain as Black's weight fell on his broken leg. "Sirius,
NO!" Lupin yelled, launching himself forwards and dragging Black away from
Ron again, "WAIT! You can't do it just like that - they need to understand
- we've got to explain -" "We
can explain afterwards!" snarled Black, trying to throw Lupin off. One
hand was still clawing the air as it tried to reach Scabbers, who was squealing
like a piglet, scratching Ron's face and neck as he tried to escape. "They've
- got - a - right - to - know - everything!" Lupin panted, still trying to
restrain Black. "Ron's kept him as a pet! There are parts of it even I
don't understand, and Harry - you owe Harry the truth, Sirius!" Black
stopped struggling, though his hollowed eyes were still fixed on Scabbers, who
was clamped tightly under Ron's bitten, scratched, and bleeding hands. "All
right, then," Black said, without taking his eyes off the rat. "Tell
them whatever you like. But make it quick, Remus. I want to commit the murder I
was imprisoned for..." "You're
nutters, both of you," said Ron shakily, looking round at Harry and
Hermione for support. "I've had enough of this. I'm off." He
tried to heave himself up on his good leg, but Lupin raised his wand again,
pointing it at Scabbers. "You're
going to hear me out, Ron," he said quietly. "Just keep a tight hold
on Peter while you listen." "HE'S
NOT PETER, HE'S SCABBERS!" Ron yelled, trying to force the rat back into
his front pocket, but Scabbers was fighting too hard; Ron swayed and
overbalanced, and Harry caught him am pushed him back down to the bed. Then,
ignoring Black, Harry turned to Lupin. "There
were witnesses who saw Pettigrew die," he said. "A whole street full
of them..." "They
didn't see what they thought they saw!" said Black savagely, still
watching Scabbers struggling in Ron's hands. "Everyone
thought Sirius killed Peter," said Lupin, nodding. "I believed it
myself - until I saw the map tonight. Because the Marauder's map never
lies...Peter's alive. Ron's holding him, Harry." Harry
looked down at Ron, and as their eyes met, they agreed, silently: Black and
Lupin were both out of their minds. Their story made no sense whatsoever. How
could Scabbers be Peter Pettigrew? Azkaban must have unhinged Black after all -
but why was Lupin playing along with him? Then
Hermione spoke, in a trembling, would-be calm sort of voice, as though trying
to will Professor Lupin to talk sensibly. "But
Professor Lupin...Scabbers can't be Pettigrew...it just can't be true, you know it
can't..." "Why
can't it be true?" Lupin said calmly, as though they were in class, and
Hermione had simply spotted a problem in an experiment with Grindylows. "Because...
because people would know if Peter Pettigrew had been an Animagus. We did
Animagi in class with Professor McGonagall. And I looked them up when I did my
homework - the Ministry of Magic keeps tabs on witches and wizards who can
become animals; there's a register showing what animal they become, and their
markings and things...and I went and looked Professor McGonagall up on the
register, and there have been only seven Animagi this century, and Pettigrew's
name wasn't on the list." Harry
had barely had time to marvel inwardly at the effort Hermione put into her
homework, when Lupin started to laugh. "Right
again, Hermione!" he said. "But the Ministry never knew that here
used to be three unregistered Animagi running around Hogwarts." "If
you're going to tell them the story, get a move on, Remus," said Black,
who was still watching Scabbers's every desperate move. "I've waited
twelve years, I'm not going to wait much longer." "All
right...but you'll need to help me, Sirius," said Lupin, "I only know
how it began..." Lupin
broke off. There had been a loud creak behind him. The bedroom door had opened
of its own accord. All five of them stared at it. Then Lupin strode toward it
and looked out into the landing. "No
one there..." "This
place is haunted!" said Ron. "It's
not,' said Lupin, still looking at the door in a puzzled way. "The
Shrieking Shack was never haunted...The screams and howls the villagers used to
hear were made by me." He
pushed his graying hair out of his eyes, thought for a moment then said,
"That's where all of this starts - with my becoming a werewolf, None of
this could have happened if I hadn't been bitter...and if I hadn't been so
foolhardy..." He
looked sober and tired. Ron started to interrupt, but Hermione, said,
"Shh!" She was watching Lupin very intently. "I
as a very small boy when I received the bite. My parents tried everything, but
in those days there was no cure. The potion that Professor Snape has been
making for me is a very recent discovery. It makes me safe, you see. As long as
I take it in the week, preceding the full moon, I keep my mind when I
transform...I'm able to curl up in my office, a harmless wolf, and wait for the
moon to wane again. "Before
the Wolfsbane Potion was discovered, however, I became a fully fledged monster
once a month. It seemed impossible that I would be able to come to Hogwarts.
Other parents weren't likely to want their children exposed to me. "But
then Dumbledore became Headmaster, and he was sympathetic. He said that as long
as we took certain precautions, there was no reason I shouldn't come to
school..." Lupin sighed, and looked directly at Harry. "I told you,
months ago, that the Whomping Willow was planted the year I came to Hogwarts.
The truth is that it was planted because I came to Hogwarts. This house" -
Lupin looked miserably around the room, - "the tunnel that leads to it -
they were built for my use. Once a month, I was smuggled out of the castle,
into this place, to transform. The tree was placed at the tunnel mouth to stop
anyone coming across me while I was dangerous." Harry
couldn't see where this story was going, but he was listening raptly all the
same. The only sound apart from Lupin's voice was Scabbers's frightened
squeaking. "My
transformations in those days were - were terrible. It is very painful to turn
into a werewolf. I was separated from humans to bite, so I bit and scratched
myself instead. The villagers heard the noise and the screaming and thought
they were hearing particularly violent spirits. Dumbledore encouraged the
rumor...Even now, when the house has been silent for years, the villagers don't
dare approach it..." "But
apart from my transformations, I was happier than I had ever been in my life.
For the first time ever, I had friends, three great friends. Sirius Black...Peter
Pettigrew...and, of course, your father, Harry - James Potter." "Now,
my three friends could hardly fail to notice that I disappeared once a month. I
made up all sorts of stories. I told them my mother was ill, and that I had to
go home to see her...I was terrified they would desert me the moment they found
out what I was. But of course, they, like you, Hermione, worked out the
truth..." "And
they didn't desert me at all. Instead, they did something for me that would
make my transformations not only bearable, but the best times of my life. They
became Animagi." "My
dad too?" said Harry, astounded. "Yes,
indeed," said Lupin. "It took them the best part of three years to
work out how to do it. Your father and Sirius here were the cleverest students
in the school, and lucky they were, because the Animagus transformation can go
horribly wrong - one reason the Ministry keeps a close watch on those
attempting to do it. Peter needed all the help he could get from James and
Sirius. Finally, in our fifth year, they managed it. They could each turn into
a different animal at will." "But
how did that help you?" said Hermione, sounding puzzled. "They
couldn't keep me company as humans, so they kept me company as animals,"
said Lupin. "A werewolf is only a danger to people. They sneaked out of
the castle every month under James's Invisibility Cloak. They
transformed...Peter, as the smallest, could slip beneath the Willow's attacking
branches and touch the knot that freezes it. They would then slip down the
tunnel and join me. Under their influence, I became less dangerous. My body was
still wolfish, but my mind seemed to become less so while I was with
them." "Hurry
up, Remus," snarled Black, who was still watching Scabbers with a horrible
sort of hunger on his face. "I'm
getting there, Sirius, I'm getting there...well, highly exciting possibilities
were open to us now that we could all transform. Soon we were leaving the
Shrieking Shack and roaming the school grounds and the village by night. Sirius
and James transformed into such large animals, they were able to keep a
werewolf in check. I doubt whether any Hogwarts students ever found out more
about the Hogwarts grounds and Hogsmeade than we did... And that's how we came to
write the Marauder's Map, and sign it with our nicknames. Sirius is Padfoot.
Peter is Wormtail. James was Prongs." "What
sort of animal -?" Harry began, but Hermione cut him off. "That was
still really dangerous! Running around in the dark with a werewolf! What if
you'd given the others the slip, and bitten somebody?" "A
thought that still haunts me," said Lupin heavily. "And there were
near misses, many of them. We laughed about them afterwards. We were young,
thoughtless - carried away with our own cleverness." "I
sometimes felt guilty about betraying Dumbledore's trust, of course...he had
admitted me to Hogwarts when no other headmaster would have done so, and he had
no idea I was breaking the rules he had set down for my own and others' safety.
He never knew I had led three fellow students into becoming Animagi illegally.
But I always managed to forget my guilty feelings every time we sat down to
plan our next month's adventure. And I haven't changed..." Lupin's
face had hardened, and there was self-disgust in his voice. "All this
year, I have been battling with myself, wondering whether I should tell
Dumbledore that Sirius was an Animagus. But I didn't do it. Why? Because I was
too cowardly. It would have meant admitting that I'd betrayed his trust while I
was at school, admitting that I'd led others along with me...and Dumbledore's
trust has meant everything to me. He let me into Hogwarts as a boy, and he gave
me a job when I have been shunned all my adult life, unable to find paid work
because of what I am. And so I convinced myself that Sirius was getting into
the school using dark arts he learned from Voldemort, that being an Animagus
had nothing to do with it...so, in a way, Snape's been right about me all
along." "Snape?"
said Black harshly, taking his eyes off Scabbers; for the first time in minutes
and looking up at Lupin. "What's Snape got to do with it?" "He's
here, Sirius," said Lupin heavily. "He's teaching here as well."
He looked up at Harry, Ron, and Hermione. "Professor
Snape was at school with us. He fought very hard against my appointment to the
Defense Against the Dark Arts job. He has been telling Dumbledore all year that
I am not to be trusted. He has his reasons...you see, Sirius here played a trick
on him which nearly killed him, a trick which involved me -" Black
made a derisive noise. "It
served him right," he sneered. "Sneaking around, trying to find out
what we were up to...hoping he could get us expelled..." "Severus
was very interested in where I went every month." Lupin told Harry, Ron,
and Hermione. "We were in the same year, you know, and we - er - didn't
like each other very much. He especially disliked James. Jealous, I think, of
James's talent on the Quidditch field...anyway Snape had seen me crossing the
grounds with Madam Pomfrey one evening as she led me toward the Whomping Willow
to transform. Sirius thought it would be - er - amusing, to tell Snape all he
had to do was prod the knot on the tree trunk with a long stick, and he'd be
able to get in after me. Well, of course, Snape tried it - if he'd got as far
as this house, he'd have met a fully grown werewolf - but your father, who'd
heard what Sirius had done, went after Snape and pulled him back, at great risk
to his life...Snape glimpsed me, though, at the end of the tunnel. He was
forbidden by Dumbledore to tell anybody, but from that time on he knew what I
was..." "So
that's why Snape doesn't like you," said Harry slowly, "because he
thought you were in on the joke?" "That's
right," sneered a cold voice from the wall behind Lupin. Severus
Snape was pulling off the Invisibility Cloak, his wand pointing directly at
Lupin. CHAPTER NINETEEN THE SERVANT OF LORD VOLDEMORTHermione
screamed. Black leapt to his feet. Harry felt as though he'd received a huge
electric shock. "I
found this at the base of the Whomping Willow," said Snape, throwing the
cloak aside, careful to keep this wand pointing directly at Lupin's chest.
"Very useful, Potter, I thank you..." Snape
was slightly breathless, but his face was full of suppressed triumph.
"You're wondering, perhaps, how I knew you were here?" he said, his
eyes glittering. "I've just been to your office, Lupin. You forgot to take
your potion tonight, so I took a gobletful along. And very lucky I did...lucky
for me, I mean. Lying on your desk was a certain map. One glance at it told me
all I needed to know. I saw you running along this passageway and out of
sight." "Severus
-" Lupin began, but Snape overrode him. "I've
told the headmaster again and again that you're helping your old friend Black
into the castle, Lupin, and here's the proof. Not even I dreamed you would have
the nerve to use this old place as your hideout -" "Severus,
you're making a mistake," said Lupin urgently. "You haven't heard
everything - I can explain - Sirius is not here to kill Harry -" "Two
more for Azkaban tonight," said Snape, his eyes now gleaming fanatically.
"I shall be interested to see how Dumbledore takes this...He was quite
convinced you were harmless, you know, Lupin...a tame werewolf -" "You
fool," said Lupin softly. "Is a schoolboy grudge worth putting an
innocent man back inside Azkaban?" BANG!
Thin, snakelike cords burst from the end of Snape's wand and twisted themselves
around Lupin's mouth, wrists, and ankles; he overbalanced and fell to the
floor, unable to move. With a roar of rage, Black started toward Snape, but
Snape pointed his wand straight between Black's eyes. "Give
me a reason," he whispered. "Give me a reason to do it, and I swear I
will." Black
stopped dead. It would have been impossible to say which face showed more
hatred. Harry
stood there, paralyzed, not knowing what to do or whom to believe. He glanced
around at Ron and Hermione. Ron looked just as confused as he did, still
fighting to keep hold on the struggling Scabbers. Hermione, however, took an
uncertain step toward Snape and said, in a very breathless voice,
"Professor Snape - it wouldn't hurt to hear what they've got to say,
w-would it?" "Miss
Granger, you are already facing suspension from this school," Snape spat.
"You, Potter, and Weasley are out-of-bounds, in the company of a convicted
murderer and a werewolf. For once in your life, hold your tongue." "But
if - if there was a mistake -" "KEEP
QUIET, YOU STUPID GIRL!" Snape shouted, looking suddenly quite deranged.
"DON'T TALK ABOUT WHAT YOU DON'T UNDERSTAND!" A few sparks shot out
of the end of his wand, which was still pointed at Black's face. Hermione fell
silent. "Vengeance
is very sweet," Snape breathed at Black. "How I hoped I would be the
one to catch you..." "The
joke's on you again, Severus," Black snarled. "As long as this boy
brings his rat up to the castle" - he jerked his head at Ron - "I'll
come quietly..." "Up
to the castle?" said Snape silkily. "I don't think we need to go that
far. All I have to do is call the Dementors once we get out of the Willow.
They'll be very pleased to see you, Black...pleased enough to give you a little
kiss, I daresay...I -" What
little color there was in Black's face left it. "You
-you've got to hear me out," he croaked. "The rat - look at the rat
-" But
there was a mad glint in Snape's eyes that Harry had never seen before. He
seemed beyond reason. "Come
on, all of you," he said. He clicked his fingers, and the ends of the
cords that bound Lupin flew to his hands. "I'll drag the werewolf. Perhaps
the Dementors will have a kiss for him too -" Before
he knew what he was doing, Harry had crossed the room in three strides and
blocked the door. "Get
out of the way, Potter, you're in enough trouble already," snarled Snape.
"If I hadn't been here to save your skin -" "Professor
Lupin could have killed me about a hundred times this year," Harry said.
"I've been alone with him loads of times, having defense lessons against
the Dementors. If he was helping Black, why didn't he just finish me off then?" "Don't
ask me to fathom the way a werewolf's mind works," hissed Snape. "Get
out of the way, Potter." "YOU'RE
PATHETIC!" Harry yelled. "JUST BECAUSE THEY MADE A FOOL OF YOU AT
SCHOOL YOU WON'T EVEN LISTEN -" "SILENCE!
I WILL NOT BE SPOKEN TO LIKE THAT!" Snape shrieked, looking madder than
ever. "Like father, like son, Potter! I have just saved your neck; you
should be thanking me on bended knee! You would have been well served if he'd
killed you! You'd have died like your father, too arrogant to believe you might
be mistaken in Black - now get out of the way, or I will make you. GET OUT OF
THE WAY, POTTER!" Harry
made up his mind in a split second. Before Snape could take even one step
toward him, he had raised his wand. "Expelliarmus!"
he yelled - except that his wasn't the only voice that shouted. There was a
blast that made the door rattle on its hinges; Snape was lifted off his feet
and slammed into the wall, then slid down it to the floor, a trickle of blood
oozing from under his hair. He had been knocked out. Harry
looked around. Both Ron and Hermione had tried to disarm Snape at exactly the
same moment. Snape's wand soared in a high arc and landed on the bed next to
Crookshanks. "You
shouldn't have done that," said Black, looking at Harry. "You
should have left him to me..." Harry
avoided Black's eyes. He wasn't sure, even now, that he'd done the right thing. "We
attacked a teacher...We attacked a teacher..." Hermione whimpered, staring at
the lifeless Snape with frightened eyes. "Oh, we're going to be in so much
trouble -" Lupin
was struggling against his bonds. Black bent down quickly and untied him. Lupin
straightened up, rubbing his arms where the ropes had cut into them. "Thank
you, Harry," he said. "I'm
still not saying I believe you," he told Lupin. "Then
it's time we offered you some proof," said Lupin. "You, boy - give me
Peter, please. Now." Ron
clutched Scabbers closer to his chest. "Come
off it," he said weakly. "Are you trying to say he broke out of
Azkaban just to get his hands on Scabbers? I mean..." He looked up at Harry
and Hermione for support, "Okay, say Pettigrew could turn into a rat -
there are millions of rats - how's he supposed to know which one he is after if
he was locked up in Azkaban?" "You
know, Sirius, that's a fair question," said Lupin, turning to Black and
frowning slightly. "How did you find out where he was?" Black
put one of his claw-like hands inside his robes and took out a crumpled piece
of paper, which he smoothed flat and held out to show the others. It
was the photograph of Ron and his family that had appeared in the Daily
Prophet the previous summer, and there, on Ron's shoulder, was Scabbers. "How
did you get this?" Lupin asked Black, thunderstruck. "Fudge,"
said Black. "When he came to inspect Azkaban last year, he gave me his
paper. And there was Peter, on the front page on this boy's shoulder...I knew him
at once...how many times had I seen him transform? And the caption said the boy
would be going back to Hogwarts...to where Harry was..." "My
God," said Lupin softly, staring from Scabbers to the picture in the paper
and back again. "His front paw..." "What
about it?" said Ron defiantly. "He's
got a toe missing," said Black. "Of
course," Lupin breathed. "So simple...so brilliant...he cut it off
himself?" "Just
before he transformed," said Black. "When I cornered him, he yelled
for the whole street to hear that I'd betrayed Lily and James. Then, before I
could curse him, he blew apart the street with the wand behind his back, killed
everyone within twenty feet of himself - and sped down into the sewer with the
other rats..." "Didn't
you ever hear, Ron?" said Lupin. "The biggest bit of Peter they found
was his finger." "Look,
Scabbers probably had a fight with another rat or something! He's been in my
family for ages, right -" "Twelve
years, in fact," said Lupin. "Didn't you ever wonder why he was
living so long?" "We
- we've been taking good care of him!" said Ron. "Not
looking too good at the moment, though, is he?" said Lupin. "I'd
guess he's been losing weight ever since he heard Sirius was on the loose
again..." "He's
been scared of that mad cat!" said Ron, nodding toward Crookshanks, who
was still purring on the bed. But
that wasn't right, Harry thought suddenly...Scabbers had been looking ill before
he met Crookshanks... ever since Ron's return from Egypt...since the time when
Black had escaped... "This
cat isn't mad," said Black hoarsely. He reached out a bony hand and
stroked Crookshanks's fluffy head. "He's the most intelligent of his kind
I've ever met. He recognized Peter for what he was right away. And when he met
me, he knew I was no dog. It was a while before he trusted me...Finally, I
managed to communicate to him what I was after, and he's been helping me..." "What
do you mean?" breathed Hermione. "He
tried to bring Peter to me, but couldn't...so he stole the passwords into
Gryffindor Tower for me...As I understand it, he took them from a boy's bedside
table..." Harry's
brain seemed to be sagging under the weight of what he was hearing. It was
absurd...and yet... "But Peter got wind
of what was going on and ran for it." croaked Black. "This cat -
Crookshanks, did you call him? - told me Peter had left blood on the sheets...I
supposed he bit himself...Well, faking his own death had worked once." These
words jolted Harry to his senses. "And
why did he fake his death?" he said furiously. "Because he knew you
were about to kill him like you killed my parents!" "No,"
said Lupin, "Harry-" "And
now you've come to finish him off!" "Yes,
I have," said Black, with an evil look at Scabbers. "Then
I should've let Snape take you!" Harry shouted. "Harry,"
said Lupin hurriedly, "don't you see? All this time we've thought Sirius
betrayed your parents, and Peter tracked him down - but it was the other way
around, don't you see? Peter betrayed your mother and father - Sirius tracked
Peter down -" "THAT'S
NOT TRUE!" Harry yelled. "HE WAS THEIR SECRET-KEEPER! HE SAID SO
BEFORE YOU TURNED UP. HE SAID HE KILLED THEM!" He
was pointing at Black, who shook his head slowly; the sunken eyes were suddenly
over bright. "Harry...I
as good as killed them," he croaked. "I persuaded Lily and James to
change to Peter at the last moment, persuaded them to use him as Secret-Keeper
instead of me...I'm to blame, I know it...The night they died, I'd arranged to
check on Peter, make sure he was still safe, but when I arrived at his hiding
place, he'd gone. Yet there was no sign of a struggle. It didn't feel right. I
was scared. I set out for your parents' house straight away. And when I saw
their house, destroyed, and their bodies...I realized what Peter must've
done...what I'd done..." His
voice broke. He turned away. "Enough
of this," said Lupin, and there was a steely note in his voice Harry had
never heard before. "There's one certain way to prove what really
happened. Ron, give me that rat." "What
are you going to do with him if I give him to you?" Ron asked Lupin
tensely. "Force
him to show himself," said Lupin. "If he really is a rat, it won't
hurt him." Ron
hesitated. Then at long last, he held out Scabbers and Lupin took him. Scabbers
began to squeak without stopping, twisting and turning, his tiny black eyes
bulging in his head. "Ready, Sirius?" said Lupin. Black
had already retrieved Snape's wand from the bed. He approached Lupin and the
struggling rat, and his wet eyes suddenly seemed to be burning in his face. "Together?"
he said quietly. "I
think so", said Lupin, holding Scabbers tightly in one hand and his wand
in the other. "On the count of three. One - two - THREE!" A
flash of blue-white light erupted from both wands; for a moment, Scabbers was frozen
in midair, his small gray form twisting madly - Ron yelled - the rat fell and
hit the floor. There was another blinding flash of light and then - It
was like watching a speeded-up film of a growing tree. A head was shooting
upward from the ground; limbs were sprouting; a moment later, a man was
standing where Scabbers had been, cringing and wringing his hands. Crookshanks
was spitting and snarling on the bed; the hair on his back was standing up. He
was a very short man, hardly taller than Harry and Hermione. His thin,
colorless hair was unkempt and there was a large bald patch on top. He had the
shrunken appearance of a plump man who has lost a lot of weight in a short
time. His skin looked grubby, almost like Scabbers's fur, and something of the
rat lingered around his pointed nose and his very small, watery eyes. He looked
around at them all, his breathing fast and shallow. Harry saw his eyes dart to
the door and back again. "Well,
hello, Peter," said Lupin pleasantly, as though rats frequently erupted
into old school friends around him. "Long time, no see." "S-Sirius...R-Remus..."
Even Pettigrew's voice was squeaky. Again, his eyes darted toward the door.
"My friends...my old friends..." Black's
wand arm rose, but Lupin seized him around the wrist, gave him a warning took,
then turned again to Pettigrew, his voice light and casual. "We've
been having a little chat, Peter, about what happened the night Lily and James
died. You might have missed the finer points while you were squeaking around
down there on the bed -" "Remus,"
gasped Pettigrew, and Harry could see beads of sweat breaking out over his
pasty face, "you don't believe him, do you...? He tried to kill me,
Remus..." "So
we've heard," said Lupin, more coldly. "I'd like to clear up one or
two little matters with you, Peter, if you'll be so -" "He's
come to try and kill me again!" Pettigrew squeaked suddenly, pointing at
Black, and Harry saw that he used his middle finger, because his index was
missing. "He killed Lily and James and now he's going to kill me
too...You've got to help me, Remus..." Black's
face looked more skull-like than ever as he stared at Pettigrew with his
fathomless eyes. "No
one's going to try and kill you until we've sorted a few things out," said
Lupin. "Sorted
things out?" squealed Pettigrew, looking wildly about him once more, eyes
taking in the boarded windows and, again, the only door. "I knew he'd come
after me! I knew he'd be back for me! I've been waiting for this for twelve
years!" "You
knew Sirius was going to break out of Azkaban?" said Lupin, his brow
furrowed. "When nobody has ever done it before?" "He's
got dark powers the rest of us can only dream of!" Pettigrew shouted
shrilly. "How else did he get out of there? I suppose
He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named taught him a few tricks!" Black
started to laugh, a horrible, mirthless laugh that filled the whole room. "Voldemort,
teach me tricks?" he said. Pettigrew
flinched as though Black had brandished a whip at him. "What,
scared to hear your old master's name?" said Black. "I don't blame
you, Peter. His lot aren't very happy with you, are they?" "Don't
know what you mean, Sirius -" muttered Pettigrew, his breathing faster
than ever. His whole face was shining with sweat now. "You
haven't been hiding from me for twelve years," said Black. "You've
been hiding from Voldemort's old supporters. I heard things in Azkaban,
Peter...They all think you're dead, or you'd have to answer to them...I've heard
them screaming all sorts of things in their sleep. Sounds like they think the
double-crosser double-crossed them. Voldemort went to the Potters' on your
information...and Voldemort met his downfall there. And not all Voldemort's
supporters ended up in Azkaban, did they? There are still plenty out here,
biding their time, pretending they've seen the error of their ways. If they
ever got wind that you were still alive, Peter -" "Don't
know...what you're talking about..." said Pettigrew again, more shrilly than
ever. He wiped his face on his sleeve and looked up at Lupin. "You don't
believe this - this madness, Remus -" "I
must admit, Peter, I have difficulty in understanding why an innocent man would
want to spend twelve years as a rat," said Lupin evenly. "Innocent,
but scared!" squealed Pettigrew. "If Voldemort's supporters were
after me, it was because I put one of their best men in Azkaban - the spy,
Sirius Black!" Black's
face contorted. "How
dare you," he growled, sounding suddenly like the bearsized dog he had
been. "I, a spy for Voldemort? When did I ever sneak around people who were
stronger and more powerful than myself? But you, Peter - I'll never understand
why I didn't see you were the spy from the start. You always liked big friends
who'd look after you, didn't you? It used to be us...me and Remus...and
James..." Pettigrew
wiped his face again; he was almost panting for breath. "Me,
a spy...must be out of your mind...never...don't know how you can say such a -" "Lily
and James only made you Secret-Keeper because I suggested it," Black
hissed, so venomously that Pettigrew took a step backward. "I thought it
was the perfect plan...a bluff...Voldemort would be sure to come after me, would
never dream they'd use a weak, talentless thing like you...It must have been the
finest moment of your miserable life, telling Voldemort you could hand him the
Potters." Pettigrew
was muttering distractedly; Harry caught words like "far-fetched" and
"lunacy," but he couldn't help paying more attention to the ashen
color of Pettigrew's face and the way his eyes continued to dart toward the
windows and door. "Professor
Lupin?" said Hermione timidly. "Can - can I say something?" "Certainly,
Hermione," said Lupin courteously. "Well
- Scabbers - I mean, this - this man - he's been sleeping in Harry's dormitory
for three years. If he's working for You-Know-Who, how come he never tried to
hurt Harry before now?" "There!"
said Pettigrew shrilly, pointing at Ron with his maimed hand. "Thank you!
You see, Remus? I have never hurt a hair of Harry's head! Why should I?" "I'll
tell you why," said Black. "Because you never did anything for anyone
unless you could see what was in it for you. Voldemort's been in hiding for
fifteen years, they say he's half dead. You weren't about to commit murder
right under Albus Dumbledore's nose, for a wreck of a wizard who'd lost all of his
power, were you? You'd want to be quite sure he was the biggest bully in the
playground before you went back to him, wouldn't you? Why else did you find a
wizard family to take you in? Keeping an ear out for news, weren't you, Peter?
Just in case your old protector regained strength, and it was safe to rejoin
him..." Pettigrew
opened his mouth and closed it several times. He seemed to have lost the
ability to talk. "Er
- Mr. Black - Sirius?" said Hermione. Black
jumped at being addressed like this and stared at Hermione as though he had
never seen anything quite like her. "If
you don't mind me asking, how - how did you get out of Azkaban, if you didn't
use Dark Magic?" "Thank
you!" gasped Pettigrew, nodding frantically at her. "Exactly!
Precisely what I -" But
Lupin silenced him with a look. Black was frowning slightly at Hermione, but
not as though he were annoyed with her. He seemed to be pondering his answer. "I
don't know how I did it," he said slowly. "I think the only reason I
never lost my mind is that I knew I was innocent. That wasn't a happy thought,
so the Dementors couldn't suck it out of me...but it kept me sane and knowing who
I am...helped me keep my powers...so when it all became...too much...I could transform
in my cell...become a dog. Dementors can't see, you know..." He swallowed.
"They feel their way toward people by feeding off their emotions...They
could tell that my feelings were less - less human, less complex when I was a
dog...but they thought, of course, that I was losing my mind like everyone else
in there, so it didn't trouble them. But I was weak, very weak, and I had no
hope of driving them away from me without a wand..." "But
then I saw Peter in that picture...I realized he was at Hogwarts with
Harry...perfectly positioned to act, if one hint reached his ears that the Dark
Side was gathering strength again..." Pettigrew
was shaking his head, mouthing noiselessly, but staring all the while at Black
as though hypnotized. "...ready
to strike at the moment he could be sure of allies...and to deliver the last
Potter to them. if he gave them Harry, who'd dare say he'd betrayed Lord
Voldemort? He'd be welcomed back with honors..." "So
you see, I had to do something. I was the only one who knew Peter was still
alive..." Harry
remembered what Mr. Weasley had told Mrs. Wealsey. 'The guards say he's been
talking in his sleep... always the same words... 'He's at Hogwarts.'' "It
was as if someone had lit a fire In my head, and the Dementors couldn't destroy
it...It wasn't a happy feeling...it was an obsession...but it gave me strength, it
cleared my mind. So, one night when they opened my door to bring food, I
slipped past them as a dog...It's so much harder for them to sense animal
emotions that they were confused...I was thin, very thin...thin enough to slip
through the bars...I swam as a dog back to the mainland...I journeyed north and
slipped into the Hogwarts grounds as a dog. I've been living in the forest ever
since, except when I came to watch the Quidditch, of course. You fly as well as
your father did, Harry..." He
looked at Harry, who did not look away. "Believe
me," croaked Black. "Believe me, Harry. I never betrayed James and
Lily. I would have died before I betrayed them." And
at long last, Harry believed him. Throat too tight to speak, he nodded. "No!" Pettigrew
had fallen to his knees as though Harry's nod had been his own death sentence.
He shuffled forward on his knees, groveling, his hands clasped in front of him
as though praying. "Sirius
- it's me...it's Peter...your friend...you wouldn't -" Black
kicked out and Pettigrew recoiled. "There's
enough filth on my robes without you touching them," said Black. "Remus!"
Pettigrew squeaked, turning to Lupin instead, writhing imploringly in front of
him. "You don't believe this - wouldn't Sirius have told you they'd
changed the plan?" "Not
if he thought I was the spy, Peter," said Lupin. "I assume that's why
you didn't tell me, Sirius?" he said casually over Pettigrew's head. "Forgive
me, Remus," said Black. "Not
at all, Padfoot, old friend," said Lupin, who was now rolling up his
sleeves. "And will you, in turn, forgive me for believing you were the
spy?" "Of
course," said Black, and the ghost of a grin flitted across his gaunt
face. He, too, began rolling up his sleeves. "Shall we kill him
together?" "Yes,
I think so," said Lupin grimly. "You
wouldn't...you won't..." gasped Pettigrew. And he scrambled around to Ron. "Ron...haven't
I been a good friend...a good pet? You won't let them kill me, Ron, will
you...you're on my side, aren't you?" But
Ron was staring at Pettigrew with the utmost revulsion. "I
let you sleep in my bed!" he said. "Kind
boy...kind master..." Pettigrew crawled toward Ron "You won't let them do
it...I was your rat...I was a good pet..." "If
you made a better rat than a human, it's not much to boast about, Peter," said
Black harshly. Ron, going still paler with pain, wrenched his broken leg out of
Pettigrew's reach. Pettigrew turned on his knees, staggered forward, and seized
the hem of Hermione's robes. "Sweet
girl...clever girl...you - you won't let them...Help me..." Hermione
pulled her robes out of Pettigrew's clutching hands and backed away against the
wall, looking horrified. Pettigrew
knelt, trembling uncontrollably, and turned his head slowly toward Harry. "Harry...Harry...you
look just like your father...just like him..." "HOW
DARE YOU SPEAK TO HARRY?" roared Black. "HOW DARE YOU FACE HIM? HOW
DARE YOU TALK ABOUT JAMES IN FRONT OF HIM?" "Harry,"
whispered Pettigrew, shuffling toward him, hands outstretched. "Harry,
James wouldn't have wanted me killed...James would have understood, Harry...he
would have shown me mercy..." Both
Black and Lupin strode forward, seized Pettigrew's shoulders, and threw him
backward onto the floor. He sat there, twitching with terror, staring up at
them. "You
sold Lily and James to Voldemort," said Black, who was shaking too.
"Do you deny it?" Pettigrew
burst into tears. It was horrible to watch, like an oversized, balding baby,
cowering on the floor. "Sirius,
Sirius, what could I have done? The Dark Lord...you have no idea...he has weapons
you can't imagine...I was scared, Sirius, I was never brave like you and Remus
and James. I never meant it to happen...He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named forced me
-" "DON'T
LIE!" bellowed Black. "YOU'D BEEN PASSING INFORMATION TO HIM FOR A
YEAR BEFORE LILY AND JAMES DIED! YOU WERE HIS SPY!" "He
- he was taking over everywhere!" gasped Pettigrew. "Wh-what was
there to be gained by refusing him?" "What
was there to be gained by fighting the most evil wizard who has ever
existed?" said Black, with a terrible fury in his face. "Only
innocent lives, Peter!" "You
don't understand!" whined Pettigrew. "He would have killed me,
Sirius!" "THEN
YOU SHOULD HAVE DIED!" roared Black. "DIED RATHER THAN BETRAY YOUR
FRIENDS, AS WE WOULD HAVE DONE FOR YOU!" Black
and Lupin stood shoulder to shoulder, wands raised. "You
should have realized," said Lupin quietly, "if Voldemort didn't kill
you, we would. Good-bye, Peter." Hermione
covered her face with her hands and turned to the wall. "NO!"
Harry yelled. He ran forward, placing himself in front Pettigrew, facing the
wands. "You can't kill him," he said breathlessly. "You
can't." Black
and Lupin both looked staggered. "Harry,
this piece of vermin is the reason you have no parents," Black snarled.
"This cringing bit of filth would have seen you die too, without turning a
hair. You heard him. His own stinking skin meant more to him than your whole
family." "I
know," Harry panted. "We'll take him up to the castle. We'll hand him
over to the Dementors...He can go to Azkaban...but don't kill him." "Harry!"
gasped Pettigrew, and he flung his arms around Harry's knees. "You - thank
you - it's more than I deserve - thank you -" "Get
off me," Harry spat, throwing Pettigrew's hands off him in disgust.
"I'm not doing this for you. I'm doing it because - I don't reckon my dad
would've wanted them to become killers - just for you." No
one moved or made a sound except Pettigrew, whose breath was coming in wheezes
as he clutched his chest. Black and Lupin were looking at each other. Then,
with one movement, they lowered their wands. "You're
the only person who has the right to decide, Harry," said Black. "But
think... think what he did..." "He
can go to Azkaban," Harry repeated. "If anyone deserves that place,
he does..." Pettigrew
was still wheezing behind him. "Very
well," said Lupin. "Stand aside, Harry." Harry
hesitated. "I'm
going to tie him up," said Lupin. "That's all, I swear." Harry
stepped out of the way. Thin cords shot from Lupin's wand this time, and next
moment, Pettigrew was wriggling on the floor, bound and gagged. "But
if you transform, Peter," growled Black, his own wand pointing at
Pettigrew too, "we will kill you. You agree, Harry?" Harry
looked down at the pitiful figure on the floor and nodded so that Pettigrew
could see him. "Right,"
said Lupin, suddenly businesslike. "Ron, I can't mend bones nearly as well
as Madam Pomfrey, so I think it's best if we just strap your leg up until we
can get you to the hospital wing." He
hurried over to Ron, bent down, tapped Ron's leg with his wand, and muttered,
"Ferula." Bandages spun up Ron's leg, strapping it tightly to a
splint. Lupin helped him to his feet; Ron put his weight gingerly on the leg
and didn't wince. "That's
better," he said. "Thanks." "What
about Professor Snape?" said Hermione in a small voice, looking down at
Snape's prone figure. "There's
nothing seriously wrong with him," said Lupin, bending over Snape and
checking his pulse. "You were just a little - overenthusiastic. Still out
cold. Er - perhaps it will be best if we don't revive him until we're safety
back in the castle. We can take him like this..." He
muttered, "Mobilicorpus." As though invisible strings were tied to
Snape's wrists, neck, and knees, he was pulled into a standing position, head
still lolling unpleasantly, like a grotesque puppet. He hung a few inches above
the ground, his limp feet dangling. Lupin picked up the Invisibility Cloak and
tucked it safely into his pocket. "And
two of us should be chained to this," said Black, nudging Pettigrew with
his toe. "Just to make sure." "I'll
do it," said Lupin. "And
me," said Ron savagely, limping forward. Black
conjured heavy manacles from thin air; soon Pettigrew was upright again, left
arm chained to Lupin's right, right arm to Ron's left. Ron's face was set. He
seemed to have taken Scabbers's true identity as a personal insult. Crookshanks
leapt lightly off the bed and led the way out of the room, his bottlebrush tail
held jauntily high. CHAPTER TWENTY THE DEMENTOR'S KISSHarry
had never been part of a stranger group. Crookshanks led the way down the
stairs; Lupin, Pettigrew, and Ron went next, looking like entrants in a
six-legged race. Next came Professor Snape, drifting creepily along, his toes
hitting each stair as they descended, held up by his own wand, which was being
pointed at him by Sirius. Harry and Hermione brought up the rear. Getting
back into the tunnel was difficult. Lupin, Pettigrew, and Ron had to turn
sideways to manage it; Lupin still had Pettigrew covered with his wand. Harry
could see them edging awkwardly along the tunnel in single file. Crookshanks
was still in the lead. Harry went right after Black, who was still making Snape
drift along ahead of them; he kept bumping his lolling head on the low ceiling.
Harry had the impression Black was making no effort to prevent this. "You
know what this means?" Black said abruptly to Harry as they made their
slow progress along the tunnel. "Turning Pettigrew in?" "You're
free," said Harry. "Yes..."
said Black. "But I'm also - I don't know if anyone ever told you - I'm
your godfather." "Yeah,
I knew that," said Harry. "Well...
your parents appointed me your guardian," said Black stiffly. "If
anything happened to them..." Harry
waited. Did Black mean what he thought he meant? "I'll
understand, of course, if you want to stay with your aunt and uncle," said
Black. "But... well... think about it. Once my name's cleared... if you wanted
a... a different home..." Some
sort of explosion took place in the pit of Harry's stomach. "What
- live with you?" he said, accidentally cracking his head on a bit of rock
protruding from the ceiling. "Leave the Dursleys?" "Of
course, I thought you wouldn't want to," said Black quickly. "I
understand, I just thought I'd -" "Are
you insane?" said Harry, his voice easily as croaky as Black's. "Of
course I want to leave the Dursleys! Have you got a house? When can I move
in?" Black
turned right around to look at him; Snape's head was scraping the ceiling but
Black didn't seem to care. "You
want to?" he said. "You mean it?" "Yeah,
I mean it!" said Harry. Black's
gaunt face broke into the first true smile Harry had seen upon it. The
difference it made was startling, as though a person ten years younger were
shining through the starved mask; for a moment, he was recognizable as the man
who had laughed at Harry's parents' wedding. They
did not speak again until they had reached the end of the tunnel. Crookshanks
darted up first; he had evidently pressed his paw to the knot on the trunk,
because Lupin, Pettigrew, and Ron clambered upward without any sound of
savaging branches. Black
saw Snape up through the hole, then stood back for Harry and Hermione to pass.
At last, all of them were out. The
grounds were very dark now; the only light came from the distant windows of the
castle. Without a word, they set off. Pettigrew was still wheezing and
occasionally whimpering. Harry's mind was buzzing. He was going to leave the
Dursleys. He was going to live with Sirius Black, his parents' best friend... He
felt dazed... What would happen when he told the Dursleys he was going to live
with the convict they'd seen on television...! "One
wrong move, Peter," said Lupin threateningly ahead. His wand was still
pointed sideways at Pettigrew's chest. Silently
they tramped through the grounds, the castle lights growing slowly larger.
Snape was still drifting weirdly ahead of Black, his chin bumping on his chest.
And then - A
cloud shifted. There were suddenly dim shadows on the ground. Their party was
bathed in moonlight. Snape
collided with Lupin, Pettigrew, and Ron, who had stopped abruptly. Black froze.
He flung out one arm to make Harry and Hermione stop. Harry
could see Lupin's silhouette. He had gone rigid. Then his limbs began to shake. "Oh,
my -" Hermione gasped. "He didn't take his potion tonight! He's not
safe!" "Run,"
Black whispered. "Run. Now." But
Harry couldn't run. Ron was chained to Pettigrew and Lupin. He leapt forward
but Black caught him around the chest and threw him back. "Leave
it to me - RUN!" There
was a terrible snarling noise. Lupin's head was lengthening. So was his body.
His shoulders were hunching. Hair was sprouting visibly on his face and hands,
which were curling into clawed paws. Crookshanks's hair was on end again; he
was backing away - As
the werewolf reared, snapping its long jaws, Sirius disappeared from Harry's
side. He had transformed. The enormous, bearlike dog bounded forward. As the
werewolf wrenched itself free of the manacle binding it, the dog seized it
about the neck and pulled it backward, away from Ron and Pettigrew. They were
locked, jaw to jaw, claws ripping at each other. Harry
stood, transfixed by the sight, too intent upon the battle to notice anything
else. It was Hermione's scream that alerted him - Pettigrew
had dived for Lupin's dropped wand. Ron, unsteady on his bandaged leg, fell.
There was a bang, a burst of light - and Ron lay motionless on the ground.
Another bang - Crookshanks flew into the air and back to the earth in a heap. "Expelliarmus."
Harry yelled, pointing his own wand at Pettigrew; Lupin's wand flew high into
the air and out of sight. "Stay where you are!" Harry shouted,
running forward. Too
late. Pettigrew had transformed. Harry saw his bald tail whip through the
manacle on Ron's outstretched arm and heard a scurrying through the grass. There
was a howl and a rumbling growl; Harry turned to see the werewolf taking
flight; it was galloping into the forest - "Sirius,
he's gone, Pettigrew transformed!" Harry yelled. Black
was bleeding; there were gashes across his muzzle and back, but at Harry's
words he scrambled up again, and in an instant, the sound of his paws faded to
silence as he pounded away across the grounds. Harry
and Hermione dashed over to Ron. "What
did he do to him?" Hermione whispered. Ron's eyes were only half-closed,
his mouth hung open; he was definitely alive, they could hear him breathing,
but he didn't seem to recognize them. "I
don't know..." Harry
looked desperately around. Black and Lupin both gone... they had no one but Snape
for company, still hanging, unconscious, in midair. "We'd
better get them up to the castle and tell someone," said Harry, pushing
his hair out of his eyes, trying to think straight. "Come -" But
then, from beyond the range of their vision, they heard a yelping, a whining: a
dog in pain... "Sirius,"
Harry muttered, staring into the darkness. He
had a moment's indecision, but there was nothing they could do for Ron at the
moment, and by the sound of it, Black was in trouble - Harry
set off at a run, Hermione right behind him. The yelping seemed to be coming
from the ground near the edge of the lake. They pelted toward it, and Harry,
running flat out, felt the cold without realizing what it must mean - The
yelping stopped abruptly. As they reached the lakeshore, they saw why - Sirius
had turned back into a man. He was crouched on all fours, his hands over his
head. "Nooo,"
he moaned. "Nooo... please..." And
then Harry saw them. Dementors, at least a hundred of them, gliding in a black
mass around the lake toward them. He spun around, the familiar, icy cold
penetrating his insides, fog starting to obscure his vision; more were
appearing out of the darkness on every side; they were encircling them... "Hermione,
think of something happy!" Harry yelled, raising his wand, blinking
furiously to try and clear his vision, shaking his head to rid it of the faint
screaming that had started inside it - I'm
going to live with my godfather. I'm leaving the Dursleys. He
forced himself to think of Black, and only Black, and began to chant:
"Expecto patronum! Expecto patronum!" Black
gave a shudder, rolled over, and lay motionless on the ground, pale as death. He'll
be all right. I'm going to go and live with him. "Expecto
patronum! Hermione, help me! Expecto patronum!" "Expecto
-" Hermione whispered, "expecto - expecto -" But
she couldn't do it. The Dementors were closing in, barely ten feet from them.
They formed a solid wall around Harry and Hermione, and were getting closer... "EXPECTO
PATRONUM!" Harry yelled, trying to blot the screaming from his ears.
"EXPECTO PATRONUM!" A
thin wisp of silver escaped his wand and hovered like mist before him. At the
same moment, Harry felt Hermione collapse next to him. He was alone... completely
alone... "Expecto
- expecto patronum -" Harry
felt his knees hit the cold grass. Fog was clouding his eyes. With a huge
effort, he fought to remember - Sirius was innocent - innocent - We'll be okay
- I'm going to live with him - "Expecto
patronum!" he gasped. By
the feeble light of his formless Patronus, he saw a Dementor halt, very close
to him. It couldn't walk through the cloud of silver mist Harry had conjured. A
dead, slimy hand slid out from under the cloak. It made a gesture as though to
sweep the Patronus aside. "No
- no -" Harry gasped. "He's innocent... expecto expecto patronum
-" He
could feet them watching him, hear their rattling breath like an evil wind
around him. The nearest Dementor seemed to be considering him. Then it raised
both its rotting hands - and lowered its hood. Where
there should have been eyes, there was only thin, gray scabbed skin, stretched
blankly over empty sockets. But there was a mouth... a gaping, shapeless hole,
sucking the air with the sound of a death rattle. A
paralyzing terror filled Harry so that he couldn't move or speak. His Patronus
flickered and died. White
fog was blinding him. He had to fight... expecto patronum... he couldn't see... and
in the distance, he heard the familiar screaming... expecto patronum... he groped
in the mist for Sirius, and found his arm... they weren't going to take him... But a
pair of strong, clammy hands suddenly attached themselves around Harry's neck.
They were forcing his face upward... He could feel its breath... It was going to
get rid of him first... He could feel its putrid breath... His mother was screaming
in his ears... She was going to be the last thing he ever heard - And
then, through the fog that was drowning him, he thought he saw a silvery light
growing brighter and brighter... He felt himself fall forward onto the grass...
Facedown, too weak to move, sick and shaking, Harry opened his eyes. The
Dementor must have released him. The blinding light was illuminating the grass
around him...The screaming had stopped, the cold was ebbing away... Something
was driving the Dementors back... It was circling around him and Black and
Hermione... They were leaving... The
air was warm again... With
every ounce of strength he could muster, Harry raised his head a few inches and
saw an animal amid the light, galloping away across the lake... Eyes blurred with
sweat, Harry tried to make out what it was... It was as bright as a unicorn...
Fighting to stay conscious, Harry watched it can'ter to a halt as it reached
the opposite shore. For a moment, Harry saw, by its brightness, somebody
welcoming it back... raising his hand to pat it... someone who looked strangely
familiar... but it couldn't be... Harry
didn't understand. He couldn't think anymore. He felt the last of his strength
leave him, and his head hit the ground as he fainted. CHAPTER TWENTY-ONE HERMIONE'S SECRET"Shocking
business... shocking... miracle none of them died... never heard the like... by
thunder, it was lucky you were there, Snape..." "Thank
you, Minister." "Order
of Merlin, Second Class, I'd say. First Class, if I can wangle it!" "Thank
you very much indeed, Minister." "Nasty
cut you've got there... Black's work, I suppose?" "As
a matter of fact, it was Potter, Weasley, and Granger, Minister..." "No!" "Black
had bewitched them, I saw it immediately. A Confundus Charm, to judge by their
behavior. They seemed to think there was a possibility he was innocent. They
weren't responsible for their actions. On the other hand, their interference
might have permitted Black to escape... They obviously thought they were going to
catch Black single-handed. They've got away with a great deal before now... I'm
afraid it's given them a rather high opinion of themselves... and of course
Potter has always been allowed an extraordinary amount of license by the
headmaster -" "Ah,
well, Snape... Harry Potter, you know... we've all got a bit of a blind spot where
he's concerned." "And
yet - is it good for him to be given so much special treatment? Personally, I
try and treat him like any other student. And any other student would be
suspended - at the very least - for leading his friends into such danger. Consider,
Minister - against all school rules - after all the precautions put in place
for his protection - out-of-bounds, at night, consorting with a werewolf and a
murderer - and I have reason to believe he has been visiting Hogsmeade
illegally too -" "Well,
well... we shall see, Snape, we shall see... The boy has undoubtedly been
foolish..." Harry
lay listening with his eyes tight shut. He felt very groggy. The words he was
hearing seemed to be traveling very slowly from his ears to his brain, so that
it was difficult to understand... His limbs felt like lead; his eyelids too
heavy to lift... He wanted to lie here, on this comfortable bed, forever... "What
amazes me most is the behavior of the Dementors... you've really no idea what
made them retreat, Snape?" "No,
Minister... by the time I had come 'round they were heading back to their
positions at the entrances..." "Extraordinary.
And yet Black, and Harry, and the girl -" "All
unconscious by the time I reached them. I bound and gagged Black, naturally,
conjured stretchers, and brought them all straight back to the castle." There
was a pause. Harry's brain seemed to be moving a little faster, and as it did,
a gnawing sensation grew in the pit of his stomach... He
opened his eyes. Everything
was slightly blurred. Somebody had removed his glasses. He was lying in the
dark hospital wing. At the very end of the ward, he could make out Madam
Pomfrey with her back to him, bending over a bed. Harry squinted. Ron's red
hair was visible beneath Madam Pomfrey's arm. Harry
moved his head over on the pillow. In the bed to his right lay Hermione.
Moonlight was falling across her bed. Her eyes were open too. She looked
petrified, and when she saw that Harry was awake, pressed a finger to her lips,
then pointed to the hospital wing door. It was ajar, and the voices of
Cornelius Fudge and Snape were coming through it from the corridor outside. Madam
Pomfrey now came walking briskly up the dark ward to Harry's bed. He turned to
took at her. She was carrying the largest block of chocolate he had ever seen
in his life. It looked like a small boulder. "Ah,
you're awake!" she said briskly. She placed the chocolate on Harry's
bedside table and began breaking it apart with a small hammer. "How's
Ron?" said Harry and Hermione together. "He'll
live," said Madam Pomfrey grimly. "As for you two, you'll be staying
here until I'm satisfied you're - Potter, what do you think you're doing?" Harry
was sitting up, putting his glasses back on, and picking up his wand. "I
need to see the headmaster," he said. "Potter,"
said Madam Pomfrey soothingly, "it's all right. They've got Black. He's
locked away upstairs. The Dementors will be performing the kiss any moment now
-" "WHAT?" Harry
jumped up out of bed; Hermione had done the same. But his shout had been heard
in the corridor outside; next second, Cornelius Fudge and Snape had entered the
ward. "Harry,
Harry, what's this?" said Fudge, looking agitated. "You should be in
bed - has he had any chocolate?" he asked Madam Pomfrey anxiously. "Minister,
listen!" Harry said. "Sirius Black's innocent! Peter Pettigrew faked
his own death! We saw him tonight! You can't let the Dementors do that thing to
Sirius, he's -" But
Fudge was shaking his head with a small smile on his face. "Harry,
Harry, you're very confused, you've been through a dreadful ordeal, lie back
down, now, we've got everything under control..." "YOU
HAVEN'T!" Harry yelled. "YOU'VE GOT THE WRONG MAN!" "Minister,
listen, please," Hermione said; she had hurried to Harry's side and was gazing
imploringly into Fudge's face. "I saw him too. It was Ron's rat, he's an
Animagus, Pettigrew, I mean, and -" "You
see, Minister?" said Snape. "Confunded, both of them... Black's done a
very good job on them..." "WE'RE
NOT CONFUNDED!" Harry roared. "Minister!
Professor!" said Madam Pomfrey angrily. "I must insist that you
leave. Potter is my patient, and he should not be distressed!" "I'm
not distressed, I'm trying to tell them what happened!" Harry said
furiously. "If they'd just listen -" But
Madam Pomfrey suddenly stuffed a large chunk of chocolate into Harry's mouth;
he choked, and she seized the opportunity to force him back onto the bed. "Now,
please, Minister, these children need care. Please leave." The
door opened again. It was Dumbledore. Harry swallowed his mouthful of chocolate
with great difficulty and got up again. "Professor
Dumbledore, Sirius Black -" "For
heaven's sake!" said Madam Pomfrey hysterically. "Is this a hospital
wing or not? Headmaster, I must insist -" "My
apologies, Poppy, but I need a word with Mr. Potter and Miss Granger,"
said Dumbledore calmly. "I have just been talking to Sirius Black -" "I
suppose he's told you the same fairy tale he's planted in Potter's mind?"
spat Snape. "Something about a rat, and Pettigrew being alive -" "That,
indeed, is Black's story," said Dumbledore, surveying Snape closely
through his half-moon spectacles. "And
does my evidence count for nothing?" snarled Snape. "Peter Pettigrew
was not in the Shrieking Shack, nor did I see any sign of him on the
grounds." "That
was because you were knocked out, Professor!" said Hermione earnestly.
"You didn't arrive in time to hear." "Miss
Granger, HOLD YOUR TONGUE!" "Now,
Snape," said Fudge, startled, "the young lady is disturbed in her
mind, we must make allowances -" "I
would like to speak to Harry and Hermione alone," said Dumbledore
abruptly. "Cornelius, Severus, Poppy - please leave us." "Headmaster!"
sputtered Madam Pomfrey. "They need treatment, they need rest -" "This
cannot wait," said Dumbledore. "I must insist." Madam
Pomfrey pursed her lips and strode away into her office at the end of the ward,
slamming the door behind her. Fudge consulted the large gold pocket watch
dangling from his waistcoat. "The
Dementors should have arrived by now," he said. "I'll go and meet
them. Dumbledore, I'll see you upstairs." He
crossed to the door and held it open for Snape, but Snape hadn't moved. "You
surely don't believe a word of Black's story?" Snape whispered, his eyes
fixed on Dumbledore's face. "I
wish to speak to Harry and Hermione alone," Dumbledore repeated. Snape
took a step toward Dumbledore. "Sirius
Black showed he was capable of murder at the age of sixteen," he breathed.
"You haven't forgotten that, Headmaster? You haven't forgotten that he
once tried to kill me?" "My
memory is as good as it ever was, Severus," said Dumbledore quietly. Snape
turned on his heel and marched through the door Fudge was still holding. It
closed behind them, and Dumbledore turned to Harry and Hermione. They both
burst into speech at the same time. "Professor,
Black's telling the truth - we saw Pettigrew - he escaped when Professor Lupin
turned into a werewolf -" "-
he's a rat -" "-
Pettigrew's front paw, I mean, finger, he cut it off -" "-
Pettigrew attacked Ron, it wasn't Sirius -" But
Dumbledore held up his hand to stem the flood of explanations. "It
is your turn to listen, and I beg you will not interrupt me, because there is
very little time," he said quietly. "There is not a shred of proof to
support Black's story, except your word - and the word of two thirteen-year-old
wizards will not convince anybody. A street full of eyewitnesses swore they saw
Sirius murder Pettigrew. I myself gave evidence to the Ministry that Sirius had
been the Potters' Secret-Keeper." "Professor
Lupin can tell you -" Harry said, unable to stop himself "Professor
Lupin is currently deep in the forest, unable to tell anyone anything. By the
time he is human again, it will be too late, Sirius will be worse than dead. I
might add that werewolves are so mistrusted by most of our kind that his
support will count for very little and the fact that he and Sirius are old
friends -" "But
-" "Listen
to me, Harry. It is too late, you understand me? You must see that Professor
Snape's version of events is far more convincing than yours." "He
hates Sirius," Hermione said desperately. "All because of some stupid
trick Sirius played on him -" "Sirius
has not acted like an innocent man. The attack on the Fat Lady - entering
Gryffindor Tower with a knife - without Pettigrew, alive or dead, we have no
chance of overturning Sirius's sentence." "But
you believe us." "Yes,
I do," said Dumbledore quietly. "But I have no power to make other
men see the truth, or to overrule the Minister of Magic..." Harry
stared up into the grave face and felt as though the ground beneath him were
falling sharply away. He had grown used to the idea that Dumbledore could solve
anything. He had expected Dumbledore to pull some amazing solution out of the
air. But no... their last hope was gone. "What
we need," said Dumbledore slowly, and his light blue eyes moved from Harry
to Hermione, "is more time." "But
-" Hermione began. And then her eyes became very round. "OH!" "Now,
pay attention," said Dumbledore, speaking very low, and very clearly.
"Sirius is locked in Professor Flitwick's office on the seventh floor.
Thirteenth window from the right of the West Tower. If all goes well, you will
be able to save more than one innocent life tonight. But remember this, both of
you: you must not be seen. Miss Granger, you know the law - you know what is at
stake...You - must - not - be -seen." Harry
didn't have a clue what was going on. Dumbledore had turned on his heel and
looked back as he reached the door. "I
am going to lock you in. It is -" he consulted his watch, "five
minutes to midnight. Miss Granger, three turns should do it. Good luck." "Good
luck?" Harry repeated as the door closed behind Dumbledore. "Three
turns? What's he talking about? What are we supposed to do?" But
Hermione was fumbling with the neck of her robes, pulling from beneath them a
very long, very fine gold chain. "Harry,
come here," she said urgently. "Quick!" Harry
moved toward her, completely bewildered. She was holding the chain out. He saw
a tiny, sparkling hourglass hanging from it. "Here
-" She
had thrown the chain around his neck too. "Ready?"
she said breathlessly. "What
are we doing?" Harry said, completely lost. Hermione
turned the hourglass over three times. The
dark ward dissolved. Harry had the sensation that he was flying very fast,
backward. A blur of colors and shapes rushed past him, his ears were pounding,
he tried to yell but couldn't hear his own voice - And
then he felt solid ground beneath his feet, and everything came into focus
again - He
was standing next to Hermione in the deserted entrance hall and a stream of
golden sunlight was falling across the paved floor from the open front doors.
He looked wildly around at Hermione, the chain of the hourglass cutting into
his neck. "Hermione,
what -?" "In
here!" Hermione seized Harry's arm and dragged him across the hall to the
door of a broom closet; she opened it, pushed him inside among the buckets and
mops, then slammed the door behind them. "What
- how - Hermione, what happened?" "We've
gone back in time," Hermione whispered, lifting the chain off Harry's neck
in the darkness. "Three hours back..." Harry
found his own leg and gave it a very hard pinch. It hurt a lot, which seemed to
rule out the possibility that he was having a very bizarre dream. "But
-" "Shh!
Listen! Someone's coming! I think - I think it might be us!' Hermione had her
ear pressed against the cupboard door. "Footsteps
across the hall... yes, I think it's us going down to Hagrid's!" "Are
you telling me," Harry whispered, "that we're here in this cupboard
and we're out there too?" "Yes,"
said Hermione, her ear still glued to the cupboard door. "I'm sure it's
us. It doesn't sound like more than three people... and we're walking slowly
because we're under the Invisibility Cloak - " She
broke off, still listening intently. "We've
gone down the front steps..." Hermione
sat down on an upturned bucket, looking desperately anxious, but Harry wanted a
few questions answered. "Where
did you get that hourglass thing?" "It's
called a Time-Turner," Hermione whispered, "and I got it from
Professor McGonagall on our first day back. I've been using it all year to get
to all my lessons. Professor McGonagall made me swear I wouldn't tell anyone.
She had to write all sorts of letters to the Ministry of Magic so I could have
one. She had to tell them that I was a model student, and that I'd never, ever
use it for anything except my studies... I've been turning it back so I could do
hours over again, that's how I've been doing several lessons at once, see? But... "Harry,
I don't understand what Dumbledore wants us to do. Why did he tell us to go
back three hours? How's that going to help Sirius?" Harry
stared at her shadowy face. "There
must be something that happened around now he wants us to change," he said
slowly. "What happened? We were walking down to Hagrid's three hours
ago..." "This
is three hours ago, and we are walking down to Hagrid's," said Hermione.
"We just heard ourselves leaving..." Harry
frowned; he felt as though he were screwing up his whole brain in
concentration. "Dumbledore
just said - just said we could save more than one innocent life..." And then
it hit him. "Hermione, we're going to save Buckbeak!" "But
- how will that help Sirius?" "Dumbledore
said - he just told us where the window is - the window of Flitwick's office!
Where they've got Sirius locked up! We've got to fly Buckbeak up to the window
and rescue Sirius! Sirius can escape on Buckbeak - they can escape
together!" From
what Harry could see of Hermione's face, she looked terrified. "If
we manage that without being seen, it'll be a miracle!" "Well,
we've got to try, haven't we?" said Harry. He stood up and pressed his ear
against the door. "Doesn't sound like anyone's there... Come on, let's
go." Harry
pushed open the closet door. The entrance hall was deserted. As quietly and
quickly as they could, they darted out of the closet and down the stone steps.
The shadows were already lengthening, the tops of the trees in the Forbidden
Forest gilded once more with gold. "If
anyone's looking out of the window -" Hermione squeaked, looking up at the
castle behind them. "We'll
run for it," said Harry determinedly. "Straight into the forest, all
right? We'll have to hide behind a tree or something and keep a lookout -" "Okay,
but we'll go around by the greenhouses!' said Hermione breathlessly. "We
need to keep out of sight of Hagrid's front door, or we'll see us! We must be
nearly at Hagrid's by now!" Still
working out what she meant, Harry set off at a sprint, Hermione behind him.
They tore across the vegetable gardens to the greenhouses, paused for a moment
behind them, then set off again, fast as they could, skirting around the
Whomping Willow, tearing toward the shelter of the forest... Safe
in the shadows of the trees, Harry turned around; seconds later, Hermione
arrived beside him, panting. "Right,"
she gasped. "We need to sneak over to Hagrid's... Keep out of sight,
Harry..." They
made their way silently through the trees, keeping to the very edge of the
forest. Then, as they glimpsed the front of Hagrid's house, they heard a knock
upon his door. They moved quickly behind a wide oak trunk and peered out from
either side. Hagrid had appeared in his doorway, shaking and white, looking around
to see who had knocked. And Harry heard his own voice. "It's
us. We're wearing the Invisibility Cloak. Let us in and we can take it
off." "Yeh
shouldn've come!" Hagrid whispered. He stood back, then shut the door
quickly. "This
is the weirdest thing we've ever done," Harry said fervently. "Let's
move along a bit," Hermione whispered. "We need to get nearer to
Buckbeak!" They
crept through the trees until they saw the nervous Hippogriff, tethered to the
fence around Hagrid's pumpkin patch. "Now?"
Harry whispered. "No!"
said Hermione. "If we steal him now, those Committee people will think
Hagrid set him free! We've got to wait until they've seen he's tied
outside!" "That's
going to give us about sixty seconds," said Harry. This was starting to
seem impossible. At
that moment, there was a crash of breaking china from inside Hagrid's cabin. "That's
Hagrid breaking the milk jug," Hermione whispered. "I'm going to find
Scabbers in a moment -" Sure
enough, a few minutes later, they heard Hermione's shriek of surprise. "Hermione,"
said Harry suddenly, "what if we - we just run in there and grab Pettigrew
-" "No!"
said Hermione in a terrified whisper. "Don't you understand? We're
breaking one of the most important wizarding laws! Nobody's supposed to change
time, nobody! You heard Dumbledore, if we're seen -" "We'd
only be seen by ourselves and Hagrid!" "Harry,
what do you think you'd do if you saw yourself bursting into Hagrid's
house?" said Hermione. "I'd
- I'd think I'd gone mad," said Harry, "or I'd think there was some
Dark Magic going on -" "Exactly!
You wouldn't understand, you might even attack yourself! Don't you see?
Professor McGonagall told me what awful things have happened when wizards have
meddled with time... Loads of them ended up killing their past or future selves
by mistake!" "Okay!"
said Harry. "It was just an idea, I just thought -" But
Hermione nudged him and pointed toward the castle. Harry moved his head a few
inches to get a clear view of the distant front doors. Dumbledore, Fudge, the
old Committee member, and Macnair the executioner were coming down the steps. "We're
about to come out!" Hermione breathed. And
sure enough, moments later, Hagrid's back door opened, and Harry saw himself,
Ron, and Hermione walking out of it with Hagrid. It was, without a doubt, the
strangest sensation of his life, standing behind the tree, and watching himself
in the pumpkin patch. "It's
Okay, Beaky, it's okay..." Hagrid said to Buckbeak. Then he turned to Harry,
Ron, and Hermione. "Go on. Get goin'." "Hagrid,
we can't -" "We'll
tell them what really happened -" "They
can't kill him -" "Go!
It's bad enough without you lot in trouble an' all!" Harry
watched the Hermione in the pumpkin patch throw the Invisibility Cloak over him
and Ron. "Go
quick. Don' listen..." There
was a knock on Hagrid's front door. The execution party had arrived. Hagrid
turned, around and headed back into his cabin, leaving the back door ajar.
Harry watched the grass flatten in patches all around the cabin and heard three
pairs of feet retreating. He, Ron, and Hermione had gone... but the Harry and
Hermione hidden in the trees could now hear what was happening inside the cabin
through the back door. "Where
is the beast?" came the cold voice of Macnair. "Out
- outside," Hagrid croaked. Harry
pulled his head out of sight as Macnair's face appeared at Hagrid's window,
staring out at Buckbeak. Then they heard Fudge. "We
- er - have to read you the official notice of execution, Hagrid. I'll make it
quick. And then you and Macnair need to sign it. Macnair, You're supposed to
listen too, that's procedure -" Macnair's
face vanished from the window. It was now or never. "Wait
here," Harry whispered to Hermione. "I'll do it." As
Fudge's voice started again, Harry darted out from behind his tree, vaulted the
fence into the pumpkin patch, and approached Buckbeak. "It
is the decision of the Committee for the Disposal of Dangerous Creatures that
the Hippogriff Buckbeak, hereafter called the condemned, shall he executed on
the sixth of June at sundown -" Careful
not to blink, Harry stared up into Buckbeak's fierce orange eyes once more and
bowed. Buckbeak sank to his scaly knees and then stood up again. Harry began to
fumble with the knot of rope tying Buckbeak to the fence. "...
sentenced to execution by beheading, to be carried out by the Committee's
appointed executioner, Walden Macnair..." "Come
on, Buckbeak," Harry murmured, "come on, we're going to help you.
Quietly... quietly..." "...
as witnessed below. Hagrid, you sign here..." Harry
threw all his weight onto the rope, but Buckbeak had dug in his front feet. "Well,
let's get this over with," said the reedy voice of the Committee member
from inside Hagrid's cabin. "Hagrid, perhaps it will be better if you stay
inside -" "No,
I - I wan' ter be with him... I don' wan' him ter be alone -" Footsteps
echoed from within the cabin. "Buckbeak,
move!" Harry hissed. Harry
tugged harder on the rope around Buckbeak's neck. The Hippogriff began to walk,
rustling its wings irritably. They were still ten feet away from the forest, in
plain view of Hagrid's back door. "One moment, please, Macnair," came
Dumbledore's voice. "You need to sign too." The footsteps stopped.
Harry heaved on the rope. Buckbeak snapped his beak and walked a little faster. Hermione's
white face was sticking out from behind a tree. "Harry,
hurry!" she mouthed. Harry
could still hear Dumbledore's voice talking from within the cabin. He gave the
rope another wrench. Buckbeak broke into a grudging trot. They had reached the trees... "Quick!
Quick!" Hermione moaned, darting out from behind her tree, seizing the
rope too and adding her weight to make Buckbeak move faster. Harry looked over
his shoulder; they were now blocked from sight; they couldn't see Hagrid's
garden at all. "Stop!"
he whispered to Hermione. "They might hear us." Hagrid's
back door had opened with a bang. Harry, Hermione, and Buckbeak stood quite
still; even the Hippogriff seemed to be listening intently. Silence... then - "Where
is it?" said the reedy voice of the Committee member. "Where is the
beast?" "It
was tied here!" said the executioner furiously. "I saw it! Just
here!" "How
extraordinary," said Dumbledore. There was a note of amusement in his
voice. "Beaky!"
said Hagrid huskily. There
was a swishing noise, and the thud of an axe. The executioner seemed to have
swung it into the fence in anger. And then came the howling, and this time they
could hear Hagrid's words through his sobs. "Gone!
Gone! Bless his little beak, he's gone! Musta pulled himself free! Beaky, yeh
clever boy!" Buckbeak
started to strain against the rope, trying to get back to Hagrid. Harry and
Hermione tightened their grip and dug their heels into the forest floor to stop
him. "Someone
untied him!" the executioner was snarling. "We should search the
grounds, the forest." "Macnair,
if Buckbeak has indeed been stolen, do you really think the thief will have led
him away on foot?" said Dumbledore, still sounding amused. "Search
the skies, if you will... Hagrid, I could do with a cup of tea. Or a large
brandy." "O'
- o' course, Professor," said Hagrid, who sounded weak with happiness.
"Come in, come in..." Harry
and Hermione listened closely. They heard footsteps, the soft cursing of the
executioner, the snap of the door, and then silence once more. "Now
what?" whispered Harry, looking around. "We'll
have to hide in here," said Hermione, who looked very shaken. "We
need to wait until they've gone back to the castle. Then we wait until it's
safe to fly Buckbeak up to Sirius's window. He won't be there for another
couple of hours... Oh, this is going to be difficult..." She
looked nervously over her shoulder into the depths of the forest. The sun was
setting now. "We're
going to have to move," said Harry, thinking hard. "We've got to be
able to see the Whomping Willow, or we won't know what's going on." "Okay,"
said Hermione, getting a firmer grip on Buckbeak's rope. "But we've got to
keep out of sight, Harry, remember..." They
moved around the edge of the forest, darkness falling thickly around them,
until they were hidden behind a clump of trees through which they could make
out the Willow. "There's
Ron!" said Harry suddenly. A
dark figure was sprinting across the lawn and its shout echoed through the
still night air. "Get
away from him - get away - Scabbers, come here -" And
then they saw two more figures materialize out of nowhere. Harry watched
himself and Hermione chasing after Ron. Then he saw Ron dive. "Gotcha!
Get off, you stinking cat -" "There's
Sirius!" said Harry. The great shape of the dog had bounded out from the
roots of the Willow. They saw him bowl Harry over, then seize on... "Looks
even worse from here, doesn't it?" said Harry, watching the dog pulling
Ron into the roots. "Ouch - look, I just got walloped by the tree - and so
did you - this is weird-" The
Whomping Willow was creaking and lashing out with its lower branches; they
could see themselves darting here and there, trying to reach the trunk. And
then the tree froze. "That
was Crookshanks pressing the knot," said Hermione. "And
there we go..." Harry muttered. "We're in." The
moment they disappeared, the tree began to move again. Seconds later, they
heard footsteps quite close by. Dumbledore, Macnair, Fudge, and the old
Committee member were making their way up to the castle. "Right
after we'd gone down into the passage!" said Hermione. "If only
Dumbledore had come with us..." "Macnair
and Fudge would've come too," said Harry bitterly. "I bet you
anything Fudge would've told Macnair to murder Sirius on the spot..." They
watched the four men climb the castle steps and disappear from view. For a few
minutes the scene was deserted. Then - "Here
comes Lupin!" said Harry as they saw another figure sprinting down the
stone steps and halting toward the Willow. Harry looked up at the sky. Clouds
were obscuring the moon completely. They
watched Lupin seize a broken branch from the ground and prod the knot on the
trunk. The tree stopped fighting, and Lupin, too, disappeared into the gap in
its roots. "If
he'd only grabbed the cloak," said Harry. "It's just lying
there..." He
turned to Hermione. "If
I just dashed out now and grabbed it, Snape'd never be able to get it and
-" "Harry,
we mustn't be seen!" "How
can you stand this?" he asked Hermione fiercely. "Just standing here
and watching it happen?" He hesitated. "I'm going to grab the
cloak!" "Harry,
no!" Hermione
seized the back of Harry's robes not a moment too soon. Just then, they heard a
burst of song. It was Hagrid, making his way up to the castle, singing at the
top of his voice, and weaving slightly as he walked. A large bottle was
swinging from his hands. "See?"
Hermione whispered. "See what would have happened? We've got to keep out
of sight! No, Buckbeak!" The
Hippogriff was making frantic attempts to get to Hagrid again; Harry seized his
rope too, straining to hold Buckbeak back. They watched Hagrid meander tipsily
up to the castle. He was gone. Buckbeak stopped fighting to get away. His head
drooped sadly. Barely
two minutes later, the castle doors flew open yet again, and Snape came
charging out of them, running toward the Willow. Harry's
fists clenched as they watched Snape skid to a halt next to the tree, looking
around. He grabbed the cloak and held it up. "Get
your filthy hands off it," Harry snarled under his breath. "Shh!" Snape
seized the branch Lupin had used to freeze the tree, prodded the knot, and
vanished from view as he put on the cloak. "So
that's it," said Hermione quietly. "We're all down there... and now
we've just got to wait until we come back up again..." She
took the end of Buckbeak's rope and tied it securely around the nearest tree,
then sat down on the dry ground, arms around her knees. "Harry,
there's something I don't understand... Why didn't the Dementors get Sirius? I
remember them coming, and then I think I passed out... there were so many of
them..." Harry
sat down too. He explained what he'd seen; how, as the nearest Dementor had
lowered its mouth to Harry's, a large silver something had come galloping
across the lake and forced the Dementors to retreat. Hermione's
mouth was slightly open by the time Harry had finished. "But
what was it?" "There's
only one thing it could have been, to make the Dementors go," said Harry.
"A real Patronus. A powerful one." "But
who conjured it?" Harry
didn't say anything. He was thinking back to the person he'd seen on the other
bank of the lake. He knew who he thought it had been... but how could it have
been? "Didn't
you see what they looked like?" said Hermione eagerly. "Was it one of
the teachers?" "No,"
said Harry. "He wasn't a teacher." "But
it must have been a really powerful wizard, to drive all those Dementors away...
If the Patronus was shining so brightly, didn't it light him up? Couldn't you
see -?" "Yeah,
I saw him," said Harry slowly. "But... maybe I imagined it... I wasn't
thinking straight... I passed out right afterward..." "Who
did you think it was?" "I
think -" Harry swallowed, knowing how strange this was going to sound.
"I think it was my dad." Harry
glanced up at Hermione and saw that her mouth was fully open now. She was
gazing at him with a mixture of alarm and pity. "Harry,
your dad's - well - dead," she said quietly. "I
know that," said Harry quickly. "You
think you saw his ghost?" "I
don't know... no... he looked solid..." "But
then -" "Maybe
I was seeing things," said Harry. "But... from what I could see... it
looked like him... I've got photos of him..." Hermione
was still looking at him as though worried about his sanity. "I know it
sounds crazy," said Harry flatly. He turned to took at Buckbeak, who was
digging his beak into the ground, apparently searching for worms. But he wasn't
really watching Buckbeak. He
was thinking about his father and about his father's three oldest friends...
Moony, Wormtail, Padfoot, and Prongs... Had all four of them been out on the
grounds tonight? Wormtail had reappeared this evening when everyone had thought
he was dead... Was it so impossible his father had done the same? Had he been
seeing things across the take? The figure had been too far away to see
distinctly... yet he had felt sure, for a moment, before he'd lost
consciousness... The
leaves overhead rustled faintly in the breeze. The moon drifted in and out of
sight behind the shifting clouds. Hermione sat with her face turned toward the
Willow, waiting. And
then, at last, after over an hour... "Here
we come!" Hermione whispered. She
and Harry got to their feet. Buckbeak raised his head. They saw Lupin, Ron, and
Pettigrew clambering awkwardly out of the hole in the roots. Then came Hermione...
then the unconscious Snape, drifting weirdly upward. Next came Harry and Black.
They all began to walk toward the castle. Harry's
heart was starting to beat very fast. He glanced up at the sky. Any moment now,
that cloud was going to move aside and show the moon... "Harry,"
Hermione muttered as though she knew exactly what he was thinking, "we've
got to stay put. We mustn't be seen. There's nothing we can do..." "So
we're just going to let Pettigrew escape all over again..." said Harry
quietly. "How
do you expect to find a rat in the dark?" snapped Hermione. "There's
nothing we can do! We came back to help Sirius; we're not supposed to be doing
anything else!" "All
right!" The
moon slid out from behind its cloud. They saw the tiny figures across the grounds
stop. Then they saw movement - "There
goes Lupin," Hermione whispered. "He's transforming." "Hermione!"
said Harry suddenly. "We've got to move!" "We
mustn't, I keep telling you -" "Not
to interfere! Lupin's going to run into the forest, right at us!" Hermione
gasped. "Quick!"
she moaned, dashing to untie Buckbeak. "Quick! Where are we going to go?
Where are we going to hide? The Dementors will be coming any moment -" "Back
to Hagrid's!" Harry said. "It's empty now - come on!" They
ran as fast as they could, Buckbeak cantering along behind them. They could
hear the werewolf howling behind them... The
cabin was in sight; Harry skidded to the door, wrenched it open, and Hermione
and Buckbeak flashed past him; Harry threw himself in after them and bolted the
door. Fang the boarhound barked loudly. "Shh,
Fang, it's us!" said Hermione, hurrying over and scratching his ears to
quiet him. "That was really close!" she said to Harry. "Yeah..." Harry
was looking out of the window. It was much harder to see what was going on from
here. Buckbeak seemed very happy to find himself back inside Hagrid's house. He
lay down in front of the fire, folded his wings contentedly, and seemed ready
for a good nap. "I
think I'd better go outside again, you know," said Harry slowly. "I
can't see what's going on - we won't know when it's time -" Hermione
looked up. Her expression was suspicious. "I'm
not going to try and interfere," said Harry quickly. "But if we don't
see what's going on, how're we going to know when it's time to rescue
Sirius?" "Well...
okay, then... I'll wait here with Buckbeak... but Harry, be careful - there's a
werewolf out there - and the Dementors." Harry
stepped outside again and edged around the cabin. He could hear yelping in the
distance. That meant the Dementors were closing in on Sirius... He and Hermione
would be running to him any moment... Harry
stared out toward the lake, his heart doing a kind of drumroll in his chest...
Whoever had sent that Patronus would be appearing at any moment... For a
fraction of a second he stood, irresolute, in front of Hagrid's door. You must
not be seen. But he didn't want to be seen. He wanted to do the seeing... He had
to know... And
there were the Dementors. They were emerging out of the darkness from every direction,
gliding around the edges of the lake... They were moving away from where Harry
stood, to the opposite bank... He wouldn't have to get near them... Harry
began to run. He had no thought in his head except his father... If it was him...
if it really was him... he had to know, had to find out... The
lake was coming nearer and nearer, but there was no sign of anybody. On the
opposite bank, he could see tiny glimmers of silver - his own attempts at a
Patronus - There
was a bush at the very edge of the water. Harry threw himself behind it,
peering desperately through the leaves. On the opposite bank, the glimmers of
silver were suddenly extinguished. A terrified excitement shot through him -
any moment now - "Come
on!" he muttered, staring about. "Where are you? Dad, come on -" But
no one came. Harry raised his head to look at the circle of Dementors across
the lake. One of them was lowering its hood. It was time for the rescuer to
appear - but no one was coming to help this time - And
then it hit him - he understood. He hadn't seen his father he had seen himself
- Harry
flung himself out from behind the bush and pulled out his wand. "EXPECTO
PATRONUM! " he yelled. And
out of the end of his wand burst, not a shapeless cloud of mist, but a
blinding, dazzling, silver animal. He screwed up his eyes, trying to see what
it was. It looked like a horse. It was galloping silently away from him, across
the black surface of the lake. He saw it lower its head and charge at the
swarming Dementors... Now it was galloping around and around the black shapes on
the ground, and the Dementors were falling back, scattering, retreating into
the darkness... They were gone. The
Patronus turned. It was cantering back toward Harry across the still surface of
the water. It wasn't a horse. It wasn't a unicorn, either. It was a stag. It
was shining brightly as the moon above... it was coming back to him... It
stopped on the bank. Its hooves made no mark on the soft ground as it stared at
Harry with its large, silver eyes. Slowly, it bowed its antlered head. And
Harry realized... "Prongs," he whispered. But
as his trembling fingertips stretched toward the creature, it vanished. Harry
stood there, hand still outstretched. Then, with a great leap of his heart, he
heard hooves behind him. He whirled around and saw Hermione dashing toward him,
dragging Buckbeak behind her. "What
did you do?" she said fiercely. "You said you were only going to keep
a lookout!" "I
just saved all our lives..." said Harry. "Get behind here behind this
bush - I'll explain." Hermione
listened to what had just happened with her mouth open yet again. "Did
anyone see you?" "Yes,
haven't you been listening? I saw me but I thought I was my dad! It's
okay!" "Harry,
I can't believe it... You conjured up a Patronus that drove away all those
Dementors! That's very, very advanced magic." "I
knew I could do it this time," said Harry, "because I'd already done
it... Does that make sense?" "I
don't know - Harry, look at Snape!" Together
they peered around the bush at the other bank. Snape had regained
consciousness. He was conjuring stretchers and lifting the limp forms of Harry,
Hermione, and Black onto them. A fourth stretcher, no doubt bearing Ron, was
already floating at his side. Then, wand held out in front of him, he moved them
away toward the castle. "Right,
it's nearly time," said Hermione tensely, looking at her watch.
"We've got about forty-five minutes until Dumbledore locks the door to the
hospital wing. We've got to rescue Sirius and get back into the ward before
anybody realizes we're missing..." They
waited, watching the moving clouds reflected in the lake, while the bush next
to them whispered in the breeze. Buckbeak, bored, was ferreting for worms
again. "Do
you reckon he's up there yet?" said Harry, checking his watch. He looked
up at the castle and began counting the windows to the right of the West Tower. "Look!"
Hermione whispered. "Who's that? Someone's coming back out of the
castle!" Harry
stared through the darkness. The man was hurrying across the grounds, toward
one of the entrances. Something shiny glinted in his belt. "Macnair!"
said Harry. "The executioner! He's gone to get the Dementors! This is it,
Hermione -" Hermione
put her hands on Buckbeak's back and Harry gave her a leg up. Then he placed
his foot on one of the lower branches of the bush and climbed up in front of
her. He pulled Buckbeak's rope back over his neck and tied it to the other side
of his collar like reins. "Ready?"
he whispered to Hermione. "You'd better hold on to me -" He
nudged Buckbeak's sides with his heels. Buckbeak
soared straight into the dark air. Harry gripped his flanks with his knees,
feeling the great wings rising powerfully beneath them. Hermione was holding
Harry very tight around the waist; he could hear her muttering, "Oh, no -
I don't like this oh, I really don't like this -" Harry
urged Buckbeak forward. They were gliding quietly toward the upper floors of
the castle... Harry pulled hard on the left-hand side of the rope, and Buckbeak
turned. Harry was trying to count the windows flashing past - "Whoa!"
he said, pulling backward as hard as he could. Buckbeak
slowed down and they found themselves at a stop, unless you counted the fact
that they kept rising up and down several feet as the Hippogriff beat his wings
to remain airborne. "He's
there!" Harry said, spotting Sirius as they rose up beside the window. He
reached out, and as Buckbeak's wings fell, was able to tap sharply on the
glass. Black
looked up. Harry saw his jaw drop. He leapt from his chair, hurried to the
window and tried to open it, but it was locked. "Stand
back!" Hermione called to him, and she took out her wand, still gripping
the back of Harry's robes with her left hand. "Alohomora!" The
window sprang open. "How
- how -?" said Black weakly, staring at the Hippogriff. "Get
on - there's not much time," said Harry, gripping Buckbeak firmly on
either side of his sleek neck to hold him steady. "You've got to get out
of here -the Dementors are coming - Macnair's gone to get them." Black
placed a hand on either side of the window frame and heaved his head and
shoulders out of it. It was very lucky he was so thin. In seconds, he had
managed to fling one leg over Buckbeak's back and pull himself onto the
Hippogriff behind Hermione. "Okay,
Buckbeak, up!" said Harry, shaking the rope. "Up to the tower - come
on." The
Hippogriff gave one sweep of its mighty wings and they were soaring upward
again, high as the top of the West Tower. Buckbeak landed with a clatter on the
battlements, and Harry and Hermione slid off him at once. "Sirius,
you'd better go, quick," Harry panted. "They'll reach Flitwick's
office any moment, they'll find out you're gone." Buckbeak
pawed the ground, tossing his sharp head. "What
happened to the other boy? Ron?" croaked Sirius. "He's
going to be okay. He's still out of it, but Madam Pomfrey says she'll be able
to make him better. Quick - go -" But
Black was still staring down at Harry. "How
can I ever thank -" "GO!"
Harry and Hermione shouted together. Black
wheeled Buckbeak around, facing the open sky. "We'll
see each other again," he said. "You are - truly your father's son,
Harry..." He
squeezed Buckbeak's sides with his heels. Harry and Hermione jumped back as the
enormous wings rose once more... The Hippogriff took off into the air... He and his
rider became smaller and smaller as Harry gazed after them... then a cloud
drifted across the moon... They were gone. CHAPTER TWENTY-TWO OWL POST AGAIN"Harry!" Hermione
was tugging at his sleeve, staring at her watch. "We've got exactly ten
minutes to get back down to the hospital wing without anybody seeing us -
before Dumbledore locks the door -" "Okay,"
said Harry, wrenching his gaze from the sky, "let's go..." They
slipped through the doorway behind them and down a tightly spiraling stone
staircase. As they reached the bottom of it, they heard voices. They flattened
themselves against the wall and listened. It sounded like Fudge and Snape. They
were walking quickly along the corridor at the foot of the staircase. "...
only hope Dumbledore's not going to make difficulties," Snape was saying.
"The Kiss will be performed immediately?" "As
soon as Macnair returns with the Dementors. This whole Black affair has been
highly embarrassing. I can't tell you how much I'm looking forward to informing
the Daily Prophet that we've got him at last... I daresay they'll want to
interview you, Snape... and once young Harry's back in his right mind, I expect
he'll want to tell the Prophet exactly how you saved him..." Harry
clenched his teeth. He caught a glimpse of Snape's smirk as he and Fudge passed
Harry and Hermione's hiding place. Their footsteps died away. Harry and
Hermione waited a few moments to make sure they'd really gone, then started to
run in the opposite direction. Down one staircase, then another, along a new
corridor - then they heard a cackling ahead.
"Peeves!" Harry muttered, grabbing
Hermione's wrist. "In here!"
They tore into a deserted classroom to their
left just in time. Peeves seemed to be bouncing along the corridor in boisterous
good spirits, laughing his head off.
"Oh, he's horrible," whispered
Hermione, her ear to the door. "I bet he's all excited because the
Dementors are going to finish off Sirius..." She checked her watch.
"Three minutes, Harry!"
They waited until Peeves's gloating voice had
faded into the distance, then slid back out of the room and broke into a run
again.
"Hermione - what'll happen - if we don't
get back inside before Dumbledore locks the door?" Harry panted.
"I don't want to think about it!" Hermione
moaned, checking her watch again. "One minute!"
They had reached the end of the corridor with
the hospital wing entrance. "Okay - I can hear Dumbledore," said
Hermione tensely. "Come on, Harry!"
They crept along the corridor. The door opened.
Dumbledore's back appeared.
"I am going to lock you in," they
heard him saying. "it is five minutes to midnight. Miss Granger, three
turns should do it. Good luck."
Dumbledore backed out of the room, closed the
door, and took out his wand to magically lock it. Panicking, Harry and Hermione
ran forward. Dumbledore looked up, and a wide smile appeared under the long
silver mustache. "Well?" he said quietly.
"We did it!" said Harry breathlessly.
"Sirius has gone, on Buckbeak..."
Dumbledore beamed at them.
"Well done. I think -" He listened
intently for any sound within the hospital wing. "Yes, I think you've gone
too - get inside - I'll lock you in -"
Harry and Hermione slipped back inside the
dormitory. It was empty except for Ron, who was still lying motionless in the
end bed. As the lock clicked behind them, Harry and Hermione crept back to
their own beds, Hermione tucking the Time-Turner back under her robes. A moment
later, Madam Pomfrey came striding back out of her office.
"Did I hear the headmaster leaving? Am I
allowed to look after my patients now?"
She was in a very bad mood. Harry and Hermione
thought it best to accept their chocolate quietly. Madam Pomfrey stood over
them, making sure they ate it. But Harry could hardly swallow. He and Hermione
were waiting, listening, their nerves jangling... And then, as they both took a
fourth piece of chocolate from Madam Pomfrey, they heard a distant roar of fury
echoing from somewhere above them...
"What was that?" said Madam Pomfrey in
alarm.
Now they could hear angry voices, growing louder
and louder. Madam Pomfrey was staring at the door.
"Really - they'll wake everybody up! What
do they think they're doing?"
Harry was trying to hear what the voices were
saying. They were drawing nearer -
"He must have Disapparated, Severus. We
should have left somebody in the room with him. When this gets out -"
"HE DIDN'T DISAPPARATE!" Snape roared,
now very close at hand. "YOU CAN'T APPARATE OR DISAPPARATE INSIDE THIS
CASTLE! THIS - HAS - SOMETHING - TO - DO - WITH - POTTER!"
"Severus - be reasonable - Harry has been
locked up -"
BAM.
The door of the hospital wing burst open.
Fudge, Snape, and Dumbledore came striding into
the ward. Dumbledore alone looked calm. Indeed, he looked as though he was
quite enjoying himself. Fudge appeared angry. But Snape was beside himself.
"OUT WITH IT, POTTER!" he bellowed.
"WHAT DID YOU DO?"
"Professor Snape!" shrieked Madam
Pomfrey. "Control yourself!"
"See here, Snape, be reasonable," said
Fudge. "This door's been locked, we just saw -"
"THEY HELPED HIM ESCAPE, I KNOW IT!"
Snape howled, pointing at Harry and Hermione. His face was twisted; spit was
flying from his mouth.
"Calm down, man!" Fudge barked.
"You're talking nonsense!"
"YOU DON'T KNOW POTTER!" shrieked
Snape. "HE DID IT, I KNOW HE DID IT -"
"That will do, Severus," said
Dumbledore quietly. "Think about what you are saying. This door has been
locked since I left the ward ten minutes ago. Madam Pomfrey, have these
students left their beds?"
"Of course not!" said Madam Pomfrey,
bristling. "I would have heard them!"
"Well, there you have it, Severus,"
said Dumbledore calmly. "Unless you are suggesting that Harry and Hermione
are able to be in two places at once, I'm afraid I don't see any point in
troubling them further."
Snape stood there, seething, staring from Fudge,
who looked thoroughly shocked at his behavior, to Dumbledore, whose eyes were
twinkling behind his glasses. Snape whirled about, robes swishing behind him,
and stormed out of the ward.
"Fellow seems quite unbalanced," said
Fudge, staring after him. "I'd watch out for him if I were you,
Dumbledore."
"Oh, he's not unbalanced," said
Dumbledore quietly. "He's just suffered a severe disappointment."
"He's not the only one!" puffed Fudge.
"The Daily Prophet's going to have a field day! We had Black cornered and
he slipped through our fingers yet again! All it needs now is for the story of
that Hippogriff's escape to get out, and I'll be a laughingstock! Well... I'd
better go and notify the Ministry...."
"And the Dementors?" said Dumbledore.
"They'll be removed from the school, I trust?"
"Oh yes, they'll have to go," said
Fudge, running his fingers distractedly through his hair. "Never dreamed
they'd attempt to administer the Kiss on an innocent boy... Completely out of
control... no, I'll have them packed off back to Azkaban tonight... Perhaps we
should think about dragons at the school entrance..."
"Hagrid would like that," said
Dumbledore, smiling at Harry and Hermione. As he and Fudge left the dormitory,
Madam Pomfrey hurried to the door and locked it again. Muttering angrily to
herself, she headed back to her office.
There was a low moan from the other end of the
ward. Ron had woken up. They could see him sitting up, rubbing his head,
looking around.
"What - what happened?" he groaned.
"Harry? Why are we in here? Where's Sirius? Where's Lupin? What's going
on?"
Harry and Hermione looked at each other.
"You explain," said Harry, helping
himself to some more chocolate.
*
When Harry, Ron, and Hermione left the hospital
wing at noon the next day, it was to find an almost deserted castle. The
sweltering, heat and the end of the exams meant that everyone was taking full
advantage of another Hogsmeade visit. Neither Ron nor Hermione felt like going,
however, so they and Harry wandered onto the grounds, still talking about the
extraordinary events of the previous night and wondering where Sirius and
Buckbeak were now. Sitting near the lake, watching the giant squid waving its
tentacles lazily above the water, Harry lost the thread of the conversation as
he looked across to the opposite bank. The stag had galloped toward him from
there just last night...
A shadow fell across them and they looked up to
see a very bleary-eyed Hagrid, mopping his sweaty face with one of his
tablecloth-sized handkerchiefs and beaming down at them.
"Know I shouldn' feel happy, after wha'
happened las' night," he said. "I mean, Black escapin' again, an,
everythin' - but guess what?"
"What?" they said, pretending to look
curious.
"Beaky! He escaped! He's free! Bin
celebratin' all night!"
"That's wonderful!" said Hermione,
giving Ron a reproving look because he looked as though he was close to
laughing.
"Yeah... can't've tied him up properly,"
said Hagrid, gazing happily out over the grounds. "I was worried this
mornin', mind... thought he mighta met Professor Lupin on the grounds, but Lupin
says he never ate anythin' las' night..."
"What?" said Harry quickly.
"Blimey, haven' yeh heard?" said
Hagrid, his smile fading a little. He lowered his voice, even though there was
nobody in sight. "Er - Snape told all the Slytherins this mornin'...
Thought everyone'd know by now... Professor Lupin's a werewolf, see. An' he was
loose on the grounds las' night... He's packin' now, o' course."
"He's packing?" said Harry, alarmed.
"Why?"
"Leavin', isn' he?" said Hagrid,
looking surprised that Harry had to ask. "Resigned firs' thing this
mornin'. Says he can't risk it happenin again."
Harry scrambled to his feet.
"I'm going to see him," he said to Ron
and Hermione.
"But if he's resigned -"
"- doesn't sound like there's anything we
can do -"
"I don't care. I still want to see him.
I'll meet you back here."
Lupin's office door was open. He had already
packed most of his things. The Grindylow's empty tank stood next to his
battered old suitcase, which was open and nearly full. Lupin was bending over
something on his desk and looked up only when Harry knocked on the door.
"I saw you coming," said Lupin,
smiling. He pointed to the parchment he had been poring over. It was the
Marauder's Map.
"I just saw Hagrid," said Harry.
"And he said you'd resigned. It's not true, is it?"
"I'm afraid it is," said Lupin. He
started opening his desk drawers and taking out the contents.
"Why?" said Harry. "The Ministry
of Magic don't think you were helping Sirius, do they?"
Lupin crossed to the door and closed it behind
Harry.
"No. Professor Dumbledore managed to
convince Fudge that I was trying to save your lives." He sighed.
"That was the final straw for Severus. I think the loss of the Order of
Merlin hit him hard. So he - er - accidentally let slip that I am a werewolf
this morning at breakfast."
"You're not leaving just because of
that!" said Harry.
Lupin smiled wryly.
"This time tomorrow, the owls will start
arriving from parents... They will not want a werewolf teaching their children,
Harry. And after last night, I see their point. I could have bitten any of
you... That must never happen again."
"You're the best Defense Against the Dark
Arts teacher we've ever had!" said Harry. "Don't go!"
Lupin shook his head and didn't speak. He
carried on emptying his drawers. Then, while Harry was trying to think of a
good argument to make him stay, Lupin said, "From what the headmaster told
me this morning, you saved a lot of lives last night, Harry. If I'm proud of
anything I've done this year, it's how much you've learned... Tell me about your
Patronus."
"How d'you know about that?" said
Harry, distracted.
"What else could have driven the Dementors
back?"
Harry told Lupin what had happened. When he'd
finished, Lupin was smiling again.
"Yes, your father was always a stag when he
transformed," he said. "You guessed right... that's why we called him
Prongs."
Lupin threw his last few books into his case,
closed the desk drawers, and turned to look at Harry.
"Here - I brought this from the Shrieking
Shack last night," he said, handing Harry back the Invisibility Cloak.
"And..." He hesitated, then held out the Marauder's Map too. "I am
no longer your teacher, so I don't feel guilty about giving you back this as
well. It's no use to me, and I daresay you, Ron, and Hermione will find uses
for it."
Harry took the map and grinned.
"You told me Moony, Wormtail, Padfoot, and
Prongs would've wanted to lure me out of school... you said they'd have thought
it was funny."
"And so we would have," said Lupin,
now reaching down to close his case. "I have no hesitation in saying that
James would have been highly disappointed if his son had never found any of the
secret passages out of the castle."
There was a knock on the door. Harry hastily
stuffed the Marauder's Map and the Invisibility Cloak into his pocket.
It was Professor Dumbledore. He didn't look
surprised to see Harry there.
"Your carriage is at the gates,
Remus," he said.
"Thank You, Headmaster."
Lupin picked up his old suitcase and the empty
Grindylow tank.
"Well - good-bye, Harry," he said,
smiling. "It has been a real pleasure teaching you. I feel sure we'll meet
again sometime. Headmaster, there is no need to see me to the gates, I can manage..."
Harry had the impression that Lupin wanted to
leave as quickly as possible.
"Good-bye, then, Remus," said
Dumbledore soberly. Lupin shifted the Grindylow tank slightly so that he and
Dumbledore could shake hands. Then, with a final nod to Harry and a swift
smile, Lupin left the office.
Harry sat down in his vacated chair, staring
glumly at the floor. He heard the door close and looked up. Dumbledore was
still there.
"Why so miserable, Harry?" he said
quietly. "You should be very proud of yourself after last night."
"It didn't make any difference," said
Harry bitterly. "Pettigrew got away."
"Didn't make any difference?" said
Dumbledore quietly, "It made all the difference in the world, Harry. You
helped uncover the truth. You saved an innocent man from a terrible fate."
Terrible. Something stirred in Harry's memory.
Greater and more terrible than ever before... Professor Trelawney's prediction!
"Professor Dumbledore - yesterday, when I
was having my Divination exam, Professor Trelawney went very - very
strange."
"Indeed?" said Dumbledore. "Er -
stranger than usual, you mean?"
"Yes... her voice went all deep and her eyes
rolled and she said... she said Voldemort's servant was going to set out to
return to him before midnight... She said the servant would help him come back
to power." Harry stared up at Dumbledore. "And then she sort of
became normal again, and she couldn't remember anything she'd said. Was it -
was she making a real prediction?"
Dumbledore looked mildly impressed.
"Do you know, Harry, I think she might have
been." he said thoughtfully. "Who'd have thought it? That brings her
total of real predictions up to two. I should offer her a pay raise..."
"But -" Harry looked at him, aghast.
How could Dumbledore take this so calmly?
"But - I stopped Sirius and Professor Lupin
from killing Pettigrew! That makes it my fault if Voldemort comes back!"
"It does not," said Dumbledore
quietly. "Hasn't your experience with the Time-Turner taught you anything,
Harry? The consequences of our actions are always so complicated, so diverse,
that predicting the future is a very difficult business indeed... Professor
Trelawney, bless her, is living proof of that... You did a very noble thing, in
saving Pettigrew's life."
"But if he helps Voldemort back to power..."
"Pettigrew owes his life to you. You have
sent Voldemort a deputy who is in your debt... When one wizard saves another
wizard's life, it creates a certain bond between them... and I'm much mistaken if
Voldemort wants his servant in the debt of Harry Potter."
"I don't want a connection with
Pettigrew!" said Harry. "He betrayed my parents!"
"This is magic at its deepest, its most
impenetrable, Harry. But trust me... the time may come when you will be very glad
you saved Pettigrew's life."
Harry couldn't imagine when that would be.
Dumbledore looked as though he knew what Harry was thinking.
"I knew your father very well, both at
Hogwarts and later, Harry," he said gently. "He would have saved
Pettigrew too, I am sure of it."
Harry looked up at him. Dumbledore wouldn't
laugh - he could tell Dumbledore...
"I thought it was my dad who'd conjured my
Patronus. I mean, when I saw myself across the lake... I thought I was seeing
him."
"An easy mistake to make," said
Dumbledore softly. "I expect you'll tire of hearing it, but you do look
extraordinarily like James. Except for the eyes... you have your mother's
eyes."
Harry shook his head.
"It was stupid, thinking it was him,"
he muttered. "I mean, I knew he was dead."
"You think the dead we loved ever truly leave
us? You think that we don't recall them more clearly than ever in times of
great trouble? Your father is alive in you, Harry, and shows himself most
plainly when you have need of him. How else could you produce that particular
Patronus? Prongs rode again last night."
It took a moment for Harry to realize what
Dumbledore had said.
"Last night Sirius told me all about how
they became Animagi," said Dumbledore, smiling. "An extraordinary
achievement - not least, keeping it quiet from me. And then I remembered the
most unusual form your Patronus took, when it charged Mr. Malfoy down at your
Quidditch match against Ravenclaw. You know, Harry, in a way, you did see your
father last night... You found him inside yourself."
And Dumbledore left the office, leaving Harry to
his very confused thoughts.
*
Nobody at Hogwarts now knew the truth of what
had happened the night that Sirius, Buckbeak, and Pettigrew had vanished except
Harry, Ron, Hermione, and Professor Dumbledore. As the end of term approached,
Harry heard many different theories about what had really happened, but none of
them came close to the truth.
Malfoy was furious about Buckbeak. He was
convinced that Hagrid had found a way of smuggling the Hippogriff to safety,
and seemed outraged that he and his father had been outwitted by a gamekeeper.
Percy Weasley, meanwhile, had much to say on the subject of Sirius's escape.
"If I manage to get into the Ministry, I'll
have a lot of proposals to make about Magical Law Enforcement!" he told
the only person who would listen - his girlfriend, Penelope.
Though the weather was perfect, though the
atmosphere was so cheerful, though he knew they had achieved the near
impossible in helping Sirius to freedom, Harry had never approached the end of
a school year in worse spirits.
He certainly wasn't the only one who was sorry
to see Professor Lupin go. The whole of Harry's Defense Against the Dark Arts
class was miserable about his resignation.
"Wonder what they'll give us next
year?" said Seamus Finnigan gloomily.
"Maybe a vampire," suggested Dean
Thomas hopefully.
It wasn't only Professor Lupin's departure that
was weighing on Harry's mind. He couldn't help thinking a lot about Professor
Trelawney's prediction. He kept wondering where Pettigrew was now, whether he had
sought sanctuary with Voldemort yet. But the thing that was lowering Harry's
spirits most of all was the prospect of returning to the Dursleys. For maybe
half an hour, a glorious half hour, he had believed he would be living with
Sirius from now on...his parents' best friend...It would have been the next best
thing to having his own father back. And while no news of Sirius was definitely
good news, because it meant he had successfully gone into hiding, Harry
couldn't help feeling miserable when he thought of the home he might have had,
and the fact that it was now impossible.
The exam results came out on the last day of
term. Harry, Ron, and Hermione had passed every subject. Harry was amazed that
he had got through Potions. He had a shrewd suspicion that Dumbledore might
have stepped in to stop Snape failing him on purpose. Snape's behavior toward
Harry over the past week had been quite alarming. Harry wouldn't have thought
it possible that Snape's dislike for him could increase, but it certainly had.
A muscle twitched unpleasantly at the corner of Snape's thin mouth every time
he looked at Harry, and he was constantly flexing his fingers, as though
itching to place them around Harry's throat.
Percy had got his top-grade N.E.W.T.s; Fred and
George had scraped a handful of O.W.L.s each. Gryffindor House, meanwhile,
largely thanks to their spectacular performance in the Quidditch Cup, had won
the House championship for the third year running. This meant that the end of
term feast took place amid decorations of scarlet and gold, and that the
Gryffindor table was the noisiest of the lot, as everybody celebrated. Even
Harry managed to forget about the journey back to the Dursleys the next day as
he ate, drank, talked, and laughed with the rest.
*
As the Hogwarts Express pulled out of the
station the next morning, Hermione gave Harry and Ron some surprising news.
"I went to see Professor McGonagall this
morning, just before breakfast. I've decided to drop Muggle Studies."
"But you passed your exam with three hundred
and twenty percent!" said Ron.
"I know," sighed Hermione, "but I
can't stand another year like this one. That Time-Turner, it was driving me
mad. I've handed it in. Without Muggle Studies and Divination, I'll be able to
have a normal schedule again."
"I still can't believe you didn't tell us
about it," said Ron grumpily. "We're supposed to be your
friends."
"I promised I wouldn't tell anyone,"
said Hermione severely. She looked around at Harry, who was watching Hogwarts
disappear from view behind a mountain. Two whole months before he'd see it
again...
"Oh, cheer up, Harry!" said Hermione
sadly.
"I'm okay," said Harry quickly.
"Just thinking about the holidays."
"Yeah, I've been thinking about them
too," said Ron. "Harry, you've got to come and stay with us. I'll fix
it up with Mum and Dad, then I'll call you. I know how to use a fellytone now
-"
"A telephone, Ron," said Hermione.
"Honestly, you should take Muggle Studies next year..."
Ron ignored her.
"It's the Quidditch World Cup this summer!
How about it, Harry? Come and stay, and we'll go and see it! Dad can usually
get tickets from work."
This proposal had the effect of cheering Harry
up a great deal.
"Yeah... I bet the Dursleys'd be pleased to
let me come... especially after what I did to Aunt Marge..."
Feeling considerably more cheerful, Harry joined
Ron and Hermione in several games of Exploding Snap, and when the witch with
the tea cart arrived, he bought himself a very large lunch, though nothing with
chocolate in it.
But it was late in the afternoon before the
thing that made him truly happy turned up...
"Harry," said Hermione suddenly,
peering over his shoulder. "What's that thing outside your window?"
Harry turned to look outside. Something very
small and gray was bobbing in and out of sight beyond the glass. He stood up
for a better look and saw that it was a tiny owl, carrying a letter that was
much too big for it. The owl was so small, in fact, that it kept tumbling over
in the air, buffeted this way and that in the train's slipstream. Harry quickly
pulled down the window, stretched out his arm, and caught it. It felt like a
very fluffy Snitch. He brought it carefully inside.
The owl dropped its letter onto Harry's seat and
began zooming around their compartment, apparently very pleased with itself for
accomplishing its task. Hedwig clicked her beak with a sort of dignified
disapproval. Crookshanks sat up in his seat, following the owl with his great
yellow eyes. Ron, noticing this, snatched the owl safely out of harm's way.
Harry picked up the letter. It was addressed to
him. He ripped open the letter, and shouted, "It's from Sirius!"
"What?" said Ron and Hermione
excitedly. "Read it aloud!"
Dear Harry,
I hope this finds you before you reach your aunt
and uncle. I don't know whether they're used to owl post.
Buckbeak and I are in hiding. I won't tell you
where, in case this owl falls into the wrong hands. I have some doubt about his
reliability, but he is the best I could find, and he did seem eager for the
job.
I believe the Dementors are still searching for
me, but they haven't a hope of finding me here. I am planning to allow some
Muggles to glimpse me soon, a long way from Hogwarts, so that the security on
the castle will be lifted.
There is something I never got around to telling
you during our brief meeting. It was I who sent you the Firebolt -
"Ha!" said Hermione triumphantly.
"See! I told you it was from him!"
"Yes, but he hadn't jinxed it, had
he?" said Ron. "Ouch!" The tiny owl now hooting happily in his
hand, had nibbled one of his fingers in what it seemed to think was an
affectionate way.
- Crookshanks took the order to the Owl Office
for me. I used your name but told them to take the gold from my own Gringotts
vault. Please consider it as thirteen birthdays' worth of presents from your
godfather.
I would also like to apologize for the fright I
think I gave you that night last year when you left your uncle's house. I had
only hoped to get a glimpse of you before starting my journey north, but I
think the sight of me alarmed you.
I am enclosing something else for you, which I
think will make your next year at Hogwarts more enjoyable.
If ever you need me, send word. Your owl will
find me.
I'll write again soon.
Sirius
Harry looked eagerly inside the envelope. There
was another piece of parchment in there. He read it through quickly and felt
suddenly as warm and contented as though he'd swallowed a bottle of hot
butterbeer in one gulp.
I, Sirius Black, Harry Potter's godfather,
hereby give him permission to visit Hogsmeade on weekends.
"That'll be good enough for
Dumbledore!" said Harry happily. He looked back at Sirius's letter.
"Hang on, there's a PS..."
I thought your friend Ron might like to keep
this owl, as it's my fault he no longer has a rat.
Ron's eyes widened. The minute owl was still
hooting excitedly. "Keep him?" he said uncertainly. He looked closely
at the owl for a moment; then, to Harry's and Hermione's great surprise, he
held him out for Crookshanks to sniff.
"What do you reckon?" Ron asked the
cat. "Definitely an owl?"
Crookshanks purred.
"That's good enough for me," said Ron
happily. "He's mine."
Harry read and reread the letter from Sirius all
the way back into King's Cross station. It was still clutched tightly in his
hand as he, Ron, and Hermione stepped back through the barrier of platform nine
and three-quarters. Harry spotted Uncle Vernon at once. He was standing a good
distance from Mr. and Mrs. Weasley, eyeing them suspiciously, and when Mrs.
Weasley hugged Harry in greeting, his worst suspicions about them seemed
confirmed.
"I'll call about the World Cup!" Ron
yelled after Harry as Harry bid him and Hermione good-bye, then wheeled the
trolley bearing his trunk and Hedwig's cage toward Uncle Vernon, who greeted
him in his usual fashion.
"What's that?" he snarled, staring at
the envelope Harry was still clutching in his hand. "If it's another form
for me to sign, you've got another -"
"It's not," said Harry cheerfully.
"It's a letter from my godfather."
"Godfather?" sputtered Uncle Vernon.
"You haven't got a godfather!"
"Yes, I have," said Harry brightly.
"He was my mum and dad's best friend. He's a convicted murderer, but he's
broken out of wizard prison and he's on the run. He likes to keep in touch with
me, though... keep up with my news... check if I'm happy..."
And, grinning broadly at the look of horror on
Uncle Vernon's face, Harry set off toward the station exit, Hedwig rattling
along in front of him, for what looked like a much better summer than the last.
|
|
© 2025 Библиотека RealLib.org
(support [a t] reallib.org) |